# Hypatia

# Chapter one



# Page 1

  
involved.[![61HlYvsBBNL._AC_UF1000,1000_QL80_.jpg](https://book.blueben.net/uploads/images/gallery/2024-09/scaled-1680-/61hlyvsbbnl-ac-uf10001000-ql80.jpg)](https://book.blueben.net/uploads/images/gallery/2024-09/61hlyvsbbnl-ac-uf10001000-ql80.jpg)

# Page 2

The Project Gutenberg EBook of Hypatia, by Charles Kingsley #14 in our series  
by Charles Kingsley  
Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the copyright  
laws for your country before downloading or redistributing this or any other  
Project Gutenberg eBook.  
This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project Gutenberg  
file. Please do not remove it. Do not change or edit the header without written  
permission.  
Please read the “legal small print,” and other information about the eBook and  
Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file. Included is important information  
about your specific rights and restrictions in how the file may be used. You can  
also find out about how to make a donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get

# New Page

The Project Gutenberg EBook of Hypatia, by Charles Kingsley #14 in our series  
by Charles Kingsley  
Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the copyright  
laws for your country before downloading or redistributing this or any other  
Project Gutenberg eBook.  
This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project Gutenberg  
file. Please do not remove it. Do not change or edit the header without written  
permission.  
Please read the “legal small print,” and other information about the eBook and  
Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file. Included is important information  
about your specific rights and restrictions in how the file may be used. You can  
also find out about how to make a donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get  
involved.  
Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts  
eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971  
\*\*\*\*\*These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!\*\*\*\*\*  
Title: Hypatia or New Foes with an Old Face  
Author: Charles Kingsley  
Release Date: August, 2004 \[EBook #6308\] \[Yes, we are more than one year  
ahead of schedule\] \[This file was first posted on November 23, 2002\]  
Edition: 10  
Language: English  
Character set encoding: ASCII  
START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HYPATIA \*\*\*  
Produced by P. J. Riddick  
HYPATIA  
OR  
NEW FOES WITH AN OLD FACE  
by Charles Kingsley  
PREFACE  
A picture of life in the fifth century must needs contain much which will be  
painful to any reader, and which the young and innocent will do well to leave  
altogether unread. It has to represent a very hideous, though a very great, age;  
one of those critical and cardinal eras in the history of the human race, in which  
virtues and vices manifest themselves side by side—even, at times, in the same  
person—with the most startling openness and power. One who writes of such an  
era labours under a troublesome disadvantage. He dare not tell how evil people  
were; he will not be believed if he tells how good they were. In the present case  
that disadvantage is doubled; for while the sins of the Church, however heinous,  
were still such as admit of being expressed in words, the sins of the heathen  
world, against which she fought, were utterly indescribable; and the Christian  
apologist is thus compelled, for the sake of decency, to state the Church’s case  
far more weakly than the facts deserve.  
Not, be it ever remembered, that the slightest suspicion of immorality attaches  
either to the heroine of this book, or to the leading philosophers of her school,  
for several centuries. Howsoever base and profligate their disciples, or the  
Manichees, may have been, the great Neo-Platonists were, as Manes himself  
was, persons of the most rigid and ascetic virtue.  
For a time had arrived, in which no teacher who did not put forth the most lofty  
pretensions to righteousness could expect a hearing. That Divine Word, who is  
‘The Light who lighteth every man which cometh into the world,’ had awakened  
in the heart of mankind a moral craving never before felt in any strength, except  
by a few isolated philosophers or prophets. The Spirit had been poured out on all  
flesh; and from one end of the Empire to the other, from the slave in the mill to  
the emperor on his throne, all hearts were either hungering and thirsting after  
righteousness, or learning to do homage to those who did so. And He who  
excited the craving, was also furnishing that which would satisfy it; and was  
teaching mankind, by a long and painful education, to distinguish the truth from  
its innumerable counterfeits, and to find, for the first time in the world’s life, a  
good news not merely for the select few, but for all mankind without respect of  
rank or race.  
For somewhat more than four hundred years, the Roman Empire and the  
Christian Church, born into the world almost at the same moment, had been  
developing themselves side by side as two great rival powers, in deadly struggle  
for the possession of the human race. The weapons of the Empire had been not  
merely an overwhelming physical force, and a ruthless lust of aggressive  
conquest: but, even more powerful still, an unequalled genius for organisation,  
and an uniform system of external law and order. This was generally a real boon  
to conquered nations, because it substituted a fixed and regular spoliation for the  
fortuitous and arbitrary miseries of savage warfare: but it arrayed, meanwhile, on  
the side of the Empire the wealthier citizens of every province, by allowing them  
their share in the plunder of the labouring masses below them. These, in the  
country districts, were utterly enslaved; while in the cities, nominal freedom was  
of little use to masses kept from starvation by the alms of the government, and  
drugged into brutish good humour by a vast system of public spectacles, in  
which the realms of nature and of art were ransacked to glut the wonder, lust,  
and ferocity of a degraded populace.  
Against this vast organisation the Church had been fighting for now four  
hundred years, armed only with its own mighty and all-embracing message, and  
with the manifestation of a spirit of purity and virtue, of love and self-sacrifice,  
which had proved itself mightier to melt and weld together the hearts of men,  
than all the force and terror, all the mechanical organisation, all the sensual baits  
with which the Empire had been contending against that Gospel in which it had  
recognised instinctively and at first sight, its internecine foe.  
And now the Church had conquered. The weak things of this world had  
confounded the strong. In spite of the devilish cruelties of persecutors; in spite of  
the contaminating atmosphere of sin which surrounded her; in spite of having to  
form herself, not out of a race of pure and separate creatures, but by a most  
literal ‘new birth’ out of those very fallen masses who insulted and persecuted  
her; in spite of having to endure within herself continual outbursts of the evil  
passions in which her members had once indulged without cheek; in spite of a  
thousand counterfeits which sprang up around her and within her, claiming to be  
parts of her, and alluring men to themselves by that very exclusiveness and party  
arrogance which disproved their claim; in spite of all, she had conquered. The  
very emperors had arrayed themselves on her side. Julian’s last attempt to restore  
paganism by imperial influence had only proved that the old faith had lost all  
hold upon the hearts of the masses; at his death the great tide-wave of new  
opinion rolled on unchecked, and the rulers of earth were fain to swim with the  
stream; to accept, in words at least, the Church’s laws as theirs; to acknowledge  
a King of kings to whom even they owed homage and obedience; and to call  
their own slaves their ‘poorer brethren,’ and often, too, their ‘spiritual superiors.’  
But if the emperors had become Christian, the Empire had not. Here and there an  
abuse was lopped off; or an edict was passed for the visitation of prisons and for  
the welfare of prisoners; or a Theodosius was recalled to justice and humanity  
for a while by the stern rebukes of an Ambrose. But the Empire was still the  
same: still a great tyranny, enslaving the masses, crushing national life, fattening  
itself and its officials on a system of world-wide robbery; and while it was  
paramount, there could be no hope for the human race. Nay, there were even  
those among the Christians who saw, like Dante afterwards, in the ‘fatal gift of  
Constantine,’ and the truce between the Church and the Empire, fresh and more  
deadly danger. Was not the Empire trying to extend over the Church itself that  
upas shadow with which it had withered up every other form of human  
existence; to make her, too, its stipendiary slave-official, to be pampered when  
obedient, and scourged whenever she dare assert a free will of her own, a law  
beyond that of her tyrants; to throw on her, by a refined hypocrisy, the care and  
support of the masses on whose lifeblood it was feeding? So thought many then,  
and, as I believe, not unwisely.  
But if the social condition of the civilised world was anomalous at the beginning  
of the fifth century, its spiritual state was still more so. The universal fusion of  
races, languages, and customs, which had gone on for four centuries under the  
Roman rule, had produced a corresponding fusion of creeds, an universal  
fermentation of human thought and faith. All honest belief in the old local  
superstitions of paganism had been long dying out before the more palpable and  
material idolatry of Emperor-worship; and the gods of the nations, unable to  
deliver those who had trusted in them, became one by one the vassals of the  
‘Divus Caesar,’ neglected by the philosophic rich, and only worshipped by the  
lower classes, where the old rites still pandered to their grosser appetites, or  
subserved the wealth and importance of some particular locality.  
In the meanwhile, the minds of men, cut adrift from their ancient moorings,  
wandered wildly over pathless seas of speculative doubt, and especially in the  
more metaphysical andcontemplative East, attempted to solve for themselves the  
questions of man’s relation to the unseen by those thousand schisms, heresies,  
and theosophies (it is a disgrace to the word philosophy to call them by it), on  
the records of which the student now gazes bewildered, unable alike to count or  
to explain their fantasies.  
Yet even these, like every outburst of free human thought, had their use and their  
fruit. They brought before the minds of churchmen a thousand new questions  
which must be solved, unless the Church was to relinquish for ever her claims as  
the great teacher and satisfier of the human soul. To study these bubbles, as they  
formed and burst on every wave of human life; to feel, too often by sad  
experience, as Augustine felt, the charm of their allurements; to divide the truths  
at which they aimed from the falsehood which they offered as its substitute; to  
exhibit the Catholic Church as possessing, in the great facts which she  
proclaimed, full satisfaction, even for the most subtle metaphysical cravings of a  
diseased age;—that was the work of the time; and men were sent to do it, and  
aided in their labour by the very causes which had produced the intellectual  
revolution. The general intermixture of ideas, creeds, and races, even the mere  
physical facilities for intercourse between different parts of the Empire, helped  
to give the great Christian fathers of the fourth and fifth centuries a breadth of  
observation, a depth of thought, a large-hearted and large-minded patience and  
tolerance, such as, we may say boldly, the Church has since beheld but rarely,  
and the world never; at least, if we are to judge those great men by what they  
had, and not by what they had not, and to believe, as we are bound, that had they  
lived now, and not then, they would have towered as far above the heads of this  
generation as they did above the heads of their own. And thus an age, which, to  
the shallow insight of a sneerer like Gibbon, seems only a rotting and aimless  
chaos of sensuality and anarchy, fanaticism and hypocrisy, produced a Clement  
and an Athanase, a Chrysostom and an Augustine; absorbed into the sphere of  
Christianity all which was most valuable in the philosophies of Greece and  
Egypt, and in the social organisation of Rome, as an heirloom for nations yet  
unborn; and laid in foreign lands, by unconscious agents, the foundations of all  
European thought and Ethics.  
But the health of a Church depends, not merely on the creed which it professes,  
not even on the wisdom and holiness of a few great ecclesiastics, but on the faith  
and virtue of its individual members. The mens sana must have a corpus sanum  
to inhabit. And even for the Western Church, the lofty future which was in store  
for it would have been impossible, without some infusion of new and healthier  
blood into the veins of a world drained and tainted by the influence of Rome.  
And the new blood, at the era of this story, was at hand. The great tide of those  
Gothic nations, of which the Norwegian and the German are the purest  
remaining types, though every nation of Europe, from Gibraltar to St.  
Petersburg, owes to them the most precious elements of strength, was sweeping  
onward, wave over wave, in a steady south- western current, across the whole  
Roman territory, and only stopping and recoiling when it reached the shores of  
the Mediterranean. Those wild tribes were bringing with them into the magic  
circle of the Western Church’s influence the very materials which she required  
for the building up of a future Christendom, and which she could find as little in  
the Western Empire as in the Eastern; comparative purity of morals; sacred  
respect for woman, for family life, law, equal justice, individual freedom, and,  
above all, for honesty in word and deed; bodies untainted by hereditary  
effeminacy, hearts earnest though genial, and blessed with a strange willingness  
to learn, even from those whom they despised; a brain equal to that of the  
Roman in practical power, and not too far behind that of the Eastern in  
imaginative and speculative acuteness.  
And their strength was felt at once. Their vanguard, confined with difficulty for  
three centuries beyond the Eastern Alps, at the expense of sanguinary wars, had  
been adopted wherever it was practicable, into the service of the Empire; and the  
heart’s core of the Roman legion was composed of Gothic officers and soldiers.  
But now the main body had arrived. Tribe after tribe was crowding down to the  
Alps, and trampling upon each other on the frontiers of the Empire. The Huns,  
singly their inferiors, pressed them from behind with the irresistible weight of  
numbers; Italy, with her rich cities and fertile lowlands, beckoned them on to  
plunder; as auxiliaries, they had learned their own strength and Roman  
weakness; a casus belli was soon found. How iniquitous was the conduct of the  
sons of Theodosius, in refusing the usual bounty, by which the Goths were  
bribed not to attack the Empire!—The whole pent-up deluge burst over the  
plains of Italy, and the Western Empire became from that day forth a dying idiot,  
while the new invaders divided Europe among themselves. The fifteen years  
before the time of this tale had decided the fate of Greece; the last four that of  
Rome itself. The countless treasures which five centuries of rapine had  
accumulated round the Capitol had become the prey of men clothed in  
sheepskins and horse-hide; and the sister of an emperor had found her beauty,  
virtue, and pride of race worthily matched by those of the hard- handed Northern  
hero who led her away from Italy as his captive and his bride, to found new  
kingdoms in South France and Spain, and to drive the newly-arrived Vandals  
across the Straits of Gibraltar into the then blooming coast-land of Northern  
Africa. Everywhere the mangled limbs of the Old World were seething in the  
Medea’s caldron, to come forth whole, and young, and strong. The Longbeards,  
noblest of their race, had found a temporary resting-place upon the Austrian  
frontier, after long southward wanderings from the Swedish mountains, soon to  
be dispossessed again by the advancing Huns, and, crossing the Alps, to give  
their name for ever to the plains of Lombardy. A few more tumultuous years, and  
the Franks would find themselves lords of the Lower Rhineland; and before the  
hairs of Hypatia’s scholars had grown gray, the mythic Hengist and Horsa would  
have landed on the shores of Kent, and an English nation have begun its worldwide life.  
But some great Providence forbade to our race, triumphant in every other  
quarter, a footing beyond the Mediterranean, or even in Constantinople, which to  
this day preserves in Europe the faith and manners of Asia. The Eastern World  
seemed barred, by some stern doom, from the only influence which could have  
regenerated it. Every attempt of the Gothic races to establish themselves beyond  
the sea, whether in the form of an organised kingdom, as the Vandals attempted  
in Africa; or of a mere band of brigands, as did the Goths in Asia Minor, under  
Gainas; or of a praetorian guard, as did the Varangens of the middle age; or as  
religious invaders, as did the Crusaders, ended only in the corruption and  
disappearance of the colonists. That extraordinary reform in morals, which,  
according to Salvian and his contemporaries, the Vandal conquerors worked in  
North Africa, availed them nothing; they lost more than they gave. Climate, bad  
example, and the luxury of power degraded them in one century into a race of  
helpless and debauched slave-holders, doomed to utter extermination before the  
semi-Gothic armies of Belisarius; and with them vanished the last chance that  
the Gothic races would exercise on the Eastern World the same stern yet  
wholesome discipline under which the Western had been restored to life.  
The Egyptian and Syrian Churches, therefore, were destined to labour not for  
themselves, but for us. The signs of disease and decrepitude were already but too  
manifest in them. That very peculiar turn of the Graeco-Eastern mind, which  
made them the great thinkers of the then world, had the effect of drawing them  
away from practice to speculation; and the races of Egypt and Syria were  
effeminate, over-civilised, exhausted by centuries during which no infusion of  
fresh blood had come to renew the stock. Morbid, self- conscious, physically  
indolent, incapable then, as now, of personal or political freedom, they afforded  
material out of which fanatics might easily be made, but not citizens of the  
kingdom of God. The very ideas of family and national life-those two divine  
roots of the Church, severed from which she is certain to wither away into that  
most godless and most cruel of spectres, a religious world-had perished in the  
East from the evil influence of the universal practice of slaveholding, as well as  
from the degradation of that Jewish nation whichhad been for ages the great  
witness for those ideas; and all classes, like their forefather Adam—like, indeed,  
‘the old Adam’ in every man and in every age—were shifting the blame of sin  
from their own consciences to human relationships and duties—and therein, to  
the God who had appointed them; and saying as of old, ‘The woman whom thou  
gavest to be with me, she gave me of the tree, and I did eat.‘ The passionate  
Eastern character, like all weak ones, found total abstinence easier than  
temperance, religious thought more pleasant than godly action; and a monastic  
world grew up all over the East, of such vastness that in Egypt it was said to  
rival in numbers the lay population, producing, with an enormous decrease in the  
actual amount of moral evil, an equally great enervation and decrease of the  
population. Such a people could offer no resistance to the steadily-increasing  
tyranny of the Eastern Empire. In vain did such men as Chrysostom and Basil  
oppose their personal influence to the hideous intrigues and villainies of the  
Byzantine court; the ever-downward career of Eastern Christianity went on  
unchecked for two more miserable centuries, side by side with the upward  
development of the Western Church; and, while the successors of the great Saint  
Gregory were converting and civilising a new-born Europe, the Churches of the  
East were vanishing before Mohammedan invaders, strong by living trust in that  
living God, whom the Christians, while they hated and persecuted each other for  
arguments about Him, were denying and blaspheming in every action of their  
lives.  
But at the period whereof this story treats, the Graeco-Eastern mind was still in  
the middle of its great work. That wonderful metaphysic subtlety, which, in  
phrases and definitions too often unmeaning to our grosser intellect, saw the  
symbols of the most important spiritual realities, and felt that on the distinction  
between homoousios and homoiousios might hang the solution of the whole  
problem of humanity, was set to battle in Alexandria, the ancient stronghold of  
Greek philosophy, with the effete remains of the very scientific thought to which  
it owed its extraordinary culture. Monastic isolation from family and national  
duties especially fitted the fathers of that period for the task, by giving them  
leisure, if nothing else, to face questions with a lifelong earnestness impossible  
to the more social and practical Northern mind. Our duty is, instead of sneering  
at them as pedantic dreamers, to thank Heaven that men were found, just at the  
time when they were wanted, to do for us what we could never have done for  
ourselves; to leave to us, as a precious heirloom, bought most truly with the  
lifeblood of their race, a metaphysic at once Christian and scientific, every  
attempt to improve on which has hitherto been found a failure; and to battle  
victoriously with that strange brood of theoretic monsters begotten by effete  
Greek philosophy upon Egyptian symbolism, Chaldee astrology, Parsee dualism,  
Brahminic spiritualism-graceful and gorgeous phantoms, whereof somewhat  
more will be said in the coming chapters.  
I have, in my sketch of Hypatia and her fate, closely followed authentic history,  
especially Socrates’ account of the closing scene, as given in Book vii. Para 15,  
of his Ecclesiastical History. I am inclined, however, for various historical  
reasons, to date her death two years earlier than he does. The tradition that she  
was the wife of Isidore, the philosopher, I reject with Gibbon, as a palpable  
anachronism of at least fifty years (Isidore’s master, Proclus, not having been  
born till the year before Hypatia’s death), contradicted, moreover, by the very  
author of it, Photius, who says distinctly, after comparing Hypatia and Isidore,  
that Isidore married a certain ‘Domna.’ No hint, moreover, of her having been  
married appears in any contemporary authors; and the name of Isidore nowhere  
occurs among those of the many mutual friends to whom Synesius sends  
messages in his letters to Hypatia, in which, if anywhere, we should find  
mention of a husband, had one existed. To Synesius’s most charming letters, as  
well as to those of Isidore, the good Abbot of Pelusium, I beg leave to refer those  
readers who wish for further information about the private life of the fifth  
century.  
I cannot hope that these pages will be altogether free from anachronisms and  
errors. I can only say that I have laboured honestly and industriously to discover  
the truth, even in its minutest details, and to sketch the age, its manners and its  
literature, as I found them-altogether artificial, slipshod, effete, resembling far  
more the times of Louis Quinze than those of Sophocles and Plato. And so I send  
forth this little sketch, ready to give my hearty thanks to any reviewer, who, by  
exposing my mistakes, shall teach me and the public somewhat more about the  
last struggle between the Young Church and the Old World.  
CHAPTER I: THE LAURA  
In the four hundred and thirteenth year of the Christian Era, some three hundred  
miles above Alexandria, the young monk Philammon was sitting on the edge of  
a low range of inland cliffs, crested with drifting sand. Behind him the desert  
sand-waste stretched, lifeless, interminable, reflecting its lurid glare on the  
horizon of the cloudless vault of blue. At his feet the sand dripped and trickled,  
in yellow rivulets, from crack to crack and ledge to ledge, or whirled past him in  
tiny jets of yellow smoke, before the fitful summer airs. Here and there, upon the  
face of the cliffs which walled in the opposite side of the narrow glen below,  
were cavernous tombs, huge old quarries, with obelisks and half-cut pillars,  
standing as the workmen had left them centuries before; the sand was slipping  
down and piling up around them, their heads were frosted with the arid snow;  
everywhere was silence, desolation-the grave of a dead nation, in a dying land.  
And there he sat musing above it all, full of life and youth and health and beauty  
—a young Apollo of the desert. His only clothing was a ragged sheep-skin,  
bound with a leathern girdle. His long black locks, unshorn from childhood,  
waved and glistened in the sun; a rich dark down on cheek and chin showed the  
spring of healthful manhood; his hard hands and sinewy sunburnt limbs told of  
labour and endurance; his flashing eyes and beetling brow, of daring, fancy,  
passion, thought, which had no sphere of action in such a place. What did his  
glorious young humanity alone among the tombs?  
So perhaps he, too, thought, as he passed his hand across his brow, as if to sweep  
away some gathering dream, and sighing, rose and wandered along the cliffs,  
peering downward at every point and cranny, in search of fuel for the monastery  
from whence he came.  
Simple as was the material which he sought, consisting chiefly of the low arid  
desert shrubs, with now and then a fragment of wood from some deserted quarry  
or ruin, it was becoming scarcer and scarcer round Abbot Pambo’s Laura at  
Scetis; and long before Philammon had collected his daily quantity, he had  
strayed farther from his home than he had ever been before.  
Suddenly, at a turn of the glen, he came upon a sight new to him….a temple  
carved in the sandstone cliff; and in front a smooth platform, strewn with beams  
and mouldering tools, and here and there a skull bleaching among the sand,  
perhaps of some workman slaughtered at his labour in one of the thousand wars  
of old. The abbot, his spiritual father—indeed, the only father whom he knew,  
for his earliest recollections were of the Laura and the old man’s cell-had strictly  
forbidden him to enter, even to approach any of those relics of ancient idolatry:  
but a broad terrace-road led down to the platform from the table-land above; the  
plentiful supply of fuel was too tempting to be passed by …. He would go down,  
gather a few sticks, and then return, to tell the abbot of the treasure which he had  
found, and consult him as to the propriety of revisiting it.  
So down he went, hardly daring to raise his eyes to the alluring iniquities of the  
painted imagery which, gaudy in crimson and blue, still blazed out upon the  
desolate solitude, uninjured by that rainless air. But he was young, and youth is  
curious; and the devil, at least in the fifth century, busy with young brains. Now  
Philammon believed most utterly in the devil, and night and day devoutly prayed  
to be delivered from him; so he crossed himself, and ejaculated, honestly  
enough, ‘Lord, turn away mine eyes, lest they behold vanity!’ .... and looked  
nevertheless….  
And who could have helped looking at those four colossal kings, who sat there  
grim and motionless, their huge hands laid upon their knees in everlasting selfassured repose, seeming to bear up the mountain on their stately heads? A sense  
of awe, weakness, all but fear, came over him. He dare not stoop to take up the  
wood at his feet, their great stern eyes watched him so steadily.  
Round their knees and round their thrones were mystic characters engraved,  
symbol after symbol, line below line—the ancient wisdom of the Egyptians,  
wherein Moses the man of God was learned of old— why should not he know it  
too? What awful secrets might not be hidden there about the great world, past,  
present, and future, of which he knew only so small a speck? Those kings who  
sat there, they had known it all; their sharp lips seem parting, ready to speak to  
him …. Oh that they would speak for once! .... and yet that grim sneering smile,  
that seemed to look down on him from the heights of their power and wisdom,  
with calm contempt …. him, the poor youth, picking up the leaving and rags of  
their past majesty …. He dared look at them no more.  
So he looked past them into the temple halls; into a lustrous abyss of cool green  
shade, deepening on and inward, pillar after pillar, vista after vista, into deepest  
night. And dimly through the gloom he could descry, on every wall and column,  
gorgeous arabesques, long lines of pictured story; triumphs and labours; rows of  
captives in foreign and fantastic dresses, leading strange animals, bearing the  
tributes of unknown lands; rows of ladies at feasts, their heads crowned with  
garlands, the fragrant lotus-flower in every hand, while slaves brought wine and  
perfumes, and children sat upon their knees, and husbands by their side; and  
dancing girls, in transparent robes and golden girdles, tossed their tawny limbs  
wildly among the throng …. What was the meaning of it all? Why had it all  
been? Why had it gone on thus, the great world, century after century,  
millennium after millennium, eating and drinking, and marrying and giving in  
marriage, and knowing nothing better …. how could they know anything better?  
Their forefathers had lost the light ages and ages before they were born …. And  
Christ had not come for ages and ages after they were dead …. How could they  
know? .... And yet they were all in hell …. every one of them. Every one of  
these ladies who sat there, with her bushy locks, and garlands, and jewelled  
collars, and lotus-flowers, and gauzy dress, displaying all her slender limbs-who,  
perhaps, when she was alive, smiled so sweetly, and went so gaily, and had  
children, and friends, and never once thought of what was going to happen to her  
—what must happen to her …. She was in hell …. Burning for ever, and ever,  
and ever, there below his feet. He stared down on the rocky floors. If he could  
but see through them …. and the eye of faith could see through them …. he  
should behold her writhing and twisting among the flickering flame, scorched,  
glowing …. in everlasting agony, such as the thought of enduring for a moment  
made him shudder. He had burnt his hands once, when a palm-leaf but caught  
fire …. He recollected what that was like …. She was enduring ten thousand  
times more than that for ever. He should hear her shrieking in vain for a drop of  
water to cool her tongue …. He had never heard a human being shriek but once  
…. a boy bathing on the opposite Nile bank, whom a crocodile had dragged  
down …. and that scream, faint and distant as it came across the mighty tide, had  
rung intolerable in his ears for days …. and to think of all which echoed through  
those vaults of fire-for ever! Was the thought bearable!—was it possible!  
Millions upon millions burning forever for Adam’s fall …. Could God be just in  
that? ....  
It was the temptation of a fiend! He had entered the unhallowed precincts, where  
devils still lingered about their ancient shrines; he had let his eyes devour the  
abominations of the heathen, and given place to the devil. He would flee home to  
confess it all to his father. He would punish him as he deserved, pray for him,  
forgive him. And yet could he tell him all? Could he, dare he confess to him the  
whole truth—the insatiable craving to know the mysteries of learning—to see  
the great roaring world of men, which had been growing up in him slowly,  
month after month, till now it had assumed this fearful shape? He could stay no  
longer in the desert. This world which sent all souls to hell—was it as bad as  
monks declared it was? It must be, else how could such be the fruit of it? But it  
was too awful a thought to be taken on trust. No; he must go and see.  
Filled with such fearful questionings, half-inarticulate and vague, like the  
thoughts of a child, the untutored youth went wandering on, till he reached the  
edge of the cliff below which lay his home. It lay pleasantly enough, that lonely  
Laura, or lane of rude Cyclopean cells, under the perpetual shadow of the  
southern wall of crags, amid its grove of ancient date-trees. A branching cavern  
in the cliff supplied the purposes of a chapel, a storehouse, and a hospital; while  
on the sunny slope across the glen lay the common gardens of the brotherhood,  
green with millet, maize, and beans, among which a tiny streamlet, husbanded  
and guided with the most thrifty care, wandered down from the cliff foot, and  
spread perpetual verdure over the little plot which voluntary and fraternal labour  
had painfully redeemed from the inroads of the all-devouring sand. For that  
garden, like everything else in the Laura, except each brother’s seven feet of  
stone sleeping-hut, was the common property, and therefore the common care  
and joy of all. For the common good, as well as for his own, each man had toiled  
up the glen with his palm-leaf basket of black mud from the river Nile, over  
whose broad sheet of silver the glen’s mouth yawned abrupt. For the common  
good, each man had swept the ledges clear of sand, and sown in the scanty  
artificial soil, the harvest of which all were to share alike. To buy clothes, books,  
and chapel furniture for the common necessities, education, and worship, each  
man sat, day after day, week after week, his mind full of high and heavenly  
thoughts, weaving the leaves of their little palm-copse into baskets, which an  
aged monk exchanged for goods with the more prosperous and frequented  
monasteries of the opposite bank. Thither Philammon rowed the old man over,  
week by week, in a light canoe of papyrus, and fished, as he sat waiting for him,  
for the common meal. A simple, happy, gentle life was that of the Laura, all  
portioned out by rules and methods, which were held hardly less sacred than  
those of the Scriptures, on which they were supposed (and not so wrongly either)  
to have been framed. Each man had food and raiment, shelter on earth, friends  
and counsellors, living trust in the continual care of Almighty God; and, blazing  
before his eyes, by day and night, the hope of everlasting glory beyond all poets’  
dreams …. And what more would man have had in those days? Thither they had  
fled out of cities, compared with which Paris is earnest and Gomorrha chaste,—  
out of a rotten, infernal, dying world of tyrants and slaves, hypocrites and  
wantons,—to ponder undisturbed on duty and on judgment, on death and  
eternity, heaven and hell; to find a common creed, a common interest, a common  
hope, common duties, pleasures, and sorrows …. True, they had many of them  
fled from the post where God had placed them, when they fled from man into the  
Thebaid waste …. What sort of post and what sort of an age they were, from  
which those old monks fled, we shall see, perhaps, before this tale is told out.  
‘Thou art late, son,’said the abbot, steadfastly working away at his palm-basket,  
as Philammon approached.  
‘Fuel is scarce, and I was forced to go far.’  
‘A monk should not answer till he is questioned. I did not ask the reason. Where  
didst thou find that wood?’  
‘Before the temple, far up the glen.’  
‘The temple! What didst thou see there?’  
No answer. Pambo looked up with his keen black eye.  
‘Thou hast entered it, and lusted after its abominations.’  
‘I—I did not enter; but I looked—’  
‘And what didst thou see? Women?’  
Philammon was silent.  
‘Have I not bidden you never to look on the face of women? Are they not the  
firstfruits of the devil, the authors of all evil, the subtlest of all Satan’s snares?  
Are they not accursed for ever, for the deceit of their first mother, by whom sin  
entered into the world? A woman first opened the gates of hell; and, until this  
day, they are the portresses thereof. Unhappy boy! What hast thou done?’  
‘They were but painted on the walls.’  
‘Ah!’said the abbot, as if suddenly relieved from a heavy burden. ‘But how  
knewest thou them to be women, when thou hast never yet, unless thou liest—  
which I believe not of thee—seen the face of a daughter of Eve?’  
‘Perhaps—perhaps,’said Philammon, as if suddenly relieved by a new  
suggestion—‘perhaps they were only devils. They must have been, I think, for  
they were so very beautiful.’  
‘Ah! how knowest thou that devils are beautiful?’  
‘I was launching the boat, a week ago, with Father Aufugus; and on the  
bank,....not very near,....there were two creatures….with long hair, and striped all  
over the lower half of their bodies with black, and red, and yellow….and they  
were gathering flowers on the shore. Father Aufugus turned away; but I …. I  
could not help thinking them the most beautiful things that I had ever seen….so I  
asked him why he turned away; and he said that those were the same sort of  
devils which tempted the blessed St. Anthony. Then I recollected having heard it  
read aloud, how Satan tempted Anthony in the shape of a beautiful woman ….  
And so …. and so …. those figures on the wall were very like …. and I thought  
they might be….’  
And the poor boy, who considered that he was making confession of a deadly  
and shameful sin, blushed scarlet, and stammered, and at last stopped.  
‘And thou thoughtest them beautiful? Oh utter corruption of the flesh!—oh  
subtilty of Satan! The Lord forgive thee, as I do, my poor child; henceforth thou  
goest not beyond the garden walls.’  
‘Not beyond the walls! Impossible! I cannot! If thou wert not my father, I would  
say, I will not!—I must have liberty!—I must see for myself—I must judge for  
myself, what this world is of which you all talk so bitterly. I long for no pomps  
and vanities. I will promise you this moment, if you will, never to re-enter a  
heathen temple—to hide my face in the dust whenever I approach a woman. But  
I must—I must see the world; I must see the great mother-church in Alexandria,  
and the patriarch, and his clergy. If they can serve God in the city, why not I? I  
could do more for God there than here …. Not that I despise this work—not that  
I am ungrateful to you —oh, never, never that!—but I pant for the battle. Let me  
go! I am not discontented with you, but with myself. I know that obedience is  
noble; but danger is nobler still. If you have seen the world, why should not I? If  
you have fled from it because you found it too evil to live in, why should not I,  
and return to you here of my own will, never to leave you? And yet Cyril and his  
clergy have not fled from it….’  
Desperately and breathlessly did Philammon drive this speech out of his inmost  
heart; and then waited, expecting the good abbot to strike him on the spot. If he  
had, the young man would have submitted patiently; so would any man, however  
venerable, in that monastery. Why not? Duly, after long companionship, thought,  
and prayer, they had elected Pambo for their abbot—Abba—father—the wisest,  
eldest-hearted and headed of them—if he was that, it was time that he should be  
obeyed. And obeyed he was, with a loyal, reasonable love, and yet with an  
implicit, soldier-like obedience, which many a king and conqueror might envy.  
Were they cowards and slaves? The Roman legionaries should be good judges  
on that point. They used to say that no armed barbarian, Goth or Vandal, Moor or  
Spaniard, was so terrible as the unarmed monk of the Thebaid.  
Twice the old man lifted his staff to strike; twice he laid it down again; and then,  
slowly rising, left Philammon kneeling there, and moved away deliberately, and  
with eyes fixed on the ground, to the house of the brother Aufugus.  
Every one in the Laura honoured Aufugus. There was a mystery about him  
which heightened the charm of his surpassing sanctity, his childlike sweetness  
and humility. It was whispered—when the monks seldom and cautiously did  
whisper together in their lonely walks— that he had been once a great man; that  
he had come from a great city—perhaps from Rome itself. And the simple  
monks were proud to think that they had among them a man who had seen  
Rome. At least, Abbot Pambo respected him. He was never beaten; never even  
reproved—perhaps he never required it; but still it was the meed of all; and was  
not the abbot a little partial? Yet, certainly, when Theophilus sent up a messenger  
from Alexandria, rousing every Laura with the news of the sack of Rome by  
Alaric, did not Pambo take him first to the cell of Aufugus, and sit with him  
there three whole hours in secret consultation, before he told the awful story to  
the rest of the brotherhood? And did not Aufugus himself give letters to the  
messenger, written with his own hand, containing, as was said, deep secrets of  
worldly policy, known only to himself? So, when the little lane of holy men,  
each peering stealthily over his plaiting work from the doorway of his sandstone  
cell, saw the abbot, after his unwonted passion, leave the culprit kneeling, and  
take his way toward the sage’s dwelling, they judged that something strange and  
delicate had befallen the common weal, and each wished, without envy, that he  
were as wise as the man whose counsel was to solve the difficulty.  
For an hour or more the abbot remained there, talking earnestly and low; and  
then a solemn sound as of the two old men praying with sobs and tears; and  
every brother bowed his head, and whispered a hope that He whom they served  
might guide them for the good of the Laura, and of His Church, and of the great  
heathen world beyond; and still Philammon knelt motionless, awaiting his  
sentence; his heart filled- who can tell how? ‘The heart knoweth its own  
bitterness, and a stranger intermeddleth not with its joy.’ So thought he as he  
knelt; and so think I, too, knowing that in the pettiest character there are  
unfathomable depths, which the poet, all-seeing though he may pretend to be,  
can never analyse, but must only dimly guess at, and still more dimly sketch  
them by the actions which they beget.  
At last Pambo returned, deliberate, still, and slow, as he had gone, and seating  
himself within his cell, spoke—  
‘And the youngest said, Father, give me the portion of goods that falleth to my  
share …. And he took his journey into a far country, and there wasted his  
substance with riotous living. Thou shalt go, my son. But first come after me,  
and speak with Aufugus.’  
Philammon, like everyone else, loved Aufugus; and when the abbot retired and  
left the two alone together, he felt no dread or shame about unburdening his  
whole heart to him. Long and passionately he spoke, in answer to the gentle  
questions of the old man, who, without the rigidity or pedantic solemnity of the  
monk, interrupted the youth, and let himself be interrupted in return, gracefully,  
genially, almost playfully. And yet there was a melancholy about his tone as he  
answered to the youth’s appeal—  
‘Tertullian, Origen, Clement, Cyprian—all these moved in the world; all these  
and many more beside, whose names we honour, whose prayers we invoke, were  
learned in the wisdom of the heathen, and fought and laboured, unspotted, in the  
world; and why not I? Cyril the patriarch himself, was he not called from the  
caves of Nitria to sit on the throne of Alexandria?’  
Slowly the old man lifted his band, and putting back the thick locks of the  
kneeling youth, gazed, with soft pitying eyes, long and earnestly into his face.  
‘And thou wouldst see the world, poor fool? And thou wouldst see the world?’  
‘I would convert the world!’  
‘Thou must know it first. And shall I tell thee what that world is like, which  
seems to thee so easy to convert? Here I sit, the poor unknown old monk, until I  
die, fasting and praying, if perhaps God will have mercy on my soul: but little  
thou knowest how I have seen it. Little thou knowest, or thou wouldst be well  
content to rest here till the end. I was Arsenius …. Ah! vain old man that I am!  
Thou hast never heard that name, at which once queens would whisper and grow  
pale. Vanitas vanitatum! omnia vanitas! And yet he, at whose frown half the  
world trembles, has trembled himself at mine. I was the tutor of Arcadius.’  
‘The Emperor of Byzantium?’  
‘Even so, my son, even so. There I saw the world which thou wouldst see. And  
what saw I? Even what thou wilt see. Eunuchs the tyrants of their own  
sovereigns. Bishops kissing the feet of parricides and harlots. Saints tearing  
saints in pieces for a word, while sinners cheer them on to the unnatural fight.  
Liars thanked for lying, hypocrites taking pride in their hypocrisy. The many  
sold and butchered for the malice, the caprice, the vanity of the few. The  
plunderers of the poor plundered in their turn by worse devourers than  
themselves. Every attempt at reform the parent of worse scandals; every mercy  
begetting fresh cruelties; every persecutor silenced, only to enable others to  
persecute him in their turn: every devil who is exorcised, returning with seven  
others worsethan himself; falsehood and selfishness, spite and lust, confusion  
seven times confounded, Satan casting out Satan everywhere—from the emperor  
who wantons on his throne, to the slave who blasphemes beneath his fetters.’  
‘If Satan cast out Satan, his kingdom shall not stand.’  
‘In the world to come. But in this world it shall stand and conquer, even worse  
and worse, until the end. These are the last days spoken of by the prophets,—the  
beginning of woes such as never have been on the earth before—“On earth  
distress of nations with perplexity, men’s hearts failing them for fear, and for the  
dread of those things which are coming on the earth.” I have seen it long. Year  
after year I have watched them coming nearer and ever nearer in their course like  
the whirling sand-storms of the desert, which sweep past the caravan, and past  
again, and yet overwhelm it after all—that black flood of the northern  
barbarians. I foretold it; I prayed against it; but, like Cassandra’s of old, my  
prophecy and my prayers were alike unheard. My pupil spurned my warnings.  
The lusts of youth, the intrigues of courtiers, were stronger than the warning  
voice of God; then I ceased to hope; I ceased to pray for the glorious city, for I  
knew that her sentence was gone forth; I saw her in the spirit, even as St. John  
saw her in the Revelations; her, and her sins, and her ruin. And I fled secretly at  
night, and buried myself here in the desert, to await the end of the world. Night  
and day I pray the Lord to accomplish His elect, and to hasten His kingdom.  
Morning by morning I look up trembling, and yet in hope, for the sign of the Son  
of man in heaven, when the sun shall be turned into darkness, and the moon into  
blood, and the stars shall fall from heaven, and the skies pass away like a scroll,  
and the fountains of the nether fire burst up around our feet, and the end of all  
shall come. And thou wouldst go into the world from which I fled?’  
‘If the harvest be at hand, the Lord needs labourers. If the times be awful, I  
should be doing awful things in them. Send me, and let that day find me, where I  
long to be, in the forefront of the battle of the Lord.’  
‘The Lord’s voice be obeyed! Thou shalt go. Here are letters to Cyril the  
patriarch. He will love thee for my sake: and for thine own sake, too, I trust.  
Thou goest of our free will as well as thine own. The abbot and I have watched  
thee long, knowing that the Lord bad need of such as thee elsewhere. We did but  
prove thee, to see by thy readiness to obey, whether thou wert fit to rule. Go, and  
God be with thee. Covet no man’s gold or silver. Neither eat flesh nor drink  
wine, but live as thou hast lived—a Nazarite of the Lord. Fear not the face of  
man; but look not on the face of woman. In an evil hour came they into the  
world, the mothers of all mischiefs which I have seen under the sun. Come; the  
abbot waits for us at the gate.’  
With tears of surprise, joy, sorrow, almost of dread, Philammon hung back.  
‘Nay—come. Why shouldst thou break thy brethren’s hearts and ours by many  
leave-takings! Bring from the storehouse a week’s provision of dried dates and  
millet. The papyrus boat lies at the ferry; thou shalt descend in it. The Lord will  
replace it for us when we need it. Speak with no man on the river except the  
monks of God. When thou hast gone five days’ journey downward, ask for the  
mouth of the canal of Alexandria. Once in the city, any monk will guide thee to  
the archbishop. Send us news of thy welfare by some holy mouth. Come.’  
Silently they paced together down the glen to the lonely beach of the great  
stream. Pambo was there already, his white hair glittering in the rising moon, as  
with slow and feeble arms he launched the light canoe. Philammon flung himself  
at the old men’s feet, and besought, with many tears, their forgiveness and their  
blessing.‘We have nothing to forgive. Follow thou thine inward call. If it be of  
the flesh, it will avenge itself; if it be of the Spirit, who are we that we should  
fight against God? Farewell.’ A few minutes more, and the youth and his canoe  
were lessening down the rapid stream in the golden summer twilight. Again a  
minute, and the swift southern night had fallen, and all was dark but the cold  
glare of the moon on the river, and on the rock-faces, and on the two old men, as  
they knelt upon the beach, and with their heads upon each other’s shoulders, like  
two children, sobbed and prayed together for the lost darling of their age.  
CHAPTER II: THE DYING WORLD  
In the upper story of a house in the Museum Street of Alexandria, built and fitted  
up on the old Athenian model, was a small room. It had been chosen by its  
occupant, not merely on account of its quiet; for though it was tolerably out of  
hearing of the female slaves who worked, and chattered, and quarrelled under  
the cloisters of the women’s court on the south side, yet it was exposed to the  
rattle of carriages and the voices of passengers in the fashionable street below,  
and to strange bursts of roaring, squealing, trumpeting from the Menagerie, a  
short way off, on the opposite side of the street. The attraction of the situation  
lay, perhaps, in the view which it commanded over the wall of the Museum  
gardens, of flower-beds, shrubberies, fountains, statues, walks, and alcoves,  
which had echoed for nearly seven hundred years to the wisdom of the  
Alexandrian sages and poets. School after school, they had all walked, and  
taught, and sung there, beneath the spreading planes and chestnuts, figs and  
palm-trees. The place seemed fragrant with all the riches of Greek thought and  
song, since the days when Ptolemy Philadelphus walked there with Euclid and  
Theocritus, Callimachus and Lycophron.  
On the left of the garden stretched the lofty eastern front of the Museum itself,  
with its picture galleries, halls of statuary, dining-halls, and lecture-rooms; one  
huge wing containing that famous library, founded by the father of Philadelphus,  
which hold in the time of Seneca, even after the destruction of a great part of it  
in Caesar’s siege, four hundred thousand manuscripts. There it towered up, the  
wonder of the world, its white roof bright against the rainless blue; and beyond  
it, among the ridges and pediments of noble buildings, a broad glimpse of the  
bright blue sea.  
The room was fitted up in the purest Greek style, not without an affectation of  
archaism, in the severe forms and subdued half-tints of the frescoes which  
ornamented the walls with scenes from the old myths of Athene. Yet the general  
effect, even under the blazing sun which poured in through the mosquito nets of  
the courtyard windows, was one of exquisite coolness, and cleanliness, and  
repose. The room had neither carpet nor fireplace; and the only movables in it  
were a sofa-bed, a table, and an arm-chair, all of such delicate and graceful  
forms as may be seen on ancient vases of a far earlier period than thatwhereof  
we write. But, most probably, had any of us entered that room that morning, we  
should not have been able to spare a look either for the furniture, or the general  
effect, or the Museum gardens, or the sparkling Mediterranean beyond; but we  
should have agreed that the room was quite rich enough for human eyes, for the  
sake of one treasure which it possessed, and, beside which, nothing was worth a  
moment’s glance. For in the light arm-chair, reading a manuscript which lay on  
the table, sat a woman, of some five-and-twenty years, evidently the tutelary  
goddess of that little shrine, dressed in perfect keeping with the archaism of the  
chamber, in simple old snow-white Ionic robe, falling to the feet and reaching to  
the throat, and of that peculiarly severe and graceful fashion in which the upper  
part of the dress falls downward again from the neck to the waist in a sort of  
cape, entirely hiding the outline of the bust, while it leaves the arms and the  
point of the shoulders bare. Her dress was entirely without ornament, except the  
two narrow purple stripes down the front, which marked her rank as a Roman  
citizen, the gold embroidered shoes upon her feet, and the gold net, which  
looped back, from her forehead to her neck, hair the colour and gloss of which  
were hardly distinguishable from that of the metal itself, such as Athene herself  
might haveenvied for tint, and mass, and ripple. Her features, arms, and hands  
were of the severest and grandest type of old Greek beauty, at once showing  
everywhere the high development of the bones, and covering them with that  
firm, round, ripe outline, and waxy morbidezza of skin, which the old Greeks  
owed to their continual use not only of the bath and muscular exercise, but also  
of daily unguents. There might have seemed to us too much sadness in that clear  
gray eye; too much self- conscious restraint in those sharp curved lips; too much  
affectation in the studied severity of her posture as she read, copied, as it  
seemed, from some old vase or bas-relief. But the glorious grace and beauty of  
every line of face and figure would have excused, even hidden those defects, and  
we should have only recognised the marked resemblance to the ideal portraits of  
Athene which adorned every panel of the walls.  
She has lifted her eyes off her manuscript; she is looking out with kindling  
countenance over the gardens of the Museum; her ripe curling Greek lips, such  
as we never see now, even among her own wives and sisters, open. She is talking  
to herself. Listen!  
‘Yes. The statues there are broken. The libraries are plundered. The alcoves are  
silent. The oracles are dumb. And yet—who says that the old faith of heroes and  
sages is dead? The beautiful can never die. If the gods have deserted their  
oracles, they have not deserted the souls who aspire to them. If they have ceased  
to guide nations, they have not ceased to speak to their own elect. If they have  
cast off the vulgar herd, they have not cast off Hypatia.  
...............  
‘Ay. To believe in the old creeds, while every one else is dropping away from  
them …. To believe in spite of disappointments …. To hope against hope …. To  
show oneself superior to the herd, by seeing boundless depths of living glory in  
myths which have become dark and dead to them …. To struggle to the last  
against the new and vulgar superstitions of a rotting age, for the faith of my  
forefathers, for the old gods, the old heroes, the old sages who gauged the  
mysteries of heaven and earth—and perhaps to conquer—at least to have my  
reward! To be welcomed into the celestial ranks of the heroic—to rise to the  
immortal gods, to the ineffable powers, onward, upward ever, through ages and  
through eternities, till I find my home at last, and vanish in the glory of the  
Nameless and the Absolute One! ....  
And her whole face flashed out into wild glory, and then sank again suddenly  
into a shudder of something like fear and disgust, as she saw, watching her from  
under the wall of the gardens opposite, a crooked, withered Jewish crone,  
dressed out in the most gorgeous and fantastic style of barbaric finery.  
‘Why does that old hag haunt me? I see her everywhere—till the last month at  
least—and here she is again! I will ask the prefect to find out who she is, and get  
rid of her, before she fascinates me with that evil eye. Thank the gods, there she  
moves away! Foolish!—foolish of me, a philosopher. I, to believe, against the  
authority of Porphyry himself, too, in evil eyes and magic! But there is my  
father, pacing up and down in the library.’  
As she spoke, the old man entered from the next room. He was a Greek, also, but  
of a more common, and, perhaps, lower type; dark and fiery, thin and graceful;  
his delicate figureand cheeks, wasted by meditation, harmonised well with the  
staid and simple philosophic cloak which he wore as a sign of his profession. He  
paced impatiently up and down the chamber, while his keen, glittering eyes and  
restless gestures betokened intense inward thought …. ‘I have it …. No; again it  
escapes—it contradicts itself. Miserable man that I am! If there is faith in  
Pythagoras, the symbol should be an expanding series of the powers of three;  
and yet that accursed binaryfactor will introduce itself. Did not you work the  
sum out once, Hypatia?’  
‘Sit down, my dear father, and eat. You have tasted no food yet this day.’  
‘What do I care for food! The inexpressible must be expressed, the work must be  
done if it cost me the squaring of the circle. How can he, whose sphere lies  
above the stars, stoop every moment to earth?  
‘Ay,’she answered, half bitterly, ‘and would that we could live without food, and  
imitate perfectly the immortal gods. But while we are in this prison-house of  
matter, we must wear our chain; even wear it gracefully, if we have the good  
taste; and make the base necessities of this body of shame symbolic of the  
divinefood of the reason. There is fruit, with lentils and rice, waiting for you in  
the next room; and bread, unless you despise it too much.’  
‘The food of slaves!’ he answered. ‘Well, I will eat, and be ashamed of eating.  
Stay, did I tell you? Six new pupils in the mathematical school this morning. It  
grows! It spreads! We shall conquer yet!’  
She sighed. ‘How do you know that they have not come to you, as Critias and  
Alcibiades did to Socrates, to learn a merely political and mundane virtue?  
Strange! that men should be content to grovel, and be men, when they might rise  
to the rank of gods! Ah, my father! That is my bitterest grief! to see those who  
have been pretending in the morning lecture-room to worship every word of  
mine as an oracle, lounging in the afternoon round Pelagia’s litter; and then at  
night—for I know that they do it—the dice, and the wine, and worse. That Pallas  
herself should be conquered every day by Venus Pandemos! That Pelagia should  
have more power than I! Not that such a creature as that disturbs me: no created  
thing, I hope, can move my equanimity; but if I could stoop to hate—I should  
hate her—hate her.’  
And her voice took a tone which made it somewhat uncertain whether, in spite of  
all the lofty impassibility which she felt bound to possess, she did not hate  
Pelagia with a most human and mundane hatred.  
But at that moment the conversation was cut short by the hasty entrance of a  
slave girl, who, with fluttering voice, announced—  
‘His excellency, madam, the prefect! His chariot has been at the gate for these  
five minutes, and he is now coming upstairs.’  
‘Foolish child!’ answered Hypatia, with some affectation of indifference. ‘And  
why should that disturb me? Let him enter.’  
The door opened, and in came, preceded by the scent of half a dozen different  
perfumes, a florid, delicate-featured man, gorgeously dressed out in senatorial  
costume, his fingers and neck covered with jewels.  
‘The representative of the Caesars honours himself by offering at the shrine of  
Athene Polias, and rejoices to see in her priestess as lovely a likeness as ever of  
the goddess whom she serves …. Don’t betray me, but I really cannot help  
talking sheer paganism whenever I find myself within the influence of your  
eyes.’  
‘Truth is mighty,’said Hypatia, as she rose to greet him with a smile and a  
reverence.  
‘Ah, so they say—Your excellent father has vanished. He is really too modest—  
honest, though—about his incapacity for state secrets. After all, you know, it was  
your Minervaship which I came to consult. How has this turbulent Alexandrian  
rascaldom been behaving itself in my absence?’  
‘The herd has been eating, and drinking, and marrying, as usual, I believe,’  
answered Hypatia, in a languid tone.  
‘And multiplying, I don’t doubt. Well, there will be less loss to the empire if I  
have to crucify a dozen or two, as I positively will, the next riot. It is really a  
great comfort to a statesman that the masses are so well aware that they deserve  
hanging, and therefore so careful to prevent any danger of public justice  
depopulating the province. But how go on the schools?’  
Hypatia shook her head sadly.  
‘Ah, boys will be boys …. I plead guilty myself. Video meliora proboque,  
deteriora sequor. You must not be hard on us …. Whether we obey you or not in  
private life, we do in public; and if we enthrone you queen of Alexandria, you  
must allow your courtiers and bodyguards a few court licences. Now don’t sigh  
or I shall be inconsolable. At all events, your worst rival has betaken herself to  
the wilderness, and gone to look for the city of the gods above the cataracts.’  
‘Whom do you mean?’ asked Hypatia, in a tone most unphilosophically eager.  
‘Pelagia, of course. I met that prettiest and naughtiest of humanities half-way  
between here and Thebes, transformed into a perfect Andromache of chaste  
affection.’  
‘And to whom, pray?’  
‘To a certain Gothic giant. What men those barbarians do breed! I was afraid of  
being crushed under the elephant’s foot at every step I took with him!’  
‘What!’ asked Hypatia, ‘did your excellency condescend to converse with such  
savages?’  
‘To tell you the truth, he had some forty stout countrymen of his with him, who  
might have been troublesome to a perplexed prefect; not to mention that it is  
always as well to keep on good terms with these Goths. Really, after the sack of  
Rome, and Athens cleaned out like a beehive by wasps, things begin to look  
serious. And as for the great brute himself, he has rank enough in his way,—  
boasts of his descent from some cannibal god or other,—really hardly deigned to  
speak to a paltry Roman governor, till his faithful and adoring bride interceded  
for me. Still, the fellow understood good living, and we celebrated our new  
treaty of friendship with noble libations— but I must not talk about that to you.  
However, I got rid of them; quoted all the geographical lies I had ever heard, and  
a great many more; quickened their appetite for their fool’s errand notably, and  
started them off again. So now the star of Venus is set, and that of Pallas in the  
ascendant. Wherefore tell me—what am I to do with Saint Firebrand?’  
‘Cyril?’  
‘Cyril.’  
‘Justice.’  
‘Ah, Fairest Wisdom, don’t mention that horrid word out of the lecture-room. In  
theory it is all very well; but in poor imperfect earthly practice, a governor must  
be content with doing very much what comes to hand. In abstract justice, now, I  
ought to nail up Cyril, deacons, district visitors, and all, in a row, on the sandfill  
out side. That is simple enough; but, like a great many simple and excellent  
things, impossible.’  
‘You fear the people?’  
‘Well, my dear lady, and has not the villainous demagogue got the whole mob on  
his side? Am I to have the Constantinople riots re- enacted here? I really cannot  
face it; I have not nerve for it; perhaps I am too lazy. Be it so.’  
Hypatia sighed. ‘Ah, that your excellency but saw the great duel which depends  
on you alone! Do not fancy that the battle is merely between Paganism and  
Christianity—’  
‘Why, if it were, you know, I, as a Christian, under a Christian and sainted  
emperor, not to mention his august sister—’  
‘We understand,’ interrupted she, with an impatient wave of her beautiful hand.  
‘Not even between them; not even between philosophy and barbarism. The  
struggle is simply one between the aristocracy and the mob,—between wealth,  
refinement, art, learning, all that makes a nation great, and the savage herd of  
child-breeders below, the many ignoble, who were meant to labour for the noble  
few. Shall the Roman empire command or obey her own slaves? is the question  
which you and Cyril have to battle out; and the fight must be internecine.’  
‘I should not wonder if it became so, really,’ answered the prefect, with a shrug  
of his shoulders. ‘I expect every time I ride, to have my brains knocked out by  
some mad monk.’  
‘Why not? In an age when, as has been well and often said, emperors and  
consulars crawl to the tombs of a tent-maker and a fisherman, and kiss the  
mouldy bones of the vilest slaves? Why not, among a people whose God is the  
crucified son of a carpenter? Why should learning, authority, antiquity, birth,  
rank, the system of empire which has been growing up, fed by the accumulated  
wisdom of ages,— why, I say, should any of these things protect your life a  
moment from the fury of any beggar who believes that the Son of God died for  
him as much as for you, and that he is your equal if not your superior in the sight  
of his low-born and illiterate deity!’ \[Footnote: These are the arguments and the  
language which were commonly employed by Porphyry, Julian, and the other  
opponents of Christianity.\]  
‘My most eloquent philosopher, this may be—and perhaps is—all very true. I  
quite agree that there are very great practical inconveniences of this kind in the  
new—I mean the Catholic faith; but the world is full of inconveniences. The  
wise man does not quarrel with his creed for being disagreeable, any more than  
he does with his finger for aching: he cannot help it, and must make the best of a  
bad matter. Only tell me how to keep the peace.’  
‘And let philosophy be destroyed?’  
‘That it never will be, as long as Hypatia lives to illuminate the earth; and, as far  
as I am concerned, I promise you a clear stage and—a great deal of favour; as is  
proved by my visiting you publicly at this moment, before I have given audience  
to one of the four hundred bores, great and small, who are waiting in the tribunal  
to torment me. Do help me and advise me. What am I to do?’  
‘I have told you.’  
‘Ah, yes, as to general principles. But out of the lecture-room I prefer a practical  
expedient for instance, Cyril writes to me here— plague on him! he would not  
let me even have a week’s hunting in peace-that there is a plot on the part of the  
Jews to murder all the Christians. Here is the precious document—do look at it,  
in pity. For aught I know or care, the plot may be an exactly opposite one, and  
the Christians intend to murder all the Jews. But I must take some notice of the  
letter.’  
‘I do not see that, your excellency.’  
‘Why, if anything did happen, after all, conceive the missives which would be  
sent flying off to Constantinople against me!’  
‘Let them go. If you are secure in the consciousness of innocence, what matter?’  
‘Consciousness of innocence? I shall lose my prefecture!’  
‘Your danger would just be as great if you took notice of it. Whatever happened,  
you would be accused of favouring the Jews.’  
‘And really there might be some truth in the accusation. How the finances of the  
provinces would go on without their kind assistance, I dare not think. If those  
Christians would but lend me their money, instead of building alms-houses and  
hospitals with it, they might burn the Jews’ quarter to-morrow, for aught I care.  
But now….’  
‘But now, you must absolutely take no notice of this letter. The very tone of it  
forbids you, for your own honour, and the honour of the empire. Are you to treat  
with a man who talks of the masses at Alexandria as “the flock whom the King  
of kings has committed to his rule and care”? Does your excellency, or this  
proud bishop, govern Alexandria?’  
‘Really, my dear lady, I have given up inquiring.’  
‘But he has not. He comes to you as a person possessing an absolute authority  
over two-thirds of the population, which he does not scruple to hint to you is  
derived from a highersource than your own. The consequence is clear. If it be  
from a higher source than yours, of course it ought to control yours’; and you  
will confess that it ought to control it—you will acknowledge the root and  
ground of every extravagant claim which he makes, if you deign to reply.’  
‘But I must say something, or I shall be pelted in the streets. You philosophers,  
however raised above your own bodies you may be, must really not forget that  
we poor worldlings have bones to be broken.’  
‘Then tell him, and by word of mouth merely, that as the information which he  
sends you comes from his private knowledge and concerns not him as bishop,  
but you as magistrate, you can only take it into consideration when he addresses  
you as a private person, laying a regular information at your tribunal.’  
‘Charming! queen of diplomatists as well as philosophers! I go to obey you. Ah!  
why were you not Pulcheria? No, for then Alexandria had been dark, and  
Orestes missed the supreme happiness of kissing a hand which Pallas, when she  
made you, must have borrowed from the workshop of Aphrodite.’  
‘Recollect that you are a Christian,’ answered Hypatia, half smiling.  
So the prefect departed; and passing through the outer hall, which was already  
crowded with Hypatia’s aristocratic pupils and visitors, bowed his way out past  
them and regained his chariot, chuckling over the rebuff which he intended to  
administer to Cyril, and comforting himself with the only text of Scripture of the  
inspiration of which he was thoroughly convinced—‘Sufficient for the day is the  
evil thereof.’  
At the door was a crowd of chariots, slaves with their masters’ parasols, and the  
rabble of onlooking boys and market-folk, as usual in Alexandria then, as in all  
great cities since, who were staring at the prefect, and having their heads rapped  
by his guards, and wondering what sort of glorious personage Hypatia might be,  
and what sort of glorious house she must live in, to be fit company for the great  
governor of Alexandria. Not that there was not many a sulky and lowering face  
among the mob, for the great majority of them were Christians, and very  
seditious and turbulent politicians, as Alexandrians, ‘men of Macedonia,’ were  
bound to be; and there was many a grumble among them, all but audible, at the  
prefect’s going in state to the heathen woman’s house—heathen sorceress, some  
pious old woman called her—before he heard any poor soul’s petition in the  
tribunal, or even said his prayers in church.  
Just as he was stepping into his curricle a tall young man, as gorgeously  
bedizened as himself, lounged down the steps after him, and beckoned lazily to  
the black boy who carried his parasol.  
‘Ah, Raphael Aben-Ezra! my excellent friend, what propitious deity— ahem!  
martyr—brings you to Alexandria just as I want you? Get up by my side, and let  
us have a chat on our way to the tribunal.’  
The man addressed came slowly forward with an ostentatiously low salutation,  
which could not hide, and indeed was not intended to hide, the contemptuous  
and lazy expression of his face; and asked in a drawling tone—  
‘And for what kind purpose does the representative of the Caesars bestow such  
an honour on the humblest of his, etc. etc.—your penetration will supply the  
rest.’  
‘Don’t be frightened; I am not going to borrow money of you,’ answered  
Orestes, laughingly, as the Jew got into the curricle.  
‘I am glad to hear it. Really one usurer in a family is enough. My father made  
the gold, and if I spend it, I consider that I do all that is required of a  
philosopher.’  
‘A charming team of white Nisaeans, is not this? And only one gray foot among  
all the four.’  
‘Yes …. horses are a bore, I begin to find, like everything else. Always falling  
sick, or running away, or breaking one’s peace of mind in some way or other.  
Besides, I have been pestered out of my life there in Cyrene, by commissions for  
dogs and horses and bows from that old Episcopal Nimrod, Synesius.’  
‘What, is the worthy man as lively as ever?’  
‘Lively? He nearly drove me into a nervous fever in three days. Up at four in the  
morning, always in the most disgustingly good health and spirits, farming,  
coursing, shooting, riding over hedge and ditch after rascally black robbers;  
preaching, intriguing, borrowing money; baptizing and excommunicating;  
bullying that bully, Andronicus; comforting old women, and giving pretty girls  
dowries; scribbling one half-hour on philosophy, and the next on farriery; sitting  
up all night writing hymns and drinking strong liquors; off again on horseback at  
four the next morning; and talking by the hour all the while about philosophic  
abstraction from the mundane tempest. Heaven defend me fromall two-legged  
whirlwinds! By the bye, there was a fair daughter of my nation came back to  
Alexandria in the same ship with me, with a cargo that may suit your highness.’  
‘There are a great many fair daughters of your nation who might suit me,  
without any cargo at all.’  
‘Ah, they have had good practice, the little fools, ever since the days of  
Jeroboam the son of Nebat. But I mean old Miriam—you know. She has been  
lending Synesius money to fight the black fellows with; and really it was high  
time. They had burnt every homestead for miles through the province. But the  
daring old girl must do a little business for herself; so she went off, in the teeth  
of the barbarians, right away to the Atlas, bought all their lady prisoners, and  
some of their own sons and daughters, too, of them, for beads and old iron; and  
has come back with as pretty a cargo of Lybian beauties as a prefect of good  
taste could wish to have the first choice of. You may thank me for that privilege.’  
‘After, of course, you had suited yourself, my cunning Raphael?’  
‘Not I. Women are bores, as Solomon found out long ago. Did I never tell you? I  
began, as he did, with the most select harem in Alexandria. But they quarrelled  
so, that one day I went out, and sold them all but one, who was a Jewess—so  
there were objections on the part of the Rabbis. Then I tried one, as Solomon  
did; but my “garden shut up,” and my “sealed fountain” wanted me to be always  
in love with her, so I went to the lawyers, allowed her a comfortable  
maintenance, and now I am as free as a monk, and shall be happy to give your  
excellency the benefit of any good taste or experience which I may possess.’  
‘Thanks, worthy Jew. We are not yet as exalted as yourself, and will send for the  
old Erictho this very afternoon. Now listen a moment to base, earthly, and  
political business. Cyril has written to me, to say that you Jews have plotted to  
murder all the Christians.’  
‘Well—why not? I most heartily wish it were true, and think, on the whole, that  
it very probably is so.’  
‘By the immortal—saints, man! you are not serious?’  
‘The four archangels forbid! It is no concern of mine. All I say is, that my people  
are great fools, like the rest of the world; and have, for aught I know or care,  
some such intention. They won’t succeed, of course; and that is all you have to  
care for. But if you think it worth the trouble—which I do not—I shall have to  
go to the synagogue on business in a week or so, and then I would ask some of  
the Rabbis.’  
‘Laziest of men!—and I must answer Cyril this very day.’  
‘An additional reason for asking no questions of our people. Now you can  
honestly say that you know nothing about the matter.’  
‘Well, after all, ignorance is a stronghold for poor statesmen. So you need not  
hurry yourself.’  
‘I assure your excellency I will not.’  
‘Ten days hence, or so, you know.’  
‘Exactly, after it is all over.’  
‘And can’t be helped. What a comfort it is, now and then, that Can’t be helped!’  
‘It is the root and marrow of all philosophy. Your practical man, poor wretch,  
will try to help this and that, and torment his soul with ways and means, and  
preventives and forestallings; your philosopher quietly says—It can’t be helped.  
If it ought to be, it will be—if it is, it ought to be. We did not make the world,  
and we are not responsible for it.—There is the sum and substance of all true  
wisdom, and the epitome of all that has been said and writtenthereon from Philo  
the Jew to Hypatia the Gentile. By the way, here’s Cyril coming downthe steps  
of the Caesareum. A very handsome fellow, after all, though lie is looking as  
sulky as a bear.’  
‘With his cubs at his heels. What a scoundrelly visage that tall fellow-deacon, or  
reader, or whatever he is by his dress—has!’  
‘There they are—whispering together. Heaven give them pleasant thoughts and  
pleasanter faces!’  
‘Amen!’ quoth Orestes, with a sneer: and he would have said Amen in good  
earnest, had he been able to take the liberty—which we shall— and listen to  
Cyril’s answer to Peter, the tall reader.  
‘From Hypatia’s, you say? Why, he only returned to the city this morning.’  
‘I saw his four-in-hand standing at her door, as I came down the Museum Street  
hither, half an hour ago.’  
‘And twenty carriages besides, I don’t doubt?’  
‘The street was blocked up with them. There! Look round the corner now.—  
Chariots, litters, slaves, and fops.—When shall we see such a concourse as that  
where it ought to be?’  
Cyril made no answer; and Peter went on—‘Where it ought to be, my father—in  
front of your door at the Serapeium?’  
‘The world, the flesh, and the devil know their own, Peter: and as long as they  
have their own to go to, we cannot expect them to come to us.’  
‘But what if their own were taken out of the way?’  
‘They might come to us for want of better amusement …. devil and all. Well—if  
I could get a fair hold of the two first, I would take the third into the bargain, and  
see whatcould be done with him. But never, while these lecture-rooms last—  
these Egyptian chambers of imagery—these theatres of Satan, where the devil  
transforms himself into an angel of light, and apes Christian virtue, and bedizens  
his ministers like ministers of righteousness, as long as that lecture-room stands  
and the great and the powerful flock to it, to learn excuses for their own  
tyrannies and atheisms, so long will the kingdom of God be trampled under foot  
in Alexandria; so long will the princes of this world, with their gladiators, and  
parasites, and money-lenders, be masters here, and not the bishops and priests of  
the living God.’  
It was now Peter’s turn to be silent; and as the two, with their little knot of  
district-visitors behind them, walk moodily along the great esplanade which  
overlooked the harbour, and then vanish suddenly up some dingy alley into the  
crowded misery of the sailors’ quarter, we will leave them to go about their  
errand of mercy, and, like fashionable people, keep to the grand parade, and  
listen again to our two fashionable friends in the carved and gilded curricle with  
four white blood-horses.  
‘A fine sparkling breeze outside the Pharos, Raphael—fair for the wheat-ships  
too.’  
‘Are they gone yet?  
‘Yes—why? I sent the first fleet off three days ago; and the rest are clearing  
outwards to-day.’  
‘Oh!—ah—so!—Then you have not heard from Heraclian?’  
‘Heraclian? What the-blessed saints has the Count of Africa to do with my  
wheat-ships?’  
‘Oh, nothing. It’s no business of mine. Only he is going to rebel …. But here we  
are at your door.’  
‘To what?’ asked Orestes, in a horrified tone.  
‘To rebel, and attack Rome.’  
‘Good gods—God, I mean. A fresh bore! Come in, and tell a poor miserable  
slave of a governor—speak low, for Heaven’s sake!—I hope these rascally  
grooms haven’t overheard you.’  
‘Easy to throw them into the canal, if they have,’ quoth Raphael, as he walked  
coolly through hall and corridor after the perturbed governor.  
Poor Orestes never stopped till he reached a little chamber of the inner court,  
beckoned the Jew in after him, locked the door, threw himself into an arm-chair,  
put his hands on his knees, and sat, bending forward, staring into Raphael’s face  
with a ludicrous terror and perplexity.  
‘Tell me all about it. Tell me this instant.’  
‘I have told you all I know,’ quoth Raphael, quietly seating himself on a sofa,  
and playing with a jewelled dagger. ‘I thought, of course, that you were in the  
secret, or I should have said nothing. It’s no business of mine, you know.’  
Orestes, like most weak and luxurious men, Romans especially, had a wild-beast  
vein in him—and it burst forth.  
‘Hell and the furies! You insolent provincial slave—you will carry these liberties  
of yours too far! Do you know who I am, you accursed Jew? Tell me the whole  
truth, or, by the head of the emperor, I’ll twist it out of you with red-hot pincers!’  
Raphael’s countenance assumed a dogged expression, which showed that the old  
Jewish blood still heat true, under all its affected shell of Neo-Platonist  
nonchalance; and there was a quiet unpleasant earnest in his smile, as he  
answered—  
‘Then, my dear governor, you will be the first man on earth who ever yet forced  
a Jew to say or do what he did not choose.’  
‘We’ll see!’ yelled Orestes. ‘Here, slaves!’ And he clapped his hands loudly.  
‘Calm yourself, your excellency,’ quoth Raphael, rising. ‘The door is locked; the  
mosquito net is across the window; and this dagger is poisoned. If anything  
happens to me, you will offend all the Jew money-lenders, and die in about three  
days in a great deal of pain, having missed our assignation with old Miriam, lost  
your pleasantest companion, and left your own finances and those of the  
prefecture in a considerable state of embarrassment. How much better to sit  
down, hear all I have to sayphilosophically, like a true pupil of Hypatia, and not  
expect a man to tell you what he really does not know.’  
Orestes, after looking vainly round the room for a place to escape, had quietly  
subsided into his chair again; and by the time that the slaves knocked at the door  
he had so far recovered his philosophy as to ask, not for the torturers, but for a  
page and wine.  
‘Oh, you Jews!’ quoth he, trying to laugh off matters. ‘The same incarnate fiends  
that Titus found you!’  
‘The very same, my dear prefect. Now for this matter, which is really importantat least to Gentiles. Heraclian will certainly rebel. Synesius let out as much to  
me. He has fitted out an armament for Ostia, stopped his own wheat-ships, and is  
going to write to you to stop yours, and to starve out the Eternal City, Goths,  
senate, emperor, and all. Whether you will comply with his reasonable little  
request depends of course on yourself.’  
‘And that again very much on his plans.’  
‘Of course. You cannot be expected to—we will euphemise-unless it be made  
worth your while.’  
Orestes sat buried in deep thought.  
‘Of course not,’said he at last, half unconsciously. And then, in sudden dread of  
having committed himself, he looked up fiercely at the Jew.  
‘And how do I know that this is not some infernal trap of yours? Tell me how  
you found out all this, or by Hercules (he had quite forgotten his Christianity by  
this time)—by Hercules and the Twelve Gods, I’ll—’  
‘Don’t use expressions unworthy of a philosopher. My source of information  
was very simple and very good. He has been negotiating a loan from the Rabbis  
at Carthage. They were either frightened, or loyal, or both, and hung back. He  
knew—as all wise governors know when they allow themselves time—that it is  
no use to bully a Jew; slid applied to me. I never lend money—it is  
unphilosophical: but I introduced him to old Miriam, who dare do business with  
the devil himself; and by that move, whether he has the money or not, I cannot  
tell: but this I can tell, that we have his secret—and so have you now; and if you  
want more information, the old woman, who enjoys an intrigue as much as she  
does Falernian, will get it you.’  
‘Well, you are a true friend, after all.’  
‘Of course I am. Now, is not this method of getting at the truth much easier and  
pleasanter than setting a couple of dirty negroes to pinch and pull me, and so  
making it a point of honour with me to tell you nothing but lies? Here comes  
Ganymede with the wine, just in time to calm your nerves, and fill you with the  
spirit of divination …. To the goddess of good counsels, my lord. What wine this  
is!’  
‘True Syrian—fire and honey; fourteen years old next vintage, my Raphael. Out,  
Hypocorisma! See that he is not listening. The impudent rascal! I was  
humbugged into giving two thousand gold pieces for him two years ago, he was  
so pretty—they said he was only just rising thirteen—and he has been the plague  
of my life ever since, and is beginning to want the barber already. Now, what is  
the count dreaming of?’  
‘His wages for killing Stilicho.’  
‘What, is it not enough to be Count of Africa?’  
‘I suppose he sets off against that his services during the last three years.’  
‘Well, he saved Africa.’  
‘And thereby Egypt also. And you too, as well as the emperor, may be  
considered as owing him somewhat.’  
‘My good friend, my debts are far too numerous for me to think of paying any of  
them. But what wages does he want?’  
‘The purple.’  
Orestes started, and then fell into thought. Raphael sat watching him a while.  
‘Now, most noble lord, may I depart? I have said all I have to say; and unless I  
get home to luncheon at once, I shall hardly have time to find old Miriam for  
you, and get through our little affair with her before sunset.’  
‘Stay. What force has he?’  
‘Forty thousand already, they say. And those Donatist ruffians are with him to a  
man, if he can but scrape together wherewith to change their bludgeons into  
good steel.’  
‘Well, go …. So. A hundred thousand might do it,’said he, meditating, as  
Raphael bowed himself out. ‘He won’t get them. I don’t know, though; the man  
has the headof a Julius. Well—that fool Attalus talked ofjoining Egypt to the  
Western Empire …. Not such a bad thought either. Anything is better than being  
governed by an idiot child and three canting nuns. I expect to be  
excommunicated every day for some offence against Pulcheria’s prudery ….  
Heraclian emperor at Rome .... and I lord and master on this side the sea. the  
Donatists pitted again fairly against the orthodox, to cut each other’s throats in  
peace …. no more of Cyril’s spying and tale-bearing to Constantinople …. Not  
such a baddish of fare …. But then-it would take so much trouble!’  
With which words, Orestes went into his third warm bath for that day.  
CHAPTER III: THE GOTHS  
For two days the young monk held on, paddling and floating rapidly down the  
Nile-stream, leaving city after city to right and left with longing eyes, and  
looking back to one villa after another, till the reaches of the banks hid them  
from his sight, with many a yearning to know what sort of places those gay  
buildings and gardens would look like on a nearer view, and what sort of life the  
thousands led who crowdedthe busy quays, and walked and drove, in an endless  
stream, along the great highroads which ran along either bank. He carefully  
avoided every boat that passed him, from the gilded barge of the wealthy  
landlord or merchant, to the tiny raft buoyed up with empty jars, which was  
floating down to be sold at some market in the Delta. Here and there he met and  
hailed a crew of monks, drawing their nets in a quiet bay, or passing along the  
great watery highway from monastery to monastery: but all the news he received  
from them was, that the canal of Alexandria was still several days’ journey  
below him. It seemed endless, that monotonous vista of the two high clay banks,  
with their sluices and water-wheels, their knots of palms and date-trees; endless  
seemed that wearisome succession of bars of sand and banks of mud, every one  
like the one before it, every one dotted with the same line of logs and stones  
strewn along the water’s edge, which turned out as he approached them to be  
basking crocodiles and sleeping pelicans. His eye, wearied with the continual  
confinement and want of distance, longed for the boundless expanse of the  
desert, for the jagged outlines of those far-off hills, which he had watched from  
boyhood rising mysteriously at morn out of the eastern sky, and melting  
mysteriously into it again at even, beyond which dwelt a whole world of  
wonders, elephants and dragons, satyrs and anthropophagi,—ay, and the phoenix  
itself. Tired and melancholy, his mind returned inward to prey on itself, and the  
last words of Arsenius rose again and again to his thoughts. ‘Was his call of the  
spirit or of the flesh?’ How should he test that problem? He wished to seethe  
world that might be carnal. True; but, he wished to convert the world …. was not  
that spiritual? Was he not going on a noble errand? .... thirsting for toil, for  
saintship, for martyrdom itself, if it would but come and cut the Gordian knot of  
all temptations, and save him-for he dimly felt that it would save him—a whole  
sea of trouble in getting safe and triumphant out of that world into which he had  
not yet entered …. and his heart shrank back from the untried homeless  
wilderness before him. But no! the die was cast, and he must down and onward,  
whether in obedience to the spirit or the flesh. Oh, for one hour of the quiet of  
that dear Laura and the old familiar faces!  
At last, a sudden turn of the bank brought him in sight of a gaudily-painted  
barge, oil board of which armed men, in uncouth and foreign dresses, were  
chasing with barbaric shouts some large object in the water. In the bows stood a  
man of gigantic stature, brandishing a harpoon in his right hand, and in his left  
holding the line of a second, the head of which was fixed in the huge purple  
sides of a hippopotamus, who foamed and wallowed a few yards down the  
stream. An old grizzled warrior at the stern, with a rudder in either hand, kept the  
boat’s head continually towards the monster, in spite of its sudden and frantic  
wheelings; and when it dashed madly across the stream, some twenty oars  
flashed through the water in pursuit. All was activity and excitement; and it was  
no wonder if Philammon’s curiosity had tempted him to drift down almost  
abreast of the barge ere he descried, peeping from under a decorated awning in  
the afterpart, some dozen pairs of languishing black eyes, turned alternately to  
the game and to himself. The serpents!— chattering and smiling, with pretty  
little shrieks and shaking of glossy curls and gold necklaces, and fluttering of  
muslin dresses, within a dozen yards of him! Blushing scarlet, he knew not why,  
he seized his paddle, and tried to back out of the snare …. but somehow, his very  
efforts to escape those sparkling eyes diverted his attention from everything else:  
the hippopotamus had caught sight of him, and furious with pain, rushed straight  
at the unoffending canoe; the harpoon line became entangled round his body, and  
in a moment he and his frail bark were overturned, and the monster, with his  
huge white tusks gaping wide, close on him as he struggled in the stream.  
Luckily Philammon, contrary to the wont of monks, was a bather, and swam like  
a water-fowl: fear he had never known: death from childhood had been to him,  
as to the other inmates of the Laura, a contemplation too perpetual to have any  
paralysing terror in it, even then, when life seemed just about to open on him  
anew. But the monk was a man, and a young one, and had no intention of dying  
tamely or unavenged. In an instant he had freed himself from the line; drawn the  
short knife which was his only weapon; and diving suddenly, avoided the  
monster’s rush, and attacked him from behind with stabs, which, though not  
deep, still dyed the waters with gore at every stroke. The barbarians shouted with  
delight. The hippopotamus turned furiously against his new assailant, crushing,  
alas! the empty canoe to fragments with a single snap of his enormous jaws; but  
the turn was fatal to him; the barge was close upon him, and as he presented his  
broad side to the blow, the sinewy arm of the giant drove a harpoon through his  
heart, and with one convulsive shudder the huge blue mass turned over on its  
side and floated dead.  
Poor Philammon! He alone was silent, amid the yells of triumph; sorrowfully he  
swam round and round his little paper wreck …. it would not have floated a  
mouse. Wistfully be eyed the distant banks, half minded to strike out for them  
and escape, .... and thought of the crocodiles, .... and paddled round again, ....  
and thought of the basilisk eyes; .... he might escape the crocodiles, but who  
could escape women? .... and he struck out valiantly for shore …. when he was  
brought to a sudden stop by finding the stem of the barge close on him, a noose  
thrown over him by some friendly barbarian, and himself hauled on board, amid  
the laughter, praise, astonishment, and grumbling of the good-natured crew, who  
had expected him, as a matter of course, to avail himself at once of their help,  
and could not conceive the cause of his reluctance.  
Philammon gazed with wonder on his strange hosts, their pale complexions,  
globular heads and faces, high cheek-bones, tall and sturdy figures; their red  
beards, and yellow hair knotted fantastically above the head; their awkward  
dresses, half Roman or Egyptian, and half of foreign fur, soiled and stained in  
many a storm and fight, but tastelessly bedizened with classic jewels, brooches,  
and Roman coins, strung like necklaces. Only the steersman, who had come  
forward to wonder at the hippopotamus, and to help in dragging the unwieldy  
brute on board, seemed to keep genuine and unornamented the costume of his  
race, the white linen leggings, strapped with thongs of deerskin, the quilted  
leather cuirass, the bears’-fur cloak, the only ornaments of which were the fangs  
and claws of the beast itself, and a fringe of grizzled tufts, which looked but too  
like human hair. The language which they spoke was utterly unintelligible to  
Philammon, though it need not be so to us.  
‘A well-grown lad and a brave one, Wulf the son of Ovida,’said the giant to the  
old hero of the bearskin cloak; ‘and understands wearing skins, in this furnacemouth of a climate, rather better than you do.’  
‘I keep to the dress of my forefathers, Amalric the Amal. What did to sack Rome  
in, may do to find Asgard in.’  
The giant, who was decked out with helmet, cuirass, and senatorial boots, in a  
sort of mongrel mixture of the Roman military and civil dress, his neck wreathed  
with a dozen gold chains, and every finger sparkling with jewels, turned away  
with an impatient sneer.  
‘Asgard—Asgard! If you are in such a hurry to get to Asgard up this ditch in the  
sand, you had better ask the fellow how far it is thither.’  
Wulf took him quietly at his word, and addressed a question to the young monk,  
which he could only answer by a shake of the head.  
‘Ask him in Greek, man.’  
‘Greek is a slave’s tongue. Make a slave talk to him in it, not me.’  
‘Here—some of you girls! Pelagia! you understand this fellow’s talk. Ask him  
how far it is to Asgard.’  
‘You must ask me more civilly, my rough hero,’ replied a soft voice from  
underneath the awning. ‘Beauty must be sued, and not commanded.’  
‘Come, then, my olive-tree, my gazelle, my lotus-flower, my—what was the last  
nonsense you taught me?—and ask this wild man of the sands how far it is from  
these accursed endless rabbit-burrows to Asgard.’  
The awning was raised, and lying luxuriously on a soft mattress, fanned with  
peacock’s feathers, and glittering with rubies and topazes, appeared such a vision  
as Philammon had never seen before.  
A woman of some two-and-twenty summers, formed in the most voluptuous  
mould of Grecian beauty, whose complexion showed every violet vein through  
its veil of luscious brown. Her little bare feet, as they dimpled the cushions, were  
more perfect than Aphrodite’s, softer than a swan’s bosom. Every swell of her  
bust and arms showed through the thin gauze robe, while her lower limbs were  
wrapped in a shawl of orange silk, embroidered with wreaths of shells and roses.  
Her dark hair lay carefully spread out upon the pillow, in a thousand ringlets  
entwined with gold and jewels; her languishing eyes blazed like diamonds from  
a cavern, under eyelids darkened and deepened with black antimony; her lips  
pouted of themselves, by habit or by nature, into a perpetual kiss; slowly she  
raised one little lazy hand; slowly the ripe lips opened; and in most pure and  
melodious Attic, she lisped her huge lover’s question to the monk, and repeated  
it before the boy could shake off the spell, and answer….  
‘Asgard? What is Asgard?’  
The beauty looked at the giant for further instructions.  
‘The City of the immortal Gods,’ interposed the old warrior, hastily and sternly,  
to the lady.  
‘The city of God is in heaven,’said Philammon to the interpreter, turning his  
head away from those. gleaming, luscious, searching glances.  
His answer was received with a general laugh by all except the leader, who  
shrugged his shoulders.  
‘It may as well be up in the skies as up the Nile. We shall be just as likely, I  
believe, to reach it by flying, as by rowing up this big ditch. Ask him where the  
river comes from, Pelagia.’  
Pelagia obeyed …. and thereon followed a confusion worse confounded,  
composed of all the impossible wonders of that mythic fairyland with which  
Philammon had gorged himself from boyhood in his walks with the old monks,  
and of the equally trustworthy traditions which the Goths had picked up at  
Alexandria. There was nothing which that river did not do. It rose in the  
Caucasus. Where was the Caucasus? He did not know. In Paradise—in Indian  
Aethiopia—in Aethiopian India. Where were they? He did not know. Nobody  
knew. It ran for a hundred and fifty days’ journey through deserts where nothing  
but flying serpents and satyrs lived, and the very lions’ manes were burnt off by  
the heat….  
‘Good sporting there, at all events, among these dragons,’ quoth Smid the son of  
Troll, armourer to the party.  
‘As good as Thor’s when he caught Snake Midgard with the bullock’s head,’  
said Wulf.  
It turned to the east for a hundred days’ journey more, all round Arabia and  
India, among forests full of elephants and dog-headed women.  
‘Better and better, Smid!’ growled Wulf, approvingly.  
‘Fresh beef cheap there, Prince Wulf, eh?’ quoth Smid; ‘I must look over the  
arrow-heads.’  
—To the mountains of the Hyperboreans, where there was eternal night, and the  
air was full of feathers …. That is, one-third of it came from thence, and another  
third came from the Southern ocean, over the Moon mountains, where no one  
had ever been, and the remaining third from the country where the phoenix  
lived, and nobody knew where that was. And then there were the cataracts, and  
the inundations-and-and-and above the cataracts, nothing but sand-hills and  
ruins, as full of devils as they could hold …. and as for Asgard, no one had ever  
heard of it …. till every face grew longer and longer, as Pelagia went on  
interpreting and misinterpreting; and at last the giant smote his hand upon his  
knee, and swore a great oath that Asgard might rot till the twilight of the gods  
before he went a step farther up the Nile.  
‘Curse the monk!’ growled Wulf. ‘How should such a poor beast know anything  
about the matter?’  
‘Why should not he know as well as that ape of a Roman governor?’ asked  
Smid.  
‘Oh, the monks know everything,’said Pelagia. ‘They go hundreds and  
thousands of miles up the river, and cross the deserts among fiends and  
monsters, where any one else would be eaten up, or go mad at once.’  
‘Ah, the dear holy men! It’s all by the sign of the blessed cross!’ exclaimed all  
the girls together, devoutly crossing themselves, while two or three of the most  
enthusiastic were half-minded to go forward and kneel to Philammon for his  
blessing; but hesitated, their Gothic lovers being heathenishly stupid and prudish  
on such points.  
‘Why should he not know as well as the prefect? Well said, Smid! I believe that  
prefect’s quill-driver was humbugging us when he said Asgard was only ten  
days’sail up.’  
‘Why?’ asked Wulf.  
‘I never give any reasons. What’s the use of being an Amal, and a son of Odin, if  
one has always to be giving reasons like a rascally Roman lawyer? I say the  
governor looked like a liar; and I say this monk looks like an honest fellow; and  
I choose to believe him, and there is an end of it.’  
‘Don’t look so cross at me, Prince Wulf; I’m sure it’s not my fault; I could only  
say what the monk told me,’ whispered poor Pelagia.  
‘Who looks cross at you, my queen?’ roared the Amal. ‘Let me have him out  
here, and by Thor’s hammer, I’ll—’  
‘Who spoke to you, you stupid darling?’ answered Pelagia, who lived in hourly  
fear of thunderstorms. ‘Who is going to be cross with any one, except I with you,  
for mishearing and misunderstanding, and meddling, as you are always doing? I  
shall do as I threatened, and run away with Prince Wulf, if you are not good.  
Don’t you see that the whole crew are expecting you to make them an oration?’  
Whereupon the Amal rose.  
‘See you here, Wulf the son of Ovida, and warriors all! If we want wealth, we  
shan’t find it among the sand-hills. If we want women, we shall find nothing  
prettier than these among dragons and devils. Don’t look angry, Wulf. You have  
no mind to marry one of those dog- headed girls the monk talked of, have you?  
Well, then, we have money and women; and if we want sport, it’s better sport  
killing men than killing beasts; so we had better go where we shall find most of  
that game, which we certainly shall not up this road. As for fame and all that,  
though I’ve had enough, there’s plenty to be got anywhere along the shores of  
that Mediterranean. Let’s burn and plunder Alexandria: forty of us Goths might  
kill down all these donkey-riders in two days, and hang up that lying prefect who  
sent us hereon this fool’s errand. Don’t answer, Wulf. I knew he was  
humbugging us all along, but you were so open-mouthed to all he said, that I  
wasbound to let my elders choose for me. Let’s go back; send over for any of the  
tribes; send to Spain for those Vandals—they have had enough of Adolf by now,  
curse him!—I’ll warrant them; get together an army, and take Constantinople.  
I’ll be Augustus, and Pelagia, Augusta; you and Smid here, the two Caesars; and  
we’ll make the monk the chief of the eunuchs, eh?— anything you like for a  
quiet life; but up this accursed kennel of hot water I go no farther. Ask your girls,  
my heroes, and I’ll ask mine. Women are all prophetesses, every one of them.’  
‘When they are not harlots,’ growled Wulf to himself.  
‘I will go to the world’s end with you, my king!’sighed Pelagia; ‘but Alexandria  
is certainly pleasanter than this.’  
Old Wulf sprang up fiercely enough.  
‘Hear me, Amalric the Amal, son of Odin, and heroes all! When my fathers  
swore to be Odin’s men, and gave up the kingdom to the holy Annals, the sons  
of the Aesir, what was the bond between your fathers and mine? Was it not that  
we should move and move, southward and southward ever, till we came back to  
Asgard, the city where Odin dwells for ever, and gave into his hands the  
kingdom of all the earth? And did we not keep our oath? Have we not held to the  
Amals? Did we not leave Adolf, because we would not follow a Balth, while  
there was an Amal to lead us? Have we not been true men to you, son of the  
Aesir?’  
‘No man ever saw Wulf, the son of Ovida, fail friend or foe.’  
‘Then why does his friend fail him? Why does his friend fail himself? If the  
bison-bull lie down and wallow, what will the herd do for a leader? If the kingwolf lose the scent, how will the pack hold it? If the Yngling forgets the song of  
Asgard, who will sing it to the heroes?’  
‘Sing it yourself, if you choose. Pelagia sings quite well enough for me.’  
In an instant the cunning beauty caught at the hint, and poured forth a soft, low,  
sleepy song:—  
‘Loose the sail, rest the oar, float away down, Fleeting and gliding by tower and  
town; Life is so short at best! snatch, while thou canst, thy rest, Sleeping by me!’  
‘Can you answer that, Wulf?’shouted a dozen voices.  
‘Hear the song of Asgard, warriors of the Goths! Did not Alaric the king love it  
well? Did I not sing it before him in the palace of the Caesars, till he swore, for  
all the Christian that he was, to go southward in search of the holy city? And  
when he went to Valhalla, and the ships were wrecked off Sicily, and Adolf the  
Balth turned back like a lazy hound, and married the daughter of the Romans,  
whom Odin hates, and went northward again to Gaul, did not I sing you all the  
song of Asgard in Messina there, till you swore to follow the Amal through fire  
and water until we found the hall of Odin, and received the mead-cup from his  
own hand? Hear it again, warriors of the Goths!’  
‘Not that song!’ roared the Amal, stopping his ears with both his hands. ‘Will  
you drive us blood-mad again, just as we are settling down into our sober senses,  
and finding out what our lives were given us for?’  
‘Hear the song of Asgard! On to Asgard, wolves of the Goths!’shouted another;  
and a babel of voices arose.  
‘Haven’t we been fighting and marching these seven years?’  
‘Haven’t we drunk blood enough to satisfy Odin ten times over? If he wants us  
lot him come himself and lead us!’  
‘Let us get our winds again before we start afresh!’  
‘Wulf the Prince is like his name, and never tires; he has a winter- wolf’s legs  
under him; that is no reason why we should have.’  
‘Haven’t you heard what the monk says?-we can never get ever those cataracts.’  
‘We’ll stop his old wives’ tales for him, and then settle for ourselves,’said Smid;  
and springing from the thwart where he had been sitting, he caught up a bill with  
one hand, and seized Philammon’s throat with the other …. in a moment more, it  
would have been all over with him….  
For the first time in his life Philammon felt a hostile gripe upon him, and a new  
sensation rushed through every nerve, as he grappled with the warrior, clutched  
with his left hand the up-lifted wrist, and with his right the girdle, and  
commenced, without any definite aim, a fierce struggle, which, strange to say, as  
it went on, grew absolutely pleasant.  
The women shrieked to their lovers to part the combatants, but in vain.  
‘Not for worlds! A very fair match and a very fair fight! Take your long legs  
back, Itho, or they will be over you! That’s right, my Smid, don’t use the knife!  
They will be overboard in a moment! By all the Valkyrs, they are down, and  
Smid undermost!’  
There was no doubt of it; and in another moment Philammon would have  
wrenched the bill out of his opponent’s hand, when, to the utter astonishment of  
the onlookers, he suddenly loosed his hold, shook himself free by one powerful  
wrench, and quietly retreated to his seat, conscience-stricken at the fearful thirst  
for blood which had suddenly boiled up within him as he felt his enemy under  
him.  
The onlookers were struck dumb with astonishment; they had taken for granted  
that he would, as a matter of course, have used his right of splitting his  
vanquished opponent’s skull—an event which they would of course have deeply  
deplored, but with which, as men of honour, they could not on any account  
interfere, but merely console themselves for the loss of their comrade by flaying  
his conqueror alive, ‘carving him into the blood-eagle,’ or any other delicate  
ceremony which might serve as a vent for their sorrow and a comfort to the soul  
of the deceased.  
Smid rose, with a bill in his hand, and looked round him-perhaps to see what  
was expected of him. He half lifted his weapon to strike …. Philammon, seated,  
looked him calmly in the face …. The old warrior’s eye caught the bank, which  
was now receding rapidly past them; and when he saw that they were really  
floating downwards again, without an effort to stem the stream, he put away his  
bill, and sat himself down deliberately in his place, astonishing the onlookers  
quite as much as Philammon had done.  
‘Five minutes’ good fighting, and no one killed! This is a shame!’ quoth another.  
‘Blood we must see, and it had better be yours, master monk, than your  
betters’,’—and therewith he rushed on poor Philammon.  
He spoke the heart of the crew; the sleeping wolf in them had been awakened by  
the struggle, and blood they would have; and not frantically, like Celts or  
Egyptians, but with the cool humorous cruelty of the Teuton, they rose  
altogether, and turning Philammon over on his back, deliberated by what death  
he should die.  
Philammon quietly submitted—if submission have anything to do with that state  
of mind in which sheer astonishment and novelty have broken up all the custom  
of man’s nature, till the strangest deeds and sufferings are taken as matters of  
course. His sudden escape from the Laura, the new world of thought and action  
into which he had been plunged, the new companions with whom he had fallen  
in, had driven him utterly from his moorings, and now anything and everything  
might happen to him. He who had promised never to look upon woman found  
himself, by circumstances over which he had no control, amid a boatful of the  
most objectionable species of that most objectionable genus—and the utterly  
worst having happened, everything else which happened must be better than the  
worst. For the rest, he had gone forth to see the world—and this was one of the  
ways of it. So he made up his mind to see it, and be filled with the fruit of his  
own devices.  
And he would have been certainly filled with the same in five minutes more, in  
some shape too ugly to be mentioned: but, as even sinful women have hearts in  
them, Pelagia shrieked out—  
‘Amalric! Amalric! do not let them! I cannot bear it!’  
‘The warriors are free men, my darling, and know what is proper. And what can  
the life of such a brute be to you?’  
Before he could stop her, Pelagia had sprung from her cushions, and thrown  
herself into the midst of the laughing ring of wild beasts.  
‘Spare him! spare him for my sake!’shrieked she.  
‘Oh, my pretty lady! you mustn’t interrupt warriors’sport!’  
In an instant she had torn off her shawl, and thrown it over Philammon; and as  
she stood, with all the outlines of her beautiful limbs revealed through the thin  
robe of spangled gauze—  
‘Let the man who dares, touch him beneath that shawl!—though it be a saffron  
one!’  
The Goths drew back. For Pelagia herself they had as little respect as the rest of  
the world had. But for a moment she was not the Messalina of Alexandria, but a  
woman; and true to the old woman- worshipping instinct, they looked one and  
all at her flashing eyes, full of noble pity and indignation, as well as of mere  
woman’s terror—and drew back, and whispered together.  
Whether the good spirit or the evil one would conquer, seemed for a moment  
doubtful, when Pelagia felt a heavy hand on her shoulder, and turning, saw Wulf  
the son of Ovida.  
‘Go back, pretty woman! Men, I claim the boy. Smid, give him to me. He is your  
man. You could have killed him if you had chosen, and did not; and no one else  
shall.’  
‘Give him us, Prince Wulf! We have not seen blood for many a day!’  
‘You might have seen rivers of it, if you had had the hearts to go onward. The  
boy is mine, and a brave boy. He has upset a warrior fairly this day, and spared  
him; and we will make a warrior of him in return.’  
And he lifted up the prostrate monk.  
‘You are my man now. Do you like fighting?’  
Philammon, not understanding the language in which he was addressed, could  
only shake his head—though if he had known what its import was, he could  
hardly in honesty have said, No.  
‘He shakes his head! He does not like it! He is craven! Let us have him!’  
‘I had killed kings when you were shooting frogs,’ cried Smid. ‘Listen to me, my  
sons! A coward grips sharply at first, and loosens his hand after a while, because  
his blood is soon hot and soon cold. A brave man’s grip grows the firmer the  
longer he holds, because the spirit of Odin comes upon him. I watched the boy’s  
hands on my threat; and he will make a man; and I will make him one. However,  
we may as well make him useful at once; so give him an oar.’  
‘Well,’ answered his new protector, ‘he can as well row us as be rowed by us;  
and if we are to go back to a cow’s death and the pool of Hela, the quicker we go  
the better.’  
And as the men settled themselves again to their oars, one was put into  
Philammon’s hand, which he managed with such strength and skill that his late  
tormentors, who, in spite of an occasional inclination to robbery and murder,  
were thoroughly good-natured, honest fellows, clapped him on the back, and  
praised him as heartily as they had just now heartily intended to torture him to  
death, and then went forward, as many of them as were not rowing, to examine  
the strange beast which they had just slaughtered, pawing him over from tusks to  
tail, putting their heads into his mouth, trying their knives on his hide, comparing  
him to all beasts, like and unlike, which they had ever seen, and laughing and  
shoving each other about with the fun and childish wonder of a party of  
schoolboys; till Smid, who was the wit of the party, settled the comparative  
anatomy of the subject for them-  
‘Valhalla! I’ve found out what he’s most like!—One of those big blue plums,  
which gave us all the stomach-ache when we were encamped in the orchards  
above Ravenna!’  
CHAPTER IV: MIRIAM  
One morning in the same week, Hypatia’s favourite maid entered her chamber  
with a somewhat terrified face.  
‘The old Jewess, madam—the hag who has been watching so often lately under  
the wall opposite. She frightened us all out of our senses last evening by peeping  
in. We all said she had the evil eye, if any one ever had—’  
‘Well, what of her?’  
‘She is below, madam, and will speak with you. Not that I care for her; I have  
my amulet on. I hope you have?’  
‘Silly girl! Those who have been initiated as I have in the mysteries of the gods,  
can defy spirits and command them. Do you suppose that the favourite of Pallas  
Athene will condescend to charms and magic? Send her up.’  
The girl retreated, with a look half of awe, half of doubt, at the lofty pretensions  
of her mistress, and returned with old Miriam, keeping, however, prudently  
behind her, in order to test as little as possible the power of her own amulet by  
avoiding the basilisk eye which had terrified her.  
Miriam came in, and advancing to the proud beauty, who remained seated, made  
an obeisance down to the very floor, without, however, taking her eyes for an  
instant off Hypatia’s face.  
Her countenance was haggard and bony, with broad sharp-cut lips, stamped with  
a strangely mingled expression of strength and sensuality. Put the feature about  
her which instantly fixed Hypatia’s attention, and from which she could not in  
spite of herself withdraw it, was the dry, glittering, coal-black eye which glared  
out from underneath the gray fringe of her swarthy brows, between black locks  
covered with gold coins. Hypatia could look at nothing but those eyes; and she  
reddened, and grew all but unphilosophically angry, as she saw that the old  
woman intended her to look at them, and feel the strange power which she  
evidently wished them to exercise.  
After a moment’s silence, Miriam drew a letter from her bosom, and with a  
second low obeisance presented it.  
‘From whom is this?’  
‘Perhaps the letter itself will tell the beautiful lady, the fortunate lady, the  
discerning lady,’ answered she, in a fawning, wheedling tone. ‘How should a  
poor old Jewess know great folks’secrets?’  
‘Great folks?—’  
Hypatia looked at the seal which fixed a silk cord round the letter. It was  
Orestes’; and so was the handwriting …. Strange that he should have chosen  
such a messenger! What message could it be which required such secrecy?  
She clapped her hands for the maid. ‘Let this woman wait in the ante-room.’  
Miriam glided out backwards, bowing as she went. As Hypatia looked up over  
the letter to see whether she was alone, she caught a last glance of that eye still  
fixed upon her, and an expression in Miriam’s face which made her, she knew  
not why, shudder and turn chill.  
‘Foolish that I am! What can that witch be to me? But now for the letter.’  
‘To the most noble and most beautiful, the mistress of philosophy, beloved of  
Athene, her pupil and slave sends greeting.’....  
‘My slave! and no name mentioned!’  
‘There are those who consider that the favourite hen of Honorius, which bears  
the name of the Imperial City, would thrive better under a new feeder; and the  
Count of Africa has been despatched by himself and by the immortal gods to  
superintend for the present the poultry- yard of the Caesars—at least during the  
absence of Adolf and Placidia. There are those also who consider that in his  
absence the Numidian lion might be prevailed on to become the yoke-fellow of  
the Egyptian crocodile; and a farm which, ploughed by such a pair, should  
extend from the upper cataract to the Pillars of Hercules, might have charms  
even for a philosopher. But while the ploughman is without a nymph, Arcadia is  
imperfect. What were Dionusos without his Ariadne, Ares without Aphrodite,  
Zeus without Hera? Even Artemis has her Endymion; Athens alone remains  
unwedded; but only because Hephaestus was too rough a wooer. Such is not he  
who now offers to the representative of Athene the opportunity of sharing that  
which may be with the help of her wisdom, which without her is impossible.  
\[Greek expression omitted\] Shall Eros, invincible for ages, be balked at last of  
the noblest game against which he ever drew his bow?’....  
If Hypatia’s colour had faded a moment before under the withering glance of the  
old Jewess, it rose again swiftly enough, as she read line after line of this strange  
epistle; till at last, crushing it together in her hand, she rose and hurried into the  
adjoining library, where Theon sat over his books.  
‘Father, do you know anything of this? Look what Orestes has dared to send me  
by the hands of some base Jewish witch!’—And she spread the letter before him,  
and stood impatient, her whole figure dilated with pride and anger, as the old  
man read it slowly and carefully, and then looked up, apparently not ill pleased  
with the contents.  
‘What, father?’ asked she, half reproachfully. ‘Do not you, too, feel the insult  
which has been put upon your daughter?’  
‘My dear child,’ with a puzzled look, ‘do you not see that he offers you—’  
‘I know what he offers me, father. The Empire of Africa …. I am to descend  
from the mountain heights of science, from the contemplation of the  
unchangeable and ineffable glories, into the foul fields and farmyards of earthly  
practical life, and become a drudge among political chicanery, and the petty  
ambitions, and sins, and falsehoods of the earthly herd …. And the price which  
he offers me—me, the stainless—me, the virgin—me, the un-tamed, — is-his  
hand! Pallas Athene! dost thou not blush with thy child?’  
‘But, my child—my child,—an empire—’  
‘Would the empire of the world restore my lost self-respect-my just pride?  
Would it save my cheek from blushes every time I recollected that I bore the  
hateful and degrading name of wife?—The property, the puppet of a man—  
submitting to his pleasure—bearing his children—wearing myself out with all  
the nauseous cares of wifehood—no longer able to glory in myself, pure and  
self- sustained, but forced by day and night to recollect that my very beauty is no  
longer the sacrament of Athene’s love for me, but the plaything of a man;—and  
such a man as that! Luxurious, frivolous, heartless—courting my society, as he  
has done for years, only to pick up and turn to his own base earthly uses the  
scraps which fall from the festal table of the gods! I have encouraged him too  
much— vain fool that I have been! No, I wrong myself! It was only—I thought  
—I thought that by his being seen at our doors, the cause of the immortal gods  
would gain honour and strength in the eyes of the multitude …. I have tried to  
feed the altars of heaven with earthly fuel …. And this is my just reward! I will  
write to him this moment,—return by the fitting messenger which he has sent,  
insult for insult!’  
‘In the name of Heaven, my daughter!—for your father’s sake!—for my sake!  
Hypatia!—my pride, my joy, my only hope!—have pity on my gray hairs!’  
And the poor old man flung himself at her feet, and clasped her knees  
imploringly.  
Tenderly she lifted him up, and wound her long arms round him, and laid his  
head on her white shoulder, and her tears fell fast upon his gray hair; but her lip  
was firm and determined.  
‘Think of my pride—my glory in your glory; think of me …. Not for myself!  
You know I never cared for myself!’sobbed out the old man. ‘But to die seeing  
you empress!’  
‘Unless I died first in childbed, father, as many a woman dies who is weak  
enough to become a slave, and submit to tortures only fit for slaves.’  
‘But—but—said the old man, racking his bewildered brains for some argument  
far enough removed from nature and common sense to have an effect on the  
beautiful fanatic—‘but the cause of the gods! What you might do for it! ....  
Remember Julian!’  
Hypatia’s arms dropped suddenly. Yes; it was true! The thought flashed across  
her mind with mingled delight and terror …. Visions of her childhood rose swift  
and thick—temples—sacrifices— priesthoods—colleges—museums! What  
might she not do? What might she not make Africa? Give her ten years of power,  
and the hated name of Christian might be forgotten, and Athene Polias, colossal  
in ivory and gold, watching in calm triumph over the harbours of a heathen  
Alexandria …. But the price!  
And she hid her face in her hands, and bursting into bitter tears, walked slowly  
away into her own chamber, her whole body convulsed with the internal  
struggle.  
The old man looked after her, anxiously and perplexed, and then followed,  
hesitating. She was sitting at the table, her face buried in her hands. He did not  
dare to disturb her. In addition to all the affection, the wisdom, the glorious  
beauty, on which his whole heart fed day by day, he believed her to be the  
possessor of those supernatural powers and favours to which she so boldly laid  
claim. And he stood watching her in the doorway, praying in his heart to all gods  
and demons, principalities and powers, from Athene down to his daughter’s  
guardian spirit, to move a determination which he was too weak to gainsay, and  
yet too rational to approve.  
At last the struggle was over, and she looked up, clear, calm, and glorious again.  
‘It shall be. For the sake of the immortal gods—for the sake of art, and science,  
and learning, and philosophy …. It shall be. If the gods demand a victim, here  
am I. If a second time in the history of the ages the Grecian fleet cannot sail  
forth, conquering and civilising, without the sacrifice of a virgin, I give my  
throat to the knife. Father, call me no more Hypatia: call me Iphigenia!’  
‘And me Agamemnon?’ asked the old man, attempting a faint jest through his  
tears of joy. ‘I daresay you think me a very cruel father; but—’  
‘Spare me, father—I have spared you.’  
And she began to write her answer.  
‘I have accepted his offer—conditionally, that is. And on whether he have  
courage or not to fulfil that condition depends— Do not ask me what it is. While  
Cyril is leader of the Christian mob, it may be safer for you, my father, that you  
should be able to deny all knowledge of my answer. Be content. I have said this  
—that if he will do as I would have him do, I will do as you would have me do.’  
‘Have you not been too rash? Have you not demanded of him something which,  
for the sake of public opinion, he dare not grant openly, and yet which he may  
allow you to do for yourself when once—’  
‘I have. If I am to be a victim, the sacrificing priest shall at least be a man, and  
not a coward and a time-server. If he believes this Christian faith, let him defend  
it against me; for either it or I shall perish. If he does not—as he does not—let  
him give up living in a lie, and taking on his lips blasphemies against the  
immortals, from which his heart and reason revolt!’  
And she clapped her hands again for the maid-servant, gave her the letter  
silently, shut the doors of her chamber, and tried to resume her Commentary on  
Plotinus. Alas! what were all the wire-drawn dreams of metaphysics to her in  
that real and human struggle of the heart? What availed it to define the process  
by which individual souls emanated from the universal one, while her own soul  
had, singly and on its own responsibility, to decide so terrible an act of will? or  
to write fine words with pen and ink about the immutability of the supreme  
Reason, while her own reason was left there to struggle for its life amid a roaring  
shoreless waste of doubts and darkness? Oh, how grand, and clear, and logical it  
had all looked half an hour ago! And how irrefragably she had been deducing  
from it all, syllogism after syllogism, the non-existence of evil!—how it was but  
a lower form of good, one of the countless products of the one great allpervading mind which could not err or change, only so strange and recondite in  
its form as to excite antipathy in all minds but that of the philosopher, who learnt  
to see the stem which connected the apparently bitter fruit with the perfect root  
from whence it sprang. Could she see the stem there?— the connection between  
the pure and supreme Reason, and the hideous caresses of the debauched and  
cowardly Orestes? was not that evil pure, unadulterate with any vein of good,  
past, present, or future?  
....  
True;—she might keep her spirit pure amid it all; she might sacrifice the base  
body, and ennoble the soul by the self-sacrifice …. And yet, would not that  
increase the horror, the agony, the evil of it-to her, at least, most real evil, not to  
be explained away-and yet the gods required it? Were they just, merciful in that?  
Was it like them, to torture her, their last unshaken votary? Did they require it?  
Was it not required of them by some higher power, of whom they were only the  
emanations, the tools, the puppets?—and required of that higher power by some  
still higher one—some nameless, absolute destiny of which Orestes and she, and  
all heaven and earth, were but the victims, dragged along in an inevitable vortex,  
helpless, hopeless, toward that for which each was meant?—And she was meant  
for this! The thought was unbearable; it turned her giddy. No! she would not!  
She would rebel! Like Prometheus, she would dare destiny, and brave its worst!  
And she sprang up to recall the letter …. Miriam was gone; and she threw  
herself on the floor, and wept bitterly.  
And her peace of mind would certainly not have been improved, could she have  
seen old Miriam hurry home with her letter to a dingy house in the Jews’ quarter,  
where it was un-sealed, read, and sealed up again with such marvellous skill, that  
no eye could have detected the change; and finally, still less would she have been  
comforted could she have heard the conversation which was going on in a  
summer-room of Orestes’ palace, between that illustrious statesman and Raphael  
Aben-Ezra, who were lying on two divans opposite each other, whiling away, by  
a throw or two of dice, the anxious moments which delayed her answer.  
‘Trays again! The devil is in you, Raphael!’  
‘I always thought he was,’ answered Raphael, sweeping up the gold pieces….  
‘When will that old witch be back?’  
‘When she has read through your letter and Hypatia’s answer.’  
‘Read them?’  
‘Of course. You don’t fancy she is going to be fool enough to carry a message  
without knowing what it is? Don’t be angry; she won’t tell. She would give one  
of those two grave-lights there, which she calls her eyes, to see the thing  
prosper.’  
‘Why?’  
‘Your excellency will know when the letter comes. Here she is; I hear steps in  
the cloister. Now, one bet before they enter. I give you two to one she asks you to  
turn pagan.’  
‘What in? Negro-boys?’  
‘Anything you like.’  
‘Taken. Come in, slaves?’  
And Hypocorisma entered, pouting.  
‘That Jewish fury is outside with a letter, and has the impudence to say she won’t  
let me bring it in!’  
‘Bring her in then. Quick!’  
‘I wonder what I am here for, if people have secrets that I am not to know,’  
grumbled the spoilt youth.  
‘Do you want a blue ribbon round those white sides of yours, you monkey?’  
answered Orestes. ‘Because, if you do, the hippopotamus hide hangs ready  
outside.’  
‘Let us make him kneel down here for a couple of hours, and use him as a diceboard,’said Raphael, ‘as you used to do to the girls in Armenia.’  
‘Ah, you recollect that?—and how the barbarian papas used to grumble, till I had  
to crucify one or two, eh? That was something like life! I love those out-of-theway stations, where nobody asks questions: but here one might as well live  
among the monks in Nitria. Here comes Canidia! Ah, the answer? Hand it here,  
my queen of go-betweens!’  
Orestes read it—and his countenance fell.  
‘I have won?’  
‘Out of the room, slaves! and no listening!’  
‘I have won then?’  
Orestes tossed the letter across to him, and Raphael read—  
‘The immortal gods accept no divided worship; and he who would command the  
counsels of their prophetess must remember that they will vouchsafe to her no  
illumination till their lost honours be restored. If he who aspires to be the lord of  
Africa dare trample on the hateful cross, and restore the Caesareum to those for  
whose worship it was built—if he dare proclaim aloud with his lips, and in his  
deeds, that contempt for novel and barbarous superstitions, which his taste and  
reason have already taught him, then he would prove himself one with whom it  
were a glory to labour, to dare, to die in a great cause. But till then—’  
And so the letter ended.  
‘What am I to do?’  
‘Take her at her word.’  
‘Good heavens! I shall be excommunicated! And—and—what is to become of  
my soul?’  
‘What will become of it in any case, my most excellent lord?’ answered Raphael  
blandly.  
‘You mean—I know what you cursed Jews think will happen to every one but  
yourselves. But what would the world say? I an apostate! And in the face of  
Cyril and the populace! I daren’t, I tell you!’  
‘No one asked your excellency to apostatise.’  
‘Why, what? What did you say just now?’  
‘I asked you to promise. It will not be the first time that promises before  
marriage have not exactly coincided with performance afterwards.’  
‘I daren’t—that is, I won’t promise. I believe, now, this is some trap of your  
Jewish intrigue, just to make me commit myself against those Christians, whom  
you hate.’  
‘I assure you, I despise all mankind far too profoundly to hate them. How  
disinterested my advice was when I proposed this match to you, you never will  
know; indeed, it would be boastful in me to tell you. But really you must make a  
little sacrifice to win this foolish girl. With all the depth and daring of her  
intellect to help you, you might be a match for Romans, Byzantines, and Goths  
at once. And as for beauty—why, there is one dimple inside that wrist, just at the  
setting on of the sweet little hand, worth all the other flesh and blood in  
Alexandria.’  
‘By Jove! you admire her so much, I suspect you must be in love with her  
yourself. Why don’t you marry her? I’ll make you my prime minister, and then  
we shall have the use of her wits without the trouble of her fancies. By the  
twelve Gods! If you marry her and help me, I’ll make you what you like!’  
Raphael rose and bowed to the earth.  
‘Your serene high-mightiness overwhelms me. But I assure you, that never  
having as yet cared for any one’s interest but my own, I could not be expected, at  
my time of life, to devote myself to that of another, even though it were to  
yours.’  
‘Candid!’  
‘Exactly so; and moreover, whosoever I may marry, will be practically, as well  
as theoretically, my private and peculiar property …. You comprehend.’  
‘Candid again.’  
‘Exactly so; and waiving the third argument, that she probably might not choose  
to marry me, I beg to remark that it would not be proper to allow the world to  
say, that I, the subject, had a wiser and fairer wife than you, the ruler; especially  
a wife who bad already refused that ruler’s complimentary offer.’  
‘By Jove! and she has refused me in good earnest! I’ll make her repent it! I was  
a fool to ask her at all! What’s the use of having guards, if one can’t compel  
what one wants? If fair means can’t do it, foul shall! I’ll send for her this  
moment!’  
‘Most illustrious majesty—it will not succeed. You do not know that woman’s  
determination. Scourges and red-hot pincers will not shake her, alive; and dead,  
she will be of no use whatsoever to you, while she will be of great use to Cyril.’  
‘How?’  
‘He will be most happy to make the whole story a handle against you, give out  
that she died a virgin-martyr, in defence of the most holy catholic and apostolic  
faith, get miracles worked at her tomb, and pull your palace about your ears on  
the strength thereof.’  
‘Cyril will hear of it anyhow: that’s another dilemma into which you have  
brought me, you intriguing rascal! Why, this girl will be boasting all over  
Alexandria that I have offered her marriage, and that she has done herself the  
honour to refuse me!’  
‘She will be much too wise to do anything of the kind; she has sense enough to  
know that if she did so, you would inform a Christian populace what conditions  
she offered you, and, with all her contempt for the burden of the flesh, she has no  
mind to be lightened of that pretty load by being torn in pieces by Christian  
monks; a very probable ending for her in any case, as she herself, in her  
melancholy moods, confesses!’  
‘What will you have me do then?’  
‘Simply nothing. Let the prophetic spirit go out of her, as it will, in a day or two,  
and then—I know nothing of human nature, if she does not bate a little of her  
own price. Depend on it, for all her ineffabilities, and impassibilities, and all the  
rest of the seventh-heaven moonshine at which we play here in Alexandria, a  
throne is far too pretty a bait for even Hypatia the pythoness to refuse. Leave  
well alone is a good rule, but leave ill alone is a better. So now another bet  
before we part, and this time three to one. Do nothing either way, and she sends  
to you of her own accord before a month is out. In Caucasian mules? Done? Be  
it so.’  
‘Well, you are the most charming counsellor for a poor perplexed devil of a  
prefect! If I had but a private fortune like you, I could just take the money, and  
let the work do itself.’  
‘Which is the true method of successful government. Your slave bids you  
farewell. Do not forget our bet. You dine with me to-morrow?’  
And Raphael bowed himself out.  
As he left the prefect’s door, he saw Miriam on the opposite side of the street,  
evidently watching for him. As soon as she saw him, she held on her own side,  
without appearing to notice him, till he turned a corner, and then crossing, caught  
him eagerly by the arm.  
‘Does the fool dare!’  
‘Who dare what?’  
‘You know what I mean. Do you suppose old Miriam carries letters without  
taking care to know what is inside them? Will he apostatise? Tell me. I am secret  
as the grave!’  
‘The fool has found an old worm-eaten rag of conscience somewhere in the  
corner of his heart, and dare not.’  
‘Curse the coward! And such a plot as I had laid! I would have swept every  
Christian dog out of Africa within the year. What is the man afraid of?’  
‘Hell-fire.’  
‘Why, he will go there in any case, the accursed Gentile!’  
‘So I hinted to him, as delicately as I could; but, like the rest of the world, he had  
a sort of partiality for getting thither by his own road.’  
‘Coward! And whom shall I get now? Oh, if that Pelagia had as much cunning in  
her whole body as Hypatia has in her little finger, I’d seat her and her Goth upon  
the throne of the Caesars. But—’  
‘But she has five senses, and just enough wit to use them, eh?’  
‘Don’t laugh at her for that, the darling! I do delight in her, after all. It warms  
even my old blood to see how thoroughly she knows her business, and how she  
enjoys it, like a true daughter of Eve.’  
‘She has been your most successful pupil, certainly, mother. You may well be  
proud of her.’  
The old hag chuckled to herself a while; and then suddenly turning to Raphael-  
‘See here! I have a present for you;’ and she pulled out a magnificent ring.  
‘Why, mother, you are always giving me presents. It was but a month ago you  
sent me this poisoned dagger.’  
‘Why not, eh?—why not? Why should not Jew give to Jew? Take the old  
woman’s ring!’  
‘What a glorious opal!’  
‘Ah, that is an opal, indeed! And the unspeakable name upon it; just like  
Solomon’s own. Take it, I say! Whosoever wears that never need fear fire, steel,  
poison, or woman’s eye.’  
‘Your own included, eh?’  
‘Take it, I say!‘and Miriam caught his hand, and forced the ring on his finger.  
‘There! Now you’re safe. And now call me mother again. I like it. I don’t know  
why, but I like it. And—Raphael Aben- Ezra—don’t laugh at me, and call me  
witch and hag, as you often do. I don’t care about it from any one else; I’m  
accustomed to it. But when you do it, I always long to stab you. That’s why I  
gave you the dagger. I used to wear it; and I was afraid I might be tempted to use  
it some day, when the thought came across me how handsome you’d look, and  
how quiet, when you were dead, and your soul up there so happy in Abraham’s  
bosom, watching all the Gentiles frying and roasting for ever down below. Don’t  
laugh at me, I say; and don’t thwart me! I may make you the emperor’s prime  
minister some day. I can if I choose.’  
‘Heaven forbid!’said Raphael, laughing.  
‘Don’t laugh. I cast your nativity last night, and I know you have no cause to  
laugh. A great danger hangs over you, and a deep temptation. And if you  
weather this storm, you may be chamberlain, prime minister, emperor, if you  
will. And you shall be—by the four archangels, you shall!’  
And the old woman vanished down a by-lane, leaving Raphael utterly  
bewildered.  
‘Moses and the prophets! Does the old lady intend to marry me? What can there  
be in this very lazy and selfish personage who bears my name, to excite so  
romantic an affection? Well, Raphael Aben- Ezra, thou hast one more friend in  
the world beside Bran the mastiff; and therefore one more trouble—seeing that  
friends always expect a due return of affection and good offices and what not. I  
wonder whether the old lady has been getting into a scrape kidnapping, and  
wants my patronage to help her out of it …. Three-quarters of a mile of roasting  
sun between me and home! .... I must hire a gig, or a litter, or some-thing, off the  
next stand …. with a driver who has been eating onions …. and of course there  
is not a stand for the next half-mile. Oh, divine aether! as Prometheus has it, and  
ye swift-winged breezes (I wish there were any here), when will it all be over?  
Three-and-thirty years have I endured already of this Babel of knaves and fools;  
and with this abominable good health of mine, which won’t even help me with  
gout or indigestion, I am likely to have three-and-thirty years more of it….I  
know nothing, and I care for nothing, and I expect nothing; and I actually can’t  
take the trouble to prick a hole in myself, and let the very small amount of wits  
out, to see something really worth seeing, and try its strength at something really  
worth doing—if, after all, the other side the grave does not turn out to be just as  
stupid as this one …. When will it be all over, and I in Abraham’s bosom—or  
any one else’s, provided it be not a woman’s?’  
CHAPTER V: A DAY IN ALEXANDRIA  
In the meanwhile, Philammon, with his hosts, the Goths, had been slipping down  
the stream. Passing, one after another, world-old cities now dwindled to  
decaying towns, and numberless canal-mouths, now fast falling into ruin with  
the fields to which they ensured fertility, under the pressure of Roman extortion  
and misrule, they had entered one evening the mouth of the great canal of  
Alexandria, slid easily all night across the star-bespangled shadows of Lake  
Mareotis, and found themselves, when the next morning dawned, among the  
countless masts and noisy quays of the greatest seaport in the world. The motley  
crowd of foreigners, the hubbub of all dialects from the Crimea to Cadiz, the  
vast piles of merchandise, and heaps of wheat, lying unsheltered in that rainless  
air, the huge bulk of the corn-ships lading for Rome, whose tall sides rose story  
over story, like floating palaces, above the buildings of some inner dock —these  
sights, and a hundred more, made the young monk think that the world did not  
look at first sight a thing to be despised. In front of heaps of fruit, fresh from the  
market-boats, black groups of glossy negro slaves were basking and laughing on  
the quay, looking anxiously and coquettishly round in hopes of a purchaser; they  
evidently did not think the change from desert toil to city luxuries a change for  
the worse. Philammon turned away his eyes from beholding vanity; but only to  
meet fresh vanity wheresoever they fell. He felt crushed by the multitude of new  
objects, stunned by the din around; and scarcely recollected himself enough to  
seize the first opportunity of escaping from his dangerous companions.  
‘Holloa!’ roared Smid the armourer, as he scrambled on to the steps of the slip;  
‘you are not going to run away without bidding us good- bye?’  
‘Stop with me, boy!’said old Wulf. ‘I saved you; and you are my man.’  
Philammon turned and hesitated.  
‘I am a monk, and God’s man.’  
‘You can be that anywhere. I will make you a warrior.’  
‘The weapons of my warfare are not of flesh and blood, but prayer and fasting,’  
answered poor Philammon, who felt already that he should have ten times more  
need of the said weapons in Alexandria than ever he had had in the desert ….  
‘Let me go! I am not made for your life! I thank you, bless you! I will pray for  
you, sir! but let me go!’  
‘Curse the craven hound!’ roared half a dozen voices. ‘Why did you not let us  
have our will with him, Prince Wulf? You might have expected such gratitude  
from a monk.’  
‘He owes me my share of the sport,’ quoth Smid. ‘And here it is!’ And a hatchet,  
thrown with practised aim, whistled right for Philammon’s head—he had just  
time to swerve, and the weapon struck and snapped against the granite wall  
behind.  
‘Well saved!’said Wulf coolly, while the sailors and market-women above yelled  
murder, and the custom-house officers, and other constables and catchpolls of  
the harbour, rushed to the place—and retired again quietly at the thunder of the  
Amal from the boat’s stern—  
‘Never mind, my good follows! we’re only Goths; and on a visit to the prefect,  
too.’  
‘Only Goths, my donkey-riding friends!’ echoed Smid, and at that ominous name  
the whole posse comitatus tried to look unconcerned, and found suddenly that  
their presence was absolutely required in an opposite direction.  
‘Let him go,’said Wulf, as he stalked up the steps. ‘Let the boy go. I never set  
my heart on any man yet,’ he growled to himself in an under voice, ‘but what he  
disappointed me—and I must not expect more from this fellow. Come, men,  
ashore, and get drunk!’  
Philammon, of course, now that he had leave to go, longed to stay— at all  
events, he must go back and thank his hosts. He turned unwillingly to do so, as  
hastily as he could, and found Pelagia and her gigantic lover just entering a  
palanquin. With downcast eyes he approached the beautiful basilisk, and  
stammered out some commonplace; and she, full of smiles, turned to him at  
once.  
‘Tell us more about yourself before we part. You speak such beautiful Greek—  
true Athenian. It is quite delightful to hear one’s own accent again. Were you  
ever at Athens?’  
‘When I was a child; I recollect—that is, I think—’  
‘What?’ asked Pelagia eagerly.  
‘A great house in Athens—and a great battle there—and coming to Egypt in a  
ship.’  
‘Heavens!’said Pelagia, and paused …. ‘How strange! Girls, who said he was  
like me?’  
‘I’m sure we meant no harm, if we did say it in a joke,’ pouted one of the  
attendants.  
‘Like me!—you must come and see us. I have something to say to you …. You  
must!’  
Philammon misinterpreted the intense interest of her tone, and if he did not  
shrink back, gave some involuntary gesture of reluctance. Pelagia laughed aloud.  
‘Don’t be vain enough to suspect, foolish boy, but come! Do you think that I  
have nothing to talk about but nonsense? Come and see me. It may be better for  
you. I live in—’ and she named a fashionable street, which Philammon, though  
he inwardly vowed not to accept the invitation, somehow could not help  
remembering.  
‘Do leave the wild man, and come,’ growled the Amal from within the  
palanquin. ‘You are not going to turn nun, I hope?’  
‘Not while the first man I ever met in the world stays in it,’ answered Pelagia, as  
she skipped into the palanquin, taking care to show the most lovely white heel  
and ankle, and, like the Parthian, send a random arrow as she retreated. But the  
dart was lost on Philammon, who had been already hustled away by the bevy of  
laughing attendants, amid baskets, dressing-cases, and bird-cages, and was fain  
to make his escape into the Babel round, and inquire his way to the patriarch’s  
house.  
‘Patriarch’s house?’ answered the man whom he first addressed, a little lean,  
swarthy fellow, with merry black eyes, who, with a basket of fruit at his feet, was  
sunning himself on a baulk of timber, meditatively chewing the papyrus-cane,  
and examining the strangers with a look of absurd sagacity. ‘I know it; without a  
doubt I know it; all Alexandria has good reason to know it. Are you a monk?’  
‘Yes.’  
‘Then ask your way of the monks; you won’t go far without finding one.’  
‘But I do not even know the right direction; what is your grudge against monks,  
my good man?’  
‘Look here, my youth; you seem too ingenuous for a monk. Don’t flatter  
yourself that it will last. If you can wear the sheepskin, and haunt the churches  
here for a month, without learning to lie, and slander, and clap, and hoot, and  
perhaps play your part in a sedition—and—murder satyric drama—why, you are  
a better man than I take you for. I, sir, am a Greek and a philosopher; though the  
whirlpool of matter may have, and indeed has, involved my ethereal spark in the  
body of a porter. Therefore, youth,’ continued the little man, starting up upon his  
baulk like an excited monkey, and stretching out one oratorio paw, ‘I bear a  
treble hatred to the monkish tribe. First, as a man and a husband; .... for as for  
the smiles of beauty, or otherwise,—such as I have, I have; and the monks, if  
they had their wicked will, would leave neither men nor women in the world.  
Sir, they would exterminate the human race in a single generation, by a  
voluntary suicide! Secondly, as a porter; for if all men turned monks, nobody  
would be idle, and the profession of portering would be annihilated. Thirdly, sir,  
as a philosopher; for as the false coin is odious to the true, so is the irrational and  
animal asceticism of the monk, to the logical and methodic self-restraint of one  
who, like your humblest of philosophers, aspires to a life according to the pure  
reason.’  
‘And pray,’ asked Philammon, half laughing, ‘who has been your tutor in  
philosophy?’  
‘The fountain of classic wisdom, Hypatia herself. As the ancient sage—the name  
is unimportant to a monk—pumped water nightly that he might study by day, so  
I, the guardian of cloaks and parasols, at the sacred doors of her lecture-room,  
imbibe celestial knowledge. From my youth I felt in me a soul above the matterentangled herd. She revealed to me the glorious fact, that I am a spark of  
Divinity itself. A fallen star, I am, sir!’ continued he, pensively, stroking his lean  
stomach—‘a fallen star!—fallen, if the dignity of philosophy will allow of the  
simile, among the hogs of the lower world—indeed, even into the hog-bucket  
itself. Well, after all, I will show you the way to the Archbishop’s. There is a  
philosophic pleasure in opening one’s treasures to the modest young. Perhaps  
you will assist me by carrying this basket of fruit?’ And the little man jumped  
up, put his basket on Philammon’s head, and trotted off up a neighbouring street.  
Philammon followed, half contemptuous, half wondering at what this philosophy  
might be, which could feed the self-conceit of anything so abject as his ragged  
little apish guide; but the novel roar and whirl of the street, the perpetual stream  
of busy faces, the line of curricles, palanquins, laden asses, camels, elephants,  
which met and passed him, and squeezed him up steps and into doorways, as  
they threaded their way through the great Moon-gate into the ample street  
beyond, drove everything from his mind but wondering curiosity, and a vague,  
helpless dread of that great living wilderness, more terrible than any dead  
wilderness of sand which he had left behind. Already he longed for the repose,  
the silence of the Laura—for faces which knew him and smiled upon him; but it  
was too late to turn back ow. His guide held on for more than a mile up the great  
main street, crossed in the centre of the city, at right angles, by one equally  
magnificent, at each end of which, miles away, appeared, dim and distant over  
the heads of the living stream of passengers, the yellow sand-hills of the desert;  
while at the end of the vista in front of them gleamed the blue harbour, through a  
network of countless masts.  
At last they reached the quay at the opposite end of the street; and there burst on  
Philammon’s astonished eyes a vast semicircle of blue sea, ringed with palaces  
and towers….He stopped involuntarily; and his little guide stopped also, and  
looked askance at the young monk, to watch the effect which that grand  
panorama should produce on him.  
‘There!—Behold our works! Us Greeks!—us benighted heathens! Look at it and  
feel yourself what you are, a very small, conceited, ignorant young person, who  
fancies that your new religion gives you a right to despise every one else. Did  
Christians make all this? Did Christians build that Pharos there on the left horn  
—wonder of the world? Did Christians raise that mile-long mole which runs  
towards the land, with its two drawbridges, connecting the two ports? Did  
Christians build this esplanade, or this gate of the Sun above our heads? Or that  
Caesareum on our right here? Look at those obelisks before it!’ And he pointed  
upwards to those two world-famous ones, one of which still lies on its ancient  
site, as Cleopatra’s Needle. ‘Look up! look up, I say, and feel small—very small  
indeed! Did Christians raise them, or engrave them from base to point with the  
wisdom of the ancients? Did Christians build that Museum next to it, or design  
its statues and its frescoes—now, alas! re-echoing no more to the hummings of  
the Attic bee? Did they pile up out of the waves that palace beyond it, or that  
Exchange? or fill that Temple of Neptune with breathing brass and blushing  
marble? Did they build that Timonium on the point, where Antony, worsted at  
Actium, forgot his shame in Cleopatra’s arms? Did they quarry out that island of  
Antirrhodus into a nest of docks, or cover those waters with the sails of every  
nation under heaven? Speak! Thou son of bats and moles—thou six feet of sand  
—thou mummy out of the cliff caverns! Can monks do works like these?’  
‘Other men have laboured, and we have entered into their labours,’ answered  
Philammon, trying to seem as unconcerned as he could. He was, indeed, too  
utterly astonished to be angry at anything. The overwhelming vastness,  
multiplicity, and magnificence of the whole scene; the range of buildings, such  
as mother earth never, perhaps, carried on her lap before or since, the  
extraordinary variety of form-the pure Doric and Ionic of the earlier Ptolemies,  
the barbaric and confused gorgeousness of the later Roman, and here and there  
an imitation of the grand elephantine style of old Egypt, its gaudy colours  
relieving, while they deepened, the effect of its massive and simple outlines; the  
eternal repose of that great belt of stone contrasting with the restless ripple of the  
glittering harbour, and the busy sails which crowded out into the sea beyond, like  
white doves taking their flight into boundless space?—all dazzled, overpowered,  
saddened him …. This was the world …. Was it not beautiful? .... Must not the  
men who made all this have been—if not great …. yet …. he knew not what?  
Surely they had great souls and noble thoughts in them! Surely there was  
something godlike in being able to create such things! Not for themselves alone,  
too; but for a nation—for generations yet unborn …. And there was the sea ….  
and beyond it, nations of men innumerable …. His imagination was dizzy with  
thinking of them. Were they all doomed—lost? .... Had God no love for them?  
At last, recovering himself, he recollected his errand, and again asked his way to  
the archbishop’s house.  
‘This way, O youthful nonentity!’ answered the little man, leading the way round  
the great front of the Caesareum, at the foot of the obelisks.  
Philammon’s eye fell on some new masonry in the pediment, ornamented with  
Christian symbols.  
‘How? Is this a church?’  
‘It is the Caesareum. It has become temporarily a church. The immortal gods  
have, for the time being, condescended to waive their rights; but it is the  
Caesareum, nevertheless. This way; down this street to the right. There,’said he,  
pointing to a doorway in the side of the Museum, ‘is the last haunt of the Muses  
—the lecture- room of Hypatia, the school of my unworthiness. And here,’  
stopping at the door of a splendid house on the opposite side of the street, ‘is the  
residence of that blest favourite of Athene—Neith, as the barbarians of Egypt  
would denominate the goddess—we men of Macedonia retain the time-honoured  
Grecian nomenclature …. You may put down your basket.’ And he knocked at  
the door, and delivering the fruit to a black porter, made a polite obeisance to  
Philammon, and seemed on the point of taking his departure.  
‘But where is the archbishop’s house?’  
‘Close to the Serapeium. You cannot miss the place: four hundred columns of  
marble, now ruined by Christian persecutors, stand on an eminence—’  
‘But how far off?’  
‘About three miles; near the gate of the Moon.’  
‘Why, was not that the gate by which we entered the city on the other side?’  
‘Exactly so; you will know your way back, having already traversed it.’  
Philammon checked a decidedly carnal inclination to seize the little fellow by  
the throat, and knock his head against the wall, and contented himself by saying  
—  
‘Then do you actually mean to say, you heathen villain, that you have taken me  
six or seven miles out of my road?’  
‘Good words young man. If you do me harm, I call for help; we are close to the  
Jews’ quarter, and there are some thousands there who will swarm out like wasps  
on the chance of beating a monk to death. Yet that which I have done, I have  
done with a good purpose. First, politically, or according to practical wisdom—  
in order that you, not I, might carry the basket. Next, philosophically, or  
according to the intuitions of the pure reason—in order that you might, by  
beholding the magnificence of that great civilisation which your fellows wish to  
destroy, learn that you are an ass, and a tortoise, and a nonentity, and so  
beholding yourself to be nothing, may be moved to become something.’  
And he moved off.  
Philammon seized him by the collar of his ragged tunic, and held him in a gripe  
from which the little man, though he twisted like an eel could not escape.  
‘Peaceably, if you will; if not, by main force. You shall go back with me, and  
show me every step of the way. It is a just penalty.’  
‘The philosopher conquers circumstances by submitting to them. I go peaceably.  
Indeed, the base necessities of the hog-bucket side of existence compel me of  
themselves back to the Moon-gate, for another early fruit job.’  
So they went back together.  
Now why Philammon’s thoughts should have been running on the next new  
specimen of womankind to whom he had been introduced, though only in name,  
let psychologists tell, but certainly, after he had walked some half-mile in  
silence, he suddenly woke up, as out of many meditations, and asked—  
‘But who is this Hypatia, of whom you talk so much?’  
‘Who is Hypatia, rustic? The queen of Alexandria! In wit, Athene; Hera in  
majesty; in beauty, Aphrodite!’  
‘And who are they?’ asked Philammon.  
The porter stopped, surveyed him slowly from foot to head with an expression of  
boundless pity and contempt, and was in the act of walking off in the ecstasy of  
his disdain, when he was brought to suddenly by Philammon’s strong arm.  
‘Ah!—I recollect. There is a compact …. Who is Athene? The goddess, giver of  
wisdom. Hera, spouse of Zeus, queen of the Celestials. Aphrodite, mother of  
love …. You are not expected to understand.’  
Philammon did understand, however, so much as this, that Hypatia was a very  
unique and wonderful person in the mind of his little guide; and therefore asked  
the only further question by which he could as yet test any Alexandrian  
phenomenon—  
‘And is she a friend of the patriarch?’  
The porter opened his eyes very wide, put his middle finger in a careful and  
complicated fashion between his fore and third fingers, and extending it  
playfully towards Philammon, performed therewith certain mysterious signals,  
the effect whereof being totally lost on him, the little man stopped, took another  
look at Philammon’s stately figure, and answered—  
‘Of the human race in general, my young friend. The philosopher must rise  
above the individual, to the contemplation of the universal …. Aha!-Here is  
something worth seeing, and the gates are open.’ And he stopped at the portal of  
a vast building.  
‘Is this the patriarch’s house?’  
‘The patriarch’s tastes are more plebeian. He lives, they say, in two dirty little  
rooms—knowing what is fit for him. The patriarch’s house? Its antipodes, my  
young friend—that is, if such beings have a cosmic existence, on which point  
Hypatia has her doubts. This is the temple of art and beauty; the Delphic tripod  
of poetic inspiration; the solace of the earthworn drudge; in a word, the theatre;  
which your patriarch, if he could, would convert to- morrow into a—but the  
philosopher must not revile. Ah! I see the prefect’s apparitors at the gate. He is  
making the polity, as we call it here; the dispositions; settling, in short, the bill of  
fare for the day, in compliance with the public palate. A facetious pantomime  
dances here on this day every week—admired by some, the Jews especially. To  
the more classic taste, many of his movements— his recoil, especially—are  
wanting in the true antique severity— might be called, perhaps, on the whole,  
indecent. Still the weary pilgrim must be amused. Let us step in and hear.’  
But before Philammon could refuse, an uproar arose within, a rush outward of  
the mob, and inward of the prefect’s apparitors.  
‘It is false!’shouted many voices. ‘A Jewish calumny! The man is innocent!’  
‘There is no more sedition in him than there is in me,’ roared a fat butcher, who  
looked as ready to fell a man as an ox. ‘He was always the first and the last to  
clap the holy patriarch at sermon.’  
‘Dear tender soul,’ whimpered a woman; ‘and I said to him only this morning,  
why don’t you flog my boys, Master Hierax? how can you expect them to learn  
if they are not flogged? And he said, he never could abide the sight of a rod, it  
made his back tingle so.’  
‘Which was plainly a prophecy!’  
‘And proves him innocent; for how could he prophesy if he was not one of the  
holy ones?’  
‘Monks, to the rescue! Hierax, a Christian, is taken and tortured in the theatre!’  
thundered a wild hermit, his beard and hair streaming about his chest and  
shoulders.  
‘Nitria! Nitria! For God and the mother of God, monks of Nitria! Down with the  
Jewish slanderers! Down with heathen tyrants!’—And the mob, reinforced as if  
by magic by hundreds from without, swept down the huge vaulted passage,  
carrying Philammon and the porter with them.  
‘My friends,’ quoth the little man, trying to look philosophically calm, though he  
was fairly off his legs, and hanging between heaven and earth on the elbows of  
the bystanders, ‘whence this tumult?’  
‘The Jews got up a cry that Hierax wanted to raise a riot. Curse them and their  
sabbath, they are always rioting on Saturdays about this dancer of theirs, instead  
of working like honest Christians!’  
‘And rioting on Sunday instead. Ahem! sectarian differences, which the  
philosopher—  
The rest of the sentence disappeared with the speaker, as a sudden opening of the  
mob let him drop, and buried him under innumerable legs.  
Philammon, furious at the notion of persecution, maddened by the cries around  
him, found himself bursting fiercely through the crowd, till he reached the front  
ranks, where tall gates of open ironwork barred all farther progress, but left a full  
view of the tragedy which was enacting within, where the poor innocent wretch,  
suspended from a gibbet, writhed and shrieked at every stroke of the hide whips  
of his tormentors.  
In vain Philammon and the monks around him knocked and beat at the gates;  
they were only answered by laughter and taunts from the apparitors within,  
curses on the turbulent mob of Alexandria, with its patriarch, clergy, saints, and  
churches, and promises to each and all outside, that their turn would come next;  
while the piteous screams grew fainter and more faint, and at last, with a  
convulsive shudder, motion and suffering ceased for ever in the poor mangled  
body.  
‘They have killed him! Martyred him! Back to the archbishop! To the patriarch’s  
house: he will avenge us!’ And as the horrible news, and the watchword which  
followed it, passed outwards through the crowd, they wheeled round as one man,  
and poured through street after street towards Cyril’s house; while Philammon,  
beside himself with horror, rage, and pity, hurried onward with them.  
A tumultuous hour, or more, was passed in the street before he could gain  
entrance; and then he was swept, along with the mob in which he had been fast  
wedged, through a dark low passage, and landed breathless in a quadrangle of  
mean and new buildings, overhung by the four hundred stately columns of the  
ruined Serapeium. The grass was already growing on the ruined capitals and  
architraves …. Little did even its destroyers dream then, that the day would  
come when one only of that four hundred would be left, as ‘Pompey’s Pillar,’ to  
show what the men of old could think and do.  
Philammon at last escaped from the crowd, and putting the letter which he had  
carried in his bosom into the hands of one of the priests who was mixing with  
the mob, was beckoned by him into a corridor, and up a flight of stairs, and into  
a large, low, mean room, and there, by virtue of the world-wide freemasonry  
which Christianity had, for the first time on earth, established, found himself in  
five minutes awaiting the summons of the most powerful man south of the  
Mediterranean.  
A curtain hung across the door of the inner chamber, through which Philammon  
could hear plainly the steps of some one walking up and down hurriedly and  
fiercely.  
‘They will drive me to it!’ at last burst out a deep sonorous voice. ‘They will  
drive me to it …. Their blood be on their own head! It is not enough for them to  
blaspheme God and His church, to have the monopoly of all the cheating,  
fortune-telling, usury, sorcery, and coining of the city, but they must deliver my  
clergy into the hands of the tyrant?’  
‘It was so even in the apostles’ time,’suggested a softer but far more unpleasant  
voice.  
‘Then it shall be so no longer! God has given me the power to stop them; and  
God do so to me, and more also, if I do not use that power. To-morrow I sweep  
out this Augean stable of villainy, and leave not a Jew to blaspheme and cheat in  
Alexandria.’  
‘I am afraid such a judgment, however righteous, might offend his excellency.’  
‘His excellency! His tyranny! Why does Orestes truckle to these circumcised,  
but because they lend money to him and to his creatures? He would keep up a  
den of fiends in Alexandria if they would do as much for him! And then to play  
them off against me and mine, to bring religion into contempt by setting the mob  
together by the ears, and to end with outrages like this! Seditious! Have they not  
cause enough? The sooner I remove one of their temptations the better: let the  
other tempter beware, lest his judgment be at hand!’  
‘The prefect, your holiness?’ asked the other voice slily.  
‘Who spoke of the prefect? Whosoever is a tyrant, and a murderer, and an  
oppressor of the poor, and a favourer of the philosophy which despises and  
enslaves the poor, should not he perish, though he be seven times a prefect?’  
At this juncture Philammon, thinking perhaps that he had already heard too  
much, notified his presence by some slight noise, at which the secretary, as he  
seemed to be, hastily lifted the curtain, and somewhat sharply demanded his  
business. The names of Pambo and Arsenius, however, seemed to pacify him at  
once; and the trembling youth was ushered into the presence of him who in  
reality, though not in name, sat on the throne of the Pharaohs.  
Not, indeed, in their outward pomp; the furniture of the chamber was but a grade  
above that of the artisan’s; the dress of the great man was coarse and simple; if  
personal vanity peeped out anywhere, it was in the careful arrangement of the  
bushy beard, and of the few curling locks which the tonsure had spared. But the  
height and majesty of his figure, the stern and massive beauty of his features, the  
flashing eye, curling lip, and projecting brow—all marked him as one born to  
command. As the youth entered, Cyril stopped short in his walk, and looking  
him through and through, with a glance which burnt upon his cheeks like fire,  
and made him all but wish the kindly earth would open and hide him, took the  
letters, read them, and then began—  
‘Philammon. A Greek. You are said to have learned to obey. If so you have also  
learned to rule. Your father-abbot has transferred you to my tutelage. You are  
now to obey me.’  
‘And I will.’  
‘Well said. Go to that window, then, and leap into the court.’  
Philammon walked to it, and opened it. The pavement was fully twenty feet  
below; but his business was to obey, and not take measurements. There was a  
flower in the vase upon the sill. He quietly removed it, and in an instant more  
would have leapt for life or death, when Cyril’s voice thundered ‘Stop!’  
‘The lad will pass, my Peter. I shall not be afraid now for the secrets which he  
may have overheard.’  
Peter smiled assent, looking all the while as if he thought it a great pity that the  
young man had not been allowed to put talebearing out of his own power by  
breaking his neck.  
‘You wish to see the world. Perhaps you have seen something of it to-day.’  
‘I saw the murder—’  
‘Then you saw what you came hither to see; what the world is, and what justice  
and mercy it can deal out. You would not dislike to see God’s reprisals to man’s  
tyranny? .... Or to be a fellow-worker with God therein, if I judge rightly by your  
looks?’  
‘I would avenge that man.’  
‘Ah! my poor simple schoolmaster! And his fate is the portent of portents to you  
now! Stay awhile, till you have gone with Ezekiel into the inner chambers of the  
devil’s temple, and you will see worse things than these—women weeping for  
Thammuz; bemoaning the decay of an idolatry which they themselves disbelieve  
—That, too, is on the list of Hercules’ labour, Peter mine.’  
At this moment a deacon entered …. ‘Your holiness, the rabbis of the accursed  
nation are below, at your summons. We brought them in through the back gate,  
for fear of—’  
‘Right, right. An accident to them might have ruined us. I shall not forget you.  
Bring them up. Peter, take this youth, introduce him to the parabolani …. Who  
will be the best man for him to work under?’  
‘The brother Theopompus is especially sober and gentle.’  
Cyril shook his head laughingly …. ‘Go into the next room, my son …. No,  
Peter, put him under some fiery saint, some true Boanerges, who will talk him  
down, and work him to death, and show him the best and worst of everything.  
Cleitophon will be the man. Now then, let me see my engagements; five minutes  
for these Jews— Orestes did not choose to frighten them: let us see whether  
Cyril cannot; then an hour to look over the hospital accounts; an hour for the  
schools; a half-hour for the reserved cases of distress; and another half-hour for  
myself; and then divine service. See that the boy is there. Do bring in every one  
in their turn, Peter mine. So much time goes in hunting for this man and that man  
…. and life is too short for all that. Where are these Jews?’ and Cyril plunged  
into the latter half of his day’s work with that untiring energy, self-sacrifice, and  
method, which commanded for him, in spite of all suspicions of his violence,  
ambition, and intrigue, the loving awe and implicit obedience of several hundred  
thousand human beings.  
So Philammon went out with the parabolani, a sort of organised guild of district  
visitors …. And in their company he saw that afternoon the dark side of that  
world, whereof the harbour-panorama had been the bright one. In squalid misery,  
filth, profligacy, ignorance, ferocity, discontent, neglected in body, house, and  
soul, by the civil authorities, proving their existence only in aimless and  
sanguinary riots, there they starved and rotted, heap on heap, the masses of the  
old Greek population, close to the great food- exporting harbour of the world.  
Among these, fiercely perhaps, and fanatically, but still among them and for  
them, laboured those district visitors night and day. And so Philammon toiled  
away with them, carrying food and clothing, helping sick to the hospital, and  
dead to the burial; cleaning out the infected houses—for the fever was all but  
perennial in those quarters—and comforting the dying with the good news of  
forgiveness from above; till the larger number had to return to evening service.  
He, however, was kept by his superior, watching at a sick-bedside, and it was  
late at night before he got home, and was reported to Peter the Reader as having  
acquitted himself like ‘a man of God,’ as, indeed, without the least thought of  
doing anything noble or self-sacrificing, he had truly done, being a monk. And  
so he threw himself on a truckle-bed, in one of the many cells which opened off  
a long corridor, and fell fast asleep in a minute.  
He was just weltering about in a dreary dream-jumble of Goths dancing with  
district visitors, Pelagia as an angel, with peacock’s wings; Hypatia with horns  
and cloven feet, riding three hippopotami at once round the theatre; Cyril  
standing at an open window, cursing frightfully, and pelting him with flowerpots; and a similar self- sown after-crop of his day’s impressions; when he was  
awakened by the tramp of hurried feet in the street outside, and shouts, which  
gradually, as he became conscious, shaped themselves into cries of ‘Alexander’s  
Church is on fire! Help, good Christians! Fire! Help!’  
Whereat he sat up in his truckle-bed, tried to recollect where he was, and having  
with some trouble succeeded, threw on his sheepskin, and jumped up to ask the  
news from the deacons and monks who were hurrying along the corridor outside  
…. ‘Yes, Alexander’s church was on fire;’ and down the stairs they poured,  
across the courtyard, and out into the street, Peter’s tall figure serving as a  
standard and a rallying point.  
As they rushed out through the gateway, Philammon, dazzled by the sudden  
transition from the darkness within to the blaze of moon and starlight which  
flooded the street, and walls, and shining roofs, hung back a moment. That  
hesitation probably saved his life; for in an instant he saw a dark figure spring  
out of the shadow, a long knife flashed across his eyes, and a priest next to him  
sank upon the pavement with a groan, while the assassin dashed off down the  
street, hotly pursued by monks and parabolani.  
Philammon, who ran like a desert ostrich, had soon outstripped all but Peter,  
when several more dark figures sprang out of doorways and corners and joined,  
or seem to join, the pursuit. Suddenly, however, after running a hundred yards,  
they drew up opposite the mouth of a side street; the assassin stopped also. Peter,  
suspecting something wrong, slackened his pace, and caught Philammon’s arm.  
‘Do you see those fellows in the shadow?’  
But, before Philammon could answer, some thirty or forty men, their daggers  
gleaming in the moonlight, moved out into the middle of the street, and received  
the fugitives into their ranks. What was the meaning of it? Here was a pleasant  
taste of the ways of the most Christian and civilised city of the Empire!  
‘Well,’ thought Philammon, ‘I have come out to see the world, and I seem, at this  
rate, to be likely to see enough of it.’  
Peter turned at once, and fled as quickly as he had pursued; while Philammon,  
considering discretion the better part of valour, followed, and they rejoined their  
party breathless.  
‘There is an armed mob at the end of the street.’  
‘Assassins!’ ‘Jews!’ ‘A conspiracy!’ Up rose a Babel of doubtful voices. The foe  
appeared in sight, advancing stealthily, and the whole party took to flight, led  
once more by Peter, who seemed determined to make free use, in behalf of his  
own safety, of the long legs which nature had given him.  
Philammon followed, sulkily and unwillingly, at a foot’s pace; but he had not  
gone a dozen yards when a pitiable voice at his feet called to him—  
‘Help! mercy! Do not leave me here to be murdered! I am a Christian; indeed I  
am a Christian!’  
Philammon stooped, and lifted from the ground a comely negro-woman,  
weeping, and shivering in a few tattered remnants of clothing.  
‘I ran out when they said the church was on fire,’sobbed the poor creature, ‘and  
the Jews beat and wounded me. They tore my shawl and tunic off me before I  
could get away from them; and then our own people ran over me and trod me  
down. And now my husband will beat me, if I ever get home. Quick! up this side  
street, or we shall be murdered!’  
The armed men, whosoever they were, were close on them. There was no time to  
be lost; and Philammon, assuring her that he would not desert her, hurried her up  
the side street which she pointed out. But the pursuers had caught sight of them,  
and while the mass held on up the main sight, three or four turned aside and gave  
chase. The poor negress could only limp along, and Philammon, unarmed,  
looked back, and saw the bright steel points gleaming in the moonlight, and  
made up his mind to die as a monk should. Nevertheless, youth is hopeful. One  
chance for life. He thrust the negress into a dark doorway, where her colour hid  
her well enough, and had just time to ensconce himself behind a pillar, when the  
foremost pursuer reached him. He held his breath in fearful suspense. Should he  
be seen? He would not die without a struggle at least. No! the fellow ran on,  
panting. But in a minute more, another came up, saw him suddenly, and sprang  
aside startled. That start saved Philammon. Quick as a cat, he leapt upon him,  
felled him to the earth with a single blow, tore the dagger from his hand, and  
sprang to his feet again just in time to strike his new weapon full into the third  
pursuer’s face. The man put his hand to his head, and recoiled against a fellowruffian, who was close on his heels. Philammon, flushed with victory, took  
advantage of the confusion, and before the worthy pair could recover, dealt them  
half a dozen blows which, luckily for them, came from an unpractised hand, or  
the young monk might have had more than one life to answer for. As it was, they  
turned and limped off, cursing in an unknown tongue; and Philammon found  
himself triumphant and alone, with the trembling negress and the prostrate  
ruffian, who, stunned by the blow and the fall, lay groaning on the pavement.  
It was all over in a minute …. The negress was kneeling under the gateway,  
pouring out her simple thanks to Heaven for this unexpected deliverance; and  
Philammon was about to kneel too, when a thought struck him; and coolly  
despoiling the Jew of his shawl and sash, he handed them over to the poor  
negress, considering them fairly enough as his own by right of conquest; but, lo  
and behold! as she was overwhelming him with thanks, a fresh mob poured into  
the street from the upper end, and were close on them before they were aware  
…. A flush of terror and despair, .... and then a burst of joy, as, by mingled  
moonlight and torchlight, Philammon descried priestly robes, and in the  
forefront of the battle—there being no apparent danger—Peter the Reader, who  
seemed to be anxious to prevent inquiry, by beginning to talk as fast as possible.  
‘Ah, boy! Safe? The saints be praised! We gave you up for dead! Whom have  
you here? A prisoner? And we have another. He ran right into our arms up the  
street, and the Lord delivered him into our hand. He must have passed you.’  
‘So he did,’said Philammon, dragging up his captive, ‘and here is his fellowscoundrel.’ Whereon the two worthies were speedily tied together by the elbows;  
and the party marched on once more in search of Alexander’s church, and the  
supposed conflagration.  
Philammon looked round for the negress, but she had vanished. He was far too  
much ashamed of being known to have been alone with a woman to say anything  
about her. Yet he longed to see her again; an interest—even something like an  
affection—had already sprung up in his heart toward the poor simple creature  
whom he had delivered from death. Instead of thinking her ungrateful for not  
staying to tell what he had done for her, he was thankful to her for having saved  
his blushes, by disappearing so opportunely …. And he longed to tell her so—to  
know if she was hurt—to—Oh, Philammon! only four days from the Laura, and  
a whole regiment of women acquaintances already! True, Providence having  
sent into the world about as many women as men, it maybe difficult to keep out  
of their way altogether. Perhaps, too, Providence may have intended them to be  
of some use to that other sex, with whom it has so mixed them up. Don’t argue,  
poor Philammon; Alexander’s church is on fire  
And so they hurried on, a confused mass of monks and populace, with their  
hapless prisoners in the centre, who, hauled, cuffed, questioned, and cursed by  
twenty self-elected inquisitors at once, thought fit, either from Jewish obstinacy  
or sheer bewilderment, to give no account whatsoever of themselves.  
As they turned the corner of a street, the folding-doors of a large gateway rolled  
open; a long line of glittering figures poured across the road, dropped their  
spear-butts on the pavement with a single rattle, and remained motionless. The  
front rank of the mob recoiled; and an awe-struck whisper ran through them ….  
‘The Stationaries!’  
‘Who are they?’ asked Philammon in a whisper.  
‘The soldiers—the Roman soldiers,’ answered a whisperer to him.  
Philammon, who was among the leaders, had recoiled too—he hardly knew why  
—at that stern apparition. His next instinct was to press forward as close as he  
dared …. And these were Roman soldiers!— the conquerors of the world!—the  
men whose name had thrilled him from his childhood with vague awe and  
admiration, dimly heard of up there in the lonely Laura …. Roman soldiers! And  
here he was face to face with them at last!  
His curiosity received a sudden check, however, as he found his arm seized by  
an officer, as he took him to be, from the gold ornaments on his helmet and  
cuirass, who lifted his vine-stock threateningly over the young monk’s head, and  
demanded—  
‘What’s all this about? Why are you not quietly in your beds, you Alexandrian  
rascals?’  
‘Alexander’s church is on fire,’ answered Philammon, thinking the shortest  
answer the wisest.  
‘So much the better.’  
‘And the Jews are murdering the Christians.’  
‘Fight it out, then. Turn in, men, it’s only a riot.’  
And the steel-clad apparition suddenly flashed round, and vanished, trampling  
and jingling, into the dark jaws of the guardhouse-gate, while the stream, its  
temporary barrier removed, rushed on wilder than ever.  
Philammon hurried on too with them, not without a strange feeling of  
disappointment. ‘Only a riot!’ Peter was chuckling to his brothers over their  
cleverness in ‘having kept the prisoners in the middle, and stopped the rascals’  
mouths till they were past the guard- house.’ ‘A fine thing to boast of,’ thought  
Philammon, ‘in the face of the men who make and unmake kings and Caesars!’  
‘Only a riot!’ He, and the corps of district visitors—whom he fancied the most  
august body on earth—and Alexander’s church, Christians murdered by Jews,  
persecution of the Catholic faith, and all the rest of it, was simply, then, not  
worth the notice of those forty men, alone and secure in the sense of power and  
discipline, among tens of thousands …. He hated them, those soldiers. Was it  
because they were indifferent to the cause of which he was inclined to think  
himself a not unimportant member, on the strength of his late Samsonic defeat of  
Jewish persecutors? At least, he obeyed the little porter’s advice, and ‘felt very  
small indeed.’  
And he felt smaller still, being young and alive to ridicule, when, at some sudden  
ebb or flow, wave or wavelet of the Babel sea, which weltered up and down  
every street, a shrill female voice informed them from an upper window, that  
Alexander’s church was not on fire at all; that she had gone to the top of the  
house, as they might have gone, if they had not been fools, etc. etc.; and that it  
‘looked as safe and as ugly as ever’; wherewith a brickbat or two having been  
sent up in answer, she shut the blinds, leaving them to halt, inquire, discover  
gradually and piecemeal, after the method of mobs, they had been following the  
nature of mobs; that no one had seen the church on fire, or seen any one else  
who had seen the same, or even seen any light in the sky in any quarter, or knew  
who raised the cry; or—or—in short, Alexander’s church was two miles off; if it  
was on fire, it was either burnt down or saved by this time; if not, the night-air  
was, to say the least, chilly: and, whether it was or not, there were ambuscades  
of Jews—Satan only knew how strong—in every street between them and it ….  
Might it not be better to secure their two prisoners, and then ask for further  
orders from the archbishop? Wherewith, after the manner of mobs, they melted  
off the way they came, by twos and threes, till those of a contrary opinion began  
to find themselves left alone, and having a strong dislike to Jewish daggers, were  
fain to follow the stream.  
With a panic or two, a cry of ‘The Jews are on us!’ and a general rush in every  
direction (in which one or two, seeking shelter from the awful nothing in  
neighbouring houses, were handed over to the watch as burglars, and sent to the  
quarries accordingly), they reached the Serapeium, and there found, of course, a  
counter-mob collected to inform them that they had been taken in—that  
Alexander’s church had never been on fire at all—that the Jews had murdered a  
thousand Christians at least, though three dead bodies, including the poor priest  
who lay in the house within, were all of the thousand who had yet been seen—  
and that the whole Jews’ quarter was marching upon them. At which news it was  
considered advisable to retreat into the archbishop’s house as quickly as  
possible, barricade the doors, and prepare for a siege—a work at which  
Philammon performed prodigies, tearing woodwork from the rooms, and stones  
from the parapets, before it struck some of the more sober- minded that it was as  
well to wait for some more decided demonstration of attack, before incurring so  
heavy a carpenter’s bill of repairs.  
At last the heavy tramp of footsteps was heard coming down the street, and  
every window was crowded in an instant with eager heads; while Peter rushed  
downstairs to heat the large coppers, having some experience in the defensive  
virtues of boiling water. The bright moon glittered on a long line of helmets and  
cuirasses. Thank Heaven! it was the soldiery.  
‘Are the Jews coming?’ ‘Is the city quiet?‘‘Why did not you prevent this  
villainy?’ ‘A thousand citizens murdered while you have been snoring!’—and a  
volley of similar ejaculations, greeted the soldiers as they passed, and were  
answered by a cool—‘To your perches, and sleep, you noisy chickens, or we’ll  
set the coop on fire about your ears.’  
A yell of defiance answered this polite speech, and the soldiery, who knew  
perfectly well that the unarmed ecclesiastics within were not to be trifled with,  
and had no ambition to die by coping-stones and hot water, went quietly on their  
way.  
All danger was now past; and the cackling rose jubilant, louder than ever, and  
might have continued till daylight, had not a window in the courtyard been  
suddenly thrown open, and the awful voice of Cyril commanded silence.  
‘Every man sleep where he can. I shall want you at daybreak. The superiors of  
the parabolani are to come up to me with the two prisoners, and the men who  
took them.’  
In a few minutes Philammon found himself, with some twenty others, in the  
great man’s presence: he was sitting at his desk, writing, quietly, small notes on  
slips of paper.  
‘Here is the youth who helped me to pursue the murderer, and having outrun me,  
was attacked by the prisoners,’said Peter. ‘My hands are clean from blood, I  
thank the Lord!’  
‘Three set on me with daggers,’said Philammon, apologetically, ‘and I was  
forced to take this one’s dagger away, and beat off the two others with it.’  
Cyril smiled, and shook his head.  
‘Thou art a brave boy; but hast thou not read, “If a man smite thee on one cheek,  
turn to him the other”?’  
‘I could not run away, as Master Peter and the rest did.’  
‘So you ran away, eh? my worthy friend?’  
‘Is it not written,’ asked Peter, in his blandest tone, “If they persecute you in one  
city, flee unto another”?’  
Cyril smiled again. ‘And why could not you run away, boy?’  
Philammon blushed scarlet, but he dared not lie. ‘There was a—a poor black  
woman, wounded and trodden down, and I dare not leave her, for she told me  
she was a Christian.’  
‘Right, my son, right. I shall remember this. What was her name?’  
‘I did not hear it.—Stay, I think she said Judith.’  
‘Ah! the wife of the porter who stands at the lecture-room door, which God  
confound! A devout woman, full of good works, and sorely ill-treated by her  
heathen husband. Peter, thou shalt go to her to- morrow with the physician, and  
see if she is in need of anything. Boy, thou hast done well. Cyril never forgets.  
Now bring up those Jews. Their Rabbis were with me two hours ago promising  
peace: and this is the way they have kept their promise. So be it. The wicked is  
snared in his own wickedness.’  
The Jews were brought in, but kept a stubborn silence.  
‘Your holiness perceives,’said some one, ‘that they have each of them rings of  
green palm-bark on their right hand.’  
‘A very dangerous sign! An evident conspiracy!’ commented Peter.  
‘Ah! What does that mean, you rascals? Answer me, as you value your lives.’  
‘You have no business with us: we are Jews, and none of your people,’said one  
sulkily. ‘None of my people? You have murdered my people! None of my  
people? Every soul in Alexandria is mine, if the kingdom of God means  
anything; and you shall find it out. I shall not argue with you, my good friends,  
anymore than I did with your Rabbis. Take these fellows away, Peter, and lock  
them up in the fuel-cellar, and see that they are guarded. If any man lets them go,  
his life shall be for the life of them.’  
And the two worthies were led out.  
‘Now, my brothers, here are your orders. You will divide these notes among  
yourselves, and distribute them to trusty and godly Catholics in your districts.  
Wait one hour, till the city be quiet; and then start, and raise the church. I must  
have thirty thousand men by sunrise.’  
‘What for, your holiness?’ asked a dozen voices.  
‘Read your notes. Whosoever will fight to-morrow under the banner of the Lord,  
shall have free plunder of the Jews’ quarter, outrage and murder only forbidden.  
As I have said it, God do so to me, and more also, if there be a Jew left in  
Alexandria by to-morrow at noon. Go.’  
And the staff of orderlies filed out, thanking Heaven that they had a leader so  
prompt and valiant, and spent the next hour over the hall fire, eating millet  
cakes, drinking bad beer, likening Cyril to Barak, Gideon, Samson, Jephtha,  
Judas Maccabeus, and all the worthies of the Old Testament, and then started on  
their pacific errand.  
Philammon was about to follow them, when Cyril stopped him.  
‘Stay, my son; you are young and rash, and do not know the city. Lie down here  
and sleep in the anteroom. Three hours hence the sun rises, and we go forth  
against the enemies of the Lord.’  
Philammon threw himself on the floor in a corner, and slumbered like a child, till  
he was awakened in the gray dawn by one of the parabolani.  
‘Up, boy! and see what we can do. Cyril goes down greater than Barak the son  
of Abinoam, not with ten, but with thirty thousand men at his feet!’  
‘Ay, my brothers!’said Cyril, as he passed proudly out in full pontificals, with a  
gorgeous retinue of priests and deacons—‘the Catholic Church has her  
organisation, her unity, her common cause, her watchwords, such as the tyrants  
of the earth, in their weakness and their divisions, may envy and tremble at, but  
cannot imitate. Could Orestes raise, in three hours, thirty thousand men, who  
would die for him?’  
‘As we will for you!’shouted many voices.  
‘Say for the kingdom of God.’ And he passed out.  
And so ended Philammon’s first day in Alexandria.  
CHAPTER VI: THE NEW DIOGENES  
About five o’clock the next morning, Raphael Aben-Ezra was lying in bed,  
alternately yawning over a manuscript of Philo Judaeus, pulling the ears of his  
huge British mastiff, watching the sparkle of the fountain in the court outside,  
wondering when that lazy boy would come to tell him that the bath was warmed,  
and meditating, half aloud….  
‘Alas! poor me! Here I am, back again—just at the point from which I started!  
.... How am I to get free from that heathen Siren? Plagues on her! I shall end by  
falling in love with her …. I don’t know that I have not got a barb of the blind  
boy in me already. I felt absurdly glad the other day when that fool told me he  
dare not accept her modest offer. Ha! ha! A delicious joke it would have been to  
have seen Orestes bowing down to stocks and stones, and Hypatia installed in  
the ruins of the Serapeium, as High Priestess of the Abomination of Desolation!.  
And now …. Well I call all heaven and earth to witness, that I have fought  
valiantly. I have faced naughty little Eros like a man, rod in hand. What could a  
poor human being do more than try to marry her to some one else, in hopes of  
sickening himself of the whole matter? Well, every moth has its candle, and  
every man his destiny. But the daring of the little fool! What huge imaginations  
she has! She might be another Zenobia, now, with Orestes as Odenatus, and  
Raphael Aben-Ezra to play the part of Longinus. and receive Longinus’s salary  
of axe or poison. She don’t care for me; she would sacrifice me, or a thousand of  
me, the cold-blooded fanatical archangel that she is, to water with our blood the  
foundation of some new temple of cast rags and broken dolls …. Oh, Raphael  
Aben-Ezra, what a fool you are! .... You know you are going off as usual to her  
lecture, this very morning!’  
At this crisis of his confessions the page entered, and announced, not the bath,  
but Miriam.  
The old woman, who, in virtue of her profession, had the private entry of all  
fashionable chambers in Alexandria, came in hurriedly; and instead of seating  
herself as usual, for a gossip, remained standing, and motioned the boy out of the  
room.  
‘Well my sweet mother? Sit: Ah? I see! You rascal, you have brought in no wine  
for the lady. Don’t you know her little ways yet?’  
‘Eos has got it at the door, of course,’ answered the boy, with a saucy air of  
offended virtue.  
‘Out with you, imp of Satan!’ cried Miriam. ‘This is no time for winebibbing.  
Raphael Aben-Ezra, why are you lying here? Did you not receive a note last  
night?’  
‘A note? So I did, but I was too sleepy to read it. There it lies. Boy, bring it  
here….What’s this? A scrap out of Jeremiah? “Arise, and flee for thy life, for  
evil is determined against the whole house of Israel!”—Does this come from the  
chief rabbi; I always took the venerable father for a sober man …. Eh, Miriam?’  
‘Fool! instead of laughing at the sacred words of the prophets, get up and obey  
them. I sent you the note.’  
‘Why can’t I obey them in bed? Here I am, reading hard at the Cabbala, or Philo  
—who is stupider still—and what more would you have?’  
The old woman, unable to restrain her impatience, literally ran at him, gnashing  
her teeth, and, before he was aware, dragged him out of bed upon the floor,  
where he stood meekly wondering what would come next.  
‘Many thanks, mother, for having saved me the one daily torture of life—getting  
out of bed by one’s own exertion.’  
‘Raphael Aben-Ezra! are you so besotted with your philosophy and your  
heathenry, and your laziness, and your contempt for God and man, that you will  
see your nation given up for a prey, and your wealth plundered by heathen dogs?  
I tell you, Cyril has sworn that God shall do so to him, and more also, if there be  
a Jew left in Alexandria by to-morrow about this time.’  
‘So much the better for the Jews, then, if they are half as tired of this noisy  
Pandemonium as I am. But how can I help it? Am I Queen Esther, to go to  
Ahasuerus there in the prefect’s palace, and get him to hold out the golden  
sceptre to me?’  
‘Fool! if you had read that note last night, you might have gone and saved us,  
and your name would have been handed down for ever from generation to  
generation as a second Mordecai.’  
‘My dear mother, Ahasuerus would have been either fast asleep, or far too drunk  
to listen to me. Why did you not go yourself?’  
‘Do you suppose that I would not have gone if I could? Do you fancy me a  
sluggard like yourself? At the risk of my life I have got hither in time, if there be  
time to save you.’  
‘Well: shall I dress? What can be done now?’  
‘Nothing! The streets are blockaded by Cyril’s mob—There! do you hear the  
shouts and screams? They are attacking the farther part of the quarter already.’  
‘What! are they murdering them?’ asked Raphael, throwing on his pelisse.  
‘Because, if it has really come to a practical joke of that kind, I shall have the  
greatest pleasure in employing a counter- irritant. Here, boy! My sword and  
dagger! Quick!’  
‘No, the hypocrites! No blood is to be shed, they say, if we make no resistance,  
and let them pillage. Cyril and his monks are there, to prevent outrage, and so  
forth…. The Angel of the Lord scatter them!’  
The conversation was interrupted by the rushing in of the whole household, in an  
agony of terror; and Raphael, at last thoroughly roused, went to a window which  
looked into the street. The thoroughfare was full of scolding women and  
screaming children; while men, old and young, looked on at the plunder of their  
property with true Jewish doggedness, too prudent to resist, but too manful to  
complain—while furniture came flying out of every window, and from door after  
door poured a stream of rascality, carrying off money, jewels, silks, and all the  
treasures which Jewish usury had accumulated during many a generation. But  
unmoved amid the roaring sea of plunderers and plundered, stood, scattered up  
and down, Cyril’s spiritual police, enforcing, by a word, an obedience which the  
Roman soldiers could only have compelled by hard blows of the spear-butt.  
There was to be no outrage, and no outrage there was: and more than once some  
man in priestly robes hurried through the crowd, leading by the hand, tenderly  
enough, a lost child in search of its parents.  
Raphael stood watching silently, while Miriam, who had followed him upstairs,  
paced the room in an ecstasy of rage, calling vainly to him to speak or act.  
‘Let me alone, mother,’ he said, at last. ‘It will be full ten minutes more before  
they pay me a visit, and in the meantime what can one do better than watch the  
progress of this, the little Exodus?’  
‘Not like that first one! Then we went forth with cymbals and songs to the Red  
Sea triumph! Then we borrowed, every woman of her neighbour, jewels of  
silver, and jewels of gold, and raiment.’  
‘And now we pay them back again;.. it is but fair, after all. We ought to have  
listened to Jeremiah a thousand years ago, and never gone back again, like fools,  
into a country to which we were so deeply in debt.’  
‘Accursed land!’ cried Miriam. ‘In an evil hour our forefathers disobeyed the  
prophet; and now we reap the harvest of our sins!—Our sons have forgotten the  
faith of their forefathers for the philosophy of the Gentiles, and fill their  
chambers’ (with a contemptuous look round) ‘with heathen imagery; and our  
daughters are—Look there!’  
As she spoke, a beautiful girl rushed shrieking out of an adjoining house,  
followed by some half-drunk ruffian, who was clutching at the gold chains and  
trinkets with which she was profusely bedecked, after the fashion of Jewish  
women. The rascal had just seized with one hand her streaming black tresses,  
and with the other a heavy collar of gold, which was wound round her throat,  
when a priest, stepping up, laid a quiet hand upon his shoulder. The fellow, too  
maddened to obey, turned, and struck back the restraining arm…and in an instant  
was felled to the earth by a young monk. .  
‘Touchest thou the Lord’s anointed, sacrilegious wretch?’ cried the man of the  
desert, as the fellow dropped on the pavement, with his booty in his hand.  
The monk tore the gold necklace from his grasp, looked at it for a moment with  
childish wonder, as a savage might at some incomprehensible product of  
civilised industry, and then, spitting on it in contempt, dashed it on the ground,  
and trampled it into the mud.  
‘Follow the golden wedge of Achan, and the silver of Iscariot, thou root of all  
evil!’ And he rushed on, yelling, ‘Down with the circumcision! Down with the  
blasphemers!’—while the poor girl vanished among the crowd.  
Raphael watched him with a quaint thoughtful smile, while Miriam shrieked  
aloud at the destruction of the precious trumpery.  
‘The monk is right, mother. If those Christians go on upon that method, they  
must beat us. It has been our ruin from the first, our fancy for loading ourselves  
with the thick clay.’  
‘What will you do?’ cried Miriam, clutching him by the arm.  
‘What will you do?’  
‘I am safe. I have a boat waiting for me on the canal at the garden gate, and in  
Alexandria I stay; no Christian hound shall make old Miriam move afoot against  
her will. My jewels are all buried—my girls are sold; save what you can, and  
come with me!’  
‘My sweet mother, why so peculiarly solicitous about my welfare, above that of  
all the sons of Judah?’  
‘Because—because—No, I’ll tell you that another time. But I loved your mother,  
and she loved me. Come!’  
Raphael relapsed into silence for a few minutes, and watched the tumult below.  
‘How those Christian priests keep their men in order! There is no use resisting  
destiny. They are the strong men of the time, after all, and the little Exodus must  
needs have its course. Miriam, daughter of Jonathan—’  
‘I am no man’s daughter! I have neither father nor mother, husband nor—Call  
me mother again!’  
‘Whatsoever I am to call you, there are jewels enough in that closet to buy half  
Alexandria. Take them. I am going.’  
‘With me!’  
‘Out into the wide world, my dear lady. I am bored with riches. That young  
savage of a monk understood them better than we Jews do. I shall just make a  
virtue of necessity, and turn beggar.’  
‘Beggar?’  
‘Why not? Don’t argue. These scoundrels will make me one, whether I like or  
not; so forth I go. There will be few leavetakings. This brute of a dog is the only  
friend I have on earth; and I love her, because she has the true old, dogged,  
spiteful, cunning, obstinate Maccabee spirit in her—of which if we had a spark  
left in us just now, there would be no little Exodus; eh, Bran, my beauty?’  
‘You can escape with me to the prefect’s, and save the mass of your wealth.’  
‘Exactly what I don’t want to do. I hate that prefect as I hate a dead camel, or the  
vulture who eats him. And to tell the truth, I am growing a great deal too fond of  
that heathen woman there—’  
‘What?’shrieked the old woman—‘Hypatia?’  
‘If you choose. At all events, the easiest way to cut the knot is to expatriate. I  
shall beg my passage on board the first ship to Cyrene, and go and study life in  
Italy with Heraclian’s expedition. Quick—take the jewels, and breed fresh  
troubles for yourself with them. I am going. My liberators are battering the outer  
door already.’  
Miriam greedily tore out of the closet diamonds and pearls, rubies and emeralds,  
and concealed them among her ample robes—‘Go! go! Escape from her! I will  
hide your jewels!’  
‘Ay, hide them, as mother earth does all things, in that all- embracing bosom.  
You will have doubled them before we meet again, no doubt. Farewell, mother!’  
‘But not for ever, Raphael! not for ever! Promise me, in the name of the four  
archangels, that if you are in trouble or danger, you will write to me, at the house  
of Eudaimon.’  
‘The little porter philosopher, who hangs about Hypatia’s lecture- room?’  
‘The same, the same. He will give me your letter, and I swear to you, I will cross  
the mountains of Kaf, to deliver you!—I will pay you all back. By Abraham,  
Isaac, and Jacob I swear! May my tongue cleave to the roof of my mouth, if I do  
not account to you for the last penny!’  
‘Don’t commit yourself to rash promises, my dear lady. If I am bored with  
poverty, I can but borrow a few gold pieces of a rabbi, and turn pedler. I really  
do not trust you to pay me back, so I shall not be disappointed if you do not.  
Why should I?’  
‘Because—because—O God! No—never mind! You shall have all back. Spirit  
of Elias! where is the black agate? Why is it not among these?—The broken half  
of the black agate talisman!’  
Raphael turned pale. ‘How did you know that I have a black agate?’  
‘How did I? How did I not?’ cried she, clutching him by the arm. ‘Where is it?  
All depends on that! Fool!’she went on, throwing him off from her at arm’s  
length, as a sudden suspicion stung her— ‘you have not given it to the heathen  
woman?’  
‘By the soul of my fathers, then, you mysterious old witch, who seem to know  
everything, that is exactly what I have done.’  
Miriam clapped her hands together wildly. ‘Lost! lost! lost! Not I will have it, if I  
tear it out of her heart! I will be avenged of her—the strange woman who flatters  
with her words, to whom the simple go in, and know not that the dead are there,  
and that her guests are in the depths of hell! God do so to me, and more also, if  
she and her sorceries be on earth a twelvemonth hence!’  
‘Silence, Jezebel! Heathen or none, she is as pure as the sunlight! I only gave it  
her because she fancied the talisman upon it.’  
‘To enchant you with it, to your ruin!’  
‘Brute of a slave-dealer! you fancy every one as base as the poor wretches whom  
you buy and sell to shame, that you may make them as much the children of hell,  
if that be possible, as yourself!’  
Miriam looked at him, her large black eyes widening and kindling. For an instant  
she felt for her poniard—and then burst into an agony of tears, hid her face in  
her withered hands, and rushed from the room, as a crash and shout below  
announced the bursting of the door.  
‘There she goes with my jewels. And here come my guests, with the young  
monk at their head.—One rising when the other sets. A worthy pair of Dioscuri!  
Come, Bran!.. .Boys! Slaves! Where are you? Steal every one what he can lay  
his hands on, and run for your lives through the back gate.’  
The slaves had obeyed him already. He walked smiling downstairs through utter  
solitude, and in the front passage met face to face the mob of monks,  
costermongers and dock-workers, fishwives and beggars, who were thronging up  
the narrow entry, and bursting into the doors right and left; and at their head,  
alas! the young monk who had just trampled the necklace into the mud…no  
other, in fact, than Philammon.  
‘Welcome, my worthy guests! Enter, I beseech you, and fulfil, in your own  
peculiar way, the precepts which bid you not be over anxious for the good things  
of this life. .For eating and drinking, my kitchen and cellar are at your service.  
For clothing, if any illustrious personage will do me the honour to change his  
holy rags with me, here are an Indian shawl-pelisse and a pair of silk trousers at  
his service. Perhaps you will accommodate me, my handsome young captain,  
choragus of this new school of the prophets?’  
Philammon, who was the person addressed, tried to push by him  
contemptuously.  
‘Allow me, sir. I lead the way. This dagger is poisoned,-a scratch and you are  
dead. This dog is of the true British breed; if she seizes you, red-hot iron will not  
loose her, till she hears the bone crack. If any one will change clothes with me,  
all I have is at your service. If not, the first that stirs is a dead man.’  
There was no mistaking the quiet, high-bred determination of the speaker. Had  
he raged and blustered, Philammon could have met him on his own ground: but  
there was an easy self-possessed disdain about him, which utterly abashed the  
young monk, and abashed, too, the whole crowd of rascals at his heels.  
‘I’ll change clothes with you, you Jewish dog!’ roared a dirty fellow out of the  
mob.  
‘I am your eternal debtor. Let us step into this side room. Walk upstairs, my  
friends. Take care there, sir!—That porcelain, whole, is worth three thousand  
gold pieces: broken, it is not worth three pence. I leave it to your good sense to  
treat it accordingly. Now then, my friend!’ And in the midst of the raging vortex  
of plunderers, who were snatching up everything which they could carry away,  
and breaking everything which they could not, lie quietly divested himself of his  
finery, and put on the ragged cotton tunic, and battered straw hat, which the  
fellow handed over to him.  
Philammon, who had had from the first no mind to plunder, stood watching  
Raphael with dumb wonder; and a shudder of regret, he knew not why, passed  
through him, as he Saw the mob tearing down pictures, and dashing statues to  
the ground. Heathen they were, doubtless; but still, the Nymphs and Venuses  
looked too lovely to be so brutally destroyed… There was something almost  
humanly pitiful in their poor broken arms and legs, as they lay about upon the  
pavement…. He laughed at himself for the notion; but he could not laugh it  
away.  
Raphael seemed to think that he ought not to laugh it away; for he pointed to the  
fragments, and with a quaint look at the young monk—  
‘Our nurses used to tell us, ‘“If you can’t make it, You ought not to break it.”’  
‘I had no nurse,’said Philammon.  
‘Ah!—that accounts—for this and other things. Well,’ he went on, with the most  
provoking good-nature, ‘you are in a fair road, my handsome youth; I wish you  
joy of your fellow-workmen, and of your apprenticeship in the noble art of  
monkery. Riot and pillage, shrieking women and houseless children in your  
twentieth summer, are the sure path to a Saint-ship, such as Paul of Tarsus, who,  
with all his eccentricities, was a gentleman, certainly never contemplated. I have  
heard of Phoebus Apollo under many disguises, but this is the first time I ever  
saw him in the wolf’s hide.’  
‘Or in the lion’s,’said Philammon, trying in his shame to make a fine speech.  
‘Like the Ass in the Fable. Farewell! Stand out of the way, friends! ‘Ware teeth  
and poison!’  
And he disappeared among the crowd, who made way respectfully enough for  
his dagger and his brindled companion.  
CHAPTER VII: THOSE BY WHOM OFFENCES COME  
Philammon’s heart smote him all that day, whenever he thought of his morning’s  
work. Till then all Christians, monks above all, had been infallible in his eyes: all  
Jews and heathens insane and accursed. Moreover, meekness under insult,  
fortitude in calamity, the contempt of worldly comfort, the worship of poverty as  
a noble estate, were virtues which the Church Catholic boasted as her peculiar  
heritage: on which side had the balance of those qualities inclined that morning?  
The figure of Raphael, stalking out ragged and penniless into the wide world,  
haunted him, with its quiet self-assured smile. And there haunted him, too,  
another peculiarity in the man, which he had never before remarked in any one  
but Arsenius—that ease and grace, that courtesy and self-restraint, which made  
Raphael’s rebukes rankle all the more keenly, because he felt that the rebuker  
was in some mysterious way superior to him, and saw through him, and could  
have won him Over, Or crushed him in argument, or in intrigue —or in anything,  
perhaps, except mere brute force. Strange—that Raphael, of all men, should in  
those few moments have reminded him so much of Arsenius; and that the very  
same qualities which gave a peculiar charm to the latter should give a peculiar  
unloveliness to the former, and yet be, without a doubt, the same. What was it?  
Was it rank which gave it Arsenius had been a great man, he knew— the  
companion of kings. And Raphael seemed rich. He had heard the mob crying out  
against the prefect for favouring him. Was it then familiarity with the great ones  
of the world which produced this manner and tone? It was a real strength,  
whether in Arsenius or in Raphael. He felt humbled before it—envied it. If it  
made Arsenius a more complete and more captivating person, why should it not  
do the same for him? Why should not he, too, have his share of it?  
Bringing with it such thoughts as these, the time ran on till noon, and the midday meal, and the afternoon’s work, to which Philammon looked forward  
joyfully, as a refuge from his own thoughts.  
He was sitting on his sheepskin upon a step, basking, like a true son of the  
desert, in a blaze of fiery sunshine, which made the black stone-work too hot to  
touch with the bare hand, watching the swallows, as they threaded the columns  
of the Serapeium, and thinking how often he had delighted in their air-dance, as  
they turned and hawked up and down the dear old glen at Scetis. A crowd of  
citizens with causes, appeals, and petitions, were passing in and out from the  
patriarch’s audience-room. Peter and the archdeacon were waiting in the shade  
close by for the gathering of the parabolani, and talking over the morning’s work  
in an earnest whisper, in which the names of Hypatia and Orestes were now and  
then audible.  
An old priest came up, and bowing reverently enough to the archdeacon,  
requested the help of one of the parabolani. He had a sailor’s family, all feverstricken, who must be removed to the hospital at once.  
The archdeacon looked at him, answered an off-hand ‘Very well,’ and went on  
with his talk.  
The priest, bowing lower than before, re-presented the immediate necessity for  
help.  
‘It is very odd,’said Peter to the swallows in the Serapeium, ‘that some people  
cannot obtain influence enough in their own parishes to get the simplest good  
works performed without tormenting his holiness the patriarch.’  
The old priest mumbled some sort of excuse, and the archdeacon, without  
deigning a second look at him, said—‘Find him a man, brother Peter. Anybody  
will do. What is that boy—Philammon—doing there? Let him go with Master  
Hieracas.’  
Peter seemed not to receive the proposition favourably, and whispered something  
to the archdeacon….  
‘No. I can spare none of the rest. Importunate persons must take their chance of  
being well served. Come—here are our brethren; we will all go together.’  
‘The farther together the better for the boy’s sake,’ grumbled Peter, loud enough  
for Philammon—perhaps for the old priest—to overhear him.  
So Philammon went out with them, and as he went questioned his companions  
meekly enough as to who Raphael was.  
‘A friend of Hypatia!’—that name, too, haunted him; and he began, as stealthily  
and indirectly as he could, to obtain information about her. There was no need  
for his caution; for the very mention of her name roused the whole party into a  
fury of execration.  
‘May God confound her, siren, enchantress, dealer in spells and sorceress! She is  
the strange woman of whom Solomon prophesied.’  
‘It is my opinion,’said another, ‘that she is the forerunner of Antichrist.’  
‘Perhaps the virgin of whom it is prophesied that he will be born,’suggested  
another.  
‘Not that, I’ll warrant her,’said Peter, with a savage sneer.  
‘And is Raphael Aben-Ezra her pupil in philosophy?’ asked Philammon.  
‘Her pupil in whatsoever she can find where-with to delude men’s souls,’said  
the old priest.  
‘The reality of philosophy has died long ago, but the great ones find it still worth  
their while to worship its shadow.’  
‘Some of them worship more than a shadow, when they haunt her house,’said  
Peter. ‘Do you think Orestes goes thither only for philosophy?’  
‘We must not judge harsh judgments,’said the old priest; ‘Synesius of Cyrene is  
a holy man, and yet he loves Hypatia well.’  
‘He a holy man?—and keeps a wife! One who had the insolence to tell the  
blessed Theophilus himself that he would not be made bishop unless he were  
allowed to remain with her; and despised the gift of the Holy Ghost in  
comparison of the carnal joys of wedlock, not knowing the Scriptures, which  
saith that those who are in the flesh cannot please God! Well said Siricius of  
Rome of such men—“Can the Holy Spirit of God dwell in other than holy  
bodies?” No wonder that such a one as Synesius grovels at the feet of Orestes’  
mistress!’  
‘Then she is profligate?’ asked Philammon.  
‘She must be. Has a heathen faith and grace? And without faith and grace, are  
not all our righteousnesses as filthy rags? What says St. Paul?—That God has  
given them over to a reprobate mind, full of all injustice, uncleanness,  
covetousness, maliciousness, you know the catalogue—why do you ask me?’  
‘Alas! and is she this?’  
‘Alas! And why alas? How would the Gospel be glorified if heathens were holier  
than Christians? It ought to be so, therefore it is so. If she seems to have virtues,  
they, being done without the grace of Christ, are only bedizened vices, cunning  
shams, the devil transformed into an angel of light. And as for chastity, the  
flower and crown of all virtues—whosoever says that she, being yet a heathen,  
has that, blasphemes the Holy Spirit, whose peculiar and highest gift it is, and is  
anathema maranatha for ever! Amen!’ And Peter, devoutly crossing himself,  
turned angrily and contemptuously away from his young companion.  
Philammon was quite shrewd enough to see that assertion was not identical with  
proof. But Peter’s argument of ‘it ought to be, therefore it is,’ is one which saves  
a great deal of trouble…and no doubt he had very good sources of information.  
So Philammon walked on, sad, he knew not why, at the new notion which he had  
formed of Hypatia, as a sort of awful sorceress—Messalina, whose den was foul  
with magic rites and ruined souls of men. And yet if that was all she had to  
teach, whence had her pupil Raphael learned that fortitude of his? If philosophy  
had, as they said, utterly died out, then what was Raphael?  
Just then, Peter and the rest turned up a side street, and Philammon and Hieracas  
were left to go on their joint errand together. They paced on for some way in  
silence, up one street and down another, till Philammon, for want of anything  
better to say, asked where they were going.  
‘Where I choose, at all events. No, young man! If I, a priest, am to be insulted by  
archdeacons and readers, I won’t be insulted by you.’  
‘I assure you I meant no harm.’  
‘Of course not; you all learn the same trick, and the young ones catch it of the  
old ones fast enough. Words smoother than butter, yet very swords.’  
‘You do not mean to complain of the archdeacon and his companions?’said  
Philammon, who of course was boiling over with pugnacious respect for the  
body to which he belonged.  
No answer.  
‘Why, sir, are they not among the most holy and devoted of men?’  
‘Ah—yes,’said his companion, in a tone which sounded very like ‘Ah—no.’  
‘You do not think so?’ asked Philammon bluntly.  
‘You are young, you are young. Wait a while till you have seen as much as I  
have. A degenerate age this, my son; not like the good old times, when men dare  
suffer and die for the faith. We are too prosperous nowadays; and fine ladies  
walk about with Magdalens embroidered on their silks, and gospels hanging  
round their necks. When I was young they died for that with which they now  
bedizen themselves.’  
‘But I was speaking of the parabolani.’  
‘Ah, there are a great many among them who have not much business where  
they are. Don’t say I said so. But many a rich man puts his name on the list of  
the guild just to get his exemption from taxes, and leaves the work to poor men  
like you. Rotten, rotten! my son, and you will find it out. The preachers, now—  
people used to say—I know Abbot Isidore did—that I had as good a gift for  
expounding as any man in Pelusium; but since I came here, eleven years since, if  
you will believe it, I have never been asked to preach in my own parish church.’  
‘You surely jest!’  
‘True, as I am a christened man. I know why—I know why: they are afraid of  
Isidore’s men here …. Perhaps they may have caught the holy man’s trick of  
plain speaking—and ears are dainty in Alexandria. And there are some in these  
parts, too, that have never forgiven him the part he took about those three  
villains, Marc, Zosimus, and Martinian, and a certain letter that came of it; or  
another letter either, which we know of, about taking alms for the church from  
the gains of robbers and usurers. “Cyril never forgets.” So he says to every one  
who does him a good turn …. And so he does to every one who he fancies has  
done him a bad one. So here am I slaving away, a subordinate priest, while such  
fellows as Peter the Reader look down on me as their slave. But it’s always so.  
There never was a bishop yet, except the blessed Augustine— would to Heaven I  
had taken my abbot’s advice, and gone to him at Hippo!—who had not his  
flatterers and his tale-bearers, and generally the archdeacon at the head of them,  
ready to step into the bishop’s place when he dies, over the heads of hardworking parish priests. But that is the way of the world. The sleekest and the  
oiliest, and the noisiest; the man who can bring in most money to the charities,  
never mind whence or how; the man who will take most of the bishop’s work off  
his hands, and agree with him in everything he wants, and save him, by spying  
and eavesdropping, the trouble of using his own eyes; that is the man to succeed  
in Alexandria, or Constantinople, or Rome itself. Look now; there are but seven  
deacons to this great city, and all its priests; and they and the archdeacon are the  
masters of it and us. They and that Peter manage Cyril’s work for him, and when  
Cyril makes the archdeacon a bishop, be will make Peter archdeacon….They  
have their reward, they have their reward; and so has Cyril, for that matter.’  
‘How?’  
‘Why, don’t say I said it. But what do I care? I have nothing to lose, I’m sure.  
But they do say that there are two ways of promotion in Alexandria: one by  
deserving it, the other by paying for it. That’s all.’  
‘Impossible!’  
‘Oh, of course, quite impossible. But all I know is just this, that when that fellow  
Martinian got back again into Pelusium, after being turned out by the late bishop  
for a rogue and hypocrite as he was, and got the ear of this present bishop, and  
was appointed his steward, and ordained priest—I’d as soon have ordained that  
street- dog—and plundered him and brought him to disgrace—for I don’t believe  
this bishop is a bad man, but those who use rogues must expect to be called  
rogues—and ground the poor to the earth, and tyrannised over the whole city so  
that no man’s property, or reputation, scarcely their lives, were safe; and after all,  
had the impudence, when he was called on for his accounts, to bring the church  
in as owing him money; I just know this, that he added to all his other  
shamelessness this, that he offered the patriarch a large sum of money to buy a  
bishopric of him …. And what do you think the patriarch answered?’  
‘Excommunicated the sacrilegious wretch, of course!’  
‘Sent him a letter to say that if he dared to do such a thing again he should really  
be forced to expose him! So the fellow, taking courage, brought his money  
himself the next time; and all the world says that Cyril would have made him a  
bishop after all, if Abbot Isidore had not written to remonstrate.’  
‘He could not have known the man’s character,’said poor Philammon, hunting  
for an excuse.  
‘The whole Delta was ringing with it. Isidore had written to him again and  
again.’  
‘Surely then his wish was to prevent scandal, and preserve the unity of the  
church in the eyes of the heathen.’  
The old man laughed bitterly.  
‘Ah, the old story—of preventing scandals by retaining them, and fancying that  
sin is a less evil than a little noise; as if the worst of all scandals was not the  
being discovered in hushing up a scandal. And as for unity, if you want that, you  
must go back to the good old times of Dioclesian and Decius.’  
‘The persecutors?’  
‘Ay, boy—to the times of persecution, when Christians died like brothers,  
because they lived like brothers. You will see very little of that now, except in  
some little remote county bishopric, which no one ever hears of from year’s end  
to year’s end. But in the cities it is all one great fight for place and power. Every  
one is jealous of his neighbour. The priests are jealous of the deacons, and good  
cause they have. The county bishops are jealous of the metropolitan, and he is  
jealous of the North African bishops, and quite right he is. What business have  
they to set up for themselves, as if they were infallible? It’s a schism, I say—a  
complete schism. They are just as bad as their own Donatists. Did not the  
Council of Nice settle that the Metropolitan of Alexandria should have authority  
over Libya and Pentapolis, according to the ancient custom?’  
‘Of course he ought,’said Philammon, jealous for the honour of his own  
patriarchate.  
‘And the patriarchs of Rome and Constantinople are jealous of our patriarch.’  
‘Of Cyril?’  
‘Of course, because he won’t be at their beck and nod, and let them be lords and  
masters of Africa.’  
‘But surely these things can be settled by councils?’  
‘Councils? Wait till you have been at one. The blessed Abbot Isidore used to say,  
that if he ever was a bishop—which he never will be—he is far too honest for  
that—he would never go near one of them; for he never had seen one which did  
not call out every evil passion in men’s hearts, and leave the question more  
confounded with words than they found it, even if the whole matter was not  
settled beforehand by some chamberlain, or eunuch, or cook sent from court, as  
if be were an anointed vessel of the Spirit, to settle the dogmas of the Holy  
Catholic Church.’  
‘Cook?’  
‘Why, Valens sent his chief cook to stop Basil of Caesarea from opposing the  
Court doctrine …. I tell you, the great battle in these cases is to get votes from  
courts, or to get to court yourself. When I was young, the Council of Antioch  
had to make a law to keep bishops from running off to Constantinople to  
intrigue, under pretence of pleading the cause of the orphan and widow. But  
what’s the use of that, when every noisy and ambitious man shifts and shifts,  
from one see to another, till he settles himself close to Rome or Byzantium, and  
gets the emperor’s ear, and plays into the hands of his courtiers?’  
‘Is it not written, “Speak not evil of dignities”? ‘said Philammon, in his most  
sanctimonious tone.  
‘Well, what of that? I don’t speak evil of dignities, when I complain of the men  
who fill them badly, do I?’  
‘I never heard that interpretation of the text before.’  
‘Very likely not. That’s no reason why it should not be true and orthodox. You  
will soon hear a good many more things, which are true enough—though  
whether they are orthodox or not, the court cooks must settle. Of course, I am a  
disappointed, irreverent old grumbler. Of course, and of course, too, young men  
must needs buy their own experience, instead of taking old folks’ at a gift. There  
—use your own eyes, and judge for yourself. There you may see what sort of  
saints are bred by this plan of managing the Catholic Church. There comes one  
of them. Now! I say no more!’  
As he spoke, two tall negroes came up to them, and set down before the steps of  
a large church which they were passing an object new to Philammon—a sedanchair, the poles of which were inlaid with ivory and silver, and the upper part  
enclosed in rose-coloured silk curtains.  
‘What is inside that cage?’ asked be of the old priest, as the negroes stood wiping  
the perspiration from their foreheads, and a smart slave-girl stepped forward,  
with a parasol and slippers in her hand, and reverently lifted the lower edge of  
the curtain.  
‘A saint, I tell you!’  
An embroidered shoe, with a large gold cross on the instep, was put forth  
delicately from beneath the curtain, and the kneeling maid put on the slipper  
over it.  
‘There!‘whispered the old grumbler. ‘Not enough, you see, to use Christian men  
as beasts of burden—Abbot Isidore used to say—ay, and told Iron, the pleader,  
to his face, that he could not conceive how a man who loved Christ, and knew  
the grace which has made all men free, could keep a slave.’  
‘Nor can I,’said Philammon.  
‘But we think otherwise, you see, in Alexandria here. We can’t even walk up the  
steps of God’s temple without an additional protection to our delicate feet.’  
‘I had thought it was written, “Put off thy shoes from off thy feet, for the place  
where thou standest is holy ground.”’  
‘Ah! there are a good many more things written which we do not find it  
convenient to recollect.—Look! There is one of the pillars of the church-the  
richest and most pious lady in Alexandria.’  
And forth stepped a figure, at which Philammon’s eyes opened wider than they  
had done even at the sight of Pelagia. Whatever thoughts the rich and careless  
grace of her attire might have raised in his mind, it had certainly not given his  
innate Greek good taste the inclination to laugh and weep at once, which be felt  
at this specimen of the tasteless fashion of an artificial and decaying civilisation.  
Her gown was stuffed out behind in a fashion which provoked from the dirty  
boys who lay about the steps, gambling for pistachios on their fingers, the same  
comments with which St. Clement had upbraided from the pulpit the  
Alexandrian ladies of his day. The said gown of white silk was bedizened, from  
waist to ankle, with certain mysterious red and green figures at least a foot long,  
which Philammon gradually discovered to be a representation, in the very lowest  
and ugliest style of fallen art, of Dives and Lazarus; while down her back hung,  
upon a bright blue shawl, edged with embroidered crosses, Job sitting, potsherd  
in hand, surrounded by his three friends—a memorial, the old priest whispered,  
of a pilgrimage which she had taken a year or two before, to Arabia, to see and  
kiss the identical dunghill on which the patriarch had sat.  
Round her neck hung, by one of half a dozen necklaces, a manuscript of the  
Gospels, gilt-edged and clasped with jewels; the lofty diadem of pearls on the  
head carried in front a large gold cross; while above and around it her hair,  
stiffened with pomatum, was frizzled out half a foot from a wilderness of plaits  
and curls, which must have cost some hapless slave-girl an hour’s work, and  
perhaps more than one scolding, that very morning.  
Meekly, with simpering face and downcast eyes, and now and then a penitent  
sigh and shake of the head and pressure of her hand on her jewelled bosom, the  
fair penitent was proceeding up the steps, when she caught sight of the priest and  
the monk, and turning to them with an obeisance of the deepest humility,  
entreated to be allowed to kiss the hem of their garments.  
‘You had far better, madam,’said Philammon, bluntly enough, ‘kiss the hem of  
your own. You carry two lessons there which you do not seem to have learnt  
yet.’  
In an instant her face flashed up into pride and fury. ‘I asked for your blessing,  
and not for a sermon. I can have that when I like.’  
‘And such as you like,’ grumbled the old priest, as she swept up the steps,  
tossing some small coin to the ragged boys, and murmuring to herself, loud  
enough for Philammon’s hearing, that she should certainly inform the confessor,  
and that she would not be insulted in the streets by savage monks.  
‘Now she will confess her sins inside—all but those which she has been showing  
off to us here outside, and beat her breast, and weep like a very Magdalen; and  
then the worthy man will comfort her with —“What a beautiful chain! And what  
a shawl—allow me to touch it! How soft and delicate this Indian wool! Ah! if  
you knew the debts which I have been compelled to incur in the service of the  
sanctuary!—” And then of course the answer will be, as, indeed, he expects it  
should, that if it can be of the least use in the service of the Temple, she, of  
course, will think it only too great an honour …. And he will keep the chain, and  
perhaps the shawl too. And she will go home, believing that she has fulfilled to  
the very letter the command to break off her sins by almsgiving, and only sorry  
that the good priest happened to hit on that particular gewgaw!’  
‘What,’ asked Philammon; ‘dare she actually not refuse such importunity?’  
‘From a poor priest like me, stoutly enough; but from a popular ecclesiastic like  
him …. As Jerome says, in a letter of his I once saw, ladies think twice in such  
cases before they offend the city newsmonger. Have you anything more to say?’  
Philammon had nothing to say; and wisely held his peace, while the old  
grumbler ran on—  
‘Ah, boy, you have yet to learn city fashions! When you are a little older, instead  
of speaking unpleasant truths to a fine lady with a cross on her forehead, you  
will be ready to run to the Pillars of Hercules at her beck and nod, for the sake of  
her disinterested help towards a fashionable pulpit, or perhaps a bishopric. The  
ladies settle that for us here.’  
‘The women?’  
‘The women, lad. Do you suppose that they heap priests and churches with  
wealth for nothing? They have their reward. Do you suppose that a preacher gets  
into the pulpit of that church there, without looking anxiously, at the end of each  
peculiarly flowery sentence, to see whether her saintship there is clapping or  
not? She, who has such a delicate sense for orthodoxy, that she can scent out  
Novatianism or Origenism where no other mortal nose would suspect it. She  
who meets at her own house weekly all the richest and most pious women of the  
city, to settle our discipline for us’ as the court cooks do our doctrine. She who  
has even, it is whispered, the ear of the Augusta Pulcheria herself, and sends  
monthly letters to her at Constantinople, and might give the patriarch himself  
some trouble’ if he crossed her holy will!’  
‘What! will Cyril truckle to such creatures?’  
‘Cyril is a wise man in his generation—too wise, some say, for a child of the  
light. But at least, he knows there is no use fighting with those whom you cannot  
conquer; and while he can get money out of these great ladies for his  
almshouses, and orphan-houses, and lodging-houses, and hospitals, and  
workshops, and all the rest of it—and in that, I will say for him, there is no man  
on earth equal to him, but Ambrose of Milan and Basil of Caesarea—why, I  
don’t quarrel with him for making the best of a bad matter; and a very bad matter  
it is, boy, and has been ever since emperors and courtiers have given up burning  
and crucifying us, and taken to patronising and bribing us instead.’  
Philammon walked on in silence by the old priest’s side, stunned and sickened  
…. ‘And this is what I have come out to see—reeds shaken in the wind, and men  
clothed in soft raiment, fit only for kings’ palaces!’ For this he had left the dear  
old Laura, and the simple joys and friendships of childhood, and cast himself  
into a roaring whirlpool of labour and temptation! This was the harmonious  
strength and unity of that Church Catholic, in which, as he had been taught from  
boyhood, there was but one Lord, one Faith, one Spirit. This was the indivisible  
body, ‘without spot or wrinkle, which fitly joined together and compacted by  
that which every member supplied, according to the effectual and proportionate  
working of every part, increased the body, and enabled it to build itself up in  
Love!’ He shuddered as the well-known words passed through his memory, and  
seemed to mock the base and chaotic reality around him. He felt angry with the  
old man for having broken his dream; he longed to believe that his complaints  
were only exaggerations of cynic peevishness, of selfish disappointment; and  
yet, had not Arsenius warned him? Had he not foretold, word for word, what the  
youth would find-what he had found? Then was Saint Paul’s great idea an empty  
and an impossible dream? No! God’s word could not fail; the Church could not  
err. The fault could not be in her, but in her enemies; not, as the old man said, in  
her too great prosperity, but in her slavery. And then the words which he had  
heard from Cyril at their first interview rose before him as the true explanation.  
How could the Church work freely and healthily while she was crushed and  
fettered by the rulers of this world? And how could they be anything but the  
tyrants and antichrists they were, while they were menaced and deluded by  
heathen philosophy, and vain systems of human wisdom? If Orestes was the  
curse of the Alexandrian Church, then Hypatia was the curse of Orestes. On her  
head the true blame lay. She was the root of the evil. Who would extirpate it? ....  
Why should not he? It might be dangerous; yet, successful or unsuccessful, it  
must be glorious. The course of Christianity wanted great examples. Might he  
not-and his young heart beat high at the thought—might he not, by some great  
act of daring, self- sacrifice, divine madness of faith, like David’s of old, when  
he went out against the giant—awaken selfish and luxurious souls to a noble  
emulation, and recall to their minds, perhaps to their lives, the patterns of those  
martyrs who were the pride, the glory, the heirloom of Egypt? And as figure  
after figure rose before his imagination, of simple men and weak women who  
had conquered temptation and shame, torture and death, to live for ever on the  
lips of men, and take their seats among the patricians of the heavenly court, with  
brows glittering through all eternities with the martyr’s crown, his heart beat  
thick and fast, and he longed only for an opportunity to dare and die.  
And the longing begot the opportunity. For he had hardly rejoined his brother  
visitors when the absorbing thought took word again, and he began questioning  
them eagerly for more information about Hypatia.  
On that point, indeed, he obtained nothing but fresh invective; but when his  
companions, after talking of the triumph which the true faith had gained that  
morning, went on to speak of the great overthrow of Paganism twenty years  
before, under the patriarch Theophilus; of Olympiodorus and his mob, who held  
the Serapeium for many days by force of arms against the Christians, making  
sallies into the city, and torturing and murdering the prisoners whom they took;  
of the martyrs who, among those very pillars which overhung their heads, had  
died in torments rather than sacrifice to Serapis; and of the final victory, and the  
soldier who, in presence of the trembling mob, clove the great jaw of the  
colossal idol, and snapped for ever the spell of heathenism, Philammon’s heart  
burned to distinguish himself like that soldier, and to wipe out his qualms of  
conscience by some more unquestionable deed of Christian prowess. There were  
no idols now to break but there was philosophy—‘Why not carry war into the  
heart of the enemy’s camp, and beard Satan in his very den? Why does not some  
man of God go boldly into the lecture- room of the sorceress, and testify against  
her to her face?’  
‘Do it yourself, if you dare,’said Peter. ‘We have no wish to get our brains  
knocked out by all the profligate young gentlemen in the city.’  
‘I will do it,’said Philammon.  
‘That is, if his holiness allows you to make such a fool of yourself.’  
‘Take care, sir, of your words. You revile the blessed martyrs, from St. Stephen  
to St. Telemachus, when you call such a deed foolishness.’  
‘I shall most certainly inform his holiness of your insolence.’  
‘Do so,’said Philammon, who, possessed with a new idea, wished for nothing  
more. And there the matter dropped for the time.  
...............  
‘The presumption of the young in this generation is growing insufferable,’said  
Peter to his master that evening.  
‘So much the better. They put their elders on their mettle in the race of good  
works. But who has been presuming to-day?’  
‘That mad boy whom Pambo sent up from the deserts dared to offer himself as  
champion of the faith against Hypatia. He actually proposed to go into her  
lecture-room and argue with her to her face. What think you of that for a  
specimen of youthful modesty and self- distrust?’  
Cyril was silent a while.  
‘What answer am I to have the honour of taking back? A month’s relegation to  
Nitria on bread and water? You, I am sure, will not allow such things to go  
unpunished; indeed, if they do, there is an end to all authority and discipline.’  
Cyril was still silent; whilst Peter’s brow clouded fast. At last he answered—  
‘The cause wants martyrs. Send the boy to me.’  
Peter went down with a shrug, and an expression of face which looked but too  
like envy, and ushered up the trembling youth, who dropped on his knees as soon  
as he entered.  
‘So you wish to go into the heathen woman’s lecture-room, and defy her? Have  
you courage for it?’  
‘God will give it me.’  
‘You will be murdered by her pupils.’  
‘I can defend myself,’said Philammon, with a pardonable glance downward at  
his sinewy limbs. ‘And if not: what death more glorious than martyrdom?’  
Cyril smiled genially enough. ‘Promise me two things.’  
‘Two thousand, if you will.’  
‘Two are quite difficult enough to keep. Youth is rash in promises, and rasher in  
forgetting them. Promise me that, whatever happens, you will not strike the first  
blow.’  
‘I do.’  
‘Promise me again, that you will not argue with her.’  
‘What then?’  
‘Contradict, denounce, defy. But give no reasons. If you do, you are lost. She is  
subtler than the serpent, skilled in all the tricks of logic, and you will become a  
laughing-stock, and run away in shame. Promise me.’  
‘I do.’  
‘Then go.’  
‘When?’  
‘The sooner the better. At what hour does the accursed woman lecture tomorrow, Peter?’  
‘We saw her going to the Museum at nine this morning.’  
‘Then go at nine to-morrow. There is money for you.’  
‘What is this for?’ asked Philammon, fingering curiously the first coins which he  
ever had handled in his life.  
‘To pay for your entrance. To the philosopher none enters without money. Not so  
to the Church of God, open all day long to the beggar and the slave. If you  
convert her, well. And if not’ .... And he added to himself between his teeth,  
‘And if not, well also—perhaps better.’  
‘Ay!’said Peter bitterly, as he ushered Philammon out. ‘Go up to Ramoth Gilead,  
and prosper, young fool! What evil spirit sent you here to feed the noble  
patriarch’s only weakness?’  
‘What do you mean?’ asked Philammon, as fiercely as he dare.  
‘The fancy that preachings, and protestations, and martyrdoms can drive out the  
Canaanites, who can only be got rid of with the sword of the Lord and of  
Gideon. His uncle Theophilus knew that well enough. If he had not,  
Olympiodorus might have been master of Alexandria, and incense burning  
before Serapis to this day. Ay, go, and let her convert you! Touch the accursed  
thing, like Achan, and see if you do not end by having it in your tent. Keep  
company with the daughters of Midian, and see if you do not join yourself to  
Baal poor, and eat the offerings of the dead!’  
And with this encouraging sentence, the two parted for the night.  
CHAPTER VIII: THE EAST WIND  
As Hypatia went forth the next morning, in all her glory, with a crowd of  
philosophers and philosophasters, students, and fine gentlemen, following her in  
reverend admiration across the street to her lecture-room, a ragged beggar-man,  
accompanied by a huge and villainous-looking dog, planted himself right before  
her, and extending a dirty hand, whined for an alms.  
Hypatia, whose refined taste could never endure the sight, much less the contact,  
of anything squalid and degraded, recoiled a little, and bade the attendant slave  
get rid of the man with a coin. Several of the younger gentlemen, however,  
considered themselves adepts in that noble art of ‘upsetting’ then in vogue in the  
African universities, to which we all have reason enough to be thankful, seeing  
that it drove Saint Augustine from Carthage to Rome; and they, in compliance  
with the usual fashion of tormenting any simple creature who came in their way  
by mystification and insult, commenced a series of personal witticisms, which  
the beggar bore stoically enough. The coin was offered him, but he blandly put  
aside the hand of the giver, and keeping his place on the pavement, seemed  
inclined to dispute Hypatia’s farther passage.  
‘What do you want? Send the wretch and his frightful dog away, gentlemen!’  
said the poor philosopher in some trepidation.  
‘I know that dog,’said one of them; ‘it is Aben-Ezra’s. Where did you find it  
before it was lost, you rascal.’  
‘Where your mother found you when she palmed you off upon her goodman, my  
child—in the slave-market. Fair Sybil, have you already forgotten your humblest  
pupil, as these young dogs have, who are already trying to upset their master and  
instructor in the angelic science of bullying?’  
And the beggar, lifting his broad straw hat, disclosed the features of Raphael  
Aben-Ezra. Hypatia recoiled with a shriek of surprise.  
‘Ah! you are astonished. At what, I pray?’  
‘To see you, sir, thus!’  
‘Why, then? You have been preaching to us all a long time the glory of  
abstraction from the allurements of sense. It augurs ill, surely, for your estimate  
either of your pupils or of your own eloquence, if you are so struck with  
consternation because one of them has actually at last obeyed you.’  
‘What is the meaning of this masquerade, most excellent sir?’ asked Hypatia and  
a dozen voices beside.  
‘Ask Cyril. I am on my way to Italy, in the character of the New Diogenes, to  
look, like him, for a man. When I have found one, I shall feel great pleasure in  
returning to acquaint you with the amazing news. Farewell! I wished to look  
once more at a certain countenance, though I have turned, as you see, Cynic; and  
intend henceforth to attend no teacher but my dog, who will luckily charge no  
fees for instruction; if she did, I must go untaught, for my ancestral wealth made  
itself wings yesterday morning. You are aware, doubtless, of the Plebiscitum  
against the Jews, which was carried into effect under the auspices of a certain  
holy tribune of the people?’  
‘Infamous!’  
‘And dangerous, my dear lady. Success is inspiriting …. and Theon’s house is  
quite as easily sacked, as the Jews’ quarter …. Beware.’  
‘Come, come, Aben-Ezra,’ cried the young men; ‘you are far too good company  
for us to lose you for that rascally patriarch’s fancy. We will make a subscription  
for you, eh? And you shall live with each of us, month and month about. We  
shall quite lose the trick of joking without you.’  
‘Thank you, gentlemen. But really you have been my butts far too long for me to  
think of becoming yours. Madam, one word in private before I go.’  
Hypatia leant forward, and speaking in Syriac, whispered hurriedly—  
‘Oh, stay, sir, I beseech you: You are the wisest of my pupils— perhaps my only  
true pupil …. My father will find some concealment for you from these  
wretches; and if you need money, remember, he is your debtor. We have never  
repaid you the gold which—’  
‘Fairest Muse, that was but my entrance-fee to Parnassus. It is I who am in your  
debt; and I have brought my arrears, in the form of this opal ring. As for shelter  
near you,’ he went on, lowering his voice, and speaking like her, in Syriac  
—‘Hypatia the Gentile is far too lovely for the peace of mind of Raphael the  
Jew.’ And he drew from his finger Miriam’s ring and offered it.  
‘Impossible!‘said Hypatia, blushing scarlet: ‘I cannot accept it.’  
‘I beseech you. It is the last earthly burden I have, except this snail’s prison of  
flesh and blood. My dagger will open a crack through that when it becomes  
intolerable. But as I do not intend to leave my shell, if I can help it, except just  
when and how I choose, and as, if I take this ring with me, some of Heraclian’s  
Circumcellions will assuredly knock my brains out for the sake of it-I must  
entreat.’  
‘Never! Can you not sell the ring, and escape to Synesius? He will give you  
shelter.’  
‘The hospitable hurricane! Shelter, yes; but rest, none. As soon pitch my tent in  
the crater of Aetna. Why, he will be trying day and night to convert me to that  
eclectic farrago of his, which be calls philosophic Christianity. Well, if you will  
not have the ring, it is soon disposed of. We Easterns know how to be  
magnificent, and vanish as the lords of the world ought.’  
And he turned to the philosophic crowd.  
‘Here, gentlemen of Alexandria! Does any gay youth wish to pay his debts once  
and for all?—Behold the Rainbow of Solomon, an opal such as Alexandria never  
saw before, which would buy any one of you, and his Macedonian papa, and his  
Macedonian mamma, and his Macedonian sisters, and horses, and parrots, and  
peacocks, twice over, in any slave-market in the world. Any gentleman who  
wishes to possess a jewel worth ten thousand gold pieces, will only need to pick  
it out of the gutter into which I throw it. Scramble for it, you young Phaedrias  
and Pamphili! There are Laides and Thaides enough about, who will help you to  
spend it.’  
And raising the jewel on high, he was in the act of tossing it into the street, when  
his arm was seized from behind, and the ring snatched from his hand. He turned,  
fiercely enough, and saw behind him, her eyes flashing fury and contempt, old  
Miriam.  
Bran sprang at the old woman’s throat in an instant; but recoiled again before the  
glare of her eye. Raphael called the dog off, and turning quietly to the  
disappointed spectators—  
‘It is all right, my luckless friends. You must raise money for yourselves, after  
all; which, since the departure of my nation, will be a somewhat more difficult  
matter than ever. The over-ruling destinies, whom, as you all know so well when  
you are getting tipsy, not even philosophers can resist, have restored the  
Rainbow of Solomon to its original possessor. Farewell, Queen of Philosophy!  
When I find the man, you shall hear of it. Mother, I am coming with you for a  
friendly word before we part, though’ he went on, laughing, as the two walked  
away together, ‘it was a scurvy trick of you to balk one of The Nation of the  
exquisite pleasure of seeing those heathen dogs scrambling in the gutter for his  
bounty.’  
Hypatia went on to the Museum, utterly bewildered by this strange meeting, and  
its still stranger end. She took care, nevertheless, to betray no sign of her deep  
interest till she found herself alone in her little waiting-room adjoining the  
lecture-hall; and there, throwing herself into a chair, she sat and thought, till she  
found, to her surprise and anger, the tears trickling down her cheeks. Not that her  
bosom held one spark of affection for Raphael. If there had ever been any danger  
of that the wily Jew had himself taken care to ward it off, by the sneering and  
frivolous tone with which he quashed every approach to deep feeling, either in  
himself or in others. As for his compliments to her beauty, she was far too much  
accustomed to such, to be either pleased or displeased by them. But she felt, as  
she said, that she had lost perhaps her only true pupil; and more—perhaps her  
only true master. For she saw clearly enough, that under that Silenus’ mask was  
hidden a nature capable of—perhaps more than she dare think of. She had  
always felt him her superior in practical cunning; and that morning had proved  
to her what she had long suspected, that he was possibly also her superior in that  
moral earnestness and strength of will for which she looked in vain among the  
enervated Greeks who surrounded her. And even in those matters in which he  
professed himself her pupil, she had long been alternately delighted by finding  
that he alone, of all her school, seemed thoroughly and instinctively to  
comprehend her every word, and chilled by the disagreeable suspicion that he  
was only playing with her, and her mathematics and geometry, and meta-physic  
and dialectic, like a fencer practising with foils, while he reserved his real  
strength for some object more worthy of him. More than once some paradox or  
question of his had shaken her neatest systems into a thousand cracks, and  
opened up ugly depths of doubt, even on the most seemingly-palpable  
certainties; or some half-jesting allusion to those Hebrew Scriptures, the quantity  
and quality of his faith in which he would never confess, made her indignant at  
the notion that he considered himself in possession of a reserved ground of  
knowledge, deeper and surer than her own, in which he did not deign to allow  
her to share.  
And yet she was irresistibly attracted to him. That deliberate and consistent  
luxury of his, from which she shrank, he had always boasted that he was able to  
put on and take off at will like a garment: and now he seemed to have proved his  
words; to be a worthy rival of the great Stoics of old time. Could Zeno himself  
have asked more from frail humanity? Moreover, Raphael had been of infinite  
practical use to her. He worked out, unasked, her mathematical problems; he  
looked out authorities, kept her pupils in order by his bitter tongue, and drew  
fresh students to her lectures by the attractions of his wit, his arguments, and last,  
but not least, his unrivalled cook and cellar. Above all he acted the part of a  
fierce and valiant watch-dog on her behalf, against the knots of clownish and  
often brutal sophists, the wrecks of the old Cynic, Stoic, and Academic schools,  
who, with venom increasing, after the wont of parties, with their decrepitude,  
assailed the beautifully bespangled card-castle of Neo-Platonism, as an empty  
medley of all Greek philosophies with all Eastern superstitions. All such  
Philistines had as yet dreaded the pen and tongue of Raphael, even more than  
those of the chivalrous Bishop of Cyrene, though he certainly, to judge from  
certain of his letters, hated them as much as he could hate any human being;  
which was after all not very bitterly.  
But the visits of Synesius were few and far between; the distance between  
Carthage and Alexandria, and the labour of his diocese, and, worse than all, the  
growing difference in purpose between him and his beautiful teacher, made his  
protection all but valueless. And now Aben-Ezra was gone too, and with him  
were gone a thousand plans and hopes. To have converted him at last to a  
philosophic faith in the old gods! To have made him her instrument for turning  
back the stream of human error I… How often had that dream crossed her! And  
now, who would take his place? Athanasius? Synesius in his good- nature might  
dignify him with the name of brother, but to her he was a powerless pedant,  
destined to die without having wrought any deliverance on the earth, as indeed  
the event proved. Plutarch of Athens? He was superannuated. Syrianus? A mere  
logician, twisting Aristotle to mean what she knew, and he ought to have known,  
Aristotle never meant. Her father? A man of triangles and conic sections. How  
paltry they all looked by the side of the unfathomable Jew!—Spinners of  
charming cobwebs. .... But would the flies condescend to be caught in them?  
Builders of pretty houses. .... If people would but enter and live in them!  
Preachers of superfine morality .... which their admiring pupils never dreamt of  
practising. Without her, she well knew, philosophy must die in Alexandria. And  
was it her wisdom—or other and more earthly charms of hers—which enabled  
her to keep it alive? Sickening thought! Oh, that she were ugly, only to test the  
power of her doctrines!  
Ho! The odds were fearful enough already; she would be glad of any help,  
however earthly and carnal. But was not the work hopeless? What she wanted  
was men who could act while she thought. And those were just the men whom  
she would find nowhere but—she knew it too well—in the hated Christian  
priesthood. And then that fearful Iphigenia sacrifice loomed in the distance as  
inevitable. The only hope of philosophy was in her despair!  
...............  
She dashed away the tears, and proudly entered the lecture-hall, and ascended  
the tribune like a goddess, amid the shouts of her audience…. What did she care  
for them? Would they do what she told them? She was half through her lecture  
before she could recollect herself, and banish from her mind the thought of  
Raphael. And at that point we will take the lecture up.  
...............  
‘Truth? Where is truth but in the soul itself? Facts, objects, are but phantoms  
matter-woven—ghosts of this earthly night, at which the soul, sleeping here in  
the mire and clay of matter, shudders and names its own vague tremors sense  
and perception. Yet, even as our nightly dreams stir in us the suspicion of  
mysterious and immaterial presences, unfettered by the bonds of time and space,  
so do these waking dreams which we call sight and sound. They are divine  
messengers, whom Zeus, pitying his children, even when he pent them in this  
prison-house of flesh, appointed to arouse in them dim recollections of that real  
world of souls whence they came. Awakened once to them; seeing, through the  
veil of sense and fact, the spiritual truth of which they are but the accidental  
garment, concealing the very thing which they make palpable, the philosopher  
may neglect the fact for the doctrine, the shell for the kernel, the body for the  
soul, of which it is but the symbol and the vehicle. What matter, then, to the  
philosopher whether these names of men, Hector or Priam, Helen or Achilles,  
were ever visible as phantoms of flesh and blood before the eyes of men? What  
matter whether they spoke or thought as he of Scios says they did? What matter,  
even, whether he himself ever had earthly life? The book is here—the word  
which men call his. Let the thoughts thereof have been at first whose they may,  
now they are mine. I have taken them to myself, and thought them to myself, and  
made them parts of my own soul. Nay, they were and ever will be parts of me;  
for they, even as the poet was, even as I am, are but a part of the universal soul.  
What matter, then, what myths grew up around those mighty thoughts of ancient  
seers? Let others try to reconcile the Cyclic fragments, or vindicate the  
Catalogue of ships. What has the philosopher lost, though the former were  
proved to be contradictory, and the latter interpolated? The thoughts are there,  
and ours, Let us open our hearts lovingly to receive them, from whencesoever  
they may have come. As in men, so in books, the soul is all with which our souls  
must deal; and the soul of the book is whatsoever beautiful, and true, and noble  
we can find in it. It matters not to us whether the poet was altogether conscious  
of the meanings which we can find in him. Consciously or unconsciously to him,  
the meanings must be there; for were they not there to be seen, how could we see  
them? There are those among the uninitiate vulgar—and those, too, who carry  
under the philosophic cloak hearts still uninitiate—who revile such  
interpretations as merely the sophistic and arbitrary sports of fancy. It lies with  
them to show what Homer meant, if our spiritual meanings be absurd; to tell the  
world why Homer is admirable, if that for which we hold him up to admiration  
does not exist in him. Will they say that the honour which he has enjoyed for  
ages was inspired by that which seems to be his first and literal meaning? And  
more, will they venture to impute that literal meaning to him? can they suppose  
that the divine soul of Homer could degrade itself to write of actual and physical  
feastings, and nuptials, and dances, actual nightly thefts of horses, actual fidelity  
of dogs and swineherds, actual intermarriages between deities and men, or that it  
is this seeming vulgarity which has won for him from the wisest of every age the  
title of the father of poetry? Degrading thought! fit only for the coarse and sensebound tribe who can appreciate nothing but what is palpable to sense and sight!  
As soon believe the Christian scriptures, when they tell us of a deity who has  
hands and feet, eyes and ears, who condescends to command the patterns of  
furniture and culinary utensils, and is made perfect by being born—disgusting  
thought!—as the son of a village maiden, and defiling himself with the wants  
and sorrows of the lowest slaves!’  
‘It is false! blasphemous! The Scriptures cannot lie!’ cried a voice from the  
farther end of the room.  
It was Philammon’s. He had been listening to the whole lecture; and yet not so  
much listening as watching, in bewilderment, the beauty of the speaker, the  
grace of her action, the melody of her voice, and last, but not least, the maze of  
her rhetoric, as it glittered before his mind’s eye like a cobweb diamonded with  
dew. A sea of new thoughts and questions, if not of doubts, came rushing in at  
every sentence on his acute Greek intellect, all the more plentifully and  
irresistibly because his speculative faculty was as yet altogether waste and  
empty, undefended by any scientific culture from the inrushing flood. For the  
first time in his life he found himself face to face with the root-questions of all  
thought—‘What am I, and where?’ ‘What can I know?’ And in the half-terrified  
struggle with them, he had all but forgotten the purpose for which he entered the  
lecture-hall. He felt that he must break the spell. Was she not a heathen and a  
false prophetess? Here was something tangible to attack; and half in indignation  
at the blasphemy, half in order to force himself into action, he had sprung up and  
spoken.  
A yell arose. ‘Turn the monk out!‘‘Throw the rustic through the window!’ cried a  
dozen young gentlemen. Several of the most valiant began to scramble over the  
benches up to him; and Philammon was congratulating himself on the near  
approach of a glorious martyrdom, when Hypatia’s voice, calm and silvery,  
stifled the tumult in a moment.  
‘Let the youth listen, gentlemen. He is but a monk and a plebeian, and knows no  
better; he has been taught thus. Let him sit here quietly, and perhaps we may be  
able to teach him otherwise.’  
And without interrupting, even by a change of tone, the thread of her discourse,  
she continued—  
‘Listen, then, to a passage from the sixth book of the Iliad, in which last night I  
seemed to see glimpses of some mighty mystery. You know it well: yet I will  
read it to you; the very sound and pomp of that great verse may tune our souls to  
a fit key for the reception of lofty wisdom. For well said Abamnon the Teacher,  
that “the soul consisted first of harmony and rhythm, and ere it gave itself to the  
body, had listened to the divine harmony. Therefore it is that when, after having  
come into a body, it hears such melodies as most preserve the divine footstep of  
harmony, it embraces such, and recollects from them that divine harmony, and is  
impelled to it, and finds its home in it, and shares of it as much as it can share.”’  
And therewith fell on Philammon’s ear, for the first time, the mighty thunder-roll  
of Homer’s verse—  
So spoke the stewardess: but Hector rushed From the house, the same way back,  
down stately streets, Through the broad city, to the Scaian gates, Whereby he  
must go forth toward the plain, There running toward him came Andromache,  
His ample-dowered wife, Eetion’s child— Eetion the great-hearted, he who  
dwelt In Thebe under Placos, and the woods Of Placos, ruling over Kilic men.  
His daughter wedded Hector brazen-helmed, And met him then; and with her  
came a maid, Who bore in arms a playful-hearted babe An infant still, akin to  
some fair star, Only and well-loved child of Hector’s house, Whom he had  
named Scamandrios, but the rest Astyanax, because his sire alone Upheld the  
weal of Ilion the holy. He smiled in silence, looking on his child But she stood  
close to him, with many tears; And hung upon his hand, and spoke, and called  
him. ‘My hero, thy great heart will wear thee out; Thou pitiest not thine infant  
child, nor me The hapless, soon to be thy widow; The Greeks will slay thee,  
falling one and all Upon thee: but to me were sweeter far, Having lost thee, to  
die; no cheer to me Will come thenceforth, if thou shouldst meet thy fate; Woes  
only: mother have I none, nor sire. For that my sire divine Achilles slew, And  
wasted utterly the pleasant homes Of Kilic folk in Thebe lofty-walled, And slew  
Eetion with the sword! yet spared To strip the dead: awe kept his soul from that.  
Therefore he burnt him in his graven arms, And heaped a mound above him; and  
around The damsels of the Aegis-holding Zeus, The nymphs who haunt the  
upland, planted elms. And seven brothers bred with me in the halls, All in one  
day went down to Hades there; For all of them swift-foot Achilles slew Beside  
the lazy kine and snow-white sheep. And her, my mother, who of late was queen  
Beneath the woods of Places, he brought here Among his other spoils; yet set her  
free Again, receiving ransom rich and great. But Artemis, whose bow is all her  
joy, Smote her to death within her father’s halls. Hector! so thou art father to me  
now, Mother, and brother, and husband fair and strong! Oh, come now, pity me,  
and stay thou here Upon the tower, nor make thy child an orphan And me thy  
wife a widow; range the men Here by the fig-tree, where the city lies Lowest,  
and where the wall can well be scaled; For here three times the best have tried  
the assault Round either Ajax, and Idomeneus, And round the Atridai both, and  
Tydeus’son, Whether some cunning seer taught them craft, Or their own spirit  
stirred and drove them on.’ Then spake tall Hector, with the glancing helm All  
this I too have watched, my wife; yet much I hold in dread the scorn of Trojan  
men And Trojan women with their trailing shawls, If, like a coward, I should  
skulk from war. Beside, I have no lust to stay; I have learnt Aye to be bold, and  
lead the van of fight, To win my father, and myself, a name. For well I know, at  
heart and in my thought, The day will come when Ilios the holy Shall lie in  
heaps, and Priam, and the folk Of ashen-speared Priam, perish all. But yet no  
woe to come to Trojan men, Nor even to Hecabe, nor Priam king, Nor to my  
brothers, who shall roll in dust, Many and fair, beneath the strokes of foes, So  
moves me, as doth thine, when thou shalt go Weeping, led off by some brassharnessed Greek, Robbed of the daylight of thy liberty, To weave in Argos at  
another’s loom, Or bear the water of Messeis home, Or Hypereia, with unseemly  
toils, While heavy doom constrains thee, and perchance The folk may say, who  
see thy tears run down, “This was the wife of Hector, best in fight At Ilium, of  
horse-taming Trojan men.” So will they say perchance; while unto thee Now  
grief will come, for such a husband’s loss, Who might have warded off the day  
of thrall. But may the soil be heaped above my corpse Before I hear thy shriek  
and see thy shame!’ He spoke, and stretched his arms to take the child, But back  
the child upon his nurse’s breast Shrank crying, frightened at his father’s looks.  
Fearing the brass and crest of horse’s hair Which waved above the helmet  
terribly. Then out that father dear and mother laughed, And glorious Hector took  
the helmet off, And laid it gleaming on the ground, and kissed His darling child,  
and danced him in his arm; And spoke in prayer to Zeus, and all the gods ‘Zeu,  
and ye other gods, oh grant that this My child, like me, may grow the champion  
here As good in strength, and rule with might in Troy That men may say, “The  
boy is better far Than was his sire,” when he returns from war, Bearing a gory  
harness, having slain A foeman, and his mothers heart rejoice. Thus saying, on  
the hands of his dear wife He laid the child; and she received him back In  
fragrant bosom, smiling through her tears.  
\[Footnote: The above lines are not meant as a ‘translation,’ but as an humble  
attempt to give the literal sense in some sort of metre. It would be an act of  
arrogance even to aim at success where Pope and Chapman failed. It is simply, I  
believe, impossible to render Homer into English verse; because, for one reason  
among many, it is impossible to preserve the pomp of sound, which invests with  
grandeur his most common words. How can any skill represent the rhythm of  
Homeric Greek in a language which—to take the first verse which comes to  
hand—transforms ‘boos megaloio boeien,’ into ‘great ox’s hide’?\]  
‘Such is the myth. Do you fancy that in it Homer meant to hand down to the  
admiration of ages such earthly commonplaces as a mother’s brute affection, and  
the terrors of an infant? Surely the deeper insight of the philosopher may be  
allowed without the reproach of fancifulness, to see in it the adumbration of  
some deeper mystery!  
‘The elect soul, for instance—is not its name Astyanax, king of the city; by the  
fact of its ethereal parentage, the leader and lord of all around it, though it knows  
it not? A child as yet, it lies upon the fragrant bosom of its mother Nature, the  
nurse and yet the enemy of man—Andromache, as the poet well names her,  
because she fights with that being, when grown to man’s estate, whom as a child  
she nourished. Fair is she, yet unwise; pampering us, after the fashion of  
mothers, with weak indulgences; fearing to send us forth into the great realities  
of speculation, there to forget her in the pursuit of glory, she would have us  
while away our prime within the harem, and play for ever round her knees. And  
has not the elect soul a father, too, whom it knows not? Hector, he who is  
without— unconfined, unconditioned by Nature, yet its husband?—the allpervading, plastic Soul, informing, organising, whom men call Zeus the  
lawgiver, Aether the fire, Osiris the lifegiver; whom here the poet has set forth as  
the defender of the mystic city, the defender of harmony, and order, and beauty  
throughout the universe? Apart sits his great father—Priam, the first of  
existences, father of many sons, the Absolute Reason; unseen, tremendous,  
immovable, in distant glory; yet himself amenable to that abysmal unity which  
Homer calls Fate, the source of all which is, yet in Itself Nothing, without  
predicate, unnameable.  
‘From It and for It the universal Soul thrills through the whole Creation, doing  
the behests of that Reason from which it overflowed, unwillingly, into the storm  
and crowd of material appearances; warring with the brute forces of gross  
matter, crushing all which is foul and dissonant to itself, and clasping to its  
bosom the beautiful, and all wherein it discovers its own reflex; impressing on it  
its signature, reproducing from it its own likeness, whether star, or daemon, or  
soul of the elect:—and yet, as the poet hints in anthropomorphic language,  
haunted all the while by a sadness— weighed down amid all its labours by the  
sense of a fate—by the thought of that First One from whom the Soul is  
originally descended; from whom it, and its Father the Reason before it, parted  
themselves when they dared to think and act, and assert their own free will.  
‘And in the meanwhile, alas! Hector, the father, fights around, while his children  
sleep and feed; and he is away in the wars, and they know him not-know not that  
they the individuals are but parts of him the universal. And yet at moments—oh!  
thrice blessed they whose celestial parentage has made such moments part of  
their appointed destiny—at moments flashes on the human child the intuition of  
the unutterable secret. In the spangled glory of the summer night—in the roar of  
the Nile-flood, sweeping down fertility in every wave—in the awful depths of  
the temple-shrine—in the wild melodies of old Orphic singers, or before the  
images of those gods of whose perfect beauty the divine theosophists of Greece  
caught a fleeting shadow, and with the sudden might of artistic ecstasy smote it,  
as by an enchanter’s wand, into an eternal sleep of snowy stone —in these there  
flashes on the inner eye a vision beautiful and terrible, of a force, an energy, a  
soul, an idea, one and yet million-fold, rushing through all created things, like  
the wind across a lyre, thrilling the strings into celestial harmony—one lifeblood through the million veins of the universe, from one great unseen heart,  
whose thunderous pulses the mind hears far away, beating for ever in the  
abysmal solitude, beyond the heavens and the galaxies, beyond the spaces and  
the times, themselves but veins and runnels from its all-teeming sea.  
‘Happy, thrice happy! they who once have dared, even though breathless,  
blinded with tears of awful joy, struck down upon their knees in utter  
helplessness, as they feel themselves but dead leaves in the wind which sweeps  
the universe—happy they who have dared to gaze, if but for an instant, on the  
terror of that glorious pageant; who have not, like the young Astyanax, clung  
shrieking to the breast of mother Nature, scared by the heaven-wide flash of  
Hector’s arms, and the glitter of his rainbow crest! Happy, thrice happy,! even  
though their eyeballs, blasted by excess of light, wither to ashes in their sockets!  
—Were it not a noble end to have seen Zeus, and die like Semele, burnt up by  
his glory? Happy, thrice happy! though their mind reel from the divine  
intoxication, and the hogs of Circe call them henceforth madmen and  
enthusiasts. Enthusiasts they are; for Deity is in them, and they in It. For the  
time, this burden of individuality vanishes, and recognising themselves as  
portions of the universal Soul, they rise upward, through and beyond that Reason  
from whence the soul proceeds, to the fount of all—the ineffable and Supreme  
One—and seeing It, become by that act portions of Its essence. They speak no  
more, but It speaks in them, and their whole being, transmuted by that glorious  
sunlight into whose rays they have dared, like the eagle, to gaze without  
shrinking, becomes an harmonious vehicle for the words of Deity, and passive  
itself, utters the secrets of the immortal gods! What wonder if to the brute mass  
they seem as dreamers? Be it so …. Smile if you will. But ask me not to teach  
you things unspeakable, above all sciences, which the word-battle of dialectic,  
the discursive struggles of reason, can never reach, but which must be seen only,  
and when seen confessed to be unspeakable. Hence, thou disputer of the  
Academy!— hence, thou sneering Cynic!—hence, thou sense-worshipping  
Stoic, who fanciest that the soul is to derive her knowledge from those material  
appearances which she herself creates! .... hence—; and yet no: stay and sneer if  
you will. It is but a little time—a few days longer in this prison-house of our  
degradation, and each thing shall return to its own fountain; the blood-drop to  
the abysmal heart, and the water to the river, and the river to the shining sea; and  
the dew-drop which fell from heaven shall rise to heaven again, shaking off the  
dust-grains which weighed it down, thawed from the earth-frost which chained it  
here to herb and sward, upward and upward ever through stars and suns, through  
gods, and through the parents of the gods, purer and purer through successive  
lives, till it enters The Nothing, which is The All, and finds its home at last.’....  
And the speaker stopped suddenly, her eyes glistening with tears, her whole  
figure trembling and dilating with rapture. She remained for a moment  
motionless, gazing earnestly at her audience, as if in hopes of exciting in them  
some kindred glow; and then recovering herself, added in a more tender tone,  
not quite unmixed with sadness—  
‘Go now, my pupils. Hypatia has no more for you to-day. Go now, and spare her  
at least—woman as she is after all—the shame of finding that she has given you  
too much, and lifted the veil of Isis before eyes which are not enough purified to  
behold the glory of the goddess.—Farewell!’  
She ended: and Philammon, the moment that the spell of her voice was taken off  
him, sprang up, and hurried out through the corridor into the street….  
So beautiful! So calm and merciful to him So enthusiastic towards all which was  
noble! Had not she too spoken of the unseen world, of the hope of immortality,  
of the conquest of the spirit over the flesh, just as a Christian might have done?  
Was the gulf between them so infinite? If so, why had her aspirations awakened  
echoes in his own heart—echoes too, just such as the prayers and lessons of the  
Laura used to awaken? If the fruit was so like, must not the root be like also? ....  
Could that be a counterfeit? That a minister of Satan in the robes of an angel of  
light? Light, at least, it was purity, simplicity, courage, earnestness, tenderness,  
flashed out from eye, lip, gesture …. A heathen, who disbelieved? .... What was  
the meaning of it all?  
But the finishing stroke yet remained which was to complete the utter confusion  
of his mind. For before he had gone fifty yards up the street, his little friend of  
the fruit-basket, whom he had not seen since he vanished under the feet of the  
mob in the gateway of the theatre, clutched him by the arm, and burst forth,  
breathless with running—  
‘The—gods—heap their favours—on those who—who least deserve them! Rash  
and insolent rustic! And this is the reward of thy madness!’  
‘Off with you!’said Philammon, who had no mind at the moment to renew his  
acquaintance with the little porter. But the guardian of parasols kept a firm hold  
on his sheepskin.  
‘Fool! Hypatia herself commands! Yes, you will see her, have speech with her!  
while I—I the illuminated—I the appreciating—I the obedient—I the adoring—  
who for these three years past have grovelled in the kennel, that the hem of her  
garment might touch the tip of my little finger—I--I—I--‘  
‘What do you want, madman?’  
‘She calls for thee, insensate wretch! Theon sent me—breathless at once with  
running and with envy—Go! favourite of the unjust gods!’  
‘Who is Theon?’  
‘Her father, ignorant! He commands thee to be at her house—here- opposite—  
to-morrow at the third hour. Hear and obey! There they are coming out of the  
Museum, and all the parasols will get wrong! Oh, miserable me!’ And the poor  
little fellow rushed back again, while Philammon, at his wits’ end between dread  
and longing, started off, and ran the whole way home to the Serapeium,  
regardless of carriages, elephants, and foot-passengers; and having been knocked  
down by a surly porter, and left a piece of his sheepskin between the teeth of a  
spiteful camel-neither of which insults he had time to resent-arrived at the  
archbishop’s house, found Peter the Reader, and tremblingly begged an audience  
from Cyril.  
CHAPTER IX: THE SNAPPING OF THE BOW  
Cyril heard Philammon’s story and Hypatia’s message with a quiet smile, and  
then dismissed the youth to an afternoon of labour in the city, commanding him  
to mention no word of what had happened, and to come to him that evening and  
receive his order when he should have had time to think over the matter. So forth  
Philammon went with his companions, through lanes and alleys hideous with  
filth and poverty, compulsory idleness and native sin. Fearfully real and practical  
it all was; but he saw it all dimly as in a dream. Before his eyes one face was  
shining; in his ears one silvery voice was ringing …. ‘He is a monk, and knows  
no better.’ .... True! And how should he know better? How could he tell how  
much more there was to know, in that great new universe, in such a cranny  
whereof his life had till now been past? He had heard but one side already. What  
if there were two sides? Had he not a right-that is, was it not proper, fair,  
prudent, that he should hear both, and then judge?  
Cyril had hardly, perhaps, done wisely for the youth in sending him out about the  
practical drudgery of benevolence, before deciding for him what was his duty  
with regard to Hypatia’s invitation. He had not calculated on the new thoughts  
which were tormenting the young monk; perhaps they would have been  
unintelligible to him bad he known of them. Cyril had been bred up under the  
most stern dogmatic training, in those vast monastic establishments, which had  
arisen amid the neighbouring saltpetre quarries of Nitria, where thousands toiled  
in voluntary poverty and starvation at vast bakeries, dyeries, brick-fields, tailors’  
shops, carpenters’ yards, and expended the profits of their labour, not on  
themselves, for they had need of nothing, but on churches, hospitals, and alms.  
Educated in that world of practical industrial production as well as of religious  
exercise, which by its proximity to the great city accustomed monks to that  
world which they despised; entangled from boyhood in the intrigues of his fierce  
and ambitious uncle Theophilus, Cyril had succeeded him in the patriarchate of  
Alexandria without having felt a doubt, and stood free to throw his fiery energy  
and clear practical intellect into the cause of the Church without scruple, even,  
where necessary, without pity. How could such a man sympathise with the poor  
boy of twenty, suddenly dragged forth from the quiet cavern-shadow of the  
Laura into the full blaze and roar of the world’s noonday? He, too, was cloisterbred. But the busy and fanatic atmosphere of Nitria, where every nerve of soul  
and body was kept on a life-long artificial strain, without rest, without simplicity,  
without human affection, was utterly antipodal to the government of the remote  
and needy, though no less industrious commonwealths of Coenobites, who  
dotted the lonely mountain-glens, far up into the heart of the Nubian desert. In  
such a one Philammon had received, from a venerable man, a mother’s  
sympathy as well as a father’s care; and now he yearned for the encouragement  
of a gentle voice, for the greeting of a kindly eye, and was lonely and sick at  
heart …. And still Hypatia’s voice haunted his ears, like a strain of music, and  
would not die away. That lofty enthusiasm, so sweet and modest in its grandeur  
— that tone of pity—in one so lovely it could not be called contempt —for the  
many; that delicious phantom of being an elect spirit. unlike the crowd …. ‘And  
am I altogether like the crowd?’said Philammon to himself, as he staggered  
along under the weight of a groaning fever-patient. ‘Can there be found no fitter  
work for me than this, which any porter from the quay might do as well? Am I  
not somewhat wasted on such toil as this? Have I not an intellect, a taste, a  
reason? I could appreciate what she said.—Why should not my faculties be  
educated? Why am I only to be shut out from knowledge? There is a Christian  
Gnosis as well as a heathen one. What was permissible to Clement’—he had  
nearly said to Origen, but checked himself on the edge of heresy—‘is surely  
lawful for me! Is not my very craving for knowledge a sign that I am capable of  
it? Surely my sphere is the study rather than the street!’  
And then his fellow-labourers—he could not deny it to himself— began to grow  
less venerable in his eyes. Let him try as he might to forget the old priest’s  
grumblings and detractions, the fact was before him. The men were coarse,  
fierce, noisy …. so different from her! Their talk seemed mere gossip—  
scandalous too, and hard- judging, most of it; about that man’s private ambition,  
and that woman’s proud looks; and who had stayed for the Eucharist the Sunday before, and who had gone out after the sermon; and how the majority who  
did not stay could possibly dare to go, and how the minority who did not go  
could possibly dare to stay …. Endless suspicions, sneers, complaints …. what  
did they care for the eternal glories and the beatific vision? Their one test for all  
men and things, from the patriarch to the prefect, seemed to be—did he or it  
advance the cause of the Church?—which Philammon soon discovered to mean  
their own cause, their influence, their self- glorification. And the poor boy, as his  
faculty for fault-finding quickened under the influence of theirs, seemed to see  
under the humble stock-phrases in which they talked of their labours of love, and  
the future reward of their present humiliations, a deep and hardly-bidden pride, a  
faith in their own infallibility, a contemptuous impatience of every man, however  
venerable, who differed from their party on any, the slightest, matter. They spoke  
with sneers of Augustine’s Latinising tendencies, and with open execrations of  
Chrysostom, as the vilest and most impious of schismatics; and, for aught  
Philammon knew, they were right enough. But when they talked of wars and  
desolation past and impending, without a word of pity for the slain and ruined, as  
a just judgment of Heaven upon heretics and heathens; when they argued over  
the awful struggle for power which, as he gathered from their words, was even  
then pending between the Emperor and the Count of Africa, as if it contained but  
one question of interest to them—would Cyril, and they as his bodyguard, gain  
or lose power in Alexandria? and lastly, when at some mention of Orestes, and  
of Hypatia as his counsellor, they broke out into open imprecations of God’s  
curse, and comforted themselves with the prospect of everlasting torment for  
both; he shuddered and asked himself involuntarily—were these the ministers of  
a Gospel?—were these the fruits of Christ’s Spirit? .... And a whisper thrilled  
through the inmost depth of his soul—‘Is there a Gospel? Is there a Spirit of  
Christ? Would not their fruits be different from these?’  
Faint, and low, and distant, was that whisper, like the mutter of an earthquake  
miles below the soil. And yet, like the earthquake-roll, it had in that one moment  
jarred every belief, and hope, and memory of his being each a hair’s-breadth  
from its place …. Only one hair’s-breadth. But that was enough; his whole  
inward and outward world changed shape, and cracked at every joint. What if it  
were to fall in pieces? His brain reeled with the thought. He doubted his own  
identity. The very light of heaven had altered its hue. Was the firm ground on  
which he stood after all no solid reality, but a fragile shell which covered—  
what?  
The nightmare vanished, and he breathed once more. What a strange dream! The  
sun and the exertion must have made him giddy. He would forget all about it.  
Weary with labour, and still wearier with thought, he returned that evening,  
longing and yet dreading to be permitted to speak with Hypatia. He half hoped at  
moments that Cyril might think him too weak for it; and the next, all his pride  
and daring, not to say his faith and hope, spurred him on. Might he but face the  
terrible enchantress, and rebuke her to her face! And yet so lovely, so noble as  
she looked! Could he speak to her, except in tones of gentle warning, pity,  
counsel, entreaty? Might he not convert her—save her? Glorious thought! to win  
such a soul to the true cause! To be able to show, as the firstfruits of his mission,  
the very champion of heathendom! It was worth while to have lived only to do  
that; and having done it, to die.  
The archbishop’s lodgings, when he entered them, were in a state of ferment  
even greater than usual. Groups of monks, priests, parabolani, and citizens rich  
and poor, were banging about the courtyard, talking earnestly and angrily. A  
large party of monks fresh from Nitria, with ragged hair and beards, and the  
peculiar expression of countenance which fanatics of all creeds acquire, fierce  
and yet abject, self-conscious and yet ungoverned, silly and yet sly, with features  
coarsened and degraded by continual fasting and self-torture, prudishly shrouded  
from head to heel in their long ragged gowns, were gesticulating wildly and  
loudly, and calling on their more peaceable companions, in no measured terms,  
to revenge some insult offered to the Church.  
‘What is the matter?’ asked Philammon of a quiet portly citizen, who stood  
looking up, with a most perplexed visage, at the windows of the patriarch’s  
apartments.  
‘Don’t ask me; I have nothing to do with it. Why does not his holiness come out  
and speak to them? Blessed virgin, mother of God! that we were well through it  
all!—’  
‘Coward!’ bawled a monk in his ear. ‘These shopkeepers care for nothing but  
seeing their stalls safe. Rather than lose a day’s custom, they would give the very  
churches to be plundered by the heathen!’  
‘We do not want them!’ cried another. ‘We managed Dioscuros and his brother,  
and we can manage Orestes. What matter what answer he sends? The devil shall  
have his own!’  
‘They ought to have been back two hours ago: they are murdered by this time.’  
‘He would not dare to touch the archdeacon!’  
‘He will dare anything. Cyril should never have sent them forth as lambs among  
wolves. What necessity was there for letting the prefect know that the Jews were  
gone? He would have found it out for himself fast enough, the next time he  
wanted to borrow money.’  
‘What is all this about, reverend sir?’ asked Philammon of Peter the Reader, who  
made his appearance at that moment in the quadrangle, walking with great  
strides, like the soul of Agamemnon across the meads of Asphodel, and  
apparently beside himself with rage.  
‘Ah! you here? You may go to-morrow, young fool! The patriarch can’t talk to  
you. Why should he? Some people have a great deal too much notice taken of  
them, in my opinion. Yes; you may go. If your head is not turned already, you  
may go and get it turned to- morrow. We shall see whether he who exalts himself  
is not abased, before all is over!’ And he was striding away, when Philammon, at  
the risk of an explosion, stopped him.  
‘His holiness commanded me to see him, sir, before—’  
Peter turned on him in a fury. ‘Fool! will you dare to intrude your fantastical  
dreams on him at such a moment as this?’  
‘He commanded me to see him,’said Philammon, with the true soldierlike  
discipline of a monk; ‘and see him I will in spite of any man. I believe in my  
heart you wish to keep me from his counsels and his blessing.’  
Peter looked at him for a moment with a right wicked expression, and then, to  
the youth’s astonishment, struck him full in the face, and yelled for help.  
If the blow had been given by Pambo in the Laura a week before, Philammon  
would have borne it. But from that man, and coming unexpectedly as the  
finishing stroke to all his disappointment and disgust, it was intolerable; and in  
an instant Peter’s long legs were sprawling on the pavement, while he bellowed  
like a bull for all the monks in Nitria.  
A dozen lean brown hands were at Philammon’s throat as Peter rose. ‘Seize him!  
hold him!’ half blubbered he. ‘The traitor! the heretic! He holds communion with  
heathens!’  
‘Down with him!’ ‘Cast him out! Carry him to the archbishop!’ while  
Philammon shook himself free, and Peter returned to the charge.  
‘I call all good Catholics to witness! He has beaten an ecclesiastic in the courts  
of the Lord’s house, even in the midst of thee, O Jerusalem! And he was in  
Hypatia’s lecture-room this morning!’  
A groan of pious horror rose. Philammon set his back against the wall.  
‘His holiness the patriarch sent me.’  
‘He confesses, he confesses! He deluded the piety of the patriarch into letting  
him go, under colour of converting her; and even now he wants to intrude on the  
sacred presence of Cyril, burning only with the carnal desire that he may meet  
the sorceress in her house to- morrow!’  
‘Scandal!’ ‘Abomination in the holy place!’ and a rush at the poor youth took  
place.  
His blood was thoroughly up. The respectable part of the crowd, as usual in such  
cases, prudently retreated, and left him to the mercy of the monks, with an eye to  
their own reputation for orthodoxy, not to mention their personal safety; and he  
had to help himself as he could. He looked round for a weapon. There was none.  
The ring of monks were baying at him like hounds round a bear: and though he  
might have been a match for any one of them singly, yet their sinewy limbs and  
determined faces warned him that against such odds the struggle would be  
desperate.  
‘Let me leave this court in safety! God knows whether I am a heretic; and to  
Him I commit my cause! The holy patriarch shall know of your iniquity. I will  
not trouble you; I give you leave to call me heretic, or heathen, if you will, if I  
cross this threshold till Cyril himself sends for me back to shame you.’  
And he turned, and forced his way to the gate, amid a yell of derision which  
brought every drop of, blood in his body into his cheeks. Twice, as he went  
down the vaulted passage, a rush was made on him from behind, but the soberer  
of his persecutors checked it. Yet he could not leave them, young and hot-headed  
as he was, without one last word, and on the threshold he turned.  
‘You! who call yourselves the disciples of the Lord, and are more like the  
demoniacs who abode day and night in the tombs, crying and cutting themselves  
with stones—’  
In an instant they rushed upon him; and, luckily for him, rushed also into the  
arms of a party of ecclesiastics, who were hurrying inwards from the street, with  
faces of blank terror.  
‘He has refused!’shouted the foremost. He declares war against the Church of  
God!’  
‘Oh, my friends,’ panted the archdeacon, ‘we are escaped like the bird out of the  
snare of the fowler. The tyrant kept us waiting two hours at his palace-gates, and  
then sent lictors out upon us, with rods and axes, telling us that they were the  
only message which he had for robbers and rioters.’  
‘Back to the patriarch!’ and the whole mob streamed in again, leaving  
Philammon alone in the street—and in the world.  
Whither now?  
He strode on in his wrath some hundred yards or more before he asked himself  
that question. And when he asked it, he found himself in no humour to answer it.  
He was adrift, and blown out of harbour upon a shoreless sea, in utter darkness;  
all heaven and earth were nothing to him. He was alone in the blindness of  
anger.  
Gradually one fixed idea, as a light-tower, began to glimmer through the storm  
…. To see Hypatia, and convert her. He had the patriarch’s leave for that. That  
must be right. That would justify him—bring him back, perhaps, in a triumph  
more glorious than any Caesar’s, leading captive, in the fetters of the Gospel, the  
Queen of Heathendom. Yes, there was that left, for which to live.  
His passion cooled down gradually as he wandered on in the fading evening  
light, up one street and down another, till he had utterly lost his way. What  
matter? He should find that lecture-room to- morrow at least. At last he found  
himself in a broad avenue, which he seemed to know. Was that the Sun-gate in  
the distance? He sauntered carelessly down it, and found himself at last on the  
great Esplanade, whither the little porter had taken him three days before. He  
was close then to the Museum, and to her house. Destiny had led him,  
unconsciously, towards the scene of his enterprise. It was a good omen; he  
would go thither at once. He might sleep upon her doorstep as well as upon any  
other. Perhaps he might catch a glimpse of her going out or coming in, even at  
that late hour. It might be well to accustom himself to the sight of her. There  
would be the less chance of his being abashed to-morrow before those sorceress  
eyes. And moreover, to tell the truth, his self- dependence, and his self-will too,  
crushed, or rather laid to sleep, by the discipline of the Laura, had started into  
wild life, and gave him a mysterious pleasure, which he had not felt since he was  
a disobedient little boy, of doing what he chose, right or wrong, simply because  
he chose it. Such moments come to every free-willed creature. Happy are those  
who have not, like poor Philammon, been kept by a hotbed cultivation from  
knowing how to face them? But he had yet to learn, or rather his tutors had to  
learn, that the sure path toward willing obedience and manful self-restraint, lies  
not through slavery, but through liberty.  
He was not certain which was Hypatia’s house; but the door of the Museum he  
could not forget. So there he sat himself down under the garden wall, soothed by  
the cool night, and the holy silence, and the rich perfume of the thousand foreign  
flowers which filled the air with enervating balm. There he sat and watched, and  
watched, and watched in vain for some glimpse of his one object. Which of the  
houses was hers? Which was the window of her chamber! Did it look into the  
street? What business had his fancy with woman’s chambers? .... But that one  
open window, with the lamp burning bright inside—he could not help looking up  
to it—he could not help fancying—hoping. He even moved a few yards to see  
better the bright interior of the room. High up as it was, he could still discern  
shelves of books—pictures on the walls. Was that a voice? Yes! a woman’s voice  
—reading aloud in metre—was plainly distinguishable in the dead stillness of  
the night, which did not even awaken a whisper in the trees above his head. He  
stood, spellbound by curiosity.  
Suddenly the voice ceased, and a woman’s figure came forward to the window,  
and stood motionless, gazing upward at the spangled star- world overhead, and  
seeming to drink in the glory, and the silence, and the rich perfume …. Could it  
be she? Every pulse in his body throbbed madly …. Could it be? What was she  
doing? He could not distinguish the features; but the full blaze of the eastern  
moon showed him an upturned brow, between a golden stream of glittering  
tresses which hid her whole figure, except the white hands clasped upon her  
bosom …. Was she praying? were these her midnight sorceries? ....  
And still his heart throbbed and throbbed, till he almost fancied she must hear its  
noisy beat—and still she stood motionless, gazing upon the sky, like some  
exquisite chryselephantine statue, all ivory and gold. And behind her, round the  
bright room within, painting, books, a whole world of unknown science and  
beauty …. and she the priestess of it all….inviting him to learn of her and be  
wise! It was a temptation! He would flee from it!—Fool that he was!—and it  
might not be she after all!  
He made some sudden movement. She looked down, saw him, and shutting the  
blind, vanished for the night. In vain, now that the temptation had departed, he  
sat and waited for its reappearance, half cursing himself for having broken the  
spell. But the chamber was dark and silent henceforth; and Philammon, wearied  
out, found himself soon wandering back to the Laura in quiet dreams, beneath  
the balmy, semi-tropic night.  
CHAPTER X: THE INTERVIEW  
Philammon was aroused from his slumbers at sunrise the next morning by the  
attendants who came in to sweep out the lecture-rooms, and wandered,  
disconsolately enough, up and down the street; longing for, and yet dreading, the  
three weary hours to be over which must pass before he would be admitted to  
Hypatia. But he had tasted no food since noon the day before: he had but three  
hours’sleep the previous night, and had been working, running, and fighting for  
two whole days without a moment’s peace of body or mind. Sick with hunger  
and fatigue, and aching from head to foot with his hard night’s rest on the  
granite-flags, he felt as unable as man could well do to collect his thoughts or  
brace his nerves for the coming interview. How to get food he could not guess;  
but having two hands, he might at least earn a coin by carrying a load; so he  
went down to the Esplanade in search of work. Of that, alas! there was none. So  
he sat down upon the parapet of the quay, and watched the shoals of sardines  
which played in and out over the marble steps below, and wondered at the  
strange crabs and sea-locusts which crawled up and down the face of the  
masonry, a few feet below the surface, scrambling for bits of offal, and making  
occasional fruitless dashes at the nimble little silver arrows which played round  
them. And at last his whole soul, too tired to think of anything else, became  
absorbed in a mighty struggle between two great crabs, who held on stoutly, each  
by a claw, to his respective bunch of seaweed, while with the others they tugged,  
one at the head and the other at the tail of a dead fish. Which would conquer? ....  
Ay, which? And for five minutes Philammon was alone in the world with the two  
struggling heroes …. Might not they be emblematic? Might not the upper one  
typify Cyril?—the lower one Hypatia?—and the dead fish between, himself? ....  
But at last the deadlock was suddenly ended—the fish parted in the middle; and  
the typical Hypatia and Cyril, losing hold of their respective seaweeds by the  
jerk, tumbled down, each with its half-fish, and vanished head over heels into the  
blue depths in so undignified a manner, that Philammon burst into a shout of  
laughter.  
‘What’s the joke?’ asked a well-known voice behind him; and a hand patted him  
familiarly on the back. He looked round, and saw the little porter, his head  
crowned with a full basket of figs, grapes, and water-melons, on which the poor  
youth cast a longing eye. ‘Well, my young friend, and why are you not at  
church? Look at all the saints pouring into the Caesareum there, behind you.’  
Philammon answered sulkily enough something inarticulate.  
‘Ho, ho! Quarrelled with the successor of the Apostles already? Has my  
prophecy come true, and the strong meat of pious riot and plunder proved too  
highly spiced for your young palate? Eh?’  
Poor Philammon! Angry with himself for feeling that the porter was right;  
shrinking from the notion of exposing the failings of his fellow-Christians;  
shrinking still more from making such a jackanapes his confidant: and yet  
yearning in his loneliness to open his heart to some one, he dropped out, hint by  
hint, word by word, the events of the past evening, and finished by a request to  
be put in the way of earning his breakfast.  
‘Earning your breakfast! Shall the favourite of the gods—shall the guest of  
Hypatia—earn his breakfast, while I have an obol to share with him? Base  
thought! Youth! I have wronged you. Unphilosophically I allowed, yesterday  
morning, envy to ruffle the ocean of my intellect. We are now friends and  
brothers, in hatred to the monastic tribe.’  
‘I do not hate them, I tell you,’said Philammon. ‘But these Nitrian savages—’  
‘Are the perfect examples of monkery, and you hate them; and therefore, all  
greaters containing the less, you hate all less monastic monks—I have not heard  
logic lectures in vain. Now, up! The sea woos our dusty limbs: Nereids and  
Tritons, charging no cruel coin, call us to Nature’s baths. At home a mighty  
sheat-fish smokes upon the festive board; beer crowns the horn, and onions deck  
the dish; come then, my guest and brother!’  
Philammon swallowed certain scruples about becoming the guest of a heathen,  
seeing that otherwise there seemed no chance of having anything else to  
swallow; and after a refreshing plunge in the sea, followed the hospitable little  
fellow to Hypatia’s door, where he dropped his daily load of fruit, and then into a  
narrow by-street, to the ground-floor of a huge block of lodgings with a common  
staircase, swarming with children, cats, and chickens; and was ushered by his  
host into a little room, where the savoury smell of broiling fish revived  
Philammon’s heart.  
‘Judith! Judith! where lingerest thou? Marble of Pentelicus! foam- flake of the  
wine dark main! lily of the Mareotic lake! You accursed black Andromeda, if  
you don’t bring the breakfast this moment, I’ll cut you in two!’  
The inner door opened, and in bustled, trembling, her hands full of dishes, a tall  
lithe negress, dressed in true negro fashion, in a snow-white cotton shift, a  
scarlet cotton petticoat, and a bright yellow turban of the same, making a light in  
that dark place which would have served as a landmark a mile off. She put the  
dishes down, and the porter majestically waved Philammon to a stool; while she  
retreated, and stood humbly waiting on her lord and master, who did not deign to  
introduce to his guest the black beauty which composed his whole seraglio ….  
But, indeed, such an act of courtesy would have been needless; for the first  
morsel of fish was hardly safe in poor Philammon’s mouth, when the regress  
rushed upon him, caught him by the head, and covered him with rapturous  
kisses.  
Up jumped the little man with a yell, brandishing a knife in one hand and a leek  
in the other; while Philammon, scarcely less scandalised, jumped up too, and  
shook himself free of the lady, who, finding it impossible to vent her feelings  
further on his head, instantly changed her tactics, and, wallowing on the floor,  
began frantically kissing his feet.  
‘What is this? before my face! Up, shameless baggage, or thou diest the death!’  
and the porter pulled her up upon her knees.  
‘It is the monk! the young man I told you of, who saved me from the Jews the  
other night! What good angel sent him here that I might thank him?’ cried the  
poor creature, while the tears ran down her black shining face.  
‘I am that good angel,’said the porter, with a look of intense self satisfaction.  
‘Rise, daughter of Erebus; thou art pardoned, being but a female. What says the  
poet?-  
‘“Woman is passion’s slave, while rightful lord O’er her and passion, rules the  
nobler male.”  
Youth! to my arms! Truly say the philosophers, that the universe is magical in  
itself, and by mysterious sympathies links like to like. The prophetic instinct of  
thy future benefits towards me drew me to thee as by an invisible warp, hawser,  
or chain-cable, from the moment I beheld thee. Thou went a kindred spirit, my  
brother, though thou knewest it not. Therefore I do not praise thee—no, nor  
thank thee in the least, though thou hast preserved for me the one palm which  
shadows my weary steps—the single lotus-flower (in this case black, not white)  
which blooms for me above the mud-stained ocean wastes of the Hylic  
Borboros. That which thou hast done, thou hast done by instinct—by divine  
compulsion—thou couldst no more help it than thou canst help eating that fish,  
and art no more to be praised for it.’  
‘Thank you,’said Philammon.  
‘Comprehend me. Our theory in the schools for such cases is this— has been so  
at least for the last six months; similar particles, from one original source, exist  
in you and me. Similar causes produce similar effects; our attractions,  
antipathies, impulses, are therefore, in similar circumstances, absolutely the  
same; and therefore you did the other night exactly what I should have done in  
your case.’  
Philammon thought the latter part of the theory open to question, but he had by  
no means stopped eating when he rose, and his mouth was much too full of fish  
to argue.  
‘And therefore,’ continued the little man,‘we are to consider ourselves  
henceforth as one soul in two bodies. You may have the best of the corporeal  
part of the division …. yet it is the soul which makes the person. You may trust  
me, I shall not disdain my brotherhood. If any one insults you henceforth, you  
have but to call me; and if I be within hearing, why, by this right arm---‘  
And he attempted a pat on Philammon’s head, which, as there was a head and  
shoulder’s difference between them, might on the whole have been considered,  
from a theatric point of view, as a failure. Whereon the little man seized the  
calabash of beer, and filling therewith a cow’s horn, his thumb on the small end,  
raised it high in the air.  
‘To the Tenth Muse, and to your interview with her!’  
And removing his thumb, he sent a steady jet into his open mouth, and having  
drained the horn without drawing breath, licked his lips, handed it to  
Philammon, and flew ravenously upon the fish and onions.  
Philammon, to whom the whole was supremely absurd, had no invocation to  
make, but one which he felt too sacred for his present temper of mind: so he  
attempted to imitate the little man’s feat, and, of course, poured the beer into his  
eyes, and up his nose, and in his bosom, and finally choked himself black in the  
face, while his host observed smilingly—  
‘Aha, rustic! unacquainted with the ancient and classical customs preserved in  
this centre of civilisation by the descendants of Alexander’s heroes? Judith! clear  
the table. Now to the sanctuary of the Muses!’  
Philammon rose, and finished his meal by a monkish grace. A gentle and  
reverent ‘Amen’ rose from the other end of the room. It was the negress. She saw  
him look up at her, dropped her eyes modestly, and bustled away with the  
remnants, while Philammon and his host started for Hypatia’s lecture-room.  
‘Your wife is a Christian?’ asked he when they were outside the door.  
‘Ahem—! The barbaric mind is prone to superstition. Yet she is, being but a  
woman and a negress, a good soul, and thrifty, though requiring, like all lower  
animals, occasional chastisement. I married her on philosophic grounds. A wife  
was necessary to me for several reasons: but mindful that the philosopher should  
subjugate the material appetite, and rise above the swinish desires of the flesh,  
even when his nature requires him to satisfy them, I purposed to make pleasure  
as unpleasant as possible. I had the choice of several cripples—their parents, of  
ancient Macedonian family like myself, were by no means adverse; but I  
required a housekeeper, with whose duties the want of an arm or a leg might  
have interfered.’  
‘Why did you not marry a scold?’ asked Philammon.  
‘Pertinently observed: and indeed the example of Socrates rose luminous more  
than once before my imagination. But philosophic calm, my dear youth, and the  
peaceful contemplation of the ineffable? I could not relinquish those luxuries. So  
having, by the bounty of Hypatia and her pupils, saved a small suns, I went out  
bought me a negress, and hired six rooms in the block we have just left, where I  
let lodgings to young students of the Divine Philosophy.’  
‘Have you any lodgers now?’  
‘Ahem! Certain rooms are occupied by a lady of rank. The philosopher will,  
above all things, abstain from babbling. To bridle the tongue, is to—But there is  
a closet at your service; and for the hall of reception, which you have just left—  
are you not a kindred and fraternal spark? We can combine our meals, as our  
souls are already united.’  
Philammon thanked him heartily for the offer, though he shrank from accepting  
it; and in ten minutes more found himself at the door of the very house which he  
had been watching the night before. It was she, then, whom he had seen! .... He  
was handed over by a black porter to a smart slave-girl, who guided him up,  
through cloisters and corridors, to the large library, where five or six young men  
were sitting, busily engaged, under Theon’s superintendence, in copying  
manuscripts and drawing geometric diagrams.  
Philammon gazed curiously at these symbols of a science unknown to him, and  
wondered whether the day would ever come when he too would understand their  
mysteries; but his eyes fell again as he saw the youths staring at his ragged  
sheepskin and matted locks with undisguised contempt. He could hardly collect  
himself enough to obey the summons of the venerable old man, as he beckoned  
him silently out of the room, and led him, with the titters of the young students  
ringing in his ears, through the door by which he had entered, and along a  
gallery, till he stopped and knocked humbly at a door …. She must be within!  
knocked together under him. His heart sank and sank into abysses! Poor wretch!  
.... He was half minded once to escape and dash into the street …. but was it not  
his one hope, his one object? .... But why did not that old man speak? If he  
would have but said something! .... If he would only have looked cross,  
contemptuous! .... But with the same impressive gravity, as of a man upon a  
business in which he had no voice, and wished it to be understood that lie had  
none, the old man silently opened the door, and Philammon followed …. There  
she was! looking more glorious than ever; more than when glowing with the  
enthusiasm of her own eloquence; more than when transfigured last night in  
golden tresses and glittering moonbeams. There she sat, without moving a finger,  
as the two entered. She greeted her father with a smile, which made up for all her  
seeming want of courtesy to him, and then fixed her large gray eyes full on  
Philammon.  
‘Here is the youth, my daughter. It was your wish, you know; and I always  
believe that you know best—’  
Another smile put an end to this speech, and the old man retreated humbly  
toward another door, with a somewhat anxious visage, and then lingering and  
looking back, his hand upon the latch—  
‘If you require any one, you know, you have only to call—we shall be all in the  
library.’  
Another smile; and the old man disappeared, leaving the two alone.  
Philammon stood trembling, choking, his eyes fixed on the floor. Where were all  
the fine things he had conned over for the occasion? He dared not look up at that  
face, lest it should drive them out of his head. And yet the more lie kept his eyes  
turned from the face, the more lie was conscious of it, conscious that it was  
watching him; and the more all the fine words were, by that very knowledge,  
driven out of his head …. When would she speak? Perhaps she wished him to  
speak first. It was her duty to begin, for she had sent for him …. But still she  
kept silence, and sat scanning him intently from head to foot, herself as  
motionless as a statue; her hands folded together before her, over the manuscript  
which lay upon her knee. If there was a blush on her cheek at her own daring, his  
eyes swam too much to notice it.  
When would the intolerable suspense end? She was, perhaps, as unwilling to  
speak as he. But some one must strike the first blow: and, as often happens, the  
weaker party, impelled by sheer fear, struck it, and broke the silence in a tone  
half indignant, half apologetic—  
‘You sent for me hither!’  
‘I did. It seemed to me, as I watched you during my lecture, both before and  
after you were rude enough to interrupt me, that your offence was one of mere  
youthful ignorance. It seemed to me that your countenance bespoke a nobler  
nature than that which the gods are usually pleased to bestow upon monks. That  
I may now ascertain whether or not my surmises were correct, I ask you for what  
purpose are you come hither?’  
Philammon hailed the question as a godsend.—Now for his message! And yet he  
faltered as he answered, with a desperate effort,—‘To rebuke you for your sins.’  
‘My sins! What sins?’she asked, as she looked up with a stately, slow surprise in  
those large gray eyes, before which his own glance sank abashed, he knew not  
why. What sins?—He knew not. Did she look like a Messalina? But was she not  
a heathen and a sorceress?— And yet he blushed, and stammered, and hung  
down his head, as, shrinking at the sound of his own words, he replied—  
‘The foul sorceries—and profligacy worse than sorceries, in which, they say—’  
He could get no farther: for he looked up again and saw an awful quiet smile  
upon that face. His words had raised no blush upon the marble cheek.  
‘They say! The bigots and slanderers; wild beasts of the desert, and fanatic  
intriguers, who, in the words of Him they call their master, compass heaven and  
earth to make one proselyte, and when they have found him, make him two-fold  
more the child of hell than themselves. Go—I forgive you: you are young, and  
know not yet the mystery of the world. Science will teach you some day that the  
outward frame is the sacrament of the soul’s inward beauty. Such a soul I had  
fancied your face expressed; but I was mistaken. Foul hearts alone harbour such  
foul suspicions, and fancy others to be what they know they might become  
themselves. Go! Do I look like—? The very tapering of these fingers, if you  
could read their symbolism, would give your dream the lie.’ And she flashed full  
on him, like sun-rays from a mirror, the full radiance of her glorious  
countenance.  
Alas, poor Philammon! where were thy eloquent arguments, thy orthodox  
theories then? Proudly he struggled with his own man’s heart of flesh, and tried  
to turn his eyes away; the magnet might as well struggle to escape from the spell  
of the north. In a moment, he knew not how, utter shame, remorse, longing for  
forgiveness, swept over him, and crushed him down; and he found himself on his  
knees before her, in abject and broken syllables entreating pardon.  
‘Go—I forgive you. But know before you go, that the celestial milk which fell  
from Here’s bosom, bleaching the plant which it touched to everlasting  
whiteness, was not more taintless than the soul of Theon’s daughter.’  
He looked up in her face as he knelt before her. Unerring instinct told him that  
her words were true. He was a monk, accustomed to believe animal sin to be the  
deadliest and worst of all sins— indeed, ‘the great offence’ itself, beside which  
all others were comparatively venial: where there was physical purity, must not  
all other virtues follow in its wake? All other failings were invisible under the  
dazzling veil of that great loveliness; and in his self- abasement he went on—  
‘Oh, do not spurn me!—do not drive me away! I have neither friend, home, nor  
teacher. I fled last night from the men of my own faith, maddened by bitter insult  
and injustice—disappointed and disgusted with their ferocity, narrowness,  
ignorance. I dare not, I cannot, I will not return to the obscurity and the dulness  
of a Thebaid Laura. I have a thousand doubts to solve, a thousand questions to  
ask, about that great ancient world of which I know nothing—of whose  
mysteries, they say, you alone possess the key! I am a Christian; but I thirst for  
knowledge …. I do not promise to believe you-I do not promise to obey you; but  
let me hear! Teach me what you know, that I may compare it with what I know  
…. If indeed’ (and he shuddered as he spoke the words) ‘I do know anything!’  
‘Have you forgotten the epithets which you used to me just now?’  
‘No, no! But do you forget them; they were put into my mouth. I—I did not  
believe them when I said them. It was agony to me; but I did it, as I thought, for  
your sake—to save you. Oh, say that I may come and hear you again! Only from  
a distance—in the very farthest corner of your lecture-room. I will be silent; you  
shall never see me. But your words yesterday awoke in me—no, not doubts; but  
still I must, I must hear more, or be as miserable and homeless inwardly as I am  
in my outward circumstances!’ And he looked up imploringly for consent.  
‘Rise. This passion and that attitude are fitting neither for you nor me.’  
And as Philammon rose, she rose also, went into the library to her father, and in  
a few minutes returned with him.  
‘Come with me, young man,’said he, laying his hand kindly enough on  
Philammon’s shoulder …. ‘The rest of this matter you and I can settle;’ and  
Philammon followed him, not daring to look back at Hypatia, while the whole  
room swam before his eyes.  
‘So, so I hear you have been saying rude things to my daughter. Well, she has  
forgiven you—’  
‘Has she?’ asked the young monk, with an eager start.  
‘Ah! you may well look astonished. But I forgive you too. It is lucky for you,  
however, that I did not hear you, or else, old man as I am, I can’t say what I  
might not have done. Ah! you little know, you little know what she is.—and the  
old pedant’s eyes kindled with loving pride. ‘May the gods give you some day  
such a daughter!— that is, if you learn to deserve it—as virtuous as she is wise,  
as wise as she is beautiful. Truly they have repaid me for my labours in their  
service. Look, young man! little as you merit it, here is a pledge of your  
forgiveness, such as the richest and noblest in Alexandria are glad to purchase  
with many an ounce of gold—a ticket of free admission to all her lectures  
henceforth! Now go; you have been favoured beyond your deserts, and should  
learn that the philosopher can practise what the Christian only preaches, and  
return good for evil.’ And he put into Philammon’s hand a slip of paper, and bid  
one of the secretaries show him to the outer door.  
The youths looked up at him from their writing as he passed, with faces of  
surprise and awe, and evidently thinking no more about the absurdity of his  
sheepskin and his tanned complexion; and be went out with a stunned, confused  
feeling, as of one who, by a desperate leap, has plunged into a new world. He  
tried to feel content; but be dare not. All before him was anxiety, uncertainty. He  
had cut himself adrift; he was on the great stream. Whither would it lead him?  
Well—was it not the great stream? Had not all mankind, for all the ages, been  
floating on it? Or was it but a desert-river, dwindling away beneath the fiery sun,  
destined to lose itself a few miles on, among the arid sands? Were Arsenius and  
the faith of his childhood right? And was the Old World coming speedily to its  
death-throe, and the Kingdom of God at hand? Or was Cyril right, and the  
Church Catholic appointed to spread, and conquer, and destroy, and rebuild, till  
the kingdoms of this world had become the kingdoms of God and of His Christ!  
If so, what use in this old knowledge which he craved? And yet, if the day of the  
destruction of all things were at hand, and the times destined to become worse  
and not better, till the end-how could that be? ....  
‘What news?’ asked the little porter, who had been waiting for him at the door all  
the while. ‘What news, O favourite of the gods!’  
‘I will lodge with you, and labour with you. Ask me no more at present. I am—I  
am—  
‘Those who descended into the Cave of Trophonius, and beheld the unspeakable,  
remained astonished for three days, my young friend— and so will you!’ And  
they went forth together to earn their bread.  
But what is Hypatia doing all this while, upon that cloudy Olympus, where she  
sits enshrined far above the noise and struggle of man and his work-day world?  
She is sitting again, with her manuscripts open before her; but she is thinking of  
the young monk, not of them.  
‘Beautiful as Antinous! .... Rather as the young Phoebus himself, fresh glowing  
from the slaughter of the Python. Why should not he, too, become a slayer of  
Pythons, and loathsome monsters, bred from the mud of sense and matter? So  
bold and earnest! I can forgive him those words for the very fact of his having  
dared, here in my fathers house, to say them to me …. And yet so tender, so  
open to repentance and noble shame!—That is no plebeian by birth; patrician  
blood surely flows in those veins; it shows out in every attitude, every tone,  
every motion of the hand and lip. lie cannot be one of the herd. Who ever knew  
one of them crave after knowledge for its own sake? .... And I have longed so for  
one real pupil! I have longed so to find one such man, among the effeminate  
selfish triflers who pretend to listen to me. I thought I had found one— and the  
moment that I had lost him, behold, I find another; and that a fresher, purer,  
simpler nature than ever Raphael’s was at its best. By all the laws of  
physiognomy—by all the symbolism of gesture and voice and complexion—by  
the instinct of my own heart, that young monk might he the instrument, the  
ready, valiant, obedient instrument, for carrying out all my dreams. If I could but  
train him into a Longinus, I could dare to play the part of a Zenobia, with him as  
counseller …. And for my Odenatus—Orestes? Horrible!’  
She covered her face with her hand a minute. ‘No!’she said, dashing away the  
tears—‘That—and anything—and everything for the cause of Philosophy and  
the gods!’  
CHAPTER XI: THE LAURA AGAIN  
Not a sound, not a moving object, broke the utter stillness of the glen of Scetis.  
The shadows of the crags, though paling every moment before the spreading  
dawn, still shrouded all the gorge in gloom. A winding line of haze slept above  
the course of the rivulet. The plumes of the palm-trees hung motionless, as if  
awaiting in resignation the breathless blaze of the approaching day. At length,  
among the green ridges of the monastery garden, two gray figures rose from  
their knees, and began, with slow and feeble strokes, to break the silence by the  
clatter of their hoes among the pebbles.  
‘These beans grow wonderfully, brother Aufugus. We shall be able to sow our  
second crop, by God’s blessing, a week earlier than we did last year.’  
The person addressed returned no answer; and his companion, after watching  
him for some time in silence, recommenced-  
‘What is it, my brother? I have remarked lately a melancholy about you, which is  
hardly fitting for a man of God.’  
A deep sigh was the only answer. The speaker laid down his hoe, and placing his  
hand affectionately on the shoulder of Aufugus, asked again-  
‘What is it, my friend? I will not claim with you my abbot’s right to know the  
secrets of your heart: but surely that breast hides nothing which is unworthy to  
be spoken to me, however unworthy I may he to hear it!’  
‘Why should I not be sad, Pambo, my friend? Does not Solomon say that there is  
a time for mourning?’  
‘True: but a time for mirth also.’  
‘None to the penitent, burdened with the guilt of many sins.’  
‘Recollect what the blessed Anthony used to say—“Trust not in thine own  
righteousness, and regret not that which is past.”’  
‘I do neither, Pambo.’  
‘Do not be too sure of that. Is it not because thou art still trusting in thyself, that  
thou dost regret the past, which shows thee that thou art not that which thou  
wouldst gladly pride thyself on being?’  
‘Pambo, my friend,’said Arsenius solemnly, ‘I will tell thee all. My sins are not  
yet past; for Honorius, my pupil, still lives, and in him lives the weakness and  
the misery of Rome. My sins past? If they are, why do I see rising before me,  
night after night, that train of accusing spectres, ghosts of men slain in battle,  
widows and orphans, virgins of the Lord shrieking in the grasp of barbarians,  
who stand by my bedside and cry, “Hadst thou done thy duty, we had not been  
thus! Where is that imperial charge which God committed to thee?”’ .... And the  
old man hid his face in his hands and wept bitterly.  
Pambo laid his hand again tenderly on the weeper’s shoulder.  
‘Is there no pride here, my brother? Who art thou, to change the fate of nations  
and the hearts of emperors, which are in the hand of the King of kings? If thou  
wert weak, and imperfect in thy work— for unfaithful, I will warrant thee, thou  
wert never—He put thee there, because thou wert imperfect, that so that which  
has come to pass might come to pass; and thou bearest thine own burden onlyand yet not thou, but He who bore it for thee.’  
‘Why then am I tormented by these nightly visions?’  
‘Fear them not, friend. They are spirits of evil, and therefore lying spirits. Were  
they good spirits they would speak to thee only in pity, forgiveness,  
encouragement. But be they ghosts or demons, they must be evil, because they  
are accusers, like the Evil One himself, the accuser of the saints. He is the father  
of lies, and his children will be like himself. What said the blessed Anthony?  
That a monk should not busy his brain with painting spectres, or give himself up  
for lost; but rather be cheerful, as one who knows that he is redeemed, and in the  
hands of the Lord, where the Evil One has no power to hurt him. “For,” he used  
to say, “the demons behave to us even as they find us. If they see us east down  
and faithless, they terrify us still more, that they may plunge us in despair. But if  
they see us full of faith, and joyful in the Lord, with our souls filled with the  
glory which shall be, then they shrink abashed, and flee away in confusion.”  
Cheer up, friend! such thoughts are of the night, the hour of Satan and of the  
powers of darkness; and with the dawn they flee away.’  
‘And yet things are revealed to men upon their beds, in visions of the night’  
‘Be it so. Nothing, at all events, has been revealed to thee upon thy bed, except  
that which thou knowest already far better than Satan does, namely, that thou art  
a sinner. But for me, my friend, though I doubt not that such things are, it is the  
day, and not the night, which brings revelations.’  
‘How, then?’  
‘Because by day I can see to read that book which is written, like the Law given  
on Sinai, upon tables of stone, by the finger of God Himself.’  
Arsenius looked up at him inquiringly. Pambo smiled.  
‘Thou knowest that, like many holy men of old, I am no scholar, and knew not  
even the Greek tongue, till thou, out of thy brotherly kindness, taughtest it to me.  
But hast thou never heard what Anthony said to a certain Pagan who reproached  
him with his ignorance of books? “Which is first,” he asked, “spirit, or letter?—  
Spirit, sayest thou? Then know, the healthy spirit needs no letters. My book is  
the whole creation, lying open before me, wherein I can read, whensoever I  
please, the word of God.”’  
‘Dost thou not undervalue learning, my friend?’  
‘I am old among monks, and have seen much of their ways; and among them my  
simplicity seems to have seen this—many a man wearing himself with study, and  
tormenting his soul as to whether he believed rightly this doctrine and that, while  
he knew not with Solomon that in much learning is much sorrow, and that while  
he was puzzling at the letter of God’s message, the spirit of it was going fast and  
faster out of him.’  
‘And how didst thou know that of such a man?’  
‘By seeing him become a more and more learned theologian, and more and more  
zealous for the letter of orthodoxy; and yet less and less loving and merciful—  
less and less full of trust in God, and of hopeful thoughts for himself and for his  
brethren, till he seemed to have darkened his whole soul with disputations,  
which breed only strife, and to have forgotten utterly the message which is  
written in that book wherewith the blessed Anthony was content’ ‘Of what  
message dost thou speak?’  
‘Look,’said the old abbot, stretching his hand toward the Eastern desert, ‘and  
judge, like a wise man, for thyself!’  
As he spoke, a long arrow of level light flashed down the gorge from crag to  
crag, awakening every crack and slab to vividness and life. The great crimson  
sun rose swiftly through the dim night-mist of the desert, and as he poured his  
glory down the glen, the haze rose in threads and plumes, and vanished, leaving  
the stream to sparkle round the rocks, like the living, twinkling eye of the whole  
scene. Swallows flashed by hundreds out of the cliffs, and began their air- dance  
for the day; the jerboa hopped stealthily homeward on his stilts from his stolen  
meal in the monastery garden; the brown sand- lizards underneath the stones  
opened one eyelid each, and having satisfied themselves that it was day, dragged  
their bloated bodies and whip-like tails out into the most burning patch of gravel  
which they could find, and nestling together as a further protection against cold,  
fell fast asleep again; the buzzard, who considered himself lord of the valley,  
awoke with a long querulous bark, and rising aloft in two or three vast rings, to  
stretch himself after his night’s sleep, bung motionless, watching every lark  
which chirruped on the cliffs; while from the far-off Nile below, the awakening  
croak of pelicans, the clang of geese, the whistle of the godwit and curlew, came  
ringing up the windings of the glen; and last of all the voices of the monks rose  
chanting a morning hymn to some wild Eastern air; and a new day had begun in  
Seetis, like those which went before, and those which were to follow after, week  
after week, year after year, of toil and prayer as quiet as its sleep.  
‘What does that teach thee, Aufugus, my friend?’  
Arsenius was silent.  
‘To me it teaches this: that God is light, and in Him is no darkness at all. That in  
His presence is life, and fulness of joy for evermore. That He is the giver, who  
delights in His own bounty; the lover, whose mercy is over all His works—and  
why not over thee, too, O thou of little faith? Look at those thousand birds—and  
without our Father not one of them shall fall to the ground: and art thou not of  
more value than many sparrows, thou for whom God sent His Son to die? .... Ah,  
my friend, we must look out and around to see what God is like. It is when we  
persist in turning our eyes inward, and prying curiously over our own  
imperfections, that we learn to make a God after our own image, and fancy that  
our own darkness and hardness of heart are the patterns of His light and love.’  
‘Thou speakest rather as a philosopher than as a penitent Catholic. For me, I feel  
that I want to look more, and not less, inward. Deeper self-examination,  
completer abstraction, than I can attain even here, are what I crave for. I long—  
forgive me, my friend—but I long more and more, daily, for the solitary life.  
This earth is accursed by man’s sin: the less we see of it, it seems to me, the  
better.’  
‘I may speak as a philosopher, or as a heathen, for aught I know: yet it seems to  
me that, as they say, the half loaf is better than none; that the wise man will make  
the best of what he has, and throw away no lesson because the book is somewhat  
torn and soiled. The earth teaches me thus far already. Shall I shut my eyes to  
those invisible things of God which are clearly manifested by the things which  
are made, because some day they will be more clearly manifested than now? But  
as for more abstraction, are we so worldly here in Scetis?’  
‘Nay, my friend, each man has surely his vocation, and for each some peculiar  
method of life is more edifying than another. In my case, the habits of mind  
which I acquired in the world will cling to me in spite of myself even here. I  
cannot help watching the doings of others, studying their characters, planning  
and plotting for them, trying to prognosticate their future fate. Not a word, not a  
gesture of this our little family, but turns away my mind from the one thing  
needful.’  
‘And do you fancy that the anchorite in his cell has fewer distractions?’  
‘What can he have but the supply of the mere necessary wants of life? and them,  
even, he may abridge to the gathering of a few roots and herbs. Men have lived  
like the beasts already, that they might at the same time live like the angels—and  
why should not I also?’  
‘And thou art the wise man of the world—the student of the hearts of others—  
the anatomiser of thine own? Hast thou not found out that, besides a craving  
stomach, man carries with him a corrupt heart? Many a man I have seen who, in  
his haste to fly from the fiends without him, has forgotten to close the door of his  
heart against worse fiends who were ready to harbour within him. Many a monk,  
friend, changes his place, but not the anguish of his soul. I have known those  
who, driven to feed on their own thoughts in solitude, have desperately cast  
themselves from cliffs or ripped up their own bodies, in the longing to escape  
from thoughts, from which one companion, one kindly voice, might have  
delivered them. I have known those, too, who have been so puffed up by those  
very penances which were meant to humble them, that they have despised all  
means of grace, as though they were already perfect, and refusing even the Holy  
Eucharist, have lived in self-glorying dreams and visions suggested by the evil  
spirits. One such I knew, who, in the madness? of his pride, refused to be  
counselled by any mortal man— saying that he would call no man master: and  
what befell him? He who used to pride himself on wandering a day’s journey  
into the desert without food or drink, who boasted that he could sustain life for  
three months at a time only on wild herbs and the Blessed Bread, seized with an  
inward fire, fled from his cell back to the theatres, the circus, and the taverns,  
and ended his miserable days in desperate gluttony, holding all things to be but  
phantasms, denying his own existence, and that of God Himself.’  
Arsenius shook his head.  
‘Be it so. But my case is different. I have yet more to confess, my friend. Day by  
day I am more and more haunted by the remembrance of that world from which  
I fled. I know that if I returned I should feel no pleasure in those pomps, which,  
even while I battened on them, I despised. Can I hear any more the voice of  
singing men and singing women; or discern any longer what I eat or what I  
drink? And yet—the palaces of those seven hills, their statesmen and their  
generals, their intrigues, their falls, and their triumphs—for they might rise and  
conquer yet!—for no moment are they out of my imagination,-no moment in  
which they are not tempting me back to them, like a moth to the candle which  
has already scorched him, with a dreadful spell, which I must at last obey, wretch  
that I am, against my own will, or break by fleeing into some outer desert, from  
whence return will be impossible!’  
Pambo smiled.  
‘Again, I say, this is the worldly-wise man, the searcher of hearts! And he would  
fain flee from the little Laura, which does turn his thoughts at times from such  
vain dreams, to a solitude where he will be utterly unable to escape those  
dreams. Well, friend!—and what if thou art troubled at times by anxieties and  
schemes for this brother and for that? Better to be anxious for others than only  
for thyself. Better to have something to love—even something to weep over—  
than to become in some lonely cavern thine own world,— perhaps, as more than  
one whom I have known, thine own God.’  
‘Do you know what you are saying?’ asked Arsenius in a startled tone.  
‘I say, that by fleeing into solitude a man cuts himself off from all which makes a  
Christian man; from law, obedience, fellow-help, self-sacrifice—from the  
communion of saints itself.’  
‘How then?’  
‘How canst thou hold communion with those toward whom thou canst show no  
love? And how canst thou show thy love but by works of love?’  
‘I can, at least, pray day and night for all mankind. Has that no place—or rather,  
has it not the mightiest place—in the communion of saints!  
‘He who cannot pray for his brothers whom he does see, and whose sins and  
temptations he knows, will pray but dully, my friend Aufugus, for his brothers  
whom he does not see, or for anything else. And he who will not labour for his  
brothers, the same will soon cease to pray for them, or love them either. And  
then, what is written? “If a man love not his brother whom he hath seen, how  
will he love God whom he hath not seen?”’  
‘Again, I say, do you know whither your argument leads?’  
‘I am a plain man, and know nothing about arguments. If a thing be true, let it  
lead where it will, for it leads where God wills.’  
‘But at this rate, it were better for a man to take a wife, and have children, and  
mix himself up in all the turmoil of carnal affections, in order to have as many as  
possible to love, and fear for, and work for.’  
Pambo was silent for a while.  
‘I am a monk and no logician. But this I say, that thou leavest not the Laura for  
the desert with my good will. I would rather, had I my wish, see thy wisdom  
installed somewhere nearer the metropolis— at Troe or Canopus, for example—  
where thou mightest be at hand to fight the Lord’s battles. Why wert thou taught  
worldly wisdom, but to use it for the good of the Church? It is enough. Let us  
go.’  
And the two old men walked homeward across the valley, little guessing the  
practical answer which was ready for their argument in Abbot Pambo’s cell, in  
the shape of a tall and grim ecclesiastic, who was busily satisfying his hunger  
with dates and millet, and by no means refusing the palm-wine, the sole delicacy  
of the monastery, which had been brought forth only in honour of a guest.  
The stately and courtly hospitality of Eastern manners, as well as the selfrestraining kindliness of monastic Christianity, forbade the abbot to interrupt the  
stranger; and it was not till he had finished a hearty meal that Pambo asked his  
name and errand.  
‘My unworthiness is called Peter the Reader. I come from Cyril, with letters and  
messages to the brother Aufugus.’  
Pambo rose, and bowed reverentially.  
‘We have heard your good report, sir, as of one zealously affected in the cause of  
the Church Catholic. Will it please you to follow us to the cell of Aufugus?’  
Peter stalked after them with a sufficiently important air to the little hut, and  
there taking from his bosom Cyril’s epistle, handed it to Arsenius, who sat long,  
reading and re-reading with a clouded brow, while Pambo watched him with  
simple awe, not daring to interrupt by a question lucubrations which he  
considered of unfathomable depth.  
‘These are indeed the last days,’said Arsenius at length, ‘spoken of by the  
prophet, when many shall run to and fro. So Heraclian has actually sailed for  
Italy?’  
‘His armament was met on the high seas by Alexandrian merchantmen, three  
weeks ago.’  
‘And Orestes hardens his heart more and more?’  
‘Ay, Pharaoh that he is; or rather, the heathen woman hardens it for him.’  
‘I always feared that woman above all the schools of the heathen,’said Arsenius.  
‘But the Count Heraclian, whom I always held for the wisest as well as the most  
righteous of men! Alas what virtue will withstand, when ambition enters the  
heart!’  
‘Fearful, truly,’said Peter, ‘is that same lust of power: but for him, I have never  
trusted him since he began to be indulgent to those Donatists.’  
‘Too true. So does one sin beget another.’  
‘And I consider that indulgence to sinners is the worst of all sins whatsoever.’  
‘Not of all, surely, reverend sir?’said Pambo humbly. But Peter, taking no notice  
of the interruption, went on to Arsenius—  
‘And now, what answer am I to bear back from your wisdom to his holiness?’  
‘Let me see—let me see. He might—it needs consideration—I ought to know  
more of the state of parties. He has, of course, communicated with the African  
bishops, and tried to unite them with him?’  
‘Two months ago. But the stiff-necked schismatics are still jealous of him, and  
hold aloof.’  
‘Schismatics is too harsh a term, my friend. But has he sent to Constantinople?’  
‘He needs a messenger accustomed to courts. It was possible, he thought, that  
your experience might undertake the mission.’  
‘Me? Who am I? Alas! alas! fresh temptations daily! Let him send by the hand  
of whom he will …. And yet—were I—at least in Alexandria—I might advise  
from day to day …. I should certainly see my way clearer …. And unforeseen  
chances might arise, too …. Pambo, my friend, thinkest thou that it would be  
sinful to obey the Holy Patriarch?’  
‘Aha!’said Pambo, laughing, ‘and thou art he who was for fleeing into the desert  
an hour agone! And now, when once thou smellest the battle afar off, thou art  
pawing in the valley, like the old war- horse. Go, and God be with thee! Thou  
wilt be none the worse for it. Thou art too old to fall in love, too poor to buy a  
bishopric, and too righteous to have one given thee.’  
‘Art thou in earnest?’  
‘What did I say to thee in the garden? Go, and see our son, and send me news of  
him.’  
‘Ah! shame on my worldly-mindedness! I had forgotten all this time to inquire  
for him. How is the youth, reverend sir?’  
‘Whom do you mean?’  
‘Philammon, our spiritual son, whom we sent down to you three months ago,’  
said Pambo. ‘Risen to honour he is, by this time, I doubt not?’  
‘He? He is gone!’  
‘Gone?’  
‘Ay, the wretch, with the curse of Judas on him. He had not been with us three  
days before he beat me openly in the patriarch’s court, cast off the Christian  
faith, and fled away to the heathen woman, Hypatia, of whom he is enamoured.’  
The two old men looked at each other with blank and horror-stricken faces.  
‘Enamoured of Hypatia?’said Arsenius at last.  
‘It is impossible!’sobbed Pambo. ‘The boy must have been treated harshly,  
unjustly? Some one has wronged him, and he was accustomed only to kindness,  
and could not bear it. Cruel men that you are, and unfaithful stewards. The Lord  
will require the child’s blood at your hands!’  
‘Ay,’said Peter, rising fiercely, that is the world’s justice! Blame me, blame the  
patriarch, blame any and every one but the sinner. As if a hot head and a hotter  
heart were not enough to explain it all! As if a young fool had never before been  
bewitched by a fair face!’  
‘Oh, my friends, my friends,’ cried Arsenius, ‘why revile each other without  
cause? I, I only am to blame. I advised you, Pambo!—I sent him—I ought to  
have known—what was I doing, old worldling that I am, to thrust the poor  
innocent forth into the temptations of Babylon? This comes of all my schemings  
and my plottings! And now his blood will be on my head-as if I bad not sins  
enough to bear already, I must go and add this over and above all, to sell my own  
Joseph, the son of my old age, to the Midianites! Here, I will go with you—now  
—at once—I will not rest till I find hint, clasp his knees till he pities my gray  
hairs! Let Heraclian and Orestes go their way for aught I care—I will find him, I  
say. O Absalom, my son! would to God I had died for thee, my son! my son!’  
CHAPTER XII: THE BOWER OF ACRASIA  
The house which Pelagia and the Amal had hired after their return to Alexandria,  
was one of the most splendid in the city. They had been now living there three  
months or more, and in that time Pelagia’s taste had supplied the little which it  
needed to convert it into a paradise of lazy luxury. She herself was wealthy; and  
her Gothic guests, overburdened with Roman spoils, the very use of which they  
could not understand, freely allowed her and her nymphs to throw away for them  
the treasures which they had won in many a fearful fight. What matter? If they  
had enough to eat, and more than enough to drink, how could the useless surplus  
of their riches be better spent than in keeping their ladies in good humour? ....  
And when it was all gone….they would go somewhere or other—who cared  
whither?—and win more. The whole world was before them waiting to be  
plundered, and they would fulfil their mission, whensoever it suited them. In the  
meantime they were in no hurry. Egypt furnished in profusion every sort of food  
which could gratify palates far more nice than theirs. And as for wine—few of  
them went to bed sober from one week’s end to another. Could the souls of  
warriors have more, even in the halls of Valhalla?  
So thought the party who occupied the inner court of the house, one blazing  
afternoon in the same week in which Cyril’s messenger had so rudely broken in  
on the repose of the Scetis. Their repose, at least, was still untouched. The great  
city roared without; Orestes plotted, and Cyril counterplotted, and the fate of a  
continent hung —or seemed to hang—trembling in the balance; but the turmoil  
of it no more troubled those lazy Titans within, than did the roll and rattle of the  
carriage-wheels disturb the parakeets and sunbirds which peopled, under an  
awning of gilded wire, the inner court of Pelagia’s house. Why should they fret  
themselves with it all? What was every fresh riot, execution, conspiracy,  
bankruptcy, but a sign- that the fruit was growing ripe for the plucking? Even  
Heraclian’s rebellion, and Orestes’suspected conspiracy, were to the younger  
and coarser Goths a sort of child’s play, at which they could look on and laugh,  
and bet, from morning till night; while to the more cunning heads, such as Wulf  
and Smid, they were but signs of the general rottenness-new cracks in those  
great walls over which they intended, with a simple and boyish consciousness of  
power, to mount to victory when they chose.  
And in the meantime, till the right opening offered, what was there better than to  
eat, drink, and sleep? And certainly they had chosen a charming retreat in which  
to fulfil that lofty mission. Columns of purple and green porphyry, among which  
gleamed the white limbs of delicate statues, surrounded a basin of water, fed by a  
perpetual jet, which sprinkled with cool spray the leaves of the oranges and  
mimosas, mingling its murmurs with the warblings of the tropic birds which  
nestled among the branches.  
On one side of the fountain, under the shade of a broad-leaved palmetto, lay the  
Amal’s mighty limbs, stretched out on cushions, his yellow hair crowned with  
vine-leaves, his hand grasping a golden cup, which had been won from Indian  
Rajahs by Parthian Chosroos, from Chosroos by Roman generals, from Roman  
generals by the heroes of sheepskin and horsehide; while Pelagia, by the side of  
the sleepy Hercules-Dionysos, lay leaning over the brink of the fountain, lazily  
dipping her fingers into the water, and basking, like the gnats which hovered  
over its surface, in the mere pleasure of existence.  
On the opposite brink of the basin, tended each by a dark-eyed Hebe, who filled  
the wine-cups, and helped now and then to empty them, lay the especial friends  
and companions in arms of the Amal, Goderic the son of Ermenric, and  
Agilmund the son of Cniva, who both, like the Amal, boasted a descent from  
gods; and last, but not least, that most important and all but sacred personage,  
Smid the son of Troll, reverenced for cunning beyond the sons of men; for not  
only could he make and mend all matters, from a pontoon bridge to a gold  
bracelet, shoe horses and doctor them, charm all diseases out of man and beast,  
carve runes, interpret war-omens, foretell weather, raise the winds, and finally,  
conquer in the battle of mead-horns all except Wulf the son of Ovida; but he had  
actually, during a sojourn among the half-civilised Maesogoths, picked up a fair  
share of Latin and Greek, and a rough knowledge of reading and writing.  
A few yards off lay old Wulf upon his back, his knees in the air, his hands  
crossed behind his head, keeping up, even in his sleep, a half-conscious  
comment of growls on the following intellectual conversation:—  
‘Noble wine this, is it not?’  
‘Perfect. Who bought it for us?’  
‘Old Miriam bought it, at some great tax-farmer’s sale. The fellow was bankrupt,  
and Miriam said she got it for the half what it was worth.’  
‘Serve the penny-turning rascal right. The old vixen-fox took care, I’ll warrant  
her, to get her profit out of the bargain.’  
‘Never mind if she did. We can afford to pay like men, if we earn like men.’  
‘We shan’t afford it long, at this rate,’ growled Wulf.  
‘Then we’ll go and earn more. I am tired of doing nothing.’  
‘People need not do nothing, unless they choose,’said Goderic. ‘Wulf and I had  
coursing fit for a king, the other morning on the sand-hills. I had had no appetite  
for a week before, and I have been as sharp-set as a Danube pike ever since.’  
‘Coursing? What, with those long-legged brush-tailed brutes, like a fox upon  
stilts, which the prefect cozened you into buying.’  
‘All I can say is, that we put up a herd of those—what do you call them here—  
deer with goats’ horns?’  
‘Antelopes?’  
‘That’s it—and the curs ran into them as a falcon does into a skein of ducks.  
Wulf and I galloped and galloped over those accursed sand-heaps till the horses  
stuck fast; and when they got their wind again, we found each pair of dogs with  
a deer down between them—and what can man want more, if he cannot get  
fighting? You eat them, so you need not sneer.’  
‘Well, dogs are the only things worth having, then, that this Alexandria does  
produce.’  
‘Except fair ladies!’ put in one of the girls.  
‘Of course. I’ll except the women. But the men-‘  
‘The what? I have not seen a man since I came here, except a dock- worker or  
two—priests and fine gentlemen they are all—and you don’t call them men,  
surely?’  
‘What on earth do they do, beside riding donkeys?’  
‘Philosophise, they say.’  
‘What’s that?’  
‘I’m sure I don’t know; some sort of slave’s quill-driving, I suppose.’  
‘Pelagia! do you know what philosophising is?’  
‘No—and I don’t care.’  
‘I do,’ quoth Agilmund, with a look of superior wisdom; ‘I saw a philosopher the  
other day.’  
‘And what sort of a thing was it?’  
‘I’ll tell you. I was walking down the great street there, going to the harbour; and  
I saw a crowd of boys—men they call them here— going into a large doorway.  
So I asked one of them what was doing, and the fellow, instead of answering me,  
pointed at my legs, and set all the other monkeys laughing. So I boxed his ears,  
and he tumbled down.’  
‘They all do so here, if you box their ears,’said the Amal meditatively, as if he  
had bit upon a great inductive law.  
‘Ah,’said Pelagia, looking up with her most winning smile, ‘they are not such  
giants as you, who make a poor little woman feel like a gazelle in a lion’s paw!’  
‘Well—it struck me that, as I spoke in Gothic, the boy might not have  
understood me, being a Greek. So I walked in at the door, to save questions, and  
see for myself. And there a fellow held out his hand—I suppose for money, So I  
gave him two or three gold pieces, and a box on the ear, at which he tumbled  
down, of course, but seemed very well satisfied. So I walked in.’  
‘And what did you see?’  
‘A great hall, large enough for a thousand heroes, full of these Egyptian rascals  
scribbling with pencils on tablets. And at the farther end of it the most beautiful  
woman I ever saw—with right fair hair and blue eyes, talking, talking—I could  
not understand it; but the donkey-riders seemed to think it very fine; for they  
went on looking first at her, and then at their tablets, gaping like frogs in  
drought. And, certainly, she looked as fair as the sun, and talked like an Alrunawife. Not that I knew what it was about, but one can see somehow, you know.—  
So I fell asleep; and when I woke, and came out, I met some one who understood  
me, and he told me that it was the famous maiden, the great philosopher. And  
that’s what I know about philosophy.’  
‘She was very much wasted then, on such soft-handed starvelings. Why don’t  
she marry some hero?’  
‘Because there are none here to marry,’said Pelagia; ‘except some who are fast  
netted, I fancy, already.’  
‘But what do they talk about, and tell people to do, these philosophers, Pelagia?’  
‘Oh, they don’t tell any one to do anything—at least, if they do, nobody ever  
does it, as far as I can see; but they talk about suns and stars, and right and  
wrong, and ghosts and spirits, and that sort of thing; and about not enjoying  
oneself too much. Not that I ever saw that they were any happier than any one  
else.’  
‘She must have been an Alruna-maiden,’said Wulf, half to himself.  
‘She is a very conceited creature, and I hate her,’said Pelagia.  
‘I believe you,’said Wulf.  
‘What is an Alruna-maiden?’ asked one of the girls.  
‘Something as like you as a salmon is like a horse-leech. Heroes, will you hear a  
saga?’  
‘If it is a cool one,’said Agilmund; ‘about ice, and pine-trees, and snowstorms, I  
shall be roasted brown in three days more.’  
‘Oh,’said the Amal, ‘that we were on the Alps again for only two hours, sliding  
down those snow-slopes on our shields, with the sleet whistling about our ears!  
That was sport!’  
‘To those who could keep their seat,’said Goderic. ‘Who went head over heels  
into a glacier-crack, and was dug out of fifty feet of snow, and had to be put  
inside a fresh-killed horse before he could be brought to life?’  
‘Not you, surely,’said Pelagia. ‘Oh, you wonderful creature! what things you  
have done and suffered!’  
‘Well,’said the Amal, with a look of stolid self-satisfaction, ‘I suppose I have  
seen a good deal in my time, eh?’  
‘Yes, my Hercules, you have gone through your twelve labours, and saved your  
poor little Hesione after them all, when she was chained to the rock, for the ugly  
sea-monsters to eat; and she will cherish you, and keep you out of scrapes now,  
for her own sake;’ and Pelagia threw her arms round the great bull-neck, and  
drew it down to her.  
‘Will you hear my saga?’said Wulf impatiently.  
‘Of course we will,’said the Amal; ‘anything to pass the time.’  
‘But let it be about snow,’said Agilmund.  
‘Not about Alruna-wives?’  
‘About them, too,’said Goderic; ‘my mother was one, so I must needs stand up  
for them.’  
‘She was, boy. Do you be her son. Now hear, Wolves of the Goths!’  
And the old man took up his little lute, or as he would probably have called it,  
‘fidel,’ and began chanting to his own accompaniment.  
Over the camp fires Drank I with heroes, Under the Donau bank Warm in the  
snow-trench, Sagamen heard I there, Men of the Longbeards, Cunning and  
ancient, Honey-sweet-voiced. Scaring the wolf-cub, Scaring the horn-owl out,  
Shaking the snow-wreaths Down from the pine-boughs, Up to the star-roof Rang  
out their song. Singing how Winil men Over the icefloes Sledging from  
Scanland on Came unto Scoring; Singing of Gambara Freya’s beloved. Mother  
of Ayo Mother of Ibor. Singing of Wendel men, Ambri and Assi; How to the  
Winilfolk Went they with war-words— ‘Few are ye, strangers, And many are  
we; Pay us now toll and fee, Clothyarn, and rings, and beeves; Else at the raven’s  
meal Bide the sharp bill’s doom.’ Clutching the dwarfs’ work then, Clutching the  
bullock’s shell, Girding gray iron on, Forth fared the Winils all, Fared the  
Alruna’s sons, Ayo and Ibor. Mad of heart stalked they Loud wept the women  
all, Loud the Alruna-wife; Sore was their need. Out of the morning land, Over  
the snowdrifts, Beautiful Freya came, Tripping to Scoring. White were the  
moorlands, And frozen before her; But green were the moorlands, And blooming  
behind her, Out of her golden locks Shaking the spring flowers, Out of her  
garments Shaking the south wind, Around in the birches Awaking the throstles,  
And making chaste housewives all Long for their heroes home, Loving and lovegiving, Came she to Scoring. Came unto Gambara, Wisest of Valas— ‘Vala, why  
weepest thou Far in the wide-blue, High up in the Elfin-home, Heard I thy  
weeping.’ ‘Stop not thy weeping, Till one can fight seven, Sons have I, heroes  
tall, First in the sword-play; This day at the Wendels’ hands Eagles must tear  
them; While their mothers, thrall-weary, Must grind for the Wendels’ Wept the  
Alruna-wife; Kissed her fair Freya— ‘Far off in the morning land High in  
Valhalla, A window stands open, Its sill is the snow-peaks, Its posts are the  
water-spouts Storm rack its lintel, Gold cloud-flakes above it Are piled for the  
roofing. Far up to the Elfin-home, High in the wide-blue. Smiles out each  
morning thence Odin Allfather; From under the cloud-eaves, Smiles out on the  
heroes, Smiles out on chaste housewives all, Smiles on the brood-mares, Smiles  
on the smith’s work: And theirs is the sword-luck, With them is the glory— So  
Odin hath sworn it— Who first in the morning Shall meet him and greet him.’  
Still the Alruna wept— ‘Who then shall greet him? Women alone are here: Far  
on the moorlands Behind the war-lindens, In vain for the bill’s doom Watch  
Winil heroes all, One against seven.’ Sweetly the Queen laughed— ‘Hear thou  
my counsel now; Take to thee cunning, Beloved of Freya. Take thou thy womenfolk, Maidens and wives: Over your ankles Lace on the white war-hose; Over  
your bosoms Link up the hard mailnets; Over your lips Plait long tresses with  
cunning;— So war-beasts full bearded King Odin shall deem you, When off the  
gray sea-beach At sunrise ye greet him.’ Night’s son was driving His goldenhaired horses up. Over the Eastern firths High flashed their manes. Smiled from  
the cloud-eaves out Allfather Odin, Waiting the battle-sport: Freya stood by him.  
‘Who are these heroes tall— Lusty-limbed Longbeards? Over the swans’ bath  
Why cry they to me? Bones should be crashing fast, Wolves should be full-fed,  
Where’er such, mad-hearted, Swing hands in the sword-play.’ Sweetly laughed  
Freya— ‘A name thou hast given them— Shames neither thee nor them, Well  
can they wear it. Give them the victory, First have they greeted thee; Give them  
the victory, Yokefellow mine! Maidens and wives are these— Wives of the  
Winils; Few are their heroes And far on the war-road, So over the swans’ bath  
They cry unto thee.’ Royally laughed he then; Dear was that craft to him, Odin  
Allfather, Shaking the clouds. ‘Cunning are women all, Bold and importunate!  
Longbeards their name shall be, Ravens shall thank them: Where the women are  
heroes, What must the men be like? Theirs is the victory; No need of me!’  
\[Footnote: This punning legend may be seen in Paul Warnefrid’s Gesta  
Langobardorum. The metre and language are intended as imitations of those of  
the earlier Eddaic poems.\]  
‘There!’said Wulf, when the song was ended; ‘is that cool enough for you?’  
‘Rather too cool; eh, Pelagia?’said the Amal, laughing.  
‘Ay,’ went on the old man, bitterly enough, ‘such were your mothers; and such  
were your sisters; and such your wives must be, if you intend to last much longer  
on the face of the earth—women who care for something better than good  
eating, strong drinking, and soft lying.’  
‘All very true, Prince Wulf,’said Agilmund, ‘but I don’t like the saga after all. It  
was a great deal too like what Pelagia here says those philosophers talk about—  
right and wrong, and that sort of thing.’  
‘I don’t doubt it.’  
‘Now I like a really good saga, about gods and giants, and the fire kingdoms and  
the snow kingdoms, and the Aesir making men and women out of two sticks,  
and all that.’  
‘Ay,’said the Amal, ‘something like nothing one ever saw in one’s life, all stark  
mad and topsy-turvy, like one’s dreams when one has been drunk; something  
grand which you cannot understand, but which sets you thinking over it all the  
morning after.’  
‘Well,’said Goderic, ‘my mother was an Alruna-woman, so I will not be the bird  
to foul its own nest. But I like to hear about wild beasts and ghosts, ogres, and  
fire-drakes, and nicors—something that one could kill if one had a chance, as  
one’s fathers had.’  
‘Your fathers would never have killed nicors,’said Wulf, ‘if they had been—’  
‘Like us—I know,’said the Amal. ‘Now tell me, prince, you are old enough to  
be our father; and did you ever see a nicor?’  
‘My brother saw one, in the Northern sea, three fathoms long, with the body of a  
bison-bull, and the head of a cat, and the beard of a man, and tusks an ell long,  
lying down on its breast, watching for the fishermen; and he struck it with an  
arrow, so that it fled to the bottom of the sea, and never came up again.’  
‘What is a nicor, Agilmund?’ asked one of the girls.  
‘A sea-devil who eats sailors. There used to be plenty of them where our fathers  
came from, and ogres too, who came out of the fens into the hall at night, when  
the warriors were sleeping, to suck their blood, and steal along, and steal along,  
and jump upon you— so!’  
Pelagia, during the saga, had remained looking into the fountain, and playing  
with the water-drops, in assumed indifference. Perhaps it was to hide burning  
blushes, and something very like two hot tears, which fell unobserved into the  
ripple. Now she looked up suddenly—  
‘And of course you have killed some of these dreadful creatures, Amalric?’  
‘I never had such good luck, darling. Our forefathers were in such a hurry with  
them, that by the time we were born, there was hardly one left.’  
‘Ay, they were men,’ growled Wulf.  
‘As for me,’ went on the Amal, ‘the biggest thing I ever killed was a snake in the  
Donau fens. How long was he, prince? You had time to see, for you sat eating  
your dinner and looking on, while he was trying to crack my bones.’  
‘Four fathom,’ answered Wulf.  
‘With a wild bull lying by him, which he had just killed. I spoilt his dinner, eh,  
Wulf?’  
‘Yes,’said the old grumbler, mollified, ‘that was a right good fight.’  
‘Why don’t you make a saga about it, then, instead of about right and wrong, and  
such things?’  
‘Because I am turned philosopher. I shall go and hear that Alruna- maiden this  
afternoon.’  
‘Well said. Let us go too, young men: it will pass the time, at all events.’  
‘Oh, no! no! no! do not! you shall not!’ almost shrieked Pelagia.  
‘Why not, then, pretty one?’  
‘She is a witch—she—I will never love you again if you dare to go. Your only  
reason is that Agilmund’s report of her beauty.’  
‘So? You are afraid of my liking her golden locks better than your black ones?’  
‘I? Afraid?’ And she leapt up, panting with pretty rage. ‘Come, we will go too—  
at once—and brave this nun, who fancies herself too wise to speak to a woman,  
and too pure to love a man! Lookout my jewels! Saddle my white mule! We will  
go royally. We will not be ashamed of Cupid’s livery, my girls—saffron shawl  
and all! Come, and let us see whether saucy Aphrodite is not a match after all for  
Pallas Athene and her owl!’  
And she darted out of the cloister.  
The three younger men burst into a roar of laughter, while Wulf looked with  
grim approval.  
‘So you want to go and hear the philosopher, prince?’said Smid.  
‘Wheresoever a holy and a wise woman speaks, a warrior need not be ashamed  
of listening. Did not Alaric bid us spare the nuns in Rome, comrade? And though  
I am no Christian as he was, I thought it no shame for Odin’s man to take their  
blessing; nor will I to take this one’s, Smid, son of Troll.’  
CHAPTER XIII: THE BOTTOM OF THE ABYSS  
‘Here am I, at last!’said Raphael Aben-Ezra to himself. ‘Fairly and safely landed  
at the very bottom of the bottomless; disporting myself on the firm floor of the  
primeval nothing, and finding my new element, like boys when they begin to  
swim, not so impracticable after all. No man, angel, or demon, can this day cast  
it in my teeth that I am weak enough to believe or disbelieve any phenomenon or  
theory in or concerning heaven or earth; or even that any such heaven, earth,  
phenomena, or theories exist—or otherwise …. I trust that is a sufficiently  
exhaustive statement of my opinions? .... I am certainly not dogmatic enough to  
deny—or to assert either—that there are sensations …. far too numerous for  
comfort …. but as for proceeding any further, by induction, deduction, analysis,  
or synthesis, I utterly decline the office of Arachne, and will spin no more  
cobwebs out of my own inside—if I have any. Sensations? What are they, but  
parts of oneself—if one has a self! What put this child’s fancy into one’s head,  
that there is anything outside of one which produces them? You have exactly  
similar feelings in your dreams, and you know that there is no reality  
corresponding to them—No, you don’t! How dare you be dogmatic enough to  
affirm that? Why should not your dreams be as real as your waking thoughts?  
Why should not your dreams be the reality, and your waking thoughts the  
dream? What matter which?  
‘What matter indeed? Here have I been staring for years—unless that, too, is a  
dream, which it very probably is—at every mountebank “ism” which ever  
tumbled and capered on the philosophic tight-rope; and they are every one of  
them dead dolls, wooden, worked with wires, which are petitiones principii ....  
Each philosopher begs the question in hand, and then marches forward, as brave  
as a triumph, and prides himself—on proving it all afterwards. No wonder that  
his theory fits the universe, when he has first clipped the universe to fit his  
theory. Have I not tried my hand at many a one—starting, too, no one can deny,  
with the very minimum of clipping, .... for I suppose one cannot begin lower  
than at simple “I am I” .... unless—which is equally demonstrable—at “I am not  
I.” I recollect—or dream—that I offered that sweet dream, Hypatia, to deduce all  
things in heaven and earth, from the Astronomics of Hipparchus to the number  
of plumes in an archangel’s wing, from that one simple proposition, if she would  
but write me out a demonstration of it first, as some sort of \[Greek expression\]  
for the apex of my inverted pyramid. But she disdained …. People are apt to  
disdain what they know they cannot do …. “It was an axiom,” it was, “like one  
and one making two.” .... How cross the sweet dream was, at my telling her that  
I did not consider that any axiom either, and that one thing and one thing  
seeming to us to be two things, was no more proof that they really were two, and  
not three hundred and sixty-five, than a man seeming to be an honest man,  
proved him not to be a rogue; and at my asking her, moreover, when she  
appealed to universal experience, how she proved that the combined folly of all  
fools resulted in wisdom!  
‘“I am I” an axiom, indeed! What right have I to say that I am not any one else?  
How do I know it? How do I know that there is any one else for me not to be? I,  
or rather something, feel a number of sensations, longings, thoughts, fancies—  
the great devil take them all—fresh ones every moment, and each at war tooth  
and nail with all the rest; and then on the strength of this infinite multiplicity and  
contradiction, of which alone I am aware, I am to be illogical enough to stand  
up, and say, “I by myself I,” and swear stoutly that I am one thing, when all I am  
conscious of is the devil only knows how many things. Of all quaint deductions  
from experience, that is the quaintest! Would it not be more philosophical to  
conclude that I, who never saw or felt or heard this which I call myself, am what  
I have seen, heard, and felt—and no more and no less—that sensation which I  
call that horse, that dead man, that jackass, those forty thousand two-legged  
jackasses who appear to be running for their lives below there, having got hold  
of this same notion of their being one thing each—as I choose to fancy in my  
foolish habit of imputing to them the same disease of thought which I find in  
myself—crucify the word!—The folly of my ancestors—if I ever had any—  
prevents my having any better expression …. Why should I not be all I feel—  
that sky, those clouds—the whole universe? Hercules! what a creative genius my  
sensorium must be!—I’ll take to writing’ poetry—a mock-epic, in seventy-two  
books, entitled “The Universe: or, Raphael Aben-Ezra,” and take Homer’s  
Margites for my model. Homer’s? Mine! Why must not the Margites, like  
everything else, have been a sensation of my own? Hypatia used to say Homer’s  
poetry was a part of her …. only she could not prove it …. but I have proved that  
the Margites is a part of me …. not that I believe my own proof—scepticism  
forbid! Oh, would to heaven that the said whole disagreeable universe were  
annihilated, if it were only just to settle by fair experiment whether any of master  
“I” remained when they were gone! Buzzard and dogmatist! And how do you  
know that that would settle it? And if it did—why need it be settled? ....  
‘I daresay there is an answer pat for all this. I could write a pretty one myself in  
half an hour. But then I should not believe it …. nor the rejoinder to that …. nor  
the demurrer to that again …. So …. I am both sleepy and hungry …. or rather,  
sleepiness and hunger are me. Which is it! Heigh-ho….’ and Raphael finished  
his meditation by a mighty yawn.  
This hopeful oration was delivered in a fitting lecture-room. Between the bare  
walls of a doleful fire-scarred tower in the Campagna of Rome, standing upon a  
knoll of dry brown grass, ringed with a few grim pines, blasted and black with  
smoke; there sat Raphael Aben-Ezra, working out the last formula of the great  
world problem—‘Given Self; to find God.’ Through the doorless stone archway  
he could see a long vista of the plain below, covered with broken trees, trampled  
crops, smoking villas, and all the ugly scars of recent war, far onward to the  
quiet purple mountains and the silver sea, towards which struggled, far in the  
distance, long dark lines of moving specks, flowing together, breaking up,  
stopping short, recoiling back to surge forward by some fresh channel, while  
now and then a glitter of keen white sparks ran through the dense black masses  
…. The Count of Africa had thrown for the empire of the world—and lost.  
‘Brave old Sun!’said Raphael, ‘how merrily he flashes off the sword-blades  
yonder, and never cares that every tiny spark brings a death-shriek after it! Why  
should he? It is no concern of his. Astrologers are fools. His business is to shine;  
and on the whole, he is one of my few satisfactory sensations. How now? This is  
questionably pleasant!’  
As he spoke, a column of troops came marching across the field, straight  
towards his retreat.  
‘If these new sensations of mine find me here, they will infallibly produce in me  
a new sensation, which will render all further ones impossible …. Well? What  
kinder thing could they do for me? .... Ay—but how do I know that they would  
do it? What possible proof is there that if a two-legged phantasm pokes a hard  
iron-gray phantasm in among my sensations, those sensations will be my last? Is  
the fact of my turning pale, and lying still, and being in a day or two converted  
into crows’ flesh, any reason why I should not feel? And how do I know that  
would happen? It seems to happen to certain sensations of my eyeball—or  
something else—who cares? which I call soldiers; but what possible analogy can  
there be between what seems to happen to those single sensations called soldiers,  
and what may or may not really happen to all my sensations put together, which  
I call me? Should I bear apples if a phantasm seemed to come and plant me?  
Then why should I die if another phantasm seemed to come and poke me in the  
ribs?  
‘Still I don’t intend to deny it …. I am no dogmatist. Positively the phantasms  
are marching straight for my tower! Well, it may be safer to run away, on the  
chance. But as for losing feeling,’ continued he, rising and cramming a few  
mouldy crusts into his wallet, ‘that, like everything else, is past proof. Why—if  
now, when I have some sort of excuse for fancying myself one thing in one  
place, I am driven mad with the number of my sensations, what will it be when I  
am eaten, and turned to dust, and undeniably many things in many places ….  
Will not the sensations be multiplied by—unbearable! I would swear at the  
thought, if I had anything to swear by! To be transmuted into the sensoria of  
forty different nasty carrion crows, besides two or three foxes, and a large black  
beetle! I’ll run away, just like anybody else …. if anybody existed. Come, Bran!  
...............  
‘Bran! where are you; unlucky inseparable sensation of mine? Picking up a  
dinner already off these dead soldiers? Well, the pity is that this foolish  
contradictory taste of mine, while it makes me hungry, forbids me to follow your  
example. Why am I to take lessons from my soldier-phantasms, and not from my  
canine one? Illogical! Bran! Bran!’ and he went out and whistled in vain for the  
dog.  
‘Bran! unhappy phantom, who will not vanish by night or day, lying on my chest  
even in dreams; and who would not even let me vanish, and solve the problem—  
though I don’t believe there is any—why did you drag me out of the sea there at  
Ostia? Why did you not let me become a whole shoal of crabs? How did you  
know, or I either, that they may not be very jolly fellows, and not in the least  
troubled with philosophic doubts? .... But perhaps there were no crabs, but only  
phantasms of crabs …. And, on the other hand, if the crab- phantasms give jolly  
sensations, why should not the crow-phantasms? So whichever way it turns out,  
no matter; and I may as well wait here, and seem to become crows, as I certainly  
shall do.—Bran! .... Why should I wait for her? What pleasure can it be to me to  
have the feeling of a four-legged, brindled, lop-eared, toad-mouthed thing  
always between what seem to be my legs? There she is! Where have you been,  
madam? Don’t you see I am in marching order, with staff and wallet ready  
shouldered? Come!’  
But the dog, looking up in his face as only dogs can look, ran toward the back of  
the ruin, and up to him again, and back again, until he followed her.  
‘What’s this? Here is a new sensation with a vengeance! O storm and cloud of  
material appearances, were there not enough of you already, that you must add to  
your number these also? Bran! Bran! Could you find no other day in the year but  
this, whereon to present my ears with the squeals of—one—two—three—nine  
blind puppies?’  
Bran answered by rushing into the hole where her new family lay tumbling and  
squalling, bringing out one in her mouth, and laying it at his feet.  
‘Needless, I assure you. I am perfectly aware of the state of the case already.  
What! another? Silly old thing!—do you fancy, as the fine ladies do, that  
burdening the world with noisy likenesses of your precious self, is a thing of  
which to be proud? Why, she’s bringing out the whole litter! .... What was I  
thinking of last? Ah—the argument was self-contradictory, was it, because I  
could not argue without using the very terms which I repudiated. Well …. And—  
why should it not be contradictory; Why not? One must face that too, after all.  
Why should not a thing be true and false also? What harm in a thing’s being  
false? What necessity for it to be true? True? What is truth? Why should a thing  
be the worse for being illogical? Why should there be any logic at all? Did I ever  
see a little beast flying about with “Logic” labelled on its back? What do I know  
of it, but as a sensation of my own mind—if I have any? What proof is that that I  
am to obey it, and not it me? If a flea bites me I get rid of that sensation; and if  
logic bothers me, I’ll get rid of that too. Phantasms must be taught to vanish  
courteously. One’s only hope of comfort lies in kicking feebly against the  
tyranny of one’s own boring notions and sensations— every philosopher  
confesses that—and what god is logic, pray, that it is to be the sole exception? ....  
What, old lady? I give you fair warning, you must choose this day, like any nun,  
between the ties of family and those of duty.’  
Bran seized him by the skirt, and pulled him down towards the puppies; took up  
one of the puppies and lifted it towards him; and then repeated the action with  
another.  
‘You unconscionable old brute! You don’t actually dare to expect the to carry  
your puppies for you?’ and he turned to go.  
Bran sat down on her tail and began howling.  
‘Farewell, old dog! you have been a pleasant dream after all …. But if you will  
go the way of all phantasms.’ .... And he walked away.  
Bran ran with him, leaping and barking; then recollected her family and ran  
back; tried to bring them, one by one, in her mouth, and then to bring them all at  
once; and failing sat down and howled.  
‘Come, Bran! Come, old girl!’  
She raced halfway up to him; then halfway back again to the puppies; then  
towards him again: and then suddenly gave it up, and dropping her tail, walked  
slowly back to the blind suppliants, with a deep reproachful growl.  
‘\* \* \*!’said Raphael with a mighty oath; ‘you are right after all! Here are nine  
things come into the world, phantasms or not, there it is; I can’t deny it. They are  
something, and you are something, old dog; or at least like enough to something  
to do instead of it; and you are not I, and as good as I, and they too, for aught I  
know, and have as good a right to live as I; and by the seven planets and all the  
rest of it, I’ll carry them!’  
And he went back, tied up the puppies in his blanket, and set forth, Bran barking,  
squeaking, wagging, leaping, running between his legs and upsetting him, in her  
agonies of joy.  
‘Forward! Whither you will, old lady! The world is wide. You shall be my guide,  
tutor, queen of philosophy, for the sake of this mere common sense of yours.  
Forward, you new Hypatia! I promise you I will attend no lectures but yours this  
day!’  
He toiled on, every now and then stepping across a dead body, or clambering a  
wall out of the road, to avoid some plunging, shrieking horse, or obscene knot of  
prowling camp followers, who were already stripping and plundering the slain  
…. At last, in front of a large villa, now a black and smoking skeleton, he leaped  
a wall, and found himself landed on a heap of corpses …. They were piled up  
against the garden fence for many yards. The struggle had been fierce there some  
three hours before.  
‘Put me out of my misery! In mercy kill me!’ moaned a voice beneath his feet.  
Raphael looked down; the poor wretch was slashed and mutilated beyond all  
hope.  
‘Certainly, friend, if you wish it,’ and he drew his dagger. The poor fellow  
stretched out his throat, and awaited the stroke with a ghastly smile. Raphael  
caught his eye; his heart failed him, and he rose.  
‘What do you advise, Bran?’ But the dog was far ahead, leaping and barking  
impatiently.  
‘I obey,’said Raphael; and he followed her, while the wounded man called  
piteously and upbraidingly after him.  
‘He will not have long to wait. Those plunderers will not be as squeamish as I  
…. Strange, now! From Armenian reminiscences I should have fancied myself  
as free from such tender weakness as any of my Canaanite-slaying ancestors ….  
And yet by some mere spirit of contradiction, I couldn’t kill that fellow, exactly  
because he asked me to do it …. There is more in that than will fit into the great  
inverted pyramid of “I am I.”. Never mind, let me get the dog’s lessons by heart  
first. What next, Bran? Ah! Could one believe the transformation? Why, this is  
the very trim villa which I passed yesterday morning, with the garden-chairs  
standing among the flower-beds, just as the young ladies had left them, and the  
peacocks and silver pheasants running about, wondering why their pretty  
mistresses did not come to feed them. And here is a trampled mass of wreck and  
corruption for the girls to find, when they venture back from Rome, and  
complain how horrible war is for breaking down all their shrubs, and how cruel  
soldiers must be to kill and cook all their poor dear tame turtle-doves! Why not?  
Why should they lament over other things—which they can just as little mend—  
and which perhaps need no more mending? Ah! there lies a gallant fellow  
underneath that fruit-tree!’  
Raphael walked up to a ring of dead, in the midst of which lay, half-sitting  
against the trunk of the tree, a tall and noble officer in the first bloom of  
manhood. His casque and armour, gorgeously inlaid with gold, were hewn and  
battered by a hundred blows; his shield was cloven through and through; his  
sword broken in the stiffened hand which grasped it still. Cut off from his troop,  
he had made his last stand beneath the tree, knee-deep in the gay summer  
flowers, and there he lay, bestrewn, as if by some mockery— or pity—of mother  
nature, with faded roses, and golden fruit, shaken from off the boughs in that last  
deadly struggle. Raphael stood and watched him with a sad sneer.  
‘Well!—you have sold your fancied personality dear! How many dead men? ....  
Nine …. Eleven! Conceited fellow! Who told you that your one life was worth  
the eleven which you have taken?’  
Bran went up to the corpse—perhaps from its sitting posture fancying it still  
living—smelt the cold cheek, and recoiled with a mournful whine.  
‘Eh? That is the right way to look at the phenomena, is it? Well, after all, I am  
sorry for you …. almost like you …. All your wounds in front, as a man’s should  
be. Poor fop! Lais and Thais will never curl those dainty ringlets for you again!  
What is that bas-relief upon your shield? Venus receiving Psyche into the abode  
of the gods! .... Ah! you have found out all about Psyche’s wings by this time ….  
How do I know that? And yet, why am I, in spite of my common sense—if I  
have any—talking to you as you, and liking you, and pitying you, if you are  
nothing now, and probably never were anything? Bran! What right had you to  
pity him without giving your reasons in due form, as Hypatia would have done?  
Forgive me, sir, however—whether you exist or not, I cannot leave that collar  
round your neck for these camp-wolves to convert into strong liquor.’  
And as he spoke, he bent down, and detached, gently enough, a magnificent  
necklace.  
‘Not for myself, I assure you. Like Ate’s golden apple, it shall go to the fairest.  
Here, Bran!’ And he wreathed the jewels round the neck of the mastiff, who,  
evidently exalted in her own eyes by the burden, leaped and barked forward  
again, taking, apparently as a matter of course, the road back towards Ostia, by  
which they had come thither from the sea. And as he followed, careless where he  
went, he continued talking to himself aloud after the manner of restless selfdiscontented men.  
....‘And then man talks big about his dignity and his intellect, and his heavenly  
parentage, and his aspirations after the unseen, and the beautiful, and the infinite  
—and everything else unlike himself. How can he prove it? Why, these poor  
blackguards lying about are very fair specimens of humanity.—And how much  
have they been bothered since they were born with aspirations after anything  
infinite, except infinite sour wine? To eat, to drink; to destroy a certain number  
of their species; to reproduce a certain number of the same, two-thirds of whom  
will die in infancy, a dead waste of pain to their mothers and of expense to their  
putative sires …. and then—what says Solomon? What befalls them befalls  
beasts. As one dies, so dies the other; so that they have all one breath, and a man  
has no pre-eminence over a beast; for all is vanity. All go to one place; all are of  
the dust, and turn to dust again. Who knows that the breath of man goes upward,  
and that the breath of the beast goes downward to the earth? Who, indeed, my  
most wise ancestor? Not I, certainly. Raphael Aben-Ezra, how art thou better  
than a beast? W hat pre-eminence hast thou, not merely over this dog, But over  
the fleas whom thou so wantonly cursest? Man must painfully win house,  
clothes, fire …. A pretty proof of his wisdom, when every flea has the wit to  
make my blanket, without any labour of his own, lodge him a great deal better  
than it lodges me! Man makes clothes, and the fleas live in them …. Which is  
the wiser of the two? ....  
‘Ah, but—man is fallen …. Well—and the flea is not. So much better he than the  
man; for he is what he was intended to be, and so fulfils the very definition of  
virtue. which no one can say of us of the red-ochre vein. And even if the old  
myth be true, and the man only fell, because he was set to do higher work than  
the flea, what does that prove—but that he could not do it?  
‘But his arts and his sciences? .... Apage! The very sound of those grownchildren’s rattles turns me sick …. One conceited ass in a generation increasing  
labour and sorrow, and dying after all even as the fool dies, and ten million  
brutes and slaves, just where their fore-fathers were, and where their children  
will be after them, to the end of the farce …. The thing that has been, it is that  
which shall be; and there is no new thing under the sun….  
‘And as for your palaces, and cities, and temples …. look at this Campagna, and  
judge. Flea-bites go down after a while—and so do they. What are they but the  
bumps which we human fleas make in the old earth’s skin?. Make them? We  
only cause them, as fleas cause flea-bites …. What are all the works of man, but  
a sort of cutaneous disorder in this unhealthy earth-hide, and we a race of larger  
fleas, running about among its fur, which we call trees? Why should not the earth  
be an animal? How do I know it is not? Because it is too big? Bah! What is big,  
and what is little? Because it has not the shape of one? .... Look into a  
fisherman’s net, and see what forms are there! Because it does not speak? ....  
Perhaps it has nothing to say, being too busy. Perhaps it can talk no more sense  
than we …. In both cases it shows its wisdom by holding its tongue. Because it  
moves in one necessary direction? .... How do I know that it does? How can I tell  
that it is not flirting with all the seven spheres at once, at this moment? But if it  
does—so much the wiser of it, if that be the best direction for it. Oh, what a base  
satire on ourselves and our notions of the fair and fitting, to say that a thing  
cannot be alive and rational, just because it goes steadily on upon its own road,  
instead of skipping and scrambling fantastically up and down without method or  
order, like us and the fleas, from the cradle to the grave! Besides, if you grant,  
with the rest of the world, that fleas are less noble than we, because they are our  
parasites, then you are bound to grant that we are less noble than the earth,  
because we are its parasites. .... Positively, it looks more probable than anything I  
have seen for many a day …. And, by the bye, why should not earthquakes, and  
floods, and pestilences, be only just so many ways which the cunning old brute  
earth has of scratching herself when the human fleas and their palace and city  
bites get too troublesome?’  
At a turn of the road he was aroused from this profitable meditation by a shriek,  
the shrillness of which told him that it was a woman’s. He looked up, and saw  
close to him, among the smouldering ruins of a farmhouse, two ruffians driving  
before them a young girl, with her hands tied behind her, while the poor creature  
was looking back piteously after something among the ruins, and struggling in  
vain, bound as she was, to escape from her captors and return.  
‘Conduct unjustifiable in any fleas,—eh, Bran? How do I know that, though?  
Why should it not be a piece of excellent fortune for her, if she had but the  
equanimity to see it? Why—what will happen to her? She will betaken to Rome,  
and sold as a slave …. And in spite of a few discomforts in the transfer, and the  
prejudice which some persons have against standing an hour on the catasta to be  
handled from head to foot in the minimum of clothing, she will most probably  
end in being far better housed, fed, bedizened, and pampered to her heart’s  
desire, than ninety-nine out of a hundred of her sister fleas …. till she begins to  
grow old …. which she must do in any case….And if she have not contrived to  
wheedle her master out of her liberty, and to make tip a pretty little purse of  
savings, by that time—why, it is her own fault. Eh, Bran?’  
But Bran by no means agreed with his view of the case; for after watching the  
two ruffians, with her head stuck on one side, for a minute or two, she suddenly  
and silently, after the manner of mastiffs, sprang upon them, and dragged one to  
the ground.  
‘Oh! that is the “fit and beautiful,” in this case, as they say in Alexandria, is it?  
Well—I obey. You are at least a more practical teacher than ever Hypatia was.  
Heaven grant that there may be no more of them in the ruins!’  
And rushing on the second plunderer, he laid him dead with a blow of his  
dagger, and then turned to the first, whom Bran was holding down by the throat.  
‘Mercy, mercy!’shrieked the wretch. ‘Life! only life!’  
‘There was a fellow half a mile back begging me to kill him: with which of you  
two am I to agree?—for you can’t both be right.’  
‘Life! Only life!’  
‘A carnal appetite, which man must learn to conquer,’said Raphael, as he raised  
the poniard. .... In a moment it was over, and Bran and he rose—Where was the  
girl? She had rushed back to the ruins, whither Raphael followed her; while Bran  
ran to the puppies, which he had laid upon a stone, and commenced her maternal  
cares.  
‘What do you want, my poor girl?’ asked he in Latin. ‘I will not hurt you.’  
‘My father! My father!’  
He untied her bruised and swollen wrists; and without stopping to thank him, she  
ran to a heap of fallen stones and beams, and began digging wildly with all her  
little strength, breathlessly calling ‘Father!’  
‘Such is the gratitude of flea to flea! What is there, now, in the mere fact of being  
accustomed to call another person father, and not master, or slave, which should  
produce such passion as that? .... Brute habit! .... What services can the said man  
render, or have rendered, which make him worth—Here is Bran! .... What do  
you think of that, my female philosopher?’  
Bran sat down and watched too. The poor girl’s tender hands were bleeding from  
the stones, while her golden tresses rolled down over her eyes, and entangled in  
her impatient fingers; but still she worked frantically. Bran seemed suddenly to  
comprehend the case, rushed to the rescue, and began digging too, with all her  
might.  
Raphael rose with a shrug, and joined in the work.  
...............  
‘Hang these brute instincts! They make one very hot. What was that?’  
A feeble moan rose from under the stones. A human limb was uncovered. The  
girl threw herself on the place, shrieking her father’s name. Raphael put her  
gently back and exerting his whole strength, drew out of the ruins a stalwart  
elderly man, in the dress of an officer of high rank.  
He still breathed. The girl lifted up his head and covered him with wild kisses.  
Raphael looked round for water; found a spring and a broken sherd, and bathed  
the wounded man’s temples till he opened his eyes and showed signs of  
returning life.  
The girl still sat by him, fondling her recovered treasure, and bathing the  
grizzled face in holy tears.  
‘It is no business of mine,’said Raphael. ‘Come, Bran!’  
The girl sprang up, threw herself at his feet, kissed his hands, called him her  
saviour, her deliverer, sent by God.  
‘Not in the least, my child. You must thank my teacher the dog, not me.’  
And she took him at his word, and threw her soft arms round Bran’s Deck; and  
Bran understood it, and wagged her tail, and licked the gentle face lovingly.  
‘Intolerably absurd, all this!’said Raphael. ‘I must be going, Bran.’  
‘You will not leave us? You surely will not leave an old man to die here?’  
‘Why not? What better thing could happen to him?’  
‘Nothing,’ murmured the officer, who had not spoken before.  
‘Ah, God! he is my father!’  
‘Well?’  
‘He is my father!’  
‘Well?’  
‘You must save him! You shall, I say!’ And she seized Raphael’s arm in the  
imperiousness of her passion.  
He shrugged his shoulders: but felt, he knew not why, marvellously inclined to  
obey her.  
‘I may as well do this as anything else, having nothing else to do. Whither now,  
sir?’  
‘Whither you will. Our troops are disgraced, our eagles taken. We are your  
prisoners by right of war. We follow you.’  
‘Oh, my fortune! A new responsibility! Why cannot I stir, without live animals,  
from fleas upward, attaching. themselves to me? Is it not enough to have nine  
blind puppies at my back, and an old brute at my heels, who will persist in  
saving my life, that I must be burdened over and above with a respectable  
elderly rebel and his daughter? Why am I not allowed by fate to care for nobody  
but myself? Sir, I give you both your freedom. The world is wide enough for us  
all. I really ask no ransom.’  
‘You seem philosophically disposed, my friend.’  
‘I? Heaven forbid! I have gone right through that slough, and come out sheer on  
the other side. For sweeping the last lingering taint of it out of me, I have to  
thank, not sulphur and exorcisms, but your soldiers and their morning’s work.  
Philosophy is superfluous in a world where all are fools.’  
‘Do you include yourself under that title?’  
‘Most certainly, my best sir. Don’t fancy that I make any exceptions. If I can in  
any way prove my folly to you, I will do it.’  
‘Then help me and my daughter to Ostia.’  
‘A very fair instance. Well—my dog happens to be going that way; and after all,  
you seem to have a sufficient share of human imbecility to be a very fit  
companion for me. I hope, though, you do not set up for a wise man!’  
‘God knows—no! Am I not of Heraclian’s army?’  
‘True; and the young lady here made herself so great a fool about you, that she  
actually infected the very dog.’  
‘So we three fools will forth together.’  
‘And the greatest one, as usual, must help the rest. But I have nine puppies in my  
family already. How am I to carry you and them?’  
‘I will take them,’said the girl; and Bran, after looking on at the transfer with a  
somewhat dubious face, seemed to satisfy herself that all was right, and put her  
head contentedly under the girl’s hand.  
‘Eh? You trust her, Bran?’said Raphael, in an undertone. ‘I must really  
emancipate myself from your instructions if you require a similar simplicity in  
me. Stay! there wanders a mule without a rider; we may as well press into the  
service.’  
He caught the mule, lifted the wounded man into the saddle, and the cavalcade  
set forth, turning out of the highroad into a by-lane, which the officer, who  
seemed to know the country thoroughly, assured would lead them to Ostia by an  
unfrequented route.  
‘If we arrive there before sundown, we are saved,’said he.  
‘And in the meantime,’ answered Raphael, ‘between the dog and this dagger,  
which, as I take care to inform all comers, is delicately poisoned, we may keep  
ourselves clear of marauders. And yet, what a meddling fool I am!’ he went on to  
himself. ‘What possible interest can I have in this uncircumcised rebel! The least  
evil is, that if we are taken, which we most probably shall be, I shall be crucified  
for helping to escape. But even if we get safe off—here is a fresh tie between me  
and those very brother fleas, to be rid of whom I have chosen beggary and  
starvation. Who knows where it may end? Pooh! The man is like other men. He  
is certain, before the day is over, to prove ungrateful, or attempt the mountebankheroic, or give me some other excuse for bidding good-evening. And in the  
meantime there is something quaint in the fact of finding so sober a  
respectability, with a young daughter too, abroad on this fool’s errand, which  
really makes me curious to discover with what variety of flea I am to class him.’  
But while Aben-Ezra was talking to himself about the father, he could not help,  
somehow, thinking about the daughter. Again and again he found himself  
looking at her. She was, undeniably, most beautiful. Her features were not as  
regularly perfect as Hypatia’s, nor her stature so commanding; but her face  
shone with a clear and joyful determination, and with a tender and modest  
thoughtfulness, such as he had never beheld before united in one countenance;  
and as she stepped along, firmly and lightly, by her father’s side, looping up her  
scattered tresses as she went, laughing at the struggles of her noisy burden, and  
looking up with rapture at her father’s gradually brightening face, Raphael could  
not help stealing glance after glance, and was surprised to find them returned  
with a bright, honest, smiling gratitude, which met full-eyed, as free from  
prudery as it was from coquetry …. ‘A lady she is,’said he to himself; ‘but  
evidently no city one. There is nature—or something else, there, pure and  
unadulterated, without any of man’s additions or beautifications.’ And as he  
looked, he began to feel it a pleasure such as his weary heart had not known for  
many a year, simply to watch her….  
‘Positively there is a foolish enjoyment after all in making other fleas smile ….  
Ass that I am! As if I had not drunk all that ditch-water cup to the dregs years  
ago!’  
They went on for some time in silence, till the officer, turning to him—  
‘And may I ask you, my quaint preserver, whom I would have thanked before  
but for this foolish faintness, which is now going off, what and who you are?’  
‘A flea, sir—a flea—nothing more.’  
‘But a patrician flea, surely, to judge by your language and manners?’  
‘Not that exactly. True, I have been rich, as the saying is; I may be rich again,  
they tell me, when I am fool enough to choose.’  
‘Oh if we were but rich!’sighed the girl.  
‘You would be very unhappy, my dear young lady. Believe a flea who has tried  
the experiment thoroughly.’  
‘Ah! but we could ransom my brother! and now we can find no money till we  
get back to Africa.’  
‘And none then,’said the officer, in a low voice. ‘You forget, my poor child, that  
I mortgaged the whole estate to raise my legion. We must not shrink from  
looking at things as they are.’  
‘Ah! and he is prisoner! he will be sold for a slave—perhaps—ah! perhaps  
crucified, for he is not a Roman! Oh, he will be crucified!’ and she burst into an  
agony of weeping….Suddenly she dashed away her tears and looked up clear  
and bright once more.  
‘No! forgive me, father! God will protect His own!’  
‘My dear young lady,’said Raphael, ‘if you really dislike such a prospect for  
your brother, and are in want of a few dirty coins wherewith to prevent it,  
perhaps I may be able to find you them in Ostia.’  
She looked at incredulously, as her eye glanced over his rags, and then, blushing,  
begged his pardon for her unspoken thoughts.  
‘Well, as you choose to suppose. But my dog has been so civil to you already,  
that perhaps she may have no objection to make you a present of that necklace of  
hers. I will go to the Rabbis, and we will make all right; so don’t cry. I hate  
crying; and the puppies are quite chorus enough for the present tragedy.’  
‘The Rabbis? Are you a Jew?’ asked the officer.  
‘Yes, sir, a Jew. And you, I presume, a Christian: perhaps you may have scruples  
about receiving—your sect has generally none about taking—from one of our  
stubborn and unbelieving race. Don’t be frightened, though, for your conscience;  
I assure you I am no more a Jew at heart than I am a Christian.’  
‘God help you then!’  
‘Some one, or something, has helped me a great deal too much, for three-andthirty years of pampering. But, pardon me, that was a strange speech for a  
Christian.’  
‘You must be a good Jew, sir, before you can be a good Christian.’  
‘Possibly. I intend to be neither—nor a good Pagan either. My dear sir, let us  
drop the subject. It is beyond me. If I can be as good a brute animal as my dog  
there—it being first demonstrated that it is good to be good—I shall be very well  
content.’  
The officer looked down on with a stately, loving sorrow. Raphael caught his  
eye, and felt that he was in the presence of no common man.  
‘I must take care what I say here, I suspect, or I shall be entangled shortly in a  
regular Socratic dialogue …. And now, sir, may I return your question, and ask  
who and what are you? I really have no intention of giving you up to any Caesar,  
Antiochus, Tiglath-Pileser, or other flea-devouring flea …. They will fatten well  
enough without your blood. So I only ask as a student of the great nothing-ingeneral, which men call the universe.’  
‘I was prefect of a legion this morning. What I am now, you know as well as I.’  
‘Just what I do not. I am in deep wonder at seeing your hilarity, when, by all  
flea-analogies, you ought to be either be howling your fate like Achilles on the  
shores of Styx, or pretending to grin and bear it, as I was taught to do when I  
played at Stoicism. You are not of that sect certainly, for you confessed yourself  
a fool just now.’  
‘And it would be long, would it not, before you made one of them do as much?  
Well, be it so. A fool I am; yet, if God helps us as far as Ostia, why should I not  
be cheerful?’  
‘Why should you?’  
‘What better thing can happen to a fool, than that God should teach that he is  
one, when he fancied himself the wisest of the wise? Listen to me, sir. Four  
mouths ago I was blessed with health, honour, lands, friends—all for which the  
heart of man could wish. And if, for an insane ambition, I have chosen to risk all  
those, against the solemn warnings of the truest friend, and the wisest saint who  
treads this earth of God’s—should I not rejoice to have it proved to me, even by  
such a lesson as this, that the friend who never deceived me before was right in  
this case too; and that the God who has checked and turned me for forty years of  
wild toil and warfare, whenever I dared to do what was right in the sight of my  
own eyes, has not forgotten me yet, or given up the thankless task of my  
education?’  
‘And who, pray, is this peerless friend?’  
‘Augustine of Hippo.’  
‘Humph! It had been better for the world in general, if the great dialectician had  
exerted his powers of persuasion on Heraclian himself.’  
‘He did so, but in vain.’  
‘I don’t doubt it. I know the sleek Count well enough to judge what effect a  
sermon would have upon that smooth vulpine determination of his …. “An  
instrument in the hands of God, my dear brother …. We must obey His call, even  
to the death,” etc. etc.’ And Raphael laughed bitterly.  
‘You know the Count?’  
‘As well, sir, as I care to know any man.’  
‘I am sorry for your eyesight, then, sir,’said the Prefect severely, ‘if it has been  
able to discern no more than that in so august a character.’  
‘My dear sir, I do not doubt his excellence—nay, his inspiration. How well he  
divined the perfectly fit moment for stabbing his old comrade Stilicho! But  
really, as two men of the world, we must be aware by this time that every man  
has his price.’....  
‘Oh, hush! hush!’ whispered the girl. ‘You cannot guess how you pain him. He  
worships the Count. It was not ambition, as he pretends, but merely loyalty to  
him, which brought here against his will.’  
‘My dear madam, forgive me. For your sake I am silent.’....  
‘For her sake! A pretty speech for me! What next?’said he to himself. ‘Ah, Bran,  
Bran, this is all your fault!’  
‘For my sake! Oh, why not for your own sake? How sad to hear one— one like  
you, only sneering and speaking evil!’  
‘Why then? If fools are fools, and one can safely call them so, why not do it?’  
‘Ah,—if God was merciful enough to send down His own Son to die for them,  
should we not be merciful enough not to judge their failings harshly!’  
‘My dear young lady, spare a worn-out philosopher any new anthropologic  
theories. We really must push on a little faster, if we intend to reach Ostia tonight.’  
But, for some reason or other, Raphael sneered no more for a full half-hour.  
Long, however, ere they reached Ostia, the night had fallen; and their situation  
began to be more than questionably safe. Now and then a wolf, slinking across  
the road towards his ghastly feast, glided like a lank ghost out of the darkness,  
and into it again, answering Bran’s growl by a gleam of his white teeth. Then the  
voices of some marauding party rang coarse and loud through the still night, and  
made them hesitate and stop a while. And at last, worst of all, the measured  
tramp of an imperial column began to roll like distant thunder along the plain  
below. They were advancing upon Ostia! What if they arrived there before the  
routed army could rally, and defend themselves long enough to re-embark! ....  
What if—a thousand ugly possibilities began to crowd up.  
‘Suppose we found the gates of Ostia shut, and the Imperialists bivouacked  
outside?’said Raphael half to himself.  
‘God would protect His own,’ answered the girl; and Raphael had no heart to rob  
her of her hope, though he looked upon their chances of escape as growing  
smaller and smaller every moment. The poor girl was weary; the mule weary  
also; and as they crawled along, at a pace which made it certain that the fast  
passing column would be at Ostia an hour before them, to join the vanguard of  
the pursuers, and aid them in investing the town, she had to lean again and again  
on Raphael’s arm. Her shoes, unfitted for so rough a journey, bad been long  
since torn off, and her tender feet were marking every step with blood. Raphael  
knew it by her faltering gait; and remarked, too, that neither sigh nor murmur  
passed her lips. But as for helping her, he could not; and began to curse the fancy  
which had led to eschew even sandals as unworthy the self-dependence of a  
Cynic.  
And so they crawled along, while Raphael and the Prefect, each guessing the  
terrible thoughts of the other, were thankful for the darkness which hid their  
despairing countenances from the young girl; she, on the other hand, chatting  
cheerfully, almost laughingly, to her silent father.  
At last the poor girl stepped on some stone more sharp than usual— and, with a  
sudden writhe and shriek, sank to the ground. Raphael lifted her up, and she tried  
to proceed, but sank down again …. What was to be done?  
‘I expected this,’said the Prefect, in a slow stately voice. ‘Hear me, sir! Jew,  
Christian, or philosopher, God seems to have bestowed on you a heart which I  
can trust. To your care I commit this girl— your property, like me, by right of  
war. Mount her upon this mule. Hasten with her—where you will—for God will  
be there also. And may He so deal with you as you deal with her henceforth. An  
old and disgraced soldier can do no more than die.’  
And he made an effort to dismount; but fainting from his wounds, sank upon the  
neck of the mule. Raphael and his daughter caught in their arms.  
‘Father! Father! Impossible! Cruel! Oh—do you think that I would have  
followed you hither from Africa, against your own entreaties, to desert you  
now?’  
‘My daughter, I command!’  
The girl remained firm and sound.  
‘How long have you learned to disobey me? Lift the old disgraced man down,  
sir, and leave to die in the right place—on the battlefield where his general sent  
him.’  
The girl sank down on the road in an agony of weeping. ‘I must help myself, I  
see,’said her father, dropping to the ground. ‘Authority vanishes before old age  
and humiliation. Victoria! has your father no sins to answer for already, that you  
will send before his God with your blood too upon his head?’  
Still the girl sat weeping on the ground; while Raphael, utterly at his wits end,  
tried hard to persuade himself that it was no concern of his.  
‘I am at the service of either or of both, for life or death; only be so good as to  
settle it quickly …. Hell! here it is settled for us, with a vengeance!’  
And as he spoke, the tramp and jingle of horsemen rang along the lane,  
approaching rapidly.  
In an instant Victoria had sprung to her feet—weakness and pain had vanished.  
‘There is one chance—one chance for him! Lift over the bank, sir! Lift over,  
while I run forward and meet them. My death will delay them long enough for  
you to save him!’  
‘Death?’ cried Raphael, seizing her by the arm. ‘If that were all—  
‘  
‘God will protect His own,’ answered she calmly, laying her finger on her lips;  
and then breaking from his grasp in the strength of her heroism, vanished into  
the night.  
Her father tried to follow her, but fell on his face, groaning. Raphael lifted him,  
strove to drag up the steep bank: but his knees knocked together; a faint sweat  
seemed to melt every limb …. There was a pause, which secured ages long ….  
Nearer and nearer came the trampling …. A sudden gleam of the moon revealed  
Victoria standing with outspread arms, right before the horses’ heads. A heavenly  
glory seemed to bathe her from head to foot …. or was it tears sparkling in his  
own eyes? .... Then the grate and jar of the horse-hoofs on the road, as they  
pulled up suddenly …. He turned his face away and shut his eyes….  
‘What are you?’ thundered a voice.  
‘Victoria, the daughter of Majoricus the Prefect.’  
The voice was low, but yet so clear and calm, that every syllable rang through  
Aben-Ezra’s tingling ears….  
A shout—a shriek—the confused murmur of many voices …. He looked up, in  
spite of himself-a horseman had sprung to the ground, and clasped Victoria in his  
arms. The human heart of flesh, asleep for many a year, leaped into mad life  
within his breast, and drawing his dagger, he rushed into the throng—  
‘Villains! Hellhounds! I will balk you! She shall die first!’  
And the bright blade gleamed over Victoria’s head …. He was struck down—  
blinded—half-stunned—but rose again with the energy of madness …. What  
was this? Soft arms around him …. Victoria’s!  
‘Save him! spare him! He saved us! Sir! It is my brother! We are safe! Oh, spare  
the dog! It saved my father!’  
‘We have mistaken each other, indeed, sir!’said a gay young Tribune, in a voice  
trembling with joy. ‘Where is my father?’  
‘Fifty yards behind. Down, Bran! Quiet! O Solomon, mine ancestor, why did  
you not prevent me making such an egregious fool of myself? Why, I shall be  
forced, in self-justification, to carry through the farce!’  
There is no use telling what followed during the next five minutes, at the end of  
which time Raphael found himself astride of a goodly war-horse, by the side of  
the young Tribune, who carried Victoria before him. Two soldiers in the  
meantime were supporting the Prefect on his mule, and convincing that stubborn  
bearer of burdens that it was not quite so unable to trot as it had fancied, by the  
combined arguments of a drench of wine and two sword-points, while they  
heaped their general with blessings, and kissed his hands and feet.  
‘Your father’s soldiers seem to consider themselves in debt to him: not, surely,  
for taking them where they could best run away?’  
‘Ah, poor fellows!’said the Tribune; ‘we have had as real a panic among us as I  
ever read of in Arrian or Polybius. But he has been a father rather than a general  
to them. It is not often that, out of a routed army, twenty gallant men will  
volunteer to ride back into the enemy’s ranks, on the chance of an old man’s  
breathing still.’  
‘Then you knew where to find us?’said Victoria.  
‘Some of them knew. And he himself showed us this very by-road yesterday,  
when we took up our ground, and told us it might be of service on occasion—  
and so it has been.’  
‘But they told me that you were taken prisoner. Oh, the torture I have suffered  
for you!’  
‘Silly child! Did you fancy my father’s son would be taken alive? I and the first  
troop got away over the garden walls, and cut our way out into the plain, three  
hours ago.’  
‘Did I not tell you,’said Victoria, leaning toward Raphael, ‘that God would  
protect His own?’  
‘You did,’ answered he; and fell into a long and silent meditation.  
CHAPTER XIV: THE ROCKS OF THE SIRENS  
THESE four months had been busy and eventful enough to Hypatia and to  
Philammon; yet the events and the business were of so gradual and uniform a  
tenor, that it is as well to pass quickly over them, and show what had happened  
principally by its effects.  
The robust and fiery desert-lad was now metamorphosed into the pale and  
thoughtful student, oppressed with the weight of careful thought and weary  
memory. But those remembrances were all recent ones. With his entrance into  
Hypatia’s lecture-room, and into the fairy realms of Greek thought, a new life  
had begun for him; and the Laura, and Pambo, and Arsenius, seemed dim  
phantoms from some antenatal existence, which faded day by day before the  
inrush of new and startling knowledge.  
But though the friends and scenes of his childhood had fallen back so swiftly  
into the far horizon, he was not lonely. His heart found a lovelier, if not a  
healthier home, than it had ever known before. For during those four peaceful  
and busy months of study there had sprung up between Hypatia and the beautiful  
boy one of those pure and yet passionate friendships—call them rather, with St.  
Augustine, by the sacred name of love—which, fair and holy as they are when  
they link youth to youth, or girl to girl, reach their full perfection only between  
man and woman. The unselfish adoration with which a maiden may bow down  
before some strong and holy priest, or with which an enthusiastic boy may cling  
to the wise and tender matron, who, amid the turmoil of the world, and the pride  
of beauty, and the cares of wifehood, bends down to with counsel and  
encouragement—earth knows no fairer bonds than these, save wedded love  
itself. And that second relation, motherly rather than sisterly, had bound  
Philammon with a golden chain to the wondrous maid of Alexandria.  
From the commencement of his attendance in her lecture-room she had suited  
her discourses to what she fancied were his especial spiritual needs; and many a  
glance of the eye towards him, on any peculiarly important sentence, set the poor  
boy’s heart beating at that sign that the words were meant for him. But before a  
month was past, won by the intense attention with which he watched for every  
utterance of hers, she had persuaded her father to give a place in the library as  
one of his pupils, among the youths who were employed there daily in  
transcribing, as well as in studying, the authors then in fashion.  
She saw him at first but seldom—more seldom than she would have wished; but  
she dreaded the tongue of scandal, heathen as well as Christian, and contented  
herself with inquiring daily from her father about the progress of the boy. And  
when at times she entered for a moment the library, where he sat writing, or  
passed him on her way to the Museum, a look was interchanged, on her part of  
most gracious approval, and on his of adoring gratitude, which was enough for  
both. Her spell was working surely; and she was too confident in her own cause  
and her own powers to wish to hurry that transformation for which she so fondly  
hoped.  
‘He must begin at the beginning,’ thought she to herself. ‘Mathematics and the  
Parmenides are enough for him as yet. Without a training in the liberal sciences  
be cannot gain a faith worthy of those gods to whom some day I shall present  
him; and I should find his Christian ignorance and fanaticism transferred, whole  
and rude, to the service of those gods whose shrine is unapproachable save to the  
spiritual man, who has passed through the successive vestibules of science and  
philosophy.’  
But soon, attracted herself, as much as wishing to attract him, she employed him  
in copying manuscripts for her own use. She sent back his themes and  
declamations, corrected with her own hand; and Philammon laid them by in his  
little garret at Eudaimon’s house as precious badges of honour, after exhibiting  
them to the reverential and envious gaze of the little porter. So he toiled on, early  
and late, counting himself well paid for a week’s intense exertion by a single  
smile or word of approbation, and went home to pour out his soul to his host on  
the one inexhaustible theme which they had in common—Hypatia and her  
perfections. He would have raved often enough on the same subject to his  
fellow-pupils, but he shrank not only from their artificial city manners, but also  
from their morality, for suspecting which he saw but too good cause. He longed  
to go out into the streets, to proclaim to the whole world the treasure which he  
had found, and call on all to come and share it with him. For there was no  
jealousy in that pure love of his. Could he have seen her lavishing on thousands  
far greater favours than she had conferred on him, he would have rejoiced in the  
thought that there were so many more blest beings upon earth, and have loved  
them all and every one as brothers, for having deserved her notice. Her very  
beauty, when his first flush of wonder was past, he ceased to mention—ceased  
even to think of it. Of course she must be beautiful. It was her right; the natural  
complement of her other graces but it was to him only what the mother’s smile is  
to the infant, the sunlight to the skylark, the mountain-breeze to the hunter—an  
inspiring element, on which he fed unconsciously. Only when he doubted for a  
moment some especially startling or fanciful assertion, did he become really  
aware of the great loveliness of her who made it; and then his heart silenced his  
judgment with the thought—Could any but true words come out of those perfect  
lips?— any but royal thoughts take shape within that queenly head? .... Poor  
fool! Yet was it not natural enough?  
Then, gradually, as she passed the boy, poring over his book, in some alcove of  
the Museum Gardens, she would invite him by a glance to join the knot of  
loungers and questioners who dangled about her and her father, and fancied  
themselves to be reproducing the days of the Athenian sages amid the groves of  
another Academus. Sometimes, even, she had beckoned him to her side as she  
sat in some retired arbour, attended only by her father; and there some passing  
observation, earnest and personal, however lofty and measured, made him  
aware, as it was intended to do, that she had a deeper interest in him, a livelier  
sympathy for him, than for the many; that he was in her eyes not merely a pupil  
to be instructed, but a soul whom she desired to educate. And those delicious  
gleams of sunlight grew more frequent and more protracted; for by each she  
satisfied herself more and more that she had not mistaken either his powers or  
his susceptibilities: and in each, whether in public or private, Philammon seemed  
to bear himself more worthily. For over and above the natural ease and dignity  
which accompanies physical beauty, and the modesty, self-restraint, and deep  
earnestness which be had acquired under the discipline of the Laura, his Greek  
character was developing itself in all its quickness, subtlety, and versatility, until  
he seemed to Hypatia some young Titan, by the side of the flippant, hasty, and  
insincere talkers who made up her chosen circle.  
But man can no more live upon Platonic love than on the more prolific species  
of that common ailment; and for the first month Philammon would have gone  
hungry to his couch full many a night, to lie awake from baser causes than  
philosophic meditation, had it not been for his magnanimous host, who never  
lost heart for a moment, either about himself, or any other human being. As for  
Philammon’s going out with him to earn his bread, he would not hear of it. Did  
he suppose that he could meet any of those monkish rascals in the street, without  
being knocked down and carried off by main force? And besides there was a sort  
of impiety in allowing so hopeful a student to neglect the ‘Divine Ineffable’ in  
order to supply the base necessities of the teeth. So he should pay no rent for his  
lodgings—positively none; and as for eatables—why, he must himself work a  
little harder in order to cater for both. Had not all his neighbours their litters of  
children to provide for, while he, thanks to the immortals, had been far too wise  
to burden the earth with animals who would add to the ugliness of their father  
the Tartarean hue of their mother? And after all, Philammon could pay him back  
when he became a great sophist, and made money, as of course he would some  
day or other; and in the meantime, something might turn up—things were  
always turning up for those whom the gods favoured; and besides, he had fully  
ascertained that on the day on which he first met Philammon, the planets were  
favourable, the Mercury being in something or other, he forgot what, with  
Helios, which portended for Philammon, in his opinion, a similar career with  
that of the glorious and devout Emperor Julian.  
Philammon winced somewhat at the hint; which seemed to have an ugly  
verisimilitude in it: but still, philosophy he must learn, and bread he must eat; so  
he submitted.  
But one evening, a few days after he had been admitted as Theon’s pupil, he  
found, much to his astonishment, lying on the table in his garret, an undeniable  
glittering gold piece. He took it down to the porter the next morning, and begged  
him to discover the owner of the lost coin, and return it duly. But what was his  
surprise, when the little man, amid endless capers and gesticulations, informed  
him with an air of mystery, that it was anything but lost; that his arrears of rent  
had been paid for him; and that by the bounty of the upper powers, a fresh piece  
of coin would be forthcoming every month! In vain Philammon demanded to  
know who was his benefactor. Eudaimon resolutely kept the secret and  
imprecated a whole Tartarus of unnecessary curses on his wife if she allowed her  
female garrulity—though the poor creature seemed never to open her lips from  
morning till night—to betray so great a mystery.  
Who was the unknown friend? There was but one person who could have done it  
…. And yet he dared not—the thought was too delightful— think it was she. It  
must have been her father. The old man had asked him more than once about the  
state of his purse. True, he had always returned evasive answers; but the kind old  
man must have divined the truth. Ought he not—must he not—go and thank  
him? No; perhaps it was more courteous to say nothing. If he—she—for of  
course she had permitted, perhaps advised, the gift—had intended him to thank  
them, would they have so carefully concealed their own generosity? .... Be it so,  
then. But how would he not repay them for it! How delightful to be in her debt  
for anything—for everything! Would that he could have the enjoyment of owing  
her existence itself!  
So he took the coin, bought unto himself a cloak of the most philosophic fashion,  
and went his way, such as it was, rejoicing.  
But his faith in Christianity? What had become of that?  
What usually happens in such cases. It was not dead; but nevertheless it had  
fallen fast asleep for the time being. He did not disbelieve it; he would have been  
shocked to hear such a thing asserted of him: but he happened to be busy  
believing something else—geometry, conic sections, cosmogonies, psychologies,  
and what not. And so it befell that he had not just then time to believe in  
Christianity. He recollected at times its existence; but even then he neither  
affirmed nor denied it. When he had solved the great questions—those which  
Hypatia set forth as the roots of all knowledge—how the world was made, and  
what was the origin of evil, and what his own personality was, and—that being  
settled—whether he had one, with a few other preliminary matters, then it would  
be time to return, with his enlarged light, to the study of Christianity; and if, of  
course, Christianity should be found to be at variance with that enlarged light, as  
Hypatia seemed to think …. Why, then—What then? .... He would not think  
about such disagreeable possibilities. Sufficient for the day was the evil thereof.  
Possibilities? It was impossible …. Philosophy could not mislead. Had not  
Hypatia defined it, as man’s search after the unseen? And if he found the unseen  
by it, did it not come to just the same thing as if the unseen had revealed itself to  
him? And he must find it—for logic and mathematics could not err. If every step  
was correct, the conclusion must be correct also; so he must end, after all, in the  
right path—that is, of course, supposing Christianity to be the right path—and  
return to fight the Church’s battles, with the sword which he had wrested from  
Goliath the Philistine….But he had not won the sword yet.; and in the  
meanwhile, learning was weary work; and sufficient for the day was the good, as  
well as the evil, thereof.  
So, enabled by his gold coin each month to devote himself entirely to study, he  
became very much what Peter would have coarsely termed a heathen. At first,  
indeed, he slipped into the Christian churches, from a habit of conscience. But  
habits soon grow sleepy; the fear of discovery and recapture made his attendance  
more and more of a labour. And keeping himself apart as much as possible from  
the congregation, as a lonely and secret worshipper, he soon found himself as  
separate from them in heart as in daily life. He felt that they, and even more than  
they, those flowery and bombastic pulpit rhetoricians, who were paid for their  
sermons by the clapping and cheering of the congregation, were not thinking of,  
longing after, the same things as himself. Besides, he never spoke to a Christian;  
for the negress at his lodgings seemed to avoid him— whether from modesty or  
terror, be could not tell; and cut off thus from the outward ‘communion of  
saints,’ he found himself fast parting away from the inward one. So he went no  
more to church, and looked the other way, he hardly knew why, whenever he  
passed the Caesareum; and Cyril, and all his mighty organisation, became to him  
another world, with which he had even less to do than with those planets over his  
head, whose mysterious movements, and symbolisms, and influences Hypatia’s  
lectures on astronomy were just opening before his bewildered imagination.  
Hypatia watched all this with growing self-satisfaction, and fed herself with the  
dream that through Philammon she might see her wildest hopes realised. After  
the manner of women, she crowned him, in her own imagination, with all  
powers and excellences which she would have wished him to possess, as well as  
with those which he actually manifested, till Philammon would have been as  
much astonished as self-glorified could he have seen the idealised caricature of  
himself which the sweet enthusiast had painted for her private enjoyment. They  
were blissful months those to poor Hypatia. Orestes, for some reason or other,  
had neglected to urge his suit, and the Iphigenia-sacrifice had retired mercifully  
into the background. Perhaps she should be able now to accomplish all without  
it. And yet—it was so long to wait! Years might pass before Philammon’s  
education was matured, and with them golden opportunities which might never  
recur again.  
‘Ah!’she sighed at times, ‘that Julian had lived a generation later! That I could  
have brought all my hard-earned treasures to the feet of the Poet of the Sun, and  
cried, “Take me!—Hero, warrior, statesman, sage, priest of the God of Light!  
Take thy slave! Command her—send her—to martyrdom, if thou wilt!” A pretty  
price would that have been wherewith to buy the honour of being the meanest of  
thy apostles, the fellow-labourer of Iamblichus, Maximus, Libanius, and the  
choir of sages who upheld the throne of the last true Caesar!’  
CHAPTER XV: NEPHELOCOCCUGIA  
Hypatia had always avoided carefully discussing with Philammon any of those  
points on which she differed from his former faith. She was content to let the  
divine light of philosophy penetrate by its own power, and educe its own  
conclusions. But one day, at the very time at which this history reopens, she was  
tempted to speak more openly to her pupil than she yet had done. Her father had  
introduced him, a few days before, to a new work of hers on Mathematics; and  
the delighted and adoring look with which the boy welcomed her, as he met her  
in the Museum Gardens, pardonably tempted her curiosity to inquire what  
miracles her own wisdom might have already worked. She stopped in her walk,  
and motioned her father to begin a conversation with Philammon.  
‘Well!’ asked the old man, with an encouraging smile, ‘and how does our pupil  
like his new—’  
‘You mean my conic sections, father? It is hardly fair to expect an unbiassed  
answer in my presence.’  
‘Why so?’said Philammon. ‘Why should I not tell you, as well as all the world,  
the fresh and wonderful field of thought which they have opened to me in a few  
short hours?’  
‘What then?’ asked Hypatia, smiling, as if she knew what the answer would be.  
‘In what does my commentary differ from the original text of Apollonius, on  
which I have so faithfully based it?’  
‘Oh, as much as a living body differs from a dead one. Instead of mere dry  
disquisitions on the properties of lines and curves, I found a mine of poetry and  
theology. Every dull mathematical formula seemed transfigured, as if by a  
miracle, into the symbol of some deep and noble principle of the unseen world.’  
‘And do you think that he of Perga did not see as much? or that we can pretend  
to surpass, in depth of insight, the sages of the elder world? Be sure that they,  
like the poets, meant only spiritual things, even when they seem to talk only of  
physical ones, and concealed heaven under an earthly garb, only to hide it from  
the eyes of the profane; while we, in these degenerate days, must interpret and  
display each detail to the dull ears of men.’  
‘Do you think, my young friend,’ asked Theon, ‘that mathematics can be  
valuable to the philosopher otherwise than as vehicles of spiritual truth? Are we  
to study numbers merely that we may be able to keep accounts; or as Pythagoras  
did, in order to deduce from their laws the ideas by which the universe, man,  
Divinity itself, consists?’  
‘That seems to me certainly to be the nobler purpose.’  
‘Or conic sections, that we may know better how to construct machinery; or  
rather to devise from them symbols of the relations of Deity to its various  
emanations?’  
‘You use your dialectic like Socrates himself, my father,’said Hypatia.  
‘If I do, it is only for a temporary purpose. I should be sorry to accustom  
Philammon to suppose that the essence of philosophy was to be found in those  
minute investigations of words and analyses of notions, which seem to constitute  
Plato’s chief power in the eyes of those who, like the Christian sophist  
Augustine, worship his letter while they neglect his spirit; not seeing that those  
dialogues, which they fancy the shrine itself, are but vestibules—’  
‘Say rather, veils, father.’  
‘Veils, indeed, which were intended to baffle the rude gaze of the carnal-minded;  
but still vestibules, through which the enlightened soul might be led up to the  
inner sanctuary, to the Hesperid gardens and golden fruit of the Timaeus and the  
oracles …. And for myself, were but those two books left, I care not whether  
every other writing in the world perished to-morrow.’\[Footnote: This astounding  
speech is usually attributed to Proclus, Hypatia’s ‘great’successor.\]  
‘You must except Homer, father.’  
‘Yes, for the herd …. But of what use would he be to them without some  
spiritual commentary?’  
‘He would tell them as little, perhaps, as the circle tells to the carpenter who  
draws one with his compasses.’  
‘And what is the meaning of the circle?’ asked Philammon.  
‘It may have infinite meanings, like every other natural phenomenon; and deeper  
meanings in proportion to the exaltation of the soul which beholds it. But,  
consider, is it not, as the one perfect figure, the very symbol of the totality of the  
spiritual world; which, like it, is invisible, except at its circumference, where it is  
limited by the dead gross phenomena of sensuous matter! and even as the circle  
takes its origin from one centre, itself unseen,—a point, as Euclid defines it,  
whereof neither parts nor magnitude can be predicated,—does not the world of  
spirits revolve round one abysmal being, unseen and undefinable—in itself, as I  
have so often preached, nothing, for it is conceivable only by the negation of all  
properties, even of those of reason, virtue, force; and yet, like the centre of the  
circle, the cause of all other existences?’  
‘I see,’said Philammon; for the moment, certainly, the said abysmal Deity struck  
him as a somewhat chill and barren notion …. but that might be caused only by  
the dulness of his own spiritual perceptions. At all events, if it was a logical  
conclusion, it must be right.  
‘Let that be enough for the present. Hereafter you may be—I fancy that I know  
you well enough to prophesy that you will be—able to recognise in the  
equilateral triangle inscribed within the circle, and touching it only with its  
angles, the three supra-sensual principles of existence, which are contained in  
Deity as it manifests itself in the physical universe, coinciding with its utmost  
limits, and yet, like it, dependent on that unseen central One which none dare  
name.’  
‘Ah!’said poor Philammon, blushing scarlet at the sense of his own dulness, ‘I  
am, indeed, not worthy to have such wisdom wasted upon my imperfect  
apprehension …. But, if I may dare to ask …. does not Apollonius regard the  
circle, like all other curves, as not depending primarily on its own centre for its  
existence, but as generated by the section of any cone by a plane at right angles  
to its axis?’  
‘But must we not draw, or at least conceive a circle, in order to produce that  
cone? And is not the axis of that cone determined by the centre of that circle?’  
Philammon stood rebuked.  
‘Do not be ashamed; you have only, unwittingly, laid open another, and perhaps,  
as deep a symbol. Can you guess what it is?’  
Philammon puzzled in vain.  
‘Does it not show you this? That, as every conceivable right section of the cone  
discloses the circle, so in all which is fair and symmetric you will discover Deity,  
if you but analyse it in a right and symmetric direction?’  
‘Beautiful!’said Philammon, while the old man added—  
‘And does it not show us, too, how the one perfect and original philosophy may  
be discovered in all great writers, if we have but that scientific knowledge which  
will enable us to extract it?’  
‘True, my father: but just now, I wish Philammon, by such thoughts as I have  
suggested, to rise to that higher and more spiritual insight into nature, which  
reveals her to us as instinct throughout —all fair and noble forms of her at least  
—with Deity itself; to make him feel that it is not enough to say, with the  
Christians, that God has made the world, if we make that very assertion an  
excuse for believing that His presence has been ever since withdrawn from it.’  
‘Christians, I think, would hardly say that,’said Philammon.  
‘Not in words. But, in fact, they regard Deity as the maker of a dead machine,  
which, once made, will move of itself thenceforth, and repudiate as heretics  
every philosophic thinker, whether Gnostic or Platonist, who, unsatisfied with so  
dead, barren, and sordid a conception of the glorious all, wishes to honour the  
Deity by acknowledging His universal presence, and to believe, honestly, the  
assertion of their own Scriptures, that He lives and moves, and has His being in  
the universe.’  
Philammon gently suggested that the passage in question was worded somewhat  
differently in the Scripture.  
‘True. But if the one be true, its converse will be true also. If the universe lives  
and moves, and has its being in Him, must He not necessarily pervade all  
things?’  
‘Why?—Forgive my dulness, and explain.’  
‘Because, if He did not pervade all things, those things which He did not pervade  
would be as it were interstices in His being, and in so far, without Him.’  
‘True, but still they would be within His circumference.’  
‘Well argued. But yet they would not live in Him, but in themselves. To live in  
Him they must be pervaded by His life. Do you think it possible—do you think it  
even reverent to affirm that there can be anything within the infinite glory of  
Deity which has the power of excluding from the space which it occupies that  
very being from which it draws its worth, and which must have originally  
pervaded that thing, in order to bestow on it its organisation and its life? Does  
He retire after creating, from the spaces which He occupied during creation,  
reduced to the base necessity of making room for His own universe, and endure  
the suffering—for the analogy of all material nature tells us that it is suffering—  
of a foreign body, like a thorn within the flesh, subsisting within His own  
substance? Rather believe that His wisdom and splendour, like a subtle and  
piercing fire, insinuates itself eternally with resistless force through every  
organised atom, and that were it withdrawn but for an instant from the petal of  
the meanest flower, gross matter, and the dead chaos from which it was formed,  
would be all which would remain of its loveliness….  
‘Yes’—she went on, after the method of her school, who preferred, like most  
decaying ones, harangues to dialectic, and synthesis to induction …. ‘Look at  
yon lotus-flower, rising like Aphrodite from the wave in which it has slept  
throughout the night, and saluting, with bending swan-neck, that sun which it  
will follow lovingly around the sky. Is there no more there than brute matter,  
pipes and fibres, colour and shape, and the meaningless life-in-death which men  
call vegetation? Those old Egyptian priests knew better, who could see in the  
number and the form of those ivory petals and golden stamina, in that mysterious  
daily birth out of the wave, in that nightly baptism, from which it rises each  
morning re-born to a new life, the signs of some divine idea, some mysterious  
law, common to the flower itself, to the white-robed priestess who held it in the  
temple rites, and to the goddess to whom they both were consecrated …. The  
flower of Isis! .... Ah!—well. Nature has her sad symbols, as well as her fair  
ones. And in proportion as a misguided nation has forgotten the worship of her  
to whom they owed their greatness, for novel and barbaric superstitions, so has  
her sacred flower grown rarer and more rare, till now—fit emblem of the  
worship over which it used to shed its perfume—it is only to be found in gardens  
such as these—a curiosity to the vulgar, and, to such as me, a lingering  
monument of wisdom and of glory past away.’  
Philammon, it may be seen, was far advanced by this time; for he bore the  
allusions to Isis without the slightest shudder. Nay—he dared even to offer  
consolation to the beautiful mourner.  
‘The philosopher,’ he said, ‘will hardly lament the loss of a mere outward  
idolatry. For if, as you seem to think, there were a root of spiritual truth in the  
symbolism of nature, that cannot die. And thus the lotus-flower must still retain  
its meaning, as long as its species exists on earth.’  
‘Idolatry!’ answered she, with a smile. ‘My pupil must not repeat to me that  
worn-out Christian calumny. Into whatsoever low superstitions the pious vulgar  
may have fallen, it is the Christians now, and not the heathens, who are idolaters.  
They who ascribe miraculous power to dead men’s bones, who make temples of  
charnel- houses, and bow before the images of the meanest of mankind, have  
surely no right to accuse of idolatry the Greek or the Egyptian, who embodies in  
a form of symbolic beauty ideas beyond the reach of words!  
‘Idolatry? Do I worship the Pharos when I gaze at it, as I do for hours, with  
loving awe, as the token to me of the all-conquering might of Hellas? Do I  
worship the roll on which Homer’s words are written, when I welcome with  
delight the celestial truths which it unfolds to me, and even prize and love the  
material book for the sake of the message which it brings? Do you fancy that any  
but the vulgar worship the image itself, or dream that it can help or hear them?  
Does the lover mistake his mistress’s picture for the living, speaking reality? We  
worship the idea of which the image is a symbol. Will you blame us because we  
use that symbol to represent the idea to our own affections and emotions instead  
of leaving it a barren notion, a vague imagination of our own intellect?’  
‘Then,’ asked Philammon, with a faltering voice, yet unable to restrain his  
curiosity, ‘then you do reverence the heathen gods?’  
Why Hypatia should have felt this question a sore one, puzzled Philammon; but  
she evidently did feel it as such, for she answered haughtily enough—  
‘If Cyril had asked me that question, I should have disdained to answer. To you I  
will tell, that before I can answer your question you must learn what those whom  
you call heathen gods are. The vulgar, or rather those who find it their interest to  
calumniate the vulgar for the sake of confounding philosophers with them, may  
fancy them mere human beings, subject like man to the sufferings of pain and  
love, to the limitations of personality. We, on the other hand, have been taught  
by the primeval philosophers of Greece, by the priests of ancient Egypt, and the  
sages of Babylon, to recognise in them the universal powers of nature, those  
children of the all- quickening spirit, which are but various emanations of the  
one primeval unity—say rather, various phases of that unity, as it has been  
variously conceived, according to the differences of climate and race, by the  
wise of different nations. And thus, in our eyes, he who reverences the many,  
worships by that very act, with the highest and fullest adoration, the one of  
whose perfection they are the partial antitypes; perfect each in themselves, but  
each the image of only one of its perfections.’  
‘Why, then,’said Philammon, much relieved by this explanation, ‘do you so  
dislike Christianity? may it not be one of the many methods—  
‘  
‘Because,’she answered, interrupting him impatiently, ‘because it denies itself to  
be one of those many methods, and stakes its existence on the denial; because it  
arrogates to itself the exclusive revelation of the Divine, and cannot see, in its  
self- conceit, that its own doctrines disprove that assumption by their similarity  
to those of all creeds. There is not a dogma of the Galileans which may not be  
found, under some form or other, in some of those very religions from which it  
pretends to disdain borrowing.’  
‘Except,’said Theon, ‘its exaltation of all which is human and low- born,  
illiterate, and levelling.’  
‘Except that—. But look! here comes some one whom I cannot—do not choose  
to meet. Turn this way—quick!’  
And Hypatia, turning pale as death, drew her father with unphilosophic haste  
down a side-walk.  
‘Yes,’she went on to herself, as soon as she had recovered her equanimity. ‘Were  
this Galilean superstition content to take its place humbly among the other  
“religiones licitas” of the empire, one might tolerate it well enough, as an  
anthropomorphic adumbration of divine things fitted for the base and toiling  
herd; perhaps peculiarly fitted, because peculiarly flattering to them. But now—  
‘  
‘There is Miriam again,’said Philammon, ‘right before us!’  
‘Miriam?’ asked Hypatia severely. ‘You know her then? How is that?’  
‘She lodges at Eudaimon’s house, as I do,’ answered Philammon frankly. ‘Not  
that I ever interchanged, or wish to interchange, a word with so base a creature.’  
‘Do not! I charge you!’said Hypatia, almost imploringly. But there was now no  
way of avoiding her, and perforce Hypatia and her tormentress met face to face.  
‘One word! one moment, beautiful lady,’ began the old woman, with a slavish  
obeisance. ‘Nay, do not push by so cruelly. I have—see what I have for you!’  
and she held out with a mysterious air, ‘The Rainbow of Solomon.’  
‘Ah! I knew you would stop a moment—not for the ring’s sake, of course, nor  
even for the sake of one who once offered it to you.— Ah! and where is he now?  
Dead of love, perhaps! at least, here is his last token to the fairest one, the cruel  
one …. Well, perhaps she is right …. To be an empress—an empress! .... Far  
finer than anything the poor Jew could have offered …. But still …. An empress  
need not be above hearing her subject’s petition….’  
All this was uttered rapidly, and in a wheedling undertone, with a continual  
snaky writhing of her whole body, except her eye, which seemed, in the intense  
fixity of its glare, to act as a fulcrum for all her limbs; and from that eye, as long  
as it kept its mysterious hold, there was no escaping.  
‘What do you mean? What have I to do with this ring?’ asked Hypatia, half  
frightened.  
‘He who owned it once, offers it to you now. You recollect a little black agate—a  
paltry thing. .... If you have not thrown it away, as you most likely have, be  
wishes to redeem it with this opal …. a gem surely more fit for such a hand as  
that.’  
‘He gave me the agate, and I shall keep it.’  
‘But this opal—worth, oh, worth ten thousand gold pieces—in exchange for that  
paltry broken thing not worth one?’  
‘I am not a dealer, like you, and have not yet learnt to value things by their  
money price. It that agate had been worth money, I would never have accepted  
it.’  
‘Take the ring, take it, my darling,’ whispered Theon impatiently; ‘it will pay all  
our debts.’  
‘Ah, that it will—pay them all,’ answered the old woman, who seemed to have  
mysteriously overheard him.  
‘What!—my father! Would you, too, counsel me to be so mercenary? My good  
woman,’she went on, turning to Miriam, ‘I cannot expect you to understand the  
reason of my refusal. You and I have a different standard of worth. But for the  
sake of the talisman engraven on that agate, if for no other reason, I cannot give  
it up.’  
‘Ah! for the sake of the talisman! That is wise, now! That is noble! Like a  
philosopher! Oh, I will not say a word more. Let the beautiful prophetess keep  
the agate, and take the opal too; for see, there is a charm on it also! The name by  
which Solomon compelled the demons to do his bidding. Look! What might you  
not do now, if you knew how to use that! To have great glorious angels, with six  
wings each, bowing at your feet whensoever you called them, and saying, “Here  
am I, mistress; send me.” Only look at it!’  
Hypatia took the tempting bait, and examined it with more curiosity than she  
would have wished to confess; while the old woman went on—  
‘But the wise lady knows how to use the black agate, of course? Aben-Ezra told  
her that, did he not?’  
Hypatia blushed somewhat; she was ashamed to confess that Aben-Ezra had not  
revealed the secret to her, probably not believing that there was any, and that the  
talisman had been to her only a curious plaything, of which she liked to believe  
one day that it might possibly have some occult virtue, and the next day to laugh  
at the notion as unphilosophical and barbaric; so she answered, rather severely,  
that her secrets were her own property.  
‘Ah, then! she knows it all—the fortunate lady! And the talisman has told her  
whether Heraclian has lost or won Rome by this time, and whether she is to be  
the mother of a new dynasty of Ptolemies, or to die a virgin, which the Four  
Angels avert! And surely she has had the great demon come to her already, when  
she rubbed the flat side, has she not?’  
‘Go, foolish woman! I am not like you, the dupe of childish superstitions.’  
‘Childish superstitions! Ha! ha! ha!‘said the old woman, as she turned to go,  
with obeisances more lowly than ever. ‘And she has not seen the Angels yet! ....  
Ah well! perhaps some day, when she wants to know how to use the talisman,  
the beautiful lady will condescend to let the poor old Jewess show her the way.’  
And Miriam disappeared down an alley, and plunged into the thickest  
shrubberies, while the three dreamers went on their way.  
Little thought Hypatia that the moment the old woman had found herself alone,  
she had dashed herself down on the turf, rolling and biting at the leaves like an  
infuriated wild beast. .... ‘I will have it yet! I will have it, if I tear out her heart  
with it!’  
CHAPTER XVI: VENUS AND PALLAS  
As Hypatia was passing across to her lecture-room that afternoon, she was  
stopped midway by a procession of some twenty Goths and damsels, headed by  
Pelagia herself, in all her glory of jewels, shawls, and snow-white mule; while  
by her side rode the Amal, his long legs, like those of Gang-Rolf the Norseman,  
all but touching the ground, as he crushed down with his weight a delicate little  
barb, the best substitute to be found in Alexandria for the huge black chargers of  
his native land.  
On they came, followed by a wondering and admiring mob, straight to the door  
of the Museum, and stopping began to dismount, while their slaves took charge  
of the mules and horses.  
There was no escape for Hypatia; pride forbade her to follow her own maidenly  
instinct, and to recoil among the crowd behind her; and in another moment the  
Amal had lifted Pelagia from her mule, and the rival beauties of Alexandria  
stood, for the first time in their lives, face to face.  
‘May Athene befriend you this day, Hypatia!’said Pelagia with her sweetest  
smile. ‘I have brought my guards to hear somewhat of your wisdom this  
afternoon. I am anxious to know whether you can teach Ahem anything more  
worth listening to than the foolish little songs which Aphrodite taught me, when  
she raised me from the sea-foam, as she rose herself, and named me Pelagia.’  
Hypatia drew herself up to her stateliest height, and returned no answer.  
‘I think my bodyguard will well hear comparison with yours. At least they are  
the princes and descendants of deities. So it is but fitting that they should enter  
before your provincials. Will you show them the way?’  
No answer.  
‘Then I must do it myself. Come, Amal!’ and she swept up the steps, followed  
by the Goths, who put the Alexandrians aside right and left, as if they had been  
children.  
‘Ah! treacherous wanton that you are!’ cried a young man’s voice out of the  
murmuring crowd. ‘After having plundered us of every coin out of which you  
could dupe us, here you are squandering our patrimonies on barbarians!’  
‘Give us back our presents, Pelagia,’ cried another, ‘and you are welcome to  
your herd of wild bulls!’  
‘And I will!’ cried she, stopping suddenly; and clutching at her chains and  
bracelets, she was on the point of dashing them among the astonished crowd—  
‘There! take your gifts! Pelagia and her girls scorn to be debtors to boys, while  
they are worshipped by men like these!’  
But the Amal, who, luckily for the students, had not understood a word of this  
conversation, seized her arm, asking if she were mad.  
‘No, no!’ panted she, inarticulate with passion. ‘Give me gold— every coin you  
have. These wretches are twitting me with what they gave me before—before—  
oh Amal, you understand me?’ And she clung imploringly to his arm.  
‘Oh! Heroes! each of you throw his purse among these fellows! they say that we  
and our ladies are living on their spoils!’ And be tossed his purse among the  
crowd.  
In an instant every Goth had followed his example: more than one following it  
up by dashing a bracelet or necklace into the face of some hapless  
philosophaster.  
‘I have no lady, my young friends,’said old Wulf, in good enough Greek, ‘and  
owe you nothing: so I shall keep my money, as you might have kept yours; and  
as you might, too, old Smid, if you had been as wise as I.’  
‘Don’t be stingy, prince, for the honour of the Goths,’said Smid, laughing.  
‘If I take in gold I pay in iron,’ answered Wulf, drawing half out of its sheath the  
huge broad blade, at the ominous brown stains of which the studentry recoiled;  
and the whole party swept into the empty lecture-room, and seated themselves at  
their ease in the front ranks.  
Poor Hypatia! At first she determined not to lecture—then to send for Orestes—  
then to call on her students to defend the sanctity of the Museum; but pride, as  
well as prudence, advised her better; to retreat would be to confess herself  
conquered—to disgrace philosophy—to lose her hold on the minds of all  
waverers. No! she would go on and brave everything, insults, even violence; and  
with trembling limbs and a pale cheek, she mounted the tribune and began.  
To her surprise and delight, however, her barbarian auditors were perfectly well  
behaved. Pelagia, in childish good-humour at her triumph, and perhaps, too,  
determined to show her contempt for her adversary by giving her every chance,  
enforced silence and attention, and checked the tittering of the girls, for a full  
half- hour. But at the end of that time the heavy breathing of the slumbering  
Amal, who had been twice awoke by her, resounded unchecked through the  
lecture-room, and deepened into a snore; for Pelagia herself was as fast asleep as  
he. But now another censor took upon himself the office of keeping order. Old  
Wulf, from the moment Hypatia had begun, had never taken his eyes off her  
face; and again and again the maiden’s weak heart had been cheered, as she saw  
the smile of sturdy intelligence and honest satisfaction which twinkled over that  
scarred and bristly visage; while every now and then the graybeard wagged  
approval, until she found herself, long before the end of the oration, addressing  
herself straight to her new admirer.  
At last it was over, and the students behind, who had sat meekly through it all,  
without the slightest wish to ‘upset’ the intruders, who had so thoroughly upset  
them, rose hurriedly, glad enough to get safe out of so dangerous a  
neighbourhood. But to their astonishment, as well as to that of Hypatia, old Wulf  
rose also, and stumbling along to the foot of the tribune, pulled out his purse, and  
laid it at Hypatia’s feet.  
‘What is this?’ asked she, half terrified at the approach of a figure more rugged  
and barbaric than she had ever beheld before.  
‘My fee for what I have heard to-day. You are a right noble maiden, and may  
Freya send you a husband worthy of you, and make you the mother of kings!’  
And Wulf retired with his party.  
Open homage to her rival, before her very face! Pelagia felt quite inclined to  
hate old Wulf.  
But at least he was the only traitor. The rest of the Goths agreed unanimously  
that Hypatia was a very foolish person, who was wasting her youth and beauty in  
talking to donkey-riders; and Pelagia remounted her mule, and the Goths their  
horses, for a triumphal procession homeward.  
And yet her heart was sad, even in her triumph. Right and wrong were ideas as  
unknown to her as they were to hundreds of thousands in her day. As far as her  
own consciousness was concerned, she was as destitute of a soul as the mule on  
which she rode. Gifted by nature with boundless frolic and good-humour, wit  
and cunning, her Greek taste for the physically beautiful and graceful developed  
by long training, until she had become, without a rival, the most perfect  
pantomime, dancer, and musician who catered for the luxurious tastes of the  
Alexandrian theatres, she had lived since her childhood only for enjoyment and  
vanity, and wished for nothing more. But her new affection, or rather worship,  
for the huge manhood of her Gothic lover had awoke in her a new object—to  
keep him—to live for him—to follow him to the ends of the earth, even if he  
tired of her, ill-used her, despised her. And slowly, day by day, Wulf’s sneers bad  
awakened in her a dread that perhaps the Amal might despise her …. Why, she  
could not guess: but what sort of women were those Alrunas of whom Wulf  
sang, of whom even the Amal and his men spoke with reverence, as something  
nobler, not only than her, but even than themselves? And what was it which  
Wulf had recognised in Hypatia which had bowed the stern and coarse old  
warrior before her in that public homage? .... it was not difficult to say what ….  
But why should that make Hypatia or any one else attractive?. And the poor little  
child of nature gazed in deep bewilderment at a crowd of new questions, as a  
butterfly might at the pages of the book on which it has settled, and was sad and  
discontented—not with herself, for was she not Pelagia the perfect?—but with  
these strange fancies which came into other people’s heads.—Why should not  
every one be as happy as they could? And who knew better than she how to be  
happy, and to make others happy? ....  
‘Look at that old monk standing on the pavement, Amalric! Why does he stare  
so at me? Tell him to go away.’  
The person at whom she pointed, a delicate-featured old man, with a venerable  
white beard, seemed to hear her; for he turned with a sudden start, and then, to  
Pelagia’s astonishment, put his hands before his face, and burst convulsively into  
tears.  
‘What does he mean by behaving in that way? Bring him here to me this  
moment! I will know!’ cried she, petulantly catching at the new object, in order  
to escape from her own thoughts.  
In a moment a Goth had led up the weeper, who came without demur to the side  
of Pelagia’s mule.  
‘Why were you so rude as to burst out crying in my face?’ asked she petulantly.  
The old man looked up sadly and tenderly, and answered in a low voice, meant  
only for her ear—  
‘And how can I help weeping, when I see anything as beautiful as you are  
destined to the flames of hell for ever?’  
‘The flames of hell?’said Pelagia, with a shudder. ‘What for?’  
‘Do you not know?’ asked the old man, with a look of sad surprise. ‘Have you  
forgotten what you are?’  
‘I? I never hurt a fly!’  
‘Why do you look so terrified, my darling? What have you been saying to her,  
you old villain?’ and the Amal raised his whip.  
‘Oh! do not strike him. Come, come to-morrow, and tell me what you mean.’  
‘No, we will have no monks within our doors, frightening silly women. Off,  
sirrah! and thank the lady that you have escaped with a whole skin.’ And the  
Amal caught the bridle of Pelagia’s mule, and pushed forward, leaving the old  
man gazing sadly after them.  
But the beautiful sinner was evidently not the object which had brought the old  
monk of the desert into a neighbourhood so strange and ungenial to his habits;  
for, recovering himself in a few moments, he hurried on to the door of the  
Museum, and there planted himself, scanning earnestly the faces of the passersout, and meeting, of course, with his due share of student ribaldry.  
‘Well, old cat, and what mouse are you on the watch for, at the hole’s mouth  
here?’  
‘Just come inside, and see whether the mice will not singe your whiskers for  
you….’  
‘Here is my mouse, gentlemen,’ answered the old monk, with a bow and a smile,  
as he laid his hand on Philammon’s arm, and presented to his astonished eyes the  
delicate features and high retreating forehead of Arsenius.  
‘My father,’ cried the boy, in the first impulse of affectionate recognition; and  
then—he had expected some such meeting all along, but now that it was come at  
last, he turned pale as death. The students saw his emotion.  
‘Hands off, old Heautontimoroumenos! He belongs to our guild now! Monks  
have no more business with sons than with wives. Shall we hustle him for you,  
Philammon?’  
‘Take care how you show off, gentlemen: the Goths are not yet out of hearing!’  
answered Philammon, who was learning fast how to give a smart answer; and  
then, fearing the temper of the young dandies, and shrinking from the notion of  
any insult to one so reverend and so beloved as Arsenius, he drew the old man  
gently away, and walked up the street with him in silence, dreading what was  
coming.  
‘And are these your friends?’  
‘Heaven forbid! I have nothing in common with such animals but flesh and  
blood, and a seat in the lecture-room!’  
‘Of the heathen woman?’  
Philammon, after the fashion of young men in fear, rushed desperately into the  
subject himself, just because he dreaded Arsenius’s entering on it quietly.  
‘Yes, of the heathen woman. Of course you have seen Cyril before you came  
hither?’  
‘I have, and—’  
‘And,’ went on Philammon, interrupting him, ‘you have been told every lie  
which prurience, stupidity, and revenge can invent. That I have trampled on the  
cross—sacrificed to all the deities in the pantheon-and probably’—(and he  
blushed scarlet)—‘that that purest and holiest of beings—who, if she were not  
what people call a pagan, would be, and deserves to be, worshipped as the queen  
of saints—that she—and I—’ and he stopped.  
‘Have I said that I believed what I may have heard?’  
‘No—and therefore, as they are all simple and sheer falsehoods, there is no more  
to be said on the subject. Not that I shall not be delighted to answer any  
questions of yours, my dearest father—’  
‘Have I asked any, my child?’  
‘No. So we may as well change the subject for the present,’—and he began  
overwhelming the old man with inquiries about himself, Pambo, and each and all  
of the inhabitants of the Laura to which Arsenius, to the boy’s infinite relief,  
answered cordially and minutely, and even vouchsafed a smile at some jest of  
Philammon’s on the contrast between the monks of Nitria and those of Scetis.  
Arsenius was too wise not to see well enough what all this flippancy meant; and  
too wise, also, not to know that Philammon’s version was probably quite as near  
the truth as Peter’s and Cyril’s; but for reasons of his own, merely replied by an  
affectionate look, and a compliment to Philammon’s growth.  
And yet you seem thin and pale, my boy.’  
‘Study,’said Philammon, ‘study. One cannot burn the midnight oil without  
paying some penalty for it …. However, I am richly repaid already; I shall be  
more so hereafter.’  
‘Let us hope so. But who are those Goths whom I passed in the streets just  
now?’  
‘Ah! my father,’said Philammon, glad in his heart of any excuse to turn the  
conversation, and yet half uneasy and suspicious at Arsenius’s evident  
determination to avoid the very object of his visit. ‘It must have been you, then,  
whom I saw stop and speak to Pelagia at the farther end of the street. What  
words could you possibly have had wherewith to honour such a creature?’  
‘God knows. Some secret sympathy touched my heart …. Alas! poor child! But  
how came you to know her?’  
‘All Alexandria knows the shameless abomination,’ interrupted a voice at their  
elbow—none other than that of the little porter, who had been dodging and  
watching the pair the whole way, and could no longer restrain his longing to  
meddle. ‘And well it had been for many a rich young man had odd Miriam never  
brought her over, in an evil day, from Athens hither.’  
‘Miriam?’  
‘Yes, monk; a name not unknown, I am told, in palaces as well as in slavemarkets.’  
‘An evil-eyed old Jewess?’  
‘A Jewess she is, as her name might have informed you; and as for her eyes, I  
consider them, or used to do so, of course—for her injured nation have been long  
expelled from Alexandria by your fanatic tribe—as altogether divine and  
demoniac, let the base imagination of monks call them what it likes.’  
‘But how did you know this Pelagia, my son? She is no fit company for such as  
you.’  
Philammon told, honestly enough, the story of his Nile journey, and Pelagia’s  
invitation to him.  
‘You did not surely accept it?’  
‘Heaven forbid that Hypatia’s scholar should so degrade himself!’  
Arsenius shook his head sadly.  
‘You would not have had me go?’  
‘No, boy. But how long hast thou learned to call thyself Hypatia’s scholar, or to  
call it a degradation to visit the most sinful, if thou mightest thereby bring back a  
lost lamb to the Good Shepherd? Nevertheless, thou art too young for such  
employment—and she meant to tempt thee doubtless.’  
‘I do not think it. She seemed struck by my talking Athenian Greek, and having  
come from Athens.’  
‘And how long since she came from Athens?’said Arsenius, after a pause. ‘Who  
knows?’  
‘Just after it was sacked by the barbarians,’said the little porter, who, beginning  
to suspect a mystery, was peaking and peering like an excited parrot. ‘The old  
dame brought her hither among a cargo of captive boys and girls.’  
‘The time agrees …. Can this Miriam be found?’  
‘A sapient and courteous question for a monk to ask! Do you not know that Cyril  
has expelled all Jews four months ago?’  
‘True, true …. Alas!’said the old man to himself, ‘how little the rulers of this  
world guess their own power! They move a finger carelessly, and forget that that  
finger may crush to death hundreds whose names they never heard—and every  
soul of them as precious in God’s sight as Cyril’s own.’  
‘What is the matter, my father?’ asked Philammon. ‘You seem deeply moved  
about this woman….’  
‘And she is Miriam’s slave?’  
‘Her freedwoman this four years past,’said the porter. ‘The good lady—for  
reasons doubtless excellent in themselves, though not altogether patent to the  
philosophic mind—thought good to turn her loose on the Alexandrian republic,  
to seek what she might devour.’  
‘God help her! And you are certain that Miriam is not in Alexandria?’  
The little porter turned very red, and Philammon did so likewise; but he  
remembered his promise, and kept it.  
‘You both know something of her, I can see. You cannot deceive an old  
statesman, sir!’—turning to the little porter with a look of authority—‘poor  
monk though he be now. If you think fitting to tell me what you know, I promise  
you that neither she nor you shall be losers by your confidence in me. If not, I  
shall find means to discover.’  
Both stood silent.  
‘Philammon, my son! and art thou too in league against—no, not against me;  
against thyself, poor misguided boy?’  
‘Against myself?’  
‘Yes—I have said it. But unless you will trust me, I cannot trust you.’  
‘I have promised.’  
‘And I, sir statesman, or monk, or both, or neither, have sworn by the immortal  
gods!’said the porter, looking very big.  
Arsenius paused.  
‘There are those who hold that an oath by an idol, being nothing, is of itself void.  
I do not agree with them. If thou thinkest it sin to break thine oath, to thee it is  
sin. And for thee, my poor child, thy promise is sacred, were it made to Iscariot  
himself. But hear me. Can either of you, by asking this woman, be so far  
absolved as to give me speech of her? Tell her—that is, if she be in Alexandria,  
which God grant—all that has passed between us here, and tell her, on the  
solemn oath of a Christian, that Arsenius, whose name she knows well, will  
neither injure nor betray her. Will you do this?’  
‘Arsenius?’said the little porter, with a look of mingled awe and pity.  
The old man smiled. ‘Arsenius, who was once called the Father of the Emperors.  
Even she will trust that name.’  
‘I will go this moment’sir; I will fly!’ and off rushed the little porter.  
‘The little fellow forgets,’said Arsenius, with a smile, ‘to how much he has  
confessed already, and how easy it were now to trace him to the old hag’s lair ….  
Philammon, my son …. I have many tears to weep over thee—but they must  
wait a while, I have thee safe now,’ and the old man clutched his arm. ‘Thou wilt  
not leave thy poor old father? Thou wilt not desert me for the heathen woman?’  
‘I will stay with you, I promise you, indeed! if—if you will not say unjust things  
of her.’  
‘I will speak evil of no one, accuse no one, but myself. I will not say one harsh  
word to thee, my poor boy. But listen now! Thou knowest that thou camest from  
Athens. Knowest thou that it was I who brought thee hither?’  
‘You?’  
‘I, my son: but when I brought thee to the Laura, it seemed right that thou, as the  
son of a noble gentleman, shouldest hear nothing of it. But tell me: dost thou  
recollect father or mother, brother or sister; or anything of thy home in Athens?’  
‘No.’  
‘Thanks be to God. But, Philammon, if thou hadst had a sister-hush! And if—I  
only say if—,  
‘A sister!’ interrupted Philammon. ‘Pelagia?’  
‘God forbid, my son! But a sister thou hadst once—some three years older than  
thee she seemed.’  
‘What! did you know her?’  
‘I saw her but once—on one sad day.—Poor children both! I will not sadden you  
by telling you where and how.’  
‘And why did you not bring her hither with me? You surely had not the heart to  
part us?’  
‘Ah, my son, what right had an old monk with a fair young girl? And, indeed,  
even had I had the courage, it would have been impossible. There were others,  
richer than I, to whose covetousness her youth and beauty seemed a precious  
prize. When I saw her last, she was in company with an ancient Jewess. Heaven  
grant that this Miriam may prove to be the one!’  
‘And I have a sister!’ gasped Philammon, his eyes bursting with tears. ‘We must  
find her! You will help me?—Now—this moment! There is nothing else to be  
thought of, spoken of, done, henceforth, till she is found!’  
‘Ah, my son, my son! Better, better, perhaps, to leave her in the hands of God!  
What if she were dead? To discover that, would be to discover needless sorrow.  
And what if—God grant that it be not so! she had only a name to live, and were  
dead, worse than dead, in sinful pleasure—’  
‘We would save her, or die trying to save her! Is it not enough for me that she is  
my sister?’ Arsenius shook his head. He little knew the strange new light and  
warmth which his words had poured in upon the young heart beside him. ‘A  
sister!’ What mysterious virtue was there in that simple word, which made  
Philammon’s brain reel and his heart throb madly? A sister! not merely a friend,  
an equal, a help- mate, given by God Himself, for loving whom none, not even a  
monk, could blame him.—Not merely something delicate, weak, beautiful— for  
of course she must be beautiful-whom he might cherish, guide, support, deliver,  
die for, and find death delicious. Yes—all that, and more than that, lay in the  
sacred word. For those divided and partial notions had flitted across his mind too  
rapidly to stir such passion as moved him now; even the hint of her sin and  
danger had been heard heedlessly, if heard at all. It was the word itself which  
bore its own message, its own spell to the heart of the fatherless and motherless  
foundling, as he faced for the first time the deep, everlasting, divine reality of  
kindred …. A sister! of his own flesh and blood—born of the same father, the  
same mother— his, his, for ever! How hollow and fleeting seemed all ‘spiritual  
sonships,’ ‘spiritual daughterhoods,’ inventions of the changing fancy, the  
wayward will of man! Arsenius—Pambo—ay, Hypatia herself—what were they  
to him now? Here was a real relationship …. A sister! What else was worth  
caring for upon earth?  
‘And she was at Athens when Pelagia was’—he cried at last—‘perhaps knew her  
—let us go to Pelagia herself!’  
‘Heaven forbid!’said Arsenius. ‘We must wait at least till Miriam’s answer  
comes.’  
‘I can show you her house at least in the meanwhile; and you can go in yourself  
when you will. I do not ask to enter. Come! I feel certain that my finding her is  
in some way bound up with Pelagia. Had I not met her on the Nile, had you not  
met her in the street, I might never have heard that I had a sister. And if she went  
with Miriam, Pelagia must know her—she may be in that very house at this  
moment!’  
Arsenius had his reasons for suspecting that Philammon was but too right. But  
he contented himself with yielding to the boy’s excitement, and set off with him  
in the direction of the dancer’s house.  
They were within a few yards of the gate, when hurried footsteps behind them,  
and voices calling them by name, made them turn; and behold, evidently to the  
disgust of Arsenius as much as Philammon himself, Peter the Reader and a large  
party of monks!  
Philammon’s first impulse was to escape; Arsenius himself caught him by the  
arm, and seemed inclined to hurry on.  
‘No!’ thought the youth, ‘am I not a free man, and a philosopher?’ and facing  
round, he awaited the enemy.  
‘Ah, young apostate! So you have found him, reverend and ill-used sir. Praised  
be Heaven for this rapid success!’  
‘My good friend,’ asked Arsenius, in a trembling voice, ‘what brings you here?’  
‘Heaven forbid that I should have allowed your sanctity and age to go forth  
without some guard against the insults and violence of this wretched youth and  
his profligate companions. We have been following you afar off all the morning,  
with hearts full of filial solicitude.’  
‘Many thanks; but indeed your kindness has been superfluous. My son here,  
from whom I have met with nothing but affection, and whom, indeed, I believe  
far more innocent than report declared him, is about to return peaceably with me.  
Are you not, Philammon?’  
‘Alas! my father’’said Philammon, with an effort, ‘how can I find courage to say  
it’?—but I cannot return with you.’  
‘Cannot return?’  
‘I vowed that I would never again cross that threshold till—’  
‘And Cyril does. He bade me, indeed he bade me, assure you that he would  
receive you back as a son, and forgive and forget all the past.’  
‘Forgive and forget? That is my part—not his. Will he right me against that  
tyrant and his crew? Will he proclaim me openly to be an innocent and  
persecuted man, unjustly beaten and driven forth for obeying his own  
commands? Till he does that, I shall not forget that I am a free man.’  
‘A free man!’said Peter, with an unpleasant smile; ‘that remains to be proved,  
my gay youth; and will need more evidence than that smart philosophic cloak  
and those well-curled locks which you have adopted since I saw you last.’  
‘Remains to be proved?’  
Arsenius made an imploring gesture to Peter to be silent.  
‘Nay, sir. As I foretold to you, this one way alone remains; the blame of it, if  
there be blame, must rest on the unhappy youth whose perversity renders it  
necessary.’  
‘For God’s sake, spare me!’ cried the old man, dragging Peter aside, while  
Philammon stood astonished, divided between indignation and vague dread.  
‘Did I not tell you again and again that I never could bring myself to call a  
Christian man my slave? And him, above all, my spiritual son?’  
‘And, most reverend sir, whose zeal is only surpassed by your tenderness and  
mercy, did not the holy patriarch assure you that your scruples were groundless?  
Do you think that either he or I can have less horror than you have of slavery in  
itself? Heaven forbid! But when an immortal soul is at stake—when a lost lamb  
is to be brought back to the fold—surely you may employ the authority which  
the law gives you for the salvation of that precious charge committed to you?  
What could be more conclusive than his Holiness’s argument this morning?  
“Christians are bound to obey the laws of this world for conscience’sake, even  
though, in the abstract, they may disapprove of them, and deny their authority.  
Then, by parity of reasoning, it must be lawful for them to take the advantage  
which those same laws offer them, when by so doing the glory of God may be  
advanced.”’  
Arsenius still hung back, with eyes brimming with tears; but Philammon himself  
put an end to the parley.  
‘What is the meaning of all this? Are you, too, in a conspiracy against me?  
Speak, Arsenius!’  
‘This is the meaning of it, blinded sinner!’ cried Peter. ‘That you are by law the  
slave of Arsenius, lawfully bought with his money in the city of Ravenna; and  
that he has the power, and, as I trust, for the sake of your salvation, the will also,  
to compel you to accompany him.’  
Philammon recoiled across the pavement, with eyes flashing defiance. A slave!  
The light of heaven grew black to him …. Oh, that Hypatia might never know  
his shame! Yet it was impossible. Too dreadful to be true….  
‘You lie!’ almost shrieked he. ‘I am the son of a noble citizen of Athens.  
Arsenius told me so, but this moment, with his own lips!’  
‘Ah, but he bought you—bought you in the public market; and he can prove it!’  
‘Hear me—hear me, my son!’ cried the old man, springing toward him.  
Philammon, in his fury, mistook the gesture and thrust him fiercely back.  
‘Your son!—your slave! Do not insult the name of son by applying it to me. Yes,  
sir; your slave in body, but not in soul! Ay, seize me—drag home the fugitive—  
scourge him—brand him—chain him in the mill, if you can; but even for that the  
free heart has a remedy. If you will not let me live as a philosopher, you shall see  
me die like one!’  
‘Seize the fellow, my brethren!’ cried Peter, while Arsenius, utterly unable to  
restrain either party, hid his face and wept.  
‘Wretches!’ cried the boy; ‘you shall never take me alive, while I have teeth or  
nails left. Treat me as a brute beast, and I will defend myself as such!’  
‘Out of the way there, rascals! Place for the Prefect! What are you squabbling  
about here, you unmannerly monks?’shouted peremptory voices from behind.  
The crowd parted, and disclosed the apparitors of Orestes, who followed in his  
robes of office.  
A sudden hope flashed before Philammon, and in an instant he had burst through  
the mob, and was clinging to the Prefect’s chariot.  
‘I am a free-born Athenian, whom these monks wish to kidnap back into slavery!  
I claim your protection!’  
‘And you shall have it, right or wrong, my handsome fellow. By Heaven, you are  
much too good-looking to be made a monk of! What do you mean, you villains,  
by attempting to kidnap free men? Is it not enough for you to lock up every mad  
girl whom you can dupe, but you must—’  
‘His master is here present, your Excellency, who will swear to the purchase.’  
‘Or to anything else for the glory of God. Out of the way! And take care, you tall  
scoundrel, that I do not get a handle against you. You have been one of my  
marked men for many a month. Off!’  
‘His master demands the rights of the law as a Roman citizen,’said Peter,  
pushing forward Arsenius.  
‘If he be a Roman citizen, let him come and make his claim at the tribune tomorrow, in legal form. But I would have you remember, ancient sir, that I shall  
require you to prove your citizenship before we proceed to the question of  
purchase.’  
‘The law does not demand that,’ quoth Peter.  
‘Knock that fellow down, apparitor!’ Whereat Peter vanished, and an ominous  
growl rose from the mob of monks.  
‘What am I to do, most noble sir?’said Philammon.  
‘Whatever you like, till the third hour to-morrow—if you are fool enough to  
appear at the tribune. If you will take my advice’ you will knock down these  
fellows right and left, and run for your life.’ And Orestes drove on.  
Philammon saw that it was his only chance, and did so; and in another minute he  
found himself rushing headlong into the archway of Pelagia’s house, with a  
dozen monks at his heels. As luck would have it, the outer gates, at which the  
Goths had just entered, were still open; but the inner ones which led into the  
court beyond were fast. He tried them, but in vain. There was an open door in  
the wall on his right: he rushed through it, into a long range of stables, and into  
the arms of Wulf and Smid, who were unsaddling and feeding, like true warriors,  
their own horses.  
‘Souls of my fathers!’shouted Smid, ‘here’s our young monk come back! What  
brings you here head over heels in this way, young curly-pate?’  
‘Save me from those wretches!’ pointing to the monks, who were peeping into  
the doorway.  
Wulf seemed to understand it all in a moment; for, snatching up a heavy whip, he  
rushed at the foe, and with a few tremendous strokes cleared the doorway, and  
shut-to the door.  
Philammon was going to explain and thank, but Smid stopped his mouth.  
‘Never mind, young one, you are our guest now. Come in, and you shall be as  
welcome as ever. See what comes of running away from us at first.’  
‘You do not seem to have benefited much by leaving me for the monks,’said old  
Wulf. ‘Come in by the inner door. Smid! go and turn those monks out of the  
gateway.’  
But the mob, after battering the door for a few minutes, had yielded to the  
agonised entreaties of Peter, who assured them that if those incarnate fiends once  
broke out upon them, they would not leave a Christian alive in Alexandria. So it  
was agreed to leave a few to watch for Philammon’s coming out; and the rest,  
balked of their prey, turned the tide of their wrath against the Prefect, and  
rejoined the mass of their party, who were still hanging round his chariot, ready  
for mischief.  
In vain the hapless shepherd of the people attempted to drive on. The apparitors  
were frightened and hung back; and without their help it was impossible to force  
the horses through the mass of tossing arms and beards in front. The matter was  
evidently growing serious.  
‘The bitterest ruffians in all Nitria, your Excellency,’ whispered one of the  
guards, with a pale face; ‘and two hundred of them at the least. The very same  
set, I will be sworn, who nearly murdered Dioscuros.’  
‘If you will not allow me to proceed, my holy brethren,’said Orestes, trying to  
look collected, ‘perhaps it will not be contrary to the canons of the Church if I  
turn back. Leave the horses’ heads alone. Why, in God’s name, what do you  
want?’  
‘Do you fancy we have forgotten Hieracas?’ cried a voice from the rear; and at  
that name, yell upon yell arose, till the mob, gaining courage from its own noise,  
burst out into open threats. ‘Revenge for the blessed martyr Hieracas!’ ‘Revenge  
for the wrongs of the Church!’ ‘Down with the friend of Heathens, Jews, and  
Barbarians!’ ‘Down with the favourite of Hypatia!’ ‘Tyrant!’ ‘Butcher!’ And the  
last epithet so smote the delicate fancy of the crowd, that a general cry arose of  
‘Kill the butcher!’ and one furious monk attempted to clamber into the chariot.  
An apparitor tore him down, and was dragged to the ground in his turn. The  
monks closed in. The guards, finding the enemy number ten to their one, threw  
down their weapons in a panic, and vanished; and in another minute the hopes of  
Hypatia and the gods would have been lost for ever, and Alexandria robbed of  
the blessing of being ruled by the most finished gentleman south of the  
Mediterranean, had it not been for unexpected succour; of which it will be time  
enough, considering who and what is in danger, to speak in a future chapter.  
CHAPTER XVII: A STRAY GLEAM  
THE last blue headland of Sardinia was fading fast on the north-west horizon,  
and a steady breeze bore before it innumerable ships, the wrecks of Heraclian’s  
armament, plunging and tossing impatiently in their desperate homeward race  
toward the coast of Africa. Far and wide, under a sky of cloudless blue, the white  
sails glittered on the glittering sea, as gaily now, above their loads of shame and  
disappointment terror and pain, as when, but one short month before, they bore  
with them only wild hopes and gallant daring. Who can calculate the sum of  
misery in that hapless flight? .... And yet it was but one, and that one of the least  
known and most trivial, of the tragedies of that age of woe; one petty deathspasm among the unnumbered throes which were shaking to dissolution the  
Babylon of the West. Her time had come. Even as Saint John beheld her in his  
vision, by agony after agony, she was rotting to her well-earned doom.  
Tyrannising it luxuriously over all nations, she had sat upon the mystic beast—  
building her power on the brute animal appetites of her dupes and slaves: but she  
had duped herself even more than them. She was finding out by bitter lessons  
that it was ‘to the beast’, and not to her, that her vassal kings of the earth had  
been giving their power and strength; and the ferocity and lust which she had  
pampered so cunningly in them, had become her curse and her destruction ….  
Drunk with the blood of the saints; blinded by her own conceit and jealousy to  
the fact that she had been crushing and extirpating out of her empire for  
centuries past all which was noble, purifying, regenerative, divine, she sat  
impotent and doting, the prey of every fresh adventurer, the slave of her own  
slaves …. ‘And the kings of the earth, who had sinned with her, hated the harlot,  
and made her desolate and naked, and devoured her flesh, and burned her with  
fire. For God had put into their hearts to fulfil His will, and to agree, and to give  
their kingdom to the beast, until the words of God should be fulfilled.’ ....  
Everywhere sensuality, division, hatred, treachery, cruelty, uncertainty, terror; the  
vials of God’s wrath poured out. Where was to be the end of it all? asked every  
man of his neighbour, generation after generation; and received for answer only,  
‘It is better to die than to live.’  
And yet in one ship out of that sad fleet, there was peace; peace amid shame and  
terror; amid the groans of the wounded, and the sighs of the starving; amid all  
but blank despair. The great triremes and quinqueremes rushed onward past the  
lagging transports, careless, in the mad race for safety, that they were leaving the  
greater number of their comrades defenceless in the rear of the flight; but from  
one little fishing-craft alone no base entreaties, no bitter execrations greeted the  
passing flash and roll of their mighty oars. One after another, day by day, they  
came rushing up out of the northern offing, each like a huge hundred-footed  
dragon, panting and quivering, as if with terror, at every loud pulse of its oars,  
hurling the wild water right and left with the mighty share of its beak, while  
from the bows some gorgon or chimaera, elephant or boar, stared out with  
brazen eyes toward the coast of Africa, as if it, too, like the human beings which  
it carried, was dead to every care but that of dastard flight. Past they rushed, one  
after another; and off the poop some shouting voice chilled all hearts for a  
moment, with the fearful news that the Emperor’s Neapolitan fleet was in full  
chase …. And the soldiers on board that little vessel looked silently and  
steadfastly into the silent steadfast face of the old Prefect, and Victoria saw him  
shudder, and turn his eyes away—and stood up among the rough fighting men,  
like a goddess, and cried aloud that ‘the Lord would protect His own’; and they  
believed her, and were still; till many days and many ships were passed, and the  
little fishing-craft, outstripped even by the transports and merchantmen, as it  
strained and crawled along before its single square-sail, was left alone upon the  
sea.  
And where was Raphael Aben-Ezra?  
He was sitting, with Bran’s head between his knees, at the door of a temporary  
awning in the vessel’s stern, which shielded the wounded men from sun and  
spray; and as he sat he could hear from within the tent the gentle voices of  
Victoria and her brother, as they tended the sick like ministering angels, or read  
to them words of divine hope and comfort-in which his homeless heart felt that  
he had no share….  
‘As I live, I would change places now with any one of those poor mangled  
ruffians to have that voice speaking such words to me….and to believe them.’ ....  
And he went on perusing the manuscript which he held in his hand.  
...............  
‘Well!’ he sighed to himself after a while ‘at least it is the most complimentary,  
not to say hopeful, view of our destinies with which I have met since I threw  
away my curse’s belief that the seed of David was fated to conquer the whole  
earth, and set up a second Roman Empire at Jerusalem, only worse than the  
present one, in that the devils of superstition and bigotry would be added to  
those of tyranny and rapine.’  
A hand was laid on his shoulder, and a voice asked’ ‘And what may this so  
hopeful view be?’  
‘Ah! my dear General!’said Raphael, looking up. ‘I have a poor bill of fare  
whereon to exercise my culinary powers this morning. Had it not been for that  
shark who was so luckily deluded last night, I should have been reduced to the  
necessity of stewing my friend the fat decurion’s big boots.’  
‘They would have been savoury enough, I will warrant, after they had passed  
under your magical hand.’  
‘It is a comfort, certainly, to find that after all one did learn something useful in  
Alexandria! So I will even go forward at once, and employ my artistic skill.’  
‘Tell me first what it was about which I heard you just now soliloquising, as so  
hopeful a view of some matter or other?’  
‘Honestly—if you will neither betray me to your son and daughter, nor consider  
me as having in anywise committed myself—it was Paul of Tarsus’s notion of  
the history and destinies of our stiff-necked nation. See what your daughter has  
persuaded me into reading!’ And he held up a manuscript of the Epistle to the  
Hebrews.  
‘It is execrable Greek. But it is sound philosophy, I cannot deny. He knows Plato  
better than all the ladies and gentlemen in Alexandria put together, if my opinion  
on the point be worth having.’  
‘I am a plain soldier, and no judge on that point, sir. He may or may not know  
Plato; but I am right sure that he knows God.’  
‘Not too fast,’said Raphael with a smile. ‘You do not know, perhaps, that I have  
spent the last ten years of my life among men who professed the same  
knowledge?’  
‘Augustine, too, spent the best ten years of his life among such; and yet he is  
now combating the very errors which he once taught.’  
‘Having found, he fancies, something better!’  
‘Having found it, most truly. But you must talk to him yourself, and argue the  
matter over, with one who can argue. To me such questions are an unknown  
land.’  
‘Well …. Perhaps I may be tempted to do even that. At least a thoroughly  
converted philosopher—for poor dear Synesius is half heathen still, I often  
fancy, and hankers after the wisdom of the Egyptian—will be a curious sight;  
and to talk with so famous and so learned a man would always be a pleasure; but  
to argue with him, or any other human being, none whatsoever.’  
‘Why, then?’  
‘My dear sir, I am sick of syllogisms, and probabilities, and pros and contras.  
What do I care if, on weighing both sides, the nineteen pounds weight of  
questionable arguments against, are overbalanced by the twenty pounds weight  
of equally questionable arguments for? Do you not see that my belief of the  
victorious proposition will be proportioned to the one over-balancing pound  
only, while the whole other nineteen will go for nothing?’  
‘I really do not.’  
‘Happy are you, then. I do, from many a sad experience. No, my worthy sir. I  
want a faith past arguments; one which, whether I can prove it or not to the  
satisfaction of the lawyers, I believe to my own satisfaction, and act on it as  
undoubtingly and unreasoningly as I do upon my own newly-rediscovered  
personal identity. I don’t want to possess a faith. I want a faith which will  
possess me. And if I ever arrived at such a one, believe me, it would be by some  
such practical demonstration as this very tent has given me.’  
‘This tent?’  
‘Yes, sir, this tent; within which I have seen you and your children lead a life of  
deeds as new to me the Jew, as they would be to Hypatia the Gentile. I have  
watched you for many a day, and not in vain. When I saw you, an experienced  
officer, encumber your flight with wounded men, I was only surprised. But since  
I have seen you and your daughter, and, strangest of all, your gay young  
Alcibiades of a son, starving yourselves to feed those poor ruffians— performing  
for them, day and night, the offices of menial slaves— comforting them, as no  
man ever comforted me—blaming no one but yourselves, caring for every one  
but yourselves, sacrificing nothing but yourselves; and all this without hope of  
fame or reward, or dream of appeasing the wrath of any god or goddess, but  
simply because you thought it right …. When I saw that, sir, and more which I  
have seen; and when, reading in this book here, I found most unexpectedly those  
very grand moral rules which you were practising, seeming to spring  
unconsciously, as natural results, from the great thoughts, true or false, which  
had preceded them; then, sir, I began to suspect that the creed which could  
produce such deeds as I have watched within the last few days, might have on its  
side not merely a slight preponderance of probabilities, but what the Jews used  
once to call, when we believed in it—or in anything—the mighty power of God.’  
And as he spoke, he looked into the Prefect’s face with the look of a man  
wrestling in some deadly struggle; so intense and terrible was the earnestness of  
his eye, that even the old soldier shrank before it.  
‘And therefore,’ he went on, ‘therefore, sir, beware of your own actions, and of  
your children’s. If, by any folly or baseness, such as I have seen in every human  
being whom I ever met as yet upon this accursed stage of fools, you shall crush  
my new-budding hope that there is something somewhere which will make me  
what I know that I ought to be, and can be—If you shall crush that, I say, by any  
misdoing of yours, you had better have been the murderer of my firstborn; with  
such a hate—a hate which Jews alone can feel—will I hate you and yours.’  
‘God help us and strengthen us!‘said the old warrior in a tone of noble humility.  
‘And now,’said Raphael, glad to change the subject, after this unwonted  
outburst, ‘we must once more seriously consider whether it is wise to hold on  
our present course. If you return to Carthage, or to Hippo—’  
‘I shall be beheaded.’  
‘Most assuredly. And how much soever you may consider such an event a gain  
to yourself, yet for the sake of your son and your daughter—  
‘  
‘My dear sir,’ interrupted the Prefect, ‘you mean kindly. But do not, do not tempt  
me. By the Count’s side I have fought for thirty years, and by his side I will die,  
as I deserve.’  
‘Victorius! Victoria!’ cried Raphael; ‘help me! Your father,’ he went on, as they  
came out from the tent, ‘is still decided on losing his own head, and throwing  
away ours, by going to Carthage.’  
‘For my sake—for our sakes—father!’ cried Victoria, clinging to him.  
‘And for my sake, also, most excellent sir,’said Raphael, smiling quietly. ‘I have  
no wish to be so uncourteous as to urge any help which I may have seemed to  
afford you. But I hope that you will recollect that I have a life to lose, and that it  
is hardly fair of you to imperil it as you intend to do. If you could help or save  
Heraclian, I should be dumb at once. But now, for a mere point of honour to  
destroy fifty good soldiers, who know not their right hands from their left—Shall  
I ask their opinion?’  
‘Will you raise a mutiny against me, sir?’ asked the old man sternly.  
‘Why not mutiny against Philip drunk, in behalf of Philip sober? But really, I  
will obey you …. only you must obey us …. What is Hesiod’s definition of the  
man who will neither counsel himself nor be counselled by his friends? .... Have  
you no trusty acquaintances in Cyrenaica, for instance?’  
The Prefect was silent.  
‘Oh, hear us, my father! Why not go to Euodius? He is your old comrade—a  
well-wisher, too, to this …. this expedition …. And recollect, Augustine must be  
there now. He was about to sail for Berenice, in order to consult Synesius and the  
Pentapolitan bishops, when we left Carthage.’  
And at the name of Augustine the old man paused.  
‘Augustine will be there; true. And this our friend must meet him. And thus at  
least I should have his advice. If he thinks it my duty to return to Carthage, I can  
but do so, after all. But the soldiers!’  
‘Excellent sir,’said Raphael, ‘Synesius and the Pentapolitan landlords—who can  
hardly call their lives their own, thanks to the Moors—will be glad enough to  
feed and pay them, or any other brave fellows with arms in their hands, at this  
moment. And my friend Victorius, here, will enjoy, I do not doubt, a little wild  
campaigning against marauding blackamoors.’  
The old man bowed silently. The battle was won.  
The young tribune, who had been watching his father’s face with the most  
intense anxiety caught at the gesture, and hurrying forward, announced the  
change of plan to the soldiery. It was greeted with a shout of joy, and in another  
five minutes the sails were about, the rudder shifted, and the ship on her way  
towards the western point of Sicily, before a steady north-west breeze.  
‘Ah!’ cried Victoria, delighted. ‘And now you will see Augustine! You must  
promise me to talk to him!’  
‘This, at least, I will promise, that whatsoever the great sophist shall be pleased  
to say, shall meet with a patient hearing from a brother sophist. Do not be angry  
at the term. Recollect that I am somewhat tired, like my ancestor Solomon, of  
wisdom and wise men, having found it only too like madness and folly. And you  
cannot surely expect me to believe in man, while I do not yet believe in God?’  
Victoria sighed. ‘I will not believe you. Why always pretend to be worse than  
you are?’  
‘That kind souls like you may be spared the pain of finding me worse than I  
seem …. There, let us say no more; except that I heartily wish that you would  
hate me!’  
‘Shall I try?’  
‘That must be my work, I fear, not yours. However, I shall give you good cause  
enough before long’ doubt it not.’  
Victoria sighed again, and retired into the tent to nurse the sick.  
‘And now, sir,’said the Prefect, turning to Raphael and his son; ‘do not mistake  
me. I may have been weak, as worn-out and hopeless men are wont to be; but do  
not think of me as one who has yielded to adversity in fear for his own safety. As  
God hears me, I desire nothing better than to die; and I only turn out of my  
course on the understanding that if Augustine so advise, my children hold me  
free to return to Carthage and meet my fate. All I pray for is, that my life may be  
spared until I can place my dear child in the safe shelter of a nunnery.’  
‘A nunnery?’  
‘Yes, indeed; I have intended ever since her birth to dedicate her to the service of  
God. And in such times as these, what better lot for a defenceless girl?’  
‘Pardon me!’said Raphael; ‘but I am too dull to comprehend what benefit or  
pleasure your Deity will derive from the celibacy of your daughter …. Except,  
indeed, on one supposition, which, as I have some faint remnants of reverence  
and decency reawakening in me just now, I must leave to be uttered only by the  
pure lips of sexless priests.’  
‘You forget, sir, that you are speaking to a Christian.’  
‘I assure you, no! I had certainly been forgetting it till the last two minutes, in  
your very pleasant and rational society. There is no danger henceforth of my  
making so silly a mistake.’  
‘Sir!’said the Prefect, reddening at the undisguised contempt of Raphael’s  
manner …. , ‘When you know a little more of St. Paul’s Epistles, you will cease  
to insult the opinions and feelings of those who obey them, by sacrificing their  
most precious treasures to God.’  
‘Oh, it is Paul of Tarsus, then, who gives you the advice! I thank you for  
informing me of the fact; for it will save me the trouble of any future study of his  
works. Allow me, therefore, to return by your hands this manuscript of his with  
many thanks from me to that daughter of yours, by whose perpetual  
imprisonment you intend to give pleasure to your Deity. Henceforth the less  
communication which passes between me and any member of your family, the  
better.’ And he turned away.  
‘But, my dear sir!’said the honest soldier, really chagrined, ‘you must not!—we  
owe you too much, and love you too well, to part thus for the caprice of a  
moment. If any word of mine has offended you— forget it, and forgive me, I  
beseech you!’ and he caught both Raphael’s hands in his own.  
‘My very dear sir,’ answered the Jew quietly; ‘let me ask the same forgiveness of  
you; and believe me, for the sake of past pleasant passages, I shall not forget my  
promise about the mortgage …. But-here we must part. To tell you the truth, I  
half an hour ago was fearfully near becoming neither more nor less than a  
Christian. I had actually deluded myself into the fancy that the Deity of the  
Galileans might be, after all, the God of our old Hebrew forefathers—of Adam  
and Eve, of Abraham and David, and of the rest who believed that children and  
the fruit of the womb were an heritage and gift which cometh of the Lord—and  
that Paul was right —actually right—in his theory that the church was the  
development and fulfilment of our old national polity …. I must thank you for  
opening my eyes to a mistake which, had I not been besotted for the moment,  
every monk and nun would have contradicted by the mere fact of their existence,  
and reserve my nascent faith for some Deity who takes no delight in seeing his  
creature: stultify the primary laws of their being. Farewell!’  
And while the Prefect stood petrified with astonishment, he retired to the further  
extremity of the deck, muttering to himself—  
‘Did I not know all along that this gleam was too sudden and too bright to last?  
Did I not know that he, too, would prove himself like all the rest—an ass? ....  
Fool! to have looked for common sense on such an earth as this! .... Back to  
chaos again, Raphael Aben-Ezra, and spin ropes of sand to the end of the farce!’  
And mixing with the soldiers, he exchanged no word with the Prefect and his  
children, till they reached the port of Berenice; and then putting the necklace into  
Victoria’s hands, vanished among the crowds upon the quay, no one knew  
whither.  
CHAPTER XVIII: THE PREFECT TESTED  
WHEN we lost sight of Philammon, his destiny had hurled him once more  
among his old friends the Goths, in search of two important elements of human  
comfort, freedom and a sister. The former be found at once, in a large hall where  
sundry Goths were lounging and toping, into the nearest corner of which he  
shrank, and stood, his late terror and rage forgotten altogether in the one new and  
absorbing thought—His sister might be in that house! .... and yielding to so  
sweet a dream, he began fancying to himself which of all those gay maidens she  
might be who had become in one moment more dear, more great to him, than all  
things else in heaven or earth. That fair-haired, rounded Italian? That fierce,  
luscious, aquiline- faced Jewess? That delicate, swart, sidelong-eyed Copt? No.  
She was Athenian, like himself. That tall, lazy Greek girl, then, from beneath  
whose sleepy lids flashed, once an hour, sudden lightnings, revealing depths of  
thought and feeling uncultivated, perhaps even unsuspected, by their possessor.  
Her? Or that, her seeming sister? Or the next? .... Or—Was it Pelagia herself,  
most beautiful and most sinful of them all? Fearful thought! He blushed scarlet  
at the bare imagination: yet why, in his secret heart, was that the most pleasant  
hypothesis of them all? And suddenly flashed across him that observation of one  
of the girls on board the boat, on his likeness to Pelagia. Strange, that he had  
never recollected it before! It must be so! and yet on what a slender thread,  
woven of scattered hints and surmises, did that ‘must’ depend! He would be  
sane! he would wait; he would have patience. Patience, with a sister yet unfound,  
perhaps perishing? Impossible!  
Suddenly the train of his thoughts was changed perforce:—  
‘Come! come and see! There’s a fight in the streets,’ called one of the damsels  
down the stairs, at the highest pitch of her voice.  
‘I shan’t go,’ yawned a huge fellow, who was lying on his back on a sofa.  
‘Oh come up, my hero,’said one of the girls. ‘Such a charming riot, and the  
Prefect himself in the middle of it! We have not had such a one in the street this  
month.’  
‘The princes won’t let me knock any of these donkey-riders on the head, and  
seeing other people do it only makes me envious. Give me the wine-jug—curse  
the girl! she has run upstairs!’  
The shouting and trampling came nearer; and in another minute Wulf came  
rapidly downstairs, through the hall into the harem-court, and into the presence  
of the Amal.  
‘Prince—here is a chance for us. These rascally Greeks are murdering their  
Prefect under our very windows.’  
‘The lying cur! Serve him right for cheating us. He has plenty of guards. Why  
can’t the fool take care of himself?’  
‘They have all run away, and I saw some of them hiding among the mob. As I  
live, the man will be killed in five minutes more.’  
‘Why not?’  
‘Why should he, when we can save him and win his favour for ever? The men’s  
fingers are itching far a fight; it’s a bad plan not to give hounds blood now and  
then, or they lose the knack of hunting.’  
‘Well, it wouldn’t take five minutes.’  
‘And heroes should show that they can forgive when an enemy is in distress.’  
‘Very true! Like an Amal too!’ And the Amal sprang up and shouted to his men  
to follow him.  
‘Good-bye, my pretty one. Why, Wulf,’ cried he, as he burst out into the court,  
‘here’s our monk again! By Odin, you’re welcome, my handsome boy! come  
along and fight too, young fellow; what were those arms given you for?’  
‘He is my man,’said Wulf, laying his hand on Philammon’s shoulder, ‘and blood  
he shall taste.’ And out the three hurried, Philammon, in his present reckless  
mood, ready for anything.  
‘Bring your whips. Never mind swords. Those rascals are not worth it,’shouted  
the Amal, as he hurried down the passage brandishing his heavy thong, some ten  
feet in length, threw the gate open, and the next moment recoiled from a dense  
crush of people who surged in—and surged out again as rapidly as the Goth,  
with the combined force of his weight and arm, hewed his way straight through  
them, felling a wretch at every blow, and followed up by his terrible  
companions.  
They were but just in time. The four white blood-horses were plunging and  
rolling over each other, and Orestes reeling in his chariot, with a stream of blood  
running down his face, and the hands of twenty wild monks clutching at him.  
‘Monks again!’ thought Philammon and as he saw among them more than one  
hateful face, which he recollected in Cyril’s courtyard on that fatal night, a flush  
of fierce revenge ran through him.  
‘Mercy!’shrieked the miserable Prefect—‘I am a Christian! I swear that I am a  
Christian! the Bishop Atticus baptized me at Constantinople!’  
‘Down with the butcher! down with the heathen tyrant, who refuses the  
adjuration on the Gospels rather than be reconciled to the patriarch! Tear him out  
of the chariot!’ yelled the monks.  
The craven hound!’said the Amal, stopping short, ‘I won’t help him!’ But in an  
instant Wulf rushed forward, and struck right and left; the monks recoiled, and  
Philammon, burning to prevent so shameful a scandal to the faith to which he  
still clung convulsively, sprang into the chariot and caught Orestes in his arms.  
‘You are safe, my lord; don’t struggle,’ whispered he, while the monks flew on  
him. A stone or two struck him, but they only quickened his determination, and  
in another moment the whistling of the whips round his head, and the yell and  
backward rush of the monks, told him that he was safe. He carried his burden  
safely within the doorway of Pelagia’s house, into the crowd of peeping and  
shrieking damsels, where twenty pairs of the prettiest hands in Alexandria seized  
on Orestes, and drew him into the court.  
‘Like a second Hylas, carried off by the nymphs!’simpered he, as he vanished  
into the harem, to reappear in five minutes, his head bound rip with silk  
handkerchiefs, and with as much of his usual impudence as he could muster.  
‘Your Excellency—heroes all—I am your devoted slave. I owe you life itself;  
and more, the valour of your succour is only surpassed by the deliciousness of  
your cure. I would gladly undergo a second wound to enjoy a second time the  
services of such hands, and to see such feet busying themselves on my behalf.’  
‘You wouldn’t have said that five minutes ago, quoth the Amal, looking at him  
very much as a bear might at a monkey.  
‘Never mind the hands and feet, old fellow, they are none of yours!’ bluntly  
observed a voice from behind’ probably Smid’s, and a laugh ensued.  
‘My saviours, my brothers!’said Orestes, politely ignoring the laughter. ‘How  
can I repay you? Is there anything in which my office here enables me—I will  
not say to reward, for that would be a term beneath your dignity as free  
barbarians—but to gratify you?’  
‘Give us three days’ pillage of the quarter!’shouted some one.  
‘Ah, true valour is apt to underrate obstacles; you forget your small numbers.’  
‘I say,’ quoth the Amal—‘I say, take care, Prefect.—If you mean to tell me that  
we forty couldn’t cut all the throats in Alexandria in three days, and yours into  
the bargain, and keep your soldiers at bay all the time—’  
‘Half of them would join us!’ cried some one. ‘They are half our own flesh and  
blood after all!’  
‘Pardon me, my friends, I do not doubt it a moment. I know enough of the world  
never to have found a sheep-dog yet who would not, on occasion, help to make  
away with a little of the mutton which he guarded. Eh, my venerable sir?’  
turning to Wulf with a knowing bow.  
Wulf chuckled grimly, and said something to the Amal in German about being  
civil to guests.  
‘You will pardon me, my heroic friends,’said Orestes, ‘but, with your kind  
permission, I will observe that I am somewhat faint and disturbed by late  
occurrences. To trespass on your hospitality further would be an impertinence.  
If, therefore, I might send a slave to find some of my apparitors-‘  
‘No, by all the gods!’ roared the Amal, ‘you’re my guest now—my lady’s at  
least. And no one ever went out of my house sober yet if I could help it. Set the  
cooks to work, my men! The Prefect shall feast with us like an emperor, and  
we’ll send him home to-night as drunk as he can wish. Come along, your  
Excellency; we’re rough fellows, we Goths; but by the Valkyrs, no one can say  
that we neglect our guests!’  
‘It is a sweet compulsion,’said Orestes, as he went in.  
‘Stop, by the bye! Didn’t one of you men catch a monk.?’  
‘Here he is, prince, with his elbows safe behind him.’ And a tall, haggard, halfnaked monk was dragged forward.  
‘Capital! bring him in. His Excellency shall judge him while dinner’s cooking’  
and Smid shall have the hanging of him. He hurt nobody in the scuffle; he was  
thinking of his dinner.’  
‘Some rascal bit a piece out of my leg, and I tumbled down,’ grumbled Smid.  
‘Well, pay out this fellow for it, then. Bring a chair, slaves! Here, your Highness,  
sit there and judge.’  
‘Two chairs!’said some one; ‘the Amal shan’t stand before the emperor  
himself.’  
‘By all means, my dear friends. The Amal and I will act as the two Caesars, with  
divided empire. I presume we shall have little difference of opinion as to the  
hanging of this worthy.’  
‘Hanging’s too quick for him.’  
‘Just what I was about to remark—there are certain judicial formalities,  
considered generally to be conducive to the stability, if not necessary to the  
existence, of the Roman empire—’  
‘I say, don’t talk so much,’shouted a Goth, ‘If you want to have the hanging of  
him yourself, do. We thought we would save you trouble.’  
‘Ah, my excellent friend, would you rob me of the delicate pleasure of revenge?  
I intend to spend at least four hours to-morrow in killing this pious martyr. He  
will have a good time to think, between the beginning and the end of the rack.’  
‘Do you hear that, master monk?’said Smid, chucking him under the chin, while  
the rest of the party seemed to think the whole business an excellent joke, and  
divided their ridicule openly enough between the Prefect and his victim.  
‘The man of blood has said it. I am a martyr,’ answered the monk in a dogged  
voice.  
‘You will take a good deal of time in becoming one.’  
‘Death may be long, but glory is everlasting.’  
‘True. I forgot that, and will save you the said glory, if I can help it, for a year or  
two. Who was it struck me with the stone?’  
No answer.  
‘Tell me, and the moment he is in my lictors’ hands I pardon you freely.’  
The monk laughed. ‘Pardon? Pardon me eternal bliss, and the things  
unspeakable, which God has prepared for those who love Him? Tyrant and  
butcher! I struck thee, thou second Dioclesian—I hurled the stone—I,  
Ammonius. Would to heaven that it had smitten thee through, thou Sisera, like  
the nail of Jael the Kenite!’  
‘Thanks, my friend. Heroes, you have a cellar for monks as well as for wine? I  
will trouble you with this hero’s psalm-singing tonight, and send my apparitors  
for him in the morning.’  
‘If he begins howling when we are in bed, your men won’t find much of him left  
in the morning,’said the Amal. ‘But here come the slaves, announcing dinner.’  
‘Stay,’said Orestes; ‘there is one more with whom I have an account to settle—  
that young philosopher there.’  
‘Oh, he is coming in, too. He never was drunk in his life, I’ll warrant, poor  
fellow, and it’s high time for him to begin.’ And the Amal laid a good-natured  
bear’s paw on Philammon’s shoulder, who hung back in perplexity, and cast a  
piteous look towards Wulf.  
Wulf answered it by a shake of the head which gave Philammon courage to  
stammer out a courteous refusal. The Amal swore an oath at him which made the  
cloister ring again, and with a quiet shove of his heavy hand, sent him staggering  
half across the court: but Wulf interposed.  
‘The boy is mine, prince. He is no drunkard, and I will not let him become one.  
Would to heaven,’ added he, under his breath, ‘that I could say the same to some  
others. Send us out our supper here, when you are done. Half a sheep or so will  
do between us, and enough of the strongest to wash it down with. Smid knows  
my quantity.’  
‘Why in heaven’s name are you not coming in?’  
‘That mob will be trying to burst the gates again before two hours are out; and as  
some one must stand sentry, it may as well be a man who will not have his ears  
stopped up by wine and women’s kisses. The boy will stay with me.’  
So the party went in, leaving Wulf and Philammon alone in the outer hall.  
There the two sat for some half hour, casting stealthy glances at each other, and  
wondering perhaps, each of them vainly enough, what was going on in the  
opposite brain. Philammon, though his heart was full of his sister, could not help  
noticing the air of deep sadness which hung about the scarred and weatherbeaten features of the old warrior. The grimness which he had remarked on their  
first meeting seemed to be now changed into a settled melancholy. The furrows  
round his mouth and eyes had become deeper and sharper. Some perpetual  
indignation seemed smouldering in the knitted brow and protruding upper lip.  
He sat there silent and motionless for some half hour, his chin resting on his  
hands, and they again upon the butt of his axe, apparently in deep thought, and  
listening with a silent sneer to the clinking of glasses and dishes within.  
Philammon felt too much respect, both for his age and his stately sadness, to  
break the silence. At last some louder burst of merriment than usual aroused  
him.  
‘What do you call that?’said he, speaking in Greek.  
‘Folly and vanity.’  
‘And what does she there—the Alruna—the prophet-woman, call it?’  
‘Whom do you mean?’  
‘Why, the Greek woman whom we went to hear talk this morning.’  
‘Folly and vanity.’  
‘Why can’t she cure that Roman hairdresser there of it, then?’  
Philammon was silent—‘Why not, indeed!’  
‘Do you think she could cure any one of it?’  
‘Of what?’  
‘Of getting drunk, and wasting their strength and their fame, and their hard-won  
treasures upon eating and drinking, and fine clothes, and bad women.’  
‘She is most pure herself, and she preaches purity to all who hear her.’  
‘Curse preaching. I have preached for these four months.’  
‘Perhaps she may have some more winning arguments—perhaps—’  
‘I know. Such a beautiful bit of flesh and blood as she is might get a hearing,  
when a grizzled old head-splitter like me was called a dotard. Eh? Well. It’s  
natural.’  
A long silence.  
‘She is a grand woman. I never saw such a one, and I have seen many. There was  
a prophetess once, lived in an island in the Weser- stream—and when a man saw  
her, even before she spoke a word, one longed to crawl to her feet on all fours,  
and say, “There, tread on me; I am not fit for you to wipe your feet upon.” And  
many a warrior did it …. Perhaps I may have done it myself, before now ….  
And this one is strangely like her. She would make a prince’s wife, now.’  
Philammon started. What new feeling was it, which made him indignant at the  
notion?  
‘Beauty? What’s body without soul? What’s beauty without wisdom? What’s  
beauty without chastity? Best! fool! wallowing in the mire which every hog has  
fouled!’  
‘Like a jewel of gold in a swine’s snout, so is a fair woman who is without  
discretion.’  
‘Who said that?’  
‘Solomon, the king of Israel.’  
‘I never heard of him. But he was a right Sagaman, whoever said it. And she is a  
pure maiden, that other one?’  
‘Spotless as the’—blessed Virgin, Philammon was going to say—but checked  
himself. There were sad recollections about the words.  
Wulf sat silent for a few minutes, while Philammon’s thoughts reverted at once  
to the new purpose for which alone life seemed worth having …. To find his  
sister! That one thought had in a few hours changed and matured the boy into the  
man. Hitherto he had been only the leaf before the wind, the puppet of every  
new impression; but now circumstance, which had been leading him along in  
such soft fetters for many a month, was become his deadly foe; and all his  
energy and cunning, all his little knowledge of man and of society, rose up  
sturdily and shrewdly to fight in this new cause. Wulf was now no longer a  
phenomenon to be wondered at, but an instrument to be used. The broken hints  
which he had just given of discontent with Pelagia’s presence inspired the boy  
with sudden hope, and cautiously he began to hint at the existence of persons  
who would be glad to remove her. Wulf caught at the notion, and replied to it  
with searching questions, till Philammon, finding plain speaking the better part  
of cunning, told him openly the whole events of the morning, and the mystery  
which Arsenius had half revealed, and then shuddered with mingled joy and  
horror, as Wulf, after ruminating over the matter for a weary five minutes, made  
answer—  
‘And what if Pelagia herself were your sister?’  
Philammon was bursting forth in some passionate answer, when the old man  
stopped him and went on slowly, looking him through and through—  
‘Because, when a penniless young monk claims kin with a woman who is  
drinking out of the wine-cups of the Caesars, and filling a place for a share of  
which kings’ daughters have been thankful—and will be again before long—  
why then, though an old man may be too good- natured to call it all a lie at first  
sight, he can’t help supposing that the young monk has an eye to his own  
personal profit, eh?’  
‘My profit?’ cried poor Philammon, starting up. ‘Good God! what object on  
earth can I have, but to rescue her from this infamy to purity and holiness?’  
He had touched the wrong chord.  
‘Infamy? you accursed Egyptian slave!’ cried the prince, starting up in his turn,  
red with passion, and clutching at the whip which hung over his head. ‘Infamy?  
As if she, and you too, ought not to consider yourselves blest in her being  
allowed to wash the feet of an Amal!’  
‘Oh’ forgive me!’said Philammon, terrified at the fruits of his own clumsiness.  
‘But you forget—you forget, she is not married to him!’  
‘Married to him? A freedwoman? No; thank Freya! he has not fallen as low as  
that, at least: and never shall, if I kill the witch with my own hands. A  
freedwoman!’  
Poor Philammon! And he had been told but that morning that he was a slave. He  
hid his face in his hands, and burst into an agony of tears.  
‘Come, come,’said the testy warrior, softened at once. ‘Woman’s tears don’t  
matter, but somehow I never could bear to make a man cry. When you are cool,  
and have learnt common courtesy, we’ll talk more about this. So! Hush; enough  
is enough. Here comes the supper, and I am as hungry as Loke.’  
And he commenced devouring like his namesake’ ‘the gray beast of the wood,’  
and forcing, in his rough hospitable way, Philammon to devour also much  
against his will and stomach.  
‘There. I feel happier now!’ quoth Wulf, at last. ‘There is nothing to be done in  
this accursed place but to eat. I get no fighting, no hunting. I hate women as they  
hate me. I don’t know anything indeed, that I don’t hate, except eating and  
singing. And now, what with those girls’ vile unmanly harps and flutes, no one  
cares to listen to a true rattling warsong. There they are at it now, with their  
caterwauling, squealing all together like a set of starlings on a foggy morning!  
We’ll have a song too, to drown the noise.’ And he burst out with a wild rich  
melody, acting, in uncouth gestures and a suppressed tone of voice, the scene  
which the words described—  
An elk looked out of the pine forest He snuffed up east, he snuffed down west,  
Stealthy and still. His mane and his horns were heavy with snow; I laid my  
arrow across my bow, Stealthy and still.  
And then quickening his voice, as his whole face blazed up into fierce  
excitement—  
The bow it rattled’ the arrow flew, It smote his blade-bones through and through,  
Hurrah! I sprang at his throat like a wolf of the wood, And I warmed my hands  
in the smoking blood, Hurrah!  
And with a shout that echoed. and rang from wall to wall, and pealed away  
above the roofs, he leapt to his feet with a gesture and look of savage frenzy  
which made Philammon recoil. But the passion was gone in an instant, and Wulf  
sat down again chuckling to himself—  
‘There—that is something like a warrior’s song. That makes the old blood spin  
along again! But this debauching furnace of a climate! no man can keep his  
muscle, or his courage, or his money, or anything else in it. May the gods curse  
the day when first I saw it!’  
Philammon said nothing, but sat utterly aghast at an outbreak so unlike Wulf’s  
usual caustic reserve and stately self-restraint, and shuddering at the thought that  
it might be an instance of that daemoniac possession to which these barbarians  
were supposed by Christians and by Neo-Platonists to be peculiarly subject. But  
the horror was not yet at its height; for in another minute the doors of the  
women’s court flew open, and, attracted by Wulf’s shout, out poured the whole  
Bacchanalian crew, with Orestes, crowned with flowers, and led by the Amal  
and Pelagia, reeling in the midst, wine-cup in hand.  
‘There is my philosopher, my preserver, my patron saint!’ hiccupped he. ‘Bring  
him to my arms, that I may encircle his lovely neck with pearls of India, and  
barbaric gold!’  
‘For God’s sake let me escape!’ whispered he to Wulf, as the rout rushed upon  
him. Wulf opened the door in an instant, and he dashed through it. As he wen,  
the old man held out his hand—  
‘Come and see me again, boy!—Me only. The old warrior will not hurt you!’  
There was a kindly tone in the voice, a kindly light in the eye, which made  
Philammon promise to obey. He glanced one look back through the gateway as  
he fled, and just saw a wild whirl of Goths and girls, spinning madly round the  
court in the world-old Teutonic waltz; while, high above their heads, in the  
uplifted arms of the mighty Amal, was tossing the beautiful figure of Pelagia,  
tearing the garland from her floating hair to pelt the dancers with its roses. And  
that might be his sister! He hid his face and fled, and the gate shut out the  
revellers from his eyes; and it is high time that it should shut them out from ours  
also.  
Some four hours more had passed. The revellers were sleeping off their wine,  
and the moon shining bright and cold across the court, when Wulf came out,  
carrying a heavy jar of wine, followed by Smid, a goblet in each hand.  
‘Here, comrade, out into the middle, to catch a breath of night-air. Are all the  
fools asleep?’  
‘Every mother’s son of them. Ah! this is refreshing after that room. What a pity  
it is that all men are not born with heads like ours!’  
‘Very sad indeed,’said Wulf, filling his goblet.  
‘What a quantity of pleasure they lose in this life! There they are, snoring like  
hogs. Now, you and I are good to finish this jar, at least.’  
‘And another after it, if our talk is not over by that time.’  
‘Why, are you going to hold a council of war?’  
‘That is as you take it. Now, look here, Smid. Whomsoever I cannot trust, I  
suppose I may trust you, eh?’  
‘Well!’ quoth Smid surlily, putting down his goblet, ‘that is a strange question to  
ask of a man who has marched, and hungered, and plundered, and conquered,  
and been well beaten by your side for five-and-twenty years, through all lands  
between the Wesel and Alexandria!’  
‘I am growing old, I suppose, and so I suspect every one. But hearken to me, for  
between wine and ill-temper out it must come. You saw that Alruna-woman?’  
‘Of course.’  
‘Well?’  
‘Well?’  
‘Why, did not you think she would make a wife for any man?’  
‘Well?’  
‘And why not for our Amal?’  
‘That’s his concern as well as hers, and hers as well as ours.’  
‘She? Ought she not to think herself only too much honoured by marrying a son  
of Odin? Is she going to be more dainty than Placidia?’  
‘What was good enough for an emperor’s daughter must be good enough for  
her.’  
‘Good enough? And Adolf only a Balt, while Amalric is a full- blooded Amal—  
Odin’s son by both sides?’  
‘I don’t know whether she would understand that.’  
‘Then we would make her. Why not carry her off, and marry her to the Amal  
whether she chose or not? She would be well content enough with him in a  
week, I will warrant.’  
‘But there is Pelagia in the way.’  
‘Put her out of the way, then.’  
‘Impossible.’  
‘It was this morning; a week hence it may not be. I heard a promise made tonight which will do it, if there be the spirit of a Goth left in the poor besotted lad  
whom we know of.’  
‘Oh, he is all right at heart; never fear him. But what was the promise?’  
‘I will not tell till it is claimed. I will not be the man to shame my own nation  
and the blood of the gods. But if that drunken Prefect recollects it—why let him  
recollect it. And what is more, the monk-boy who was here to-night—’  
‘Ah, what a well-grown lad that is wasted!’  
‘More than suspects—and if his story is true, I more than suspect too—that  
Pelagia is his sister.’  
‘His sister! But what of that?’  
‘He wants, of course, to carry her off and make a nun of her.’  
‘You would not let him do such a thing to the poor child?’  
‘If folks get in my way, Smid, they must go down. So much the worse for them:  
but old Wulf was never turned back yet by man or beast, and he will not be  
now.’  
‘After all, it will serve the hussy right. But Amalric?’  
‘Out of sight, out of mind.’  
‘But they say the Prefect means to marry the girl.’  
‘He? That scented ape? She would not be such a wretch.’  
‘But he does intend; and she intends too. It is the talk of the whole town. We  
should have to put him out of the way first.’  
‘Why not? Easy enough’ and a good riddance for Alexandria. Yet if we made  
away with him we should be forced to take the city too; and I doubt whether we  
have hands enough for that.’  
‘The guards might join us. I will go down to the barracks and try them, if you  
choose’ to-morrow. I am a boon-companion with a good many of them already.  
But after all, Prince Wulf—of course you are always right; we all know that—  
but what’s the use of marrying this Hypatia to the Amal?’  
‘Use?’said Wulf, smiting down his goblet on the pavement. ‘Use? you purblind  
old hamster-rat, who think of nothing but filling your own cheek-pouches!—to  
give him a wife worthy of a hero, as he is, in spite of all—a wife who will make  
him sober instead of drunk, wise instead of a fool, daring instead of a sluggard—  
a wife who can command the rich people for us, and give us a hold here, which  
if once we get, let us see who will break it! Why, with those two ruling in  
Alexandria, we might be masters of Africa in three months. We’d send to Spain  
for the Wendels, to move on Carthage; we’d send up the Adriatic for the  
Longbeards to land in Pentapolis; we’d sweep the whole coast without losing a  
man’ now it is drained of troops by that fool Heraclian’s Roman expedition;  
make the Wendels and Longbeards shake hands here in Alexandria; draw lots for  
their shares of the coast’ and then—’  
‘And then what?’  
‘Why, when we had settled Africa, I would call out a crew of picked heroes, and  
sail away south for Asgard—I’d try that Red Sea this time—and see Odin face to  
face, or die searching for him.’  
‘Oh!’ groaned Smid. ‘And I suppose you would expect me to come too, instead  
of letting me stop halfway, and settle there among the dragons and elephants.  
Well, well, wise men are like moorlands— ride as far as you will on the sound  
ground, you are sure to come upon a soft place at last. However, I will go down  
to the guards to-morrow, if my head don’t ache.’  
‘And I will see the boy about Pelagia. Drink to our plot!’  
And the two old iron-heads drank on, till the stars paled out and the eastward  
shadows of the cloister vanished in the blaze of dawn.  
CHAPTER XIX: JEWS AGAINST CHRISTIANS  
THE little porter, after having carried Arsenius’s message to Miriam, had run  
back in search of Philammon and his foster-father; and not finding them, had  
spent the evening in such frantic rushings to and fro, as produced great doubts of  
his sanity among the people of the quarter. At last hunger sent him home to  
supper; at which meal he tried to find vent for his excited feelings in his  
favourite employment of beating his wife. Whereon Miriam’s two Syrian slavegirls, attracted by her screams, came to the rescue, threw a pail of water over  
him, and turned him out of doors. He, nothing discomfited, likened himself  
smilingly to Socrates conquered by Xantippe; and, philosophically yielding to  
circumstances, hopped about like a tame magpie for a couple of hours at the  
entrance of the alley, pouring forth a stream of light raillery on the passers- by,  
which several times endangered his personal safety; till at last Philammon,  
hurrying breathlessly home, rushed into his arms.  
‘Hush! Hither with me! Your star still prospers. She calls for you.’  
‘Who?’  
‘Miriam herself. Be secret as the grave. You she will see and speak with. The  
message of Arsenius she rejected in language which it is unnecessary for  
philosophic lips to repeat. Come; but give her good words-as are fit to an  
enchantress who can stay the stars in their courses, and command the spirits of  
the third heaven.’  
Philammon hurried home with Eudaimon. Little cared he now for Hypatia’s  
warning against Miriam …. Was he not in search of a sister?  
‘So’ you wretch, you are back again!’ cried one of the girls, as they knocked at  
the outer door of Miriam’s apartments. ‘What do you mean by bringing young  
men here at this time of night?’  
‘Better go down, and beg pardon of that poor wife of yours. She has been  
weeping and praying for you to her crucifix all the evening, you ungrateful little  
ape!’  
‘Female superstitions—but I forgive her. Peace, barbarian women! I bring this  
youthful philosopher hither by your mistress’s own appointment.’  
‘He must wait, then, in the ante-room. There is a gentleman with my mistress at  
present.’  
So Philammon waited in a dark, dingy ante-room, luxuriously furnished with  
faded tapestry, and divans which lined the walls; and fretted and fidgeted, while  
the two girls watched him over their embroidery out of the corners of their eyes,  
and agreed that he was a very stupid person for showing no inclination to return  
their languishing glances.  
In the meanwhile, Miriam, within, was listening, with a smile of grim delight, to  
a swarthy and weather-beaten young Jew.  
‘I knew, mother in Israel, that all depended on my pace; and night and day I rode  
from Ostia toward Tarentum: but the messenger of the uncircumcised was better  
mounted than I; I therefore bribed a certain slave to lame his horse, and passed  
him by a whole stage on the second day. Nevertheless, by night the Philistine  
had caught me up again, the evil angels helping him; and my soul was mad  
within me.’  
‘And what then, Jonadab Bar-Zebudah?’  
‘I bethought me of Ehud, and of Joab also, when he was pursued by Asahel, and  
considered much of the lawfulness of the deed, not being a man of blood.  
Nevertheless, we were together in the darkness, and I smote him.’  
Miriam clapped her hands.  
‘Then putting on his clothes, and taking his letters and credentials, as was but  
reasonable, I passed myself off for the messenger of the emperor, and so rode the  
rest of that journey at the expense of the heathen; and I hereby return you the  
balance saved.’  
‘Never mind the balance. Keep it, thou worthy son of Jacob. What next?’  
‘When I came to Tarentum, I sailed in the galley which I had chartered from  
certain sea-robbers. Valiant men they were, nevertheless, and kept true faith with  
me. For when we had come halfway, rowing with all our might, behold another  
galley coming in our wake and about to pass us by, which I knew for an  
Alexandrian, as did the captain also, who assured me that she had come from  
hence to Brundusium with letters from Orestes.’  
‘Well?’  
‘It seemed to me both base to be passed, and more base to waste all the expense  
wherewith you and our elders had charged themselves; so I took counsel with the  
man of blood, offering him over and above our bargain, two hundred gold pieces  
of my own, which please to pay to my account with Rabbi Ezekiel, who lives by  
the watergate in Pelusium. Then the pirates, taking counsel, agreed to run down  
the enemy; for our galley was a sharp-beaked Liburnian, while theirs was only a  
messenger trireme.’  
‘And you did it?’  
‘Else had I not been here. They were delivered into our hands, so that we struck  
them full in mid-length, and they sank like Pharaoh and his host.’  
‘So perish all the enemies of the nation!’ cried Miriam. ‘And now it is  
impossible, you say, for fresh news to arrive for these ten days?’  
‘Impossible, the captain assured me, owing to the rising of the wind, and the  
signs of southerly storm.’  
‘Here, take this letter for the Chief Rabbi, and the blessing of a mother in Israel.  
Thou Last played the man for thy people; and thou shalt go to the grave full of  
years and honours, with men-servants and maid-servants, gold and silver,  
children and children’s children, with thy foot on the necks of heathens, and the  
blessing of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, to eat of the goose which is fattening in  
the desert, and the Leviathan which lieth in the great sea, to be meat for all true  
Israelites at the last day.’  
And the Jew turned and went out, perhaps, in his simple fanaticism, the happiest  
man in Egypt at that moment.  
He passed out through the ante-chamber, leering at the slave-girls, and scowling  
at Philammon; and the youth was ushered into the presence of Miriam.  
She sat, coiled up like a snake on a divan writing busily in a tablet upon her  
knees while on the cushions beside her glittered splendid jewels, which she had  
been fingering over as a child might its toys. She did not look up for a few  
minutes; and Philammon could not help, in spite of his impatience, looking  
round the little room and contrasting its dirty splendour, and heavy odour of  
wine, and food, and perfumes, with the sunny grace and cleanliness of Greek  
houses. Against the wall stood presses and chests fretted with fantastic Oriental  
carving; illuminated rolls of parchment lay in heaps in a corner; a lamp of  
strange form hung from the ceiling, and shed a dim and lurid light upon an  
object which chilled the youth’s blood for a moment—a bracket against the wall,  
on which, in a plate of gold, engraven with mystic signs, stood the mummy of an  
infant’s head; one of those teraphim, from which, as Philammon knew, the  
sorcerers of the East professed to evoke oracular responses.  
At last she looked up, and spoke in a shrill, harsh voice. ‘Well, my fair boy, and  
what do you want with the poor old proscribed Jewess? Have you coveted yet  
any of the pretty things which she has had the wit to make her slave-demons  
save from the Christian robbers?’  
Philammon’s tale was soon told. The old woman listened, watching him intently  
with her burning eye; and then answered slowly—  
‘Well, and what if you are a slave?’  
‘Am I one, then? Am I?’  
‘Of course you are. Arsenius spoke truth. I saw him buy you at Ravenna, just  
fifteen years ago. I bought your sister at the same time. She is two-and-twenty  
now. You were four years younger than her, I should say.’  
‘Oh heavens! and you know my sister still! Is she Pelagia?’  
‘You were a pretty boy,’ went on the hag, apparently not hearing him. ‘If I had  
thought you were going to grow up as beautiful and as clever as you are, I would  
have bought you myself. The Goths were just marching, and Arsenius gave only  
eighteen gold pieces for you —or twenty—I am growing old, and forget  
everything, I think. But there would have been the expense of your education,  
and your sister cost me in training—oh what sums? Not that she was not worth  
the money—no, no, the darling!’  
‘And you know where she is? Oh tell me—in the name of mercy tell me!’  
‘Why, then?’  
‘Why, then? Have you not the heart of a human being in you? Is she not my  
sister?’  
‘Well? You have done very well for fifteen years without your sister—why can  
you not do as well now? You don’t recollect her— you don’t love her.’  
‘Not love her? I would die for her—die for you if you will but help me to see  
her!’  
‘You would, would you? And if I brought you to her, what then! What if she  
were Pelagia herself, what then? She is happy enough now, and rich enough.  
Could you make her happier or richer?’  
‘Can you ask? I must—I will—reclaim her from the infamy in which I am sure  
she lives.’  
‘Ah ha, sir monk! I expected as much. I know, none knows better, what those  
fine words mean. The burnt child dreads the fire; but the burnt old woman  
quenches it, you will find. Now listen. I do not say that you shall not see her—I  
do not say that Pelagia herself is not the woman whom you seek—but—you are  
in my power. Don’t frown and pout. I can deliver you as a slave to Arsenius  
when I choose. One word from me to Orestes, and you are in fetters as a  
fugitive.’  
‘I will escape!’ cried he fiercely.  
‘Escape me?’—She laughed, pointing to the teraph—‘Me, who, if you fled  
beyond Kaf, or dived to the depths of the ocean, could make these dead lips  
confess where you were, and command demons to bear you back to me upon  
their wings! Escape me! Better to obey me, and see your sister.’  
Philammon shuddered, and submitted. The spell of the woman’s eye, the terror  
of her words, which he half believed, and the agony of longing, conquered him,  
and he gasped out—  
‘I will obey you—only—only—’  
‘Only you are not quite a man yet, but half a monk still, eh? I must know that  
before I help you, my pretty boy. Are you a monk still, or a man?’  
‘What do you mean?’  
‘Ah, ha, ha!’ laughed she shrilly. ‘And these Christian dogs don’t know what a  
man means? Are you a monk, then? leaving the man alone, as above your  
understanding.’  
‘I?—I am a student of philosophy.’  
‘But no man?’  
‘I am a man, I suppose.’  
‘I don’t; if you had been, you would have been making love like a man to that  
heathen woman many a month ago.’  
‘I—to her?’  
‘Yes, I-to her!‘Said Miriam, coarsely imitating his tone of shocked humility. ‘I,  
the poor penniless boy-scholar, to her, the great, rich, wise, worshipped shephilosopher, who holds the sacred keys of the inner shrine of the east wind—and  
just because I am a man, and the handsomest man in Alexandria, and she a  
woman, and the vainest woman in Alexandria; and therefore I am stronger than  
she, and can twist her round my finger, and bring her to her knees at my feet  
when I like, as soon I open my eyes, and discover that I am a man. Eh, boy! Did  
she ever teach you that among her mathematics and metaphysics, and gods and  
goddesses?’  
Philammon stood blushing scarlet. The sweet poison had entered, and every vein  
glowed with it for the first time in his life. Miriam saw her advantage.  
‘There, there—don’t be frightened at your new lesson. After all, I liked you from  
the first moment I saw you, and asked the teraph about you, and I got an answer  
—such an answer! You shall know it some day. At all events, it set the poor old  
soft-hearted Jewess on throwing away her money. Did you ever guess from  
whom your monthly gold piece came?’  
Philammon started, and Miriam burst into loud, shrill laughter.  
‘From Hypatia, I’ll warrant! From the fair Greek woman, of course— vain child  
that you are—never thinking of the poor old Jewess.’  
‘And did you? did you?’ gasped Philammon.  
‘Have I to thank you, then, for that strange generosity?’  
‘Not to thank me, but to obey me; for mind, I can prove your debt to me, every  
obol, and claim it if I choose. But don’t fear; I won’t be hard on you, just  
because you are in my power. I hate every one who is not so. As soon as I have a  
hold on them, I begin to love them. Old folks, like children, are fond of their  
own playthings.’  
‘And I am yours, then?’said Philammon fiercely.  
‘You are indeed, my beautiful boy,’ answered she, looking up with so insinuating  
a smile that he could not be angry. ‘After all, I know how to toss my balls gently  
—and for these forty years I have only lived to make young folks happy; so you  
need not be afraid of the poor soft-hearted old woman. Now—you saved  
Orestes’s life yesterday.’  
‘How did you find out that?’  
‘I? I know everything. I know what the swallows say when they pass each other  
on the wing, and what the fishes think of in the summer sea. You, too, will be  
able to guess some day, without the teraph’s help. But in the mean time you must  
enter Orestes’s service. Why?- What are you hesitating about? Do you not know  
that you are high in his favour? He will make you secretary—raise you to be  
chamberlain some day, if you know how to make good use of your fortune.’  
Philammon stood in astonished silence; and at last—  
‘Servant to that man? What care I for him or his honours? Why do you tantalise  
me thus? I have no wish on earth but to see my sister!’  
‘You will be far more likely to see her if you belong to the court of a great  
officer—perhaps more than an officer—than if you remain a penniless monk.  
Not that I believe you. Your only wish on earth, eh? Do you not care, then, ever  
to see the fair Hypatia again?’  
‘I? Why should I not see her? Am I not her pupil?’  
‘She will not have pupils much longer, my child. If you wish to hear her wisdom  
—and much good may it do you—you must go for it henceforth somewhat  
nearer to Orestes’s palace than the lecture-room is. Ah! you start. Have I found  
you an argument now? No—ask no questions. I explain nothing to monks. But  
take these letters; to- morrow morning at the third hour go to Orestes’s palace,  
and ask for his secretary, Ethan the Chaldee. Say boldly that you bring important  
news of state; and then follow your star: it is a fairer one than you fancy. Go!  
obey me, or you see no sister.’  
Philammon felt himself trapped; but, after all, what might not this strange  
woman do for him? It seemed, if not his only path, still his nearest path to  
Pelagia; and in the meanwhile he was in the hag’s power, and he must submit to  
his fate; so he took the letters and went out.  
‘And so you think that you are going to have her?’ chuckled Miriam to herself,  
when Philammon went out. ‘To make a penitent of her, eh?—a nun, or a shehermit; to set her to appease your God by crawling on all fours among the  
mummies for twenty years, with a chain round her neck and a clog at her ankle,  
fancying herself all the while the bride of the Nazarene? And you think that old  
Miriam is going to give her up to you for that? No, no, sir monk! Better she were  
dead! .... Follow your dainty bait!—follow it, as the donkey does the grass which  
his driver offers him, always an inch from his nose …. You in my power!—and  
Orestes in my power! .... I must negotiate that new loan to-morrow, I suppose ….  
I shall never be paid. The dog will ruin me, after all! How much is it, now? Let  
me see.’ .... And she began fumbling in her escritoire, over bonds and notes of  
hand. ‘I shall never be paid: but power!—to have power! To see those heathen  
slaves and Christian hounds plotting and vapouring, and fancying themselves the  
masters of the world, and never dreaming that we are pulling the strings, and that  
they are our puppets!—we, the children of the promises—we, The Nation—we,  
the seed of Abraham! Poor fools! I could almost pity them, as I think of their  
faces when Messiah comes, and they find out who were the true lords of the  
world, after all! ....He must be the Emperor of the South, though, that Orestes; he  
must, though I have to lend him Raphael’s jewels to make him so. For he must  
marry the Greek woman. He shall. She hates him, of course …. So much the  
deeper revenge for me. And she loves that monk. I saw it in her eyes there in the  
garden. So much the better for me, too. He will dangle willingly enough at  
Orestes’s heels for the sake of being near her—poor fool! We will make him  
secretary, or chamberlain. He has wit enough for it, they say, or for anything. So  
Orestes and he shall be the two jaws of my pincers, to squeeze what I want out  
of that Greek Jezebel.. And then, then for the black agate!’  
Was the end of her speech a bathos? Perhaps not; for as she spoke the last word,  
she drew from her bosom, where it hung round her neck by a chain, a broken  
talisman, exactly similar to the one which she coveted so fiercely, and looked at  
it long and lovingly—kissed it— wept over it—spoke to it—fondled it in her  
arms as a mother would a child—murmured over it snatches of lullabies; and her  
grim, withered features grew softer, purer, grander; and rose ennobled, for a  
moment, to their long-lost might-have-been, to that personal ideal which every  
soul brings with it into the world, which shines, dim and potential, in the face of  
every sleeping babe, before it has been scarred, and distorted, and encrusted in  
the long tragedy of life. Sorceress she was, pander and slave-dealer, steeped to  
the lips in falsehood, ferocity, and avarice; yet that paltry stone brought home to  
her some thought, true, spiritual, impalpable, unmarketable, before which all her  
treasures and all her ambition were as worthless in her own eyes as they were in  
the eyes of the angels of God.  
But little did Miriam think that at the same moment a brawny, clownish monk  
was standing in Cyril’s private chamber, and, indulged with the special honour of  
a cup of good wine in the patriarch’s very presence, was telling to him and  
Arsenius the following history—  
‘So I, finding that the Jews had chartered this pirate-ship, went to the master  
thereof, and finding favour in his eyes, hired myself to row therein, being sure,  
from what I had overheard from the Jews, that she was destined to bring the  
news to Alexandria as quickly as possible. Therefore, fulfilling the work which  
his Holiness had entrusted to my incapacity, I embarked, and rowed continually  
among the rest; and being unskilled in such labour, received many curses and  
stripes in the cause of the Church—the which I trust are laid to my account  
hereafter. Moreover, Satan entered into me, desiring to slay me, and almost tore  
me asunder, so that I vomited much, and loathed all manner of meat.  
Nevertheless, I rowed on valiantly, being such as I am, vomiting continually, till  
the heathens were moved with wonder, and forbore to beat me, giving me strong  
liquors in pity; wherefore I rowed all the more valiantly day and night, trusting  
that by my unworthiness the cause of the Catholic Church might be in some  
slight wise assisted.’  
‘And so it is,’ quoth Cyril. ‘Why do you not sit down, man?’  
‘Pardon me,’ quoth the monk, with a piteous gesture; ‘of sitting, as of all carnal  
pleasure, cometh satiety at the last.’  
‘And now’said Cyril, ‘what reward am I to give you for your good service?’  
‘It is reward enough to know that I have done good service. Nevertheless if the  
holy patriarch be so inclined without reason, there is an ancient Christian, my  
mother according to the flesh—’  
‘Come to me to-morrow, and she shall be well seen to. And mind— look to it, if  
I make you not a deacon of the city when I promote Peter.’  
The monk kissed his superior’s hand and withdrew. Cyril turned to Arsenius,  
betrayed for once into geniality by his delight, and smiting his thigh—  
‘We have beaten the heathen for once, eh?’ And then, in the usual artificial tone  
of an ecclesiastic—‘And what would my father recommend in furtherance of the  
advantage so mercifully thrown into our hand?’  
Arsenius was silent.  
‘I,’ went on Cyril, ‘should be inclined to announce the news this very night, in  
my sermon.’  
Arsenius shook his head.  
‘Why not? why not?’ asked Cyril impatiently.  
‘Better to keep it secret till others tell it. Reserved knowledge is always reserved  
strength; and if the man, as I hope he does not, intends evil to the Church, let  
him commit himself before you use your knowledge against him. True, you may  
have a scruple of conscience as to the lawfulness of allowing a sin which you  
might prevent. To me it seems that the sin lies in the will rather than in the deed,  
and that sometimes—I only say sometimes—it may be a means of saving the  
sinner to allow his root of iniquity to bear fruit, and fill him with his own  
devices.’  
‘Dangerous doctrine, my father.’  
‘Like all sound doctrine—a savour of life or of death, according as it is received.  
I have not said it to the multitude, but to a discerning brother. And even  
politically speaking—let him commit himself, if he be really plotting rebellion,  
and then speak, and smite his Babel tower.’  
‘You think, then, that he does not know of Heraclian’s defeat already?’  
‘If he does, he will keep it secret from the people; and our chances of turning  
them suddenly will be nearly the same.’  
‘Good. After all, the existence of the Catholic Church in Alexandria depends on  
this struggle, and it is well to be wary. Be it so. It is well for me that I have you  
for an adviser.’  
And thus Cyril, usually the most impatient and intractable of plotters, gave in, as  
wise men should, to a wiser man than himself, and made up his mind to keep the  
secret, and to command the monk to keep it also.  
Philammon, after a sleepless night, and a welcome visit to the public baths,  
which the Roman tyranny, wiser in its generation than modern liberty, provided  
so liberally for its victims, set forth to the Prefect’s palace, and gave his  
message; but Orestes, who had been of late astonishing the Alexandrian public  
by an unwonted display of alacrity, was already in the adjoining Basilica. Thither  
the youth was conducted by an apparitor, and led up the centre of the enormous  
hall, gorgeous with frescoes and coloured marbles, and surrounded by aisles and  
galleries, in which the inferior magistrates were hearing causes, and doing such  
justice as the complicated technicalities of Roman law chose to mete out.  
Through a crowd of anxious loungers the youth passed to the apse of the upper  
end, in which the Prefect’s throne stood empty, and then turned into aside  
chamber, where he found himself alone with the secretary, a portly Chaldee  
eunuch, with a sleek pale face, small pig’s eyes, and an enormous turban. The  
man of pen and paper took the letter, opened it with solemn deliberation, and  
then, springing to his feet, darted out of the room in most undignified haste,  
leaving Philammon to wait and wonder. In half an hour he returned, his little  
eyes growing big with some great idea.  
‘Youth! your star is in the ascendant; you are the fortunate bearer of fortunate  
news! His Excellency himself commands your presence.’ And the two went out.  
In another chamber, the door of which was guarded by armed men, Orestes was  
walking up and down in high excitement, looking somewhat the worse for the  
events of the past night, and making occasional appeals to a gold goblet which  
stood on the table.  
‘Ha! No other than my preserver himself! Boy, I will make your fortune. Miriam  
says that you wish to enter my service.’  
Philammon, not knowing what to say, thought the best answer would be to bow  
as low as he could.  
‘Ah, ha! Graceful, but not quite according to etiquette. You will soon teach him,  
eh, Secretary? Now to business. Hand me the notes to sign and seal. To the  
Prefect of the Stationaries—’  
‘Here, your Excellency.’  
‘To the Prefect of the Corn market—how many wheat-ships have you ordered to  
be unladen?’  
‘Two, your Excellency.’  
‘Well, that will be largess enough for the time being. To the Defender of the  
Plebs—the devil break his neck!’  
‘He may be trusted, most noble; he is bitterly jealous of Cyril’s influence. And  
moreover, he owes my insignificance much money.’  
‘Good! Now the notes to the Gaol-masters, about the gladiators.’  
‘Here, your Excellency.’  
‘To Hypatia. No. I will honour my bride elect with my own illustrious presence.  
As I live, here is a morning’s work for a man with a racking headache!’  
‘Your Excellency has the strength of seven. May you live for ever!’  
And really, Orestes’s power of getting through business, when he chose, was  
surprising enough. A cold head and a colder heart make many things easy.  
But Philammon’s whole soul was fixed on those words. ‘His bride elect!’ .... Was  
it that Miriam’s hints of the day before had raised some selfish vision, or was it  
pity and horror at such a fate for her—for his idol?—But he passed five minutes  
in a dream, from which he was awakened by the sound of another and still dearer  
name.  
‘And now, for Pelagia. We can but try.’  
‘Your Excellency might offend the Goth.’  
‘Curse the Goth! He shall have his choice of all the beauties in Alexandria, and  
be count of Pentapolis if he likes. But a spectacle I must have; and no one but  
Pelagia can dance Venus Anadyomene.’  
Philammon’s blood rushed to his heart, and then back again to his brow, as he  
reeled with horror and shame.  
‘The people will be mad with joy to see her on the stage once more. Little they  
thought, the brutes, how I was plotting for their amusement, even when as drunk  
as Silenus.’  
‘Your nobility only lives for the good of your slaves.’  
‘Here, boy! So fair a lady requires a fair messenger. You shall enter on my  
service at once, and carry this letter to Pelagia. Why?—why do you not come  
and take it?’  
‘To Pelagia?’ gasped the youth. ‘In the theatre? Publicly? Venus Anadyomene?’  
‘Yes, fool! Were you, too, drunk last night after all?’  
‘She is my sister!’  
‘Well, and what of that? Not that I believe you, you villain! So!’said Orestes,  
who comprehended the matter in an instant. ‘Apparitors!’  
The door opened, and the guard appeared.  
‘Here is a good boy who is inclined to make a fool of himself. Keep him out of  
harm’s way for a few days. But don’t hurt him; for, after all, he saved my life  
yesterday, when you scoundrels ran away.’  
And, without further ado, the hapless youth was collared, and led down a vaulted  
passage into the guard-room, amid the jeers of the guard, who seemed only to  
owe him a grudge for his yesterday’s prowess, and showed great alacrity in  
fitting him with a heavy set of irons; which done, he was thrust head foremost  
into a cell of the prison, locked in and left to his meditations.  
CHAPTER XX: SHE STOOPS TO CONQUER  
‘But, fairest Hypatia, conceive yourself struck in the face by a great stone,  
several hundred howling wretches leaping up at you like wild beasts—two  
minutes more, and you are torn limb from limb. What would even you do in  
such a case?’  
‘Let them tear me limb from limb, and die as I have lived.’  
‘Ah, but—When it came to fact, and death was staring you in the face?’  
‘And why should man fear death?’  
‘Ahem! No, not death, of course; but the act of dying. That may be, surely, under  
such circumstances, to say the least, disagreeable. If our ideal, Julian the Great,  
found a little dissimulation necessary, and was even a better Christian than I  
have ever pretended to be, till he found himself able to throw off the mask, why  
should not I? Consider me as a lower being than yourself,—one of the herd, if  
you will; but a penitent member thereof, who comes to make the fullest possible  
reparation, by doing any desperate deed on which you may choose to put him,  
and prove myself as able and willing, if once I have the power, as Julian  
himself.’  
Such was the conversation which passed between Hypatia and Orestes half an  
hour after Philammon had taken possession of his new abode.  
Hypatia looked at the Prefect with calm penetration, not unmixed with scorn and  
fear.  
‘And pray what has produced this sudden change in your Excellency’s  
earnestness? For four months your promises have been lying fallow.’ SThe did  
not confess how glad she would have been at heart to see them lying fallow still.  
‘Because—This morning I have news; which I tell to you the first as a  
compliment. We will take care that all Alexandria knows it before sundown.  
Heraclian has conquered.’  
‘Conquered?’ cried Hypatia, springing from her seat.  
‘Conquered, and utterly destroyed the emperor’s forces at Ostia. So says a  
messenger on whom I can depend. And even if the news should prove false, I  
can prevent the contrary report from spreading, or what is the use of being  
prefect? You demur? Do you not see that if we can keep the notion alive but a  
week our cause is won?’  
‘How so?’  
‘I have treated already with all the officers of the city, and every one of them has  
acted like a wise man, and given me a promise of help, conditional of course on  
Heraclian’s success, being as tired as I am of that priest-ridden court at  
Byzantium. Moreover, the stationaries are mine already. So are the soldiery all  
the way up the Nile. Ah! you have been fancying me idle for these four months,  
but—You forget that you yourself were the prize of my toil. Could I be a  
sluggard with that goal in sight?’  
Hypatia shuddered, but was silent; and Orestes went on—  
‘I have unladen several of the wheat-ships for enormous largesses of bread:  
though those rascally monks of Tabenne had nearly forestalled my benevolence,  
and I was forced to bribe a deacon or two, buy up the stock they had sent down,  
and retail it again as my own. It is really most officious of them to persist in  
feeding gratuitously half the poor of the city! What possible business have they  
with Alexandria?’  
‘The wish for popularity, I presume.’  
‘Just so; and then what hold can the government have on a set of rogues whose  
stomachs are filled without our help?’  
‘Julian made the same complaint to the high priest of Galatia, in that priceless  
letter of his.’  
‘Ah, you will set that all right, you know, shortly. Then again, I do not fear  
Cyril’s power just now. He has injured himself deeply, I am happy to say, in the  
opinion of the wealthy and educated, by expelling the Jews. And as for his mob,  
exactly at the right moment, the deities—there are no monks here, so I can  
attribute my blessings to the right source—have sent us such a boon as may put  
them into as good a humour as we need.’  
‘And what is that?’ asked Hypatia.  
‘A white elephant.’  
‘A white elephant?’  
‘Yes,’ he answered, mistaking or ignoring the tone of her answer. ‘A real, live,  
white elephant; a thing which has not been seen in Alexandria for a hundred  
years! It was passing through with two tame tigers, as a present to the boy at  
Byzantium, from some hundred-wived kinglet of the Hyperborean Taprobane, or  
other no- man’s-land in the far East. I took the liberty of laying an embargo on  
them, and, after a little argumentation and a few hints of torture, elephant and  
tigers are at our service.’  
‘And of what service are they to be?’  
‘My dearest madam— Conceive …. How are we to win the mob without a  
show? .... When were there more than two ways of gaining either the whole or  
part of the Roman Empire—by force of arms or force of trumpery? Can even  
you invent a third? The former is unpleasantly exciting, and hardly practicable  
just now. The latter remains, and, thanks to the white elephant, may be  
triumphantly successful. I have to exhibit something every week. The people are  
getting tired of that pantomime; and since the Jews were driven out, the fellow  
has grown stupid and lazy, having lost the more enthusiastic half of his  
spectators. As for horse-racing, they are sick of it …. Now, suppose we  
announce, for the earliest possible day—a spectacle— such a spectacle as never  
was seen before in this generation. You and I—I as exhibitor, you as  
representative—for the time being only—of the Vestals of old—sit side by side  
…. Some worthy friend has his instructions, when the people are beside  
themselves with rapture, to cry, “Long live Orestes Caesar!” ....Another reminds  
them of Heraclian’s victory—another couples your name with mine …. the  
people applaud …. some Mark Antony steps forward, salutes me as Imperator,  
Augustus—what you will—the cry is taken up—I refuse as meekly as Julius  
Caesar himself—am compelled, blushing, to accept the honour—I rise, make an  
oration about the future independence of the southern continent—union of  
Africa and Egypt—the empire no longer to be divided into Eastern and Western,  
but Northern and Southern. Shouts of applause, at two drachmas per man, shake  
the skies. Everybody believes that everybody else approves, and follows the lead  
.... And the thing is won.’  
‘And pray,’ asked Hypatia, crushing down her contempt and despair, ‘how is this  
to bear on the worship of the gods?  
‘Why …. why, .... if you thought that people’s minds were sufficiently prepared,  
you might rise in your turn, and make an oration—you can conceive one. Set  
forth how these spectacles, formerly the glory of the empire, had withered under  
Galilaean superstition …. How the only path toward the full enjoyment of eye  
and ear was a frank return to those deities, from whose worship they originally  
sprang, and connected with which they could alone be enjoyed in their  
perfection …. But I need not teach you how to do that which you have so often  
taught me: so now to consider our spectacle, which, next to the largess, is the  
most important part of our plans. I ought to have exhibited to them the monk  
who so nearly killed me yesterday. That would indeed have been a triumph of  
the laws over Christianity. He and the wild beasts might have given the people  
ten minutes’ amusement. But wrath conquered prudence; and the fellow has been  
crucified these two hours. Suppose, then, we had a little exhibition of gladiators.  
They are forbidden by law, certainly.’  
‘Thank Heaven, they are!’  
‘But do you not see that is the very reason why we, to assert our own  
independence, should employ them?’  
‘No! they are gone. Let them never reappear to disgrace the earth.’  
‘My dear lady, you must not in your present character say that in public; lest  
Cyril should be impertinent enough to remind you that Christian emperors and  
bishops put them down.’  
Hypatia bit her lip, and was silent.  
‘Well, I do not wish to urge anything unpleasant to you …. If we could but  
contrive a few martyrdoms—but I really fear we must wait a year or two longer,  
in the present state of public opinion, before we can attempt that.’  
‘Wait? wait for ever! Did not Julian—and he must be our model— forbid the  
persecution of the Galilaeans, considering them sufficiently punished by their  
own atheism and self-tormenting superstition?’  
‘Another small error of that great man.—He should have recollected that for  
three hundred years nothing, not even the gladiators themselves, had been found  
to put the mob in such good humour as to see a few Christians, especially young  
and handsome women, burned alive, or thrown to the lions.’  
Hypatia bit her lip once more. ‘I can hear no more of this, sir. You forget that  
you are speaking to a woman.’  
‘Most supreme wisdom,’ answered Orestes, in his blandest tone, ‘you cannot  
suppose that I wish to pain your ears. But allow me to observe, as a general  
theorem, that if one wishes to effect any purpose, it is necessary to use the  
means; and on the whole, those which have been tested by four hundred years’  
experience will be the safest. I speak as a plain practical statesman—but surely  
your philosophy will not dissent?’  
Hypatia looked down in painful thought. What could she answer? Was it not too  
true? and had not Orestes fact and experience on his side?  
‘Well, if you must—but I cannot have gladiators. Why not a—one of those  
battles with wild beasts? They are disgusting enough but still they are less  
inhuman than the others; and you might surely take precautions to prevent the  
men being hurt.’  
‘Ah! that would indeed be a scentless rose! If there is neither danger nor  
bloodshed, the charm is gone. But really wild beasts are too expensive just now;  
and if I kill down my present menagerie, I can afford no more. Why not have  
something which costs no money, like prisoners?’  
‘What! do you rank human beings below brutes?’  
‘Heaven forbid! But they are practically less expensive. Remember, that without  
money we are powerless; we must husband our resources for the cause of the  
gods.’  
Hypatia was silent.  
‘Now, there are fifty or sixty Libyan prisoners just brought in from the desert.  
Why not let them fight an equal number of soldiers? They are rebels to the  
empire, taken in war.’  
‘Ah, then,’said Hypatia, catching at any thread of self- justification, ‘their lives  
are forfeit in any case.’  
‘Of course. So the Christians could not complain of us for that. Did not the most  
Christian Emperor Constantine set some three hundred German prisoners to  
butcher each other in the amphitheatre of Treves?’  
‘But they refused, and died like heroes, each falling on his own sword.’  
‘Ah—those Germans are always unmanageable. My guards, now, are just as  
stiff-necked. To tell you the truth, I have asked them already to exhibit their  
prowess on these Libyans, and what do you suppose they answered?’  
‘They refused, I hope.’  
‘They told me in the most insolent tone that they were men, and not stageplayers; and hired to fight, and not to butcher. I expected a Socratic dialogue  
after such a display of dialectic, and bowed myself out.’  
‘They were right.’  
‘Not a doubt of it, from a philosophic point of view; from a practical one they  
were great pedants, and I an ill-used master. However, I can find unfortunate and  
misunderstood heroes enough in the prisons, who, for the chance of their liberty,  
will acquit themselves valiantly enough; and I know of a few old gladiators still  
lingering about the wine-shops, who will be proud enough to give them a week’s  
training. So that may pass. Now for some lighter species of representation to  
follow—something more or less dramatic.’  
‘You forget that you speak to one who trusts to be, as soon as she has the power,  
the high-priestess of Athene, and who in the meanwhile is bound to obey her  
tutor Julian’s commands to the priests of his day, and imitate the Galilaeans as  
much in their abhorrence for the theatre as she hopes hereafter to do in their care  
for the widow and the stranger.’  
‘Far be it from me to impugn that great man’s wisdom. But allow me to remark,  
that to judge by the present state of the empire, one has a right to say that he  
failed.’  
‘The Sun-God whom he loved took him to himself, too early, by a hero’s death.’  
‘And the moment he was removed, the wave of Christian barbarism rolled back  
again into its old channel.’  
‘Ah! had he but lived twenty years longer!’  
‘The Sun-God, perhaps, was not so solicitous as we are for the success of his  
high-priest’s project.’  
Hypatia reddened—was Orestes, after all laughing in his sleeve at her and her  
hopes?  
‘Do not blaspheme!’she said solemnly.  
‘Heaven forbid! I only offer one possible explanation of a plain fact. The other  
is, that as Julian was not going quite the right way to work to restore the worship  
of the Olympians, the Sun-God found it expedient to withdraw him from his  
post, and now sends in his place Hypatia the philosopher, who will be wise  
enough to avoid Julian’s error, and not copy the Galilaeans too closely, by  
imitating a severity of morals at which they are the only true and natural adepts.’  
‘So Julian’s error was that of being too virtuous? If it be so, let me copy him, and  
fail like him. The fault will then not be mine, but fate’s.’  
‘Not in being too virtuous himself, most stainless likeness of Athene, but in  
trying to make others so. He forgot one half of Juvenal’s great dictum about  
“Panem and Circenses,” as the absolute and overruling necessities of rulers. He  
tried to give the people the bread without the games …. And what thanks he  
received for his enormous munificence, let himself and the good folks of  
Antioch tell—you just quoted his Misopogon—’  
‘Ay-the lament of a man too pure for his age.’  
‘Exactly so. He should rather have been content to keep his purity to himself,  
and have gone to Antioch not merely as a philosophic high-priest, with a beard  
of questionable cleanliness, to offer sacrifices to a god in whom—forgive me—  
nobody in Antioch had believed for many a year. If he had made his entrance  
with ten thousand gladiators, and our white elephant, built a theatre of ivory and  
glass in Daphne, and proclaimed games in honour of the Sun, or of any other  
member of the Pantheon—’  
‘He would have acted unworthily of a philosopher.’  
‘But instead of that one priest draggling up, poor devil, through the wet grass to  
the deserted altar with his solitary goose under his arm, he would have had every  
goose in Antioch—forgive my stealing a pun from Aristophanes—running openmouthed to worship any god known or unknown—and to see the sights.’  
‘Well,’said Hypatia, yielding perforce to Orestes’s cutting arguments. ‘Let us  
then restore the ancient glories of the Greek drama. Let us give them a trilogy of  
Aeschylus or Sophocles.’  
‘Too calm, my dear madam. The Eumenides might do certainly, or Philoctetes, if  
we could but put Philoctetes to real pain, and make the spectators sure that he  
was yelling in good earnest.’  
‘Disgusting!’  
‘But necessary, like many disgusting things.’  
‘Why not try the Prometheus?’  
‘A magnificent field for stage effect, certainly. What with those ocean nymphs in  
their winged chariot, and Ocean on his griffin …. But I should hardly think it  
safe to reintroduce Zeus and Hermes to the people under the somewhat ugly  
light in which Aeschylus exhibits them.’  
‘I forgot that,’said Hypatia. ‘The Orestean trilogy will be best, after all.’  
‘Best? perfect—divine! Ah, that it were to be my fate to go down to posterity as  
the happy man who once more revived Aeschylus’s masterpieces on a Grecian  
stage! But—Is there not, begging the pardon of the great tragedian, too much  
reserve in the Agamemnon for our modern taste? If we could have the bath scene  
represented on the stage, and an Agamemnon who could he really killed—  
though I would not insist on that, because a good actor might make it a reason  
for refusing the part—but still the murder ought to take place in public.’  
‘Shocking! an outrage on all the laws of the drama. Does not even the Roman  
Horace lay down as a rule the—\_Nec pueros coram populo Medea trucidet\_?’  
‘Fairest and wisest, I am as willing a pupil of the dear old Epicurean as any man  
living—even to the furnishing of my chamber; of which fact the Empress of  
Africa may some day assure herself. But we are not now discussing the art of  
poetry, but the art of reigning; and, after all, while Horace was sitting in his easychair, giving his countrymen good advice, a private man, who knew somewhat  
better than he what the mass admired, was exhibiting forty thousand gladiators at  
his mother’s funeral.’  
‘But the canon has its foundation in the eternal laws of beauty. It has been  
accepted and observed.’  
‘Not by the people for whom it was written. The learned Hypatia has surely not  
forgotten, that within sixty years after the Ars Poetica was written, Annaeus  
Seneca, or whosoever wrote that very bad tragedy called the Medea, found it so  
necessary that she should, in despite of Horace, kill her children before the  
people, that he actually made her do it!’  
Hypatia was still silent—foiled at every point, while Orestes ran on with  
provoking glibness.  
‘And consider, too, even if we dare alter Aeschylus a little, we could find no one  
to act him.’  
‘Ah, true! fallen, fallen days!’  
‘And really, after all, omitting the questionable compliment to me, as candidate  
for a certain dignity, of having my namesake kill his mother, and then be hunted  
over the stage by furies—’  
‘But Apollo vindicates and purifies him at last. What a noble occasion that last  
scene would give for winning them hack to their old reverence for the god!’  
‘True, but at present the majority of spectators will believe more strongly in the  
horrors of matricide and furies than in Apollo’s power to dispense therewith. So  
that I fear must be one of your labours of the future.’  
‘And it shall be,’said Hypatia. But she did not speak cheerfully.  
‘Do you not think, moreover,’ went on the tempter, ‘that those old tragedies  
might give somewhat too gloomy a notion of those deities whom we wish to  
reintroduce—I beg pardon, to rehonour? The history of the house of Atreus is  
hardly more cheerful, in spite of its beauty, than one of Cyril’s sermons on the  
day of judgment, and the Tartarus prepared for hapless rich people?’  
‘Well,’said Hypatia, more and more listlessly; ‘it might be more prudent to show  
them first the fairer and more graceful side of the old Myths. Certainly the great  
age of Athenian tragedy had its playful reverse in the old comedy.’  
‘And in certain Dionysiac sports and processions which shall be nameless, in  
order to awaken a proper devotion for the gods in those who might not be able to  
appreciate Aeschylus and Sophocles.’  
‘You would not reintroduce them?’  
‘Pallas forbid! but give as fair a substitute for them as we can.’  
‘And are we to degrade ourselves because the masses are degraded?’  
‘Not in the least. For my own part, this whole business, like the catering for the  
weekly pantomimes, is as great a bore to me as it could have been to Julian  
himself. But, my dearest madam—“Panem and Circenses”—they must be put  
into good humour; and there is but one way—by “the lust of the flesh, and the  
lust of the eye, and the pride of life,” as a certain Galilaean correctly defines the  
time- honoured Roman method.’  
‘Put them into good humour? I wish to lustrate them afresh for the service of the  
gods. If we must have comic representations, we can only have them conjoined  
to tragedy, which, as Aristotle defines it, will purify their affections by pity and  
terror.’  
Orestes smiled.  
‘I certainly can have no objection to so good a purpose. But do you not think that  
the battle between the gladiators and the Libyans will have done that sufficiently  
beforehand? I can conceive nothing more fit for that end, unless it be Nero’s  
method of sending his guards among the spectators themselves, and throwing  
them down to the wild beasts in the arena. How thoroughly purified by pity and  
terror must every worthy shopkeeper have been, when he sat uncertain whether  
he might not follow his fat wife into the claws of the nearest lion!’  
‘You are pleased to be witty, sir,’said Hypatia, hardly able to conceal her  
disgust.  
‘My dearest bride elect, I only meant the most harmless of reductiones ad  
absurdum of an abstract canon of Aristotle, with which I, who am a Platonist  
after my mistress’s model, do not happen to agree. But do, I beseech you, be  
ruled, not by me, but by your own wisdom. You cannot bring the people to  
appreciate your designs at the first sight. You are too wise, too pure, too lofty,  
too far- sighted for them. And therefore you must get power to compel them.  
Julian, after all, found it necessary to compel—if he had lived seven years more  
he would have found it necessary to persecute.’  
‘The gods forbid that—that such a necessity should ever arise here.’  
‘The only way to avoid it, believe me, is to allure and to indulge. After all, it is  
for their good.’  
‘True,’sighed Hypatia. ‘Have your way, sir.’  
‘Believe me, you shall have yours in turn. I ask you to be ruled by me now, only  
that you may be in a position to rule me and Africa hereafter.’  
‘And such an Africa! Well, if they are born low and earthly, they must, I  
suppose, he treated as such; and the fault of such a necessity is Nature’s, and not  
ours.—Yet it is most degrading!—But still, if the only method by which the  
philosophic few can assume their rights, as the divinely-appointed rulers of the  
world, is by indulging those lower beings whom they govern for their good—  
why, be it so. It is no worse necessity than many another which the servant of the  
gods must endure in days like these.’  
‘Ah,’said Orestes, refusing to hear the sigh, or to see the bitterness of the lip  
which accompanied the speech—‘now Hypatia is herself again; and my  
counsellor, and giver of deep and celestial reasons for all things at which poor I  
can only snatch and guess by vulpine cunning. So now for our lighter  
entertainment. What shall it be?’  
‘What you will, provided it be not, as most such are, unfit for the eyes of modest  
women. I have no skill in catering for folly.’  
‘A pantomime, then? We may make that as grand and as significant as we will,  
and expend too on it all our treasures in the way of gewgaws and wild beasts.’  
‘As you like.’  
‘Just consider, too, what a scope for mythologic learning a pantomime affords.  
Why not have a triumph of some deity? Could I commit myself more boldly to  
the service of the gods! Now—who shall it be?’  
‘Pallas—unless, as I suppose, she is too modest and too sober for your  
Alexandrians?’  
‘Yes—it does not seem to me that she would be appreciated—at all events for  
the present. Why not try Aphrodite? Christians as well as Pagans will thoroughly  
understand her; and I know no one who would not degrade the virgin goddess by  
representing her, except a certain lady, who has already, I hope, consented to sit  
in that very character, by the side of her too much honoured slave; and one Pallas  
is enough at a time in any theatre.’  
Hypatia shuddered. He took it all for granted, then—and claimed her conditional  
promise to the uttermost. Was there no escape? She longed to spring up and rush  
away, into the streets, into the desert—anything to break the hideous net which  
she had wound around herself. And yet—was it not the cause of the gods—the  
one object of her life? And after all, if he the hateful was to be her emperor, she  
at least was to be an empress; and do what she would— and half in irony, and  
half in the attempt to hurl herself perforce into that which she knew that she  
must go through, and forget misery in activity, she answered as cheerfully as she  
could.  
‘Then, my goddess, thou must wait the pleasure of these base ones! At least the  
young Apollo will have charms even for them.’  
‘Ah, but who will represent him? This puny generation does not produce such  
figures as Pylades and Bathyllus—except among those Goths. Besides, Apollo  
must have golden hair; and our Greek race has intermixed itself so shamefully  
with these Egyptians, that our stage-troop is as dark as Andromeda, and we  
should have to apply again to those accursed Goths, who have nearly’ (with a  
bow) ‘all the beauty, and nearly all the money and the power, and will, I suspect,  
have the rest of it before I am safe out of this wicked world, because they have  
not nearly, but quite, all the courage. Now—Shall we ask a Goth to dance  
Apollo? for we can get no one else.’  
Hypatia smiled in spite of herself at the notion. ‘That would be too shameful! I  
must forego the god of light himself, if I am to see him in the person of a clumsy  
barbarian.’  
‘Then why not try my despised and rejected Aphrodite? Suppose we had her  
triumph, finishing with a dance of Venus Anadyomene. Surely that is a graceful  
myth enough.’  
‘As a myth; but on the stage in reality?’  
‘Not worse than what this Christian city has been looking at for many a year. We  
shall not run any danger of corrupting morality, be sure.’  
Hypatia blushed.  
‘Then you must not ask for my help.’  
‘Or for your presence at the spectacle? For that be sure is a necessary point. You  
are too great a person, my dearest madam, in the eyes of these good folks to be  
allowed to absent yourself on such an occasion. If my little stratagem succeeds,  
it will be half owing to the fact of the people knowing that in crowning me, they  
crown Hypatia …. Come now—do you not see that as you must needs be present  
at their harmless scrap of mythology, taken from the authentic and undoubted  
histories of those very gods whose worship we intend to restore, you will consult  
your own comfort most in agreeing to it cheerfully, and in lending me your  
wisdom towards arranging it? Just conceive now, a triumph of Aphrodite,  
entering preceded by wild beasts led in chains by Cupids, the white elephant and  
all—what a field for the plastic art! You might have a thousand groupings,  
dispersions, regroupings, in as perfect bas- relief style as those of any  
Sophoclean drama. Allow me only to take this paper and pen—’  
And he began sketching rapidly group after group.  
‘Not so ugly, surely?’  
‘They are very beautiful, I cannot deny,’said poor Hypatia.  
‘Ah, sweetest Empress! you forget sometimes that I, too, world-worm as I am,  
am a Greek, with as intense a love of the beautiful as even you yourself have. Do  
not fancy that every violation of correct taste does not torture me as keenly as it  
does you. Some day, I hope, you will have learned to pity and to excuse the  
wretched compromise between that which ought to be and that which can be, in  
which we hapless statesmen must struggle on, half-stunted, and wholly  
misunderstood—Ah, well! Look, now, at these fauns and dryads among the  
shrubs upon the stage, pausing in startled wonder at the first blast of music  
which proclaims the exit of the goddess from her temple.’  
‘The temple? Why, where are you going to exhibit?’  
‘In the Theatre, of course. Where else pantomimes?’  
‘But will the spectators have time to move all the way from the Amphitheatre  
after that—those—’  
‘The Amphitheatre? We shall exhibit the Libyans, too, in the Theatre.’  
‘Combats in the Theatre sacred to Dionusos?’  
‘My dear lady’—penitently—‘I know it is an offence against all the laws of the  
drama.’  
‘Oh, worse than that! Consider what an impiety toward the god, to desecrate his  
altar with bloodshed?’  
‘Fairest devotee, recollect that, after all, I may fairly borrow Dionusos’s altar in  
this my extreme need; for I saved its very existence for him, by preventing the  
magistrates from filling up the whole orchestra with benches for the patricians,  
after the barbarous Roman fashion. And besides, what possible sort of  
representation, or misrepresentation, has not been exhibited in every theatre of  
the empire for the last four hundred years? Have we not had tumblers, conjurers,  
allegories, martyrdoms, marriages, elephants on the tight-rope, learned horses,  
and learned asses too, if we may trust Apuleius of Madaura; with a good many  
other spectacles of which we must not speak in the presence of a vestal? It is an  
age of execrable taste, and we must act accordingly.’  
‘Ah!’ answered Hypatia; ‘the first step in the downward career of the drama  
began when the successors of Alexander dared to profane theatres which had reechoed the choruses of Sophocles and Euripides by degrading the altar of  
Dionusos into a stage for pantomimes!’  
‘Which your pure mind must, doubtless, consider not so very much better than a  
little fighting. But, after all, the Ptolemies could not do otherwise. You can only  
have Sophoclean dramas in a Sophoclean age; and theirs was no more of one  
than ours is, and so the drama died a natural death; and when that happens to  
man or thing, you may weep over it if you will, but you must, after all, bury it,  
and get something else in its place—except, of course, the worship of the gods.’  
‘I am glad that you except that, at least,’said Hypatia, somewhat bitterly. ‘But  
why not use the Amphitheatre for both spectacles?’  
‘What can I do? I am over head and ears in debt already; and the Amphitheatre is  
half in ruins, thanks to that fanatic edict of the late emperor’s against gladiators.  
There is no time or money for repairing it; and besides, how pitiful a poor  
hundred of combatants will look in an arena built to hold two thousand!  
Consider, my dearest lady, in what fallen times we live!’  
‘I do, indeed!’said Hypatia. ‘But I will not see the altar polluted by blood. It is  
the desecration which it has undergone already which has provoked the god to  
withdraw the poetic inspiration.’  
‘I do not doubt the fact. Some curse from Heaven, certainly, has fallen on our  
poets, to judge by their exceeding badness. Indeed, I am inclined to attribute the  
insane vagaries of the water-drinking monks and nuns, like those of the Argive  
women, to the same celestial anger. But I will see that the sanctity of the altar is  
preserved, by confining the combat to the stage. And as for the pantomime  
which will follow, if you would only fall in with my fancy of the triumph of  
Aphrodite, Dionusos would hardly refuse his altar for the glorification of his  
own lady-love.’  
‘Ah—that myth is a late, and in my opinion a degraded one.’  
‘Be it so; but recollect, that another myth makes her, and not without reason, the  
mother of all living beings. Be sure that Dionusos will have no objection, or any  
other god either, to allow her to make her children feel her conquering might; for  
they all know well enough, that if we can once get her well worshipped here, all  
Olympus will follow in her train.’  
‘That was spoken of the celestial Aphrodite, whose symbol is the tortoise, the  
emblem of domestic modesty and chastity: not of that baser Pandemic one.’  
‘Then we will take care to make the people aware of whom they are admiring by  
exhibiting in the triumph whole legions of tortoises: and you yourself shall write  
the chant, while I will see that the chorus is worthy of what it has to sing. No  
mere squeaking double flute and a pair of boys: but a whole army of cyclops and  
graces, with such trebles and such bass-voices! It shall make Cyril’s ears tingle  
in his palace!’  
‘The chant! A noble office for me, truly! That is the very part of the absurd  
spectacle to which you used to say the people never dreamed of attending. All  
which is worth settling you seemed to have settled for yourself before you  
deigned to consult me.’  
‘I said so? Surely you must mistake. But if any hired poetaster’s chant do pass  
unheeded, what has that to do with Hypatia’s eloquence and science, glowing  
with the treble inspiration of Athene, Phoebus, and Dionusos? And as for having  
arranged beforehand—my adorable mistress, what more delicate compliment  
could I have paid you?’  
‘I cannot say that it seems to me to be one.’  
‘How? After saving you every trouble which I could, and racking my  
overburdened wits for stage effects and properties, have I not brought hither the  
darling children of my own brain, and laid them down ruthlessly, for life or  
death, before the judgment-seat of your lofty and unsparing criticism?’  
Hypatia felt herself tricked: but there was no escape now.  
‘And who, pray, is to disgrace herself and me, as Venus Anadyomene?’  
‘Ah! that is the most exquisite article in all my bill of fare! What if the kind gods  
have enabled me to exact a promise from—whom, think you?’  
‘What care I? How can I tell?‘asked Hypatia, who suspected and dreaded that  
she could tell.  
‘Pelagia herself!’  
Hypatia rose angrily.  
‘This, sir, at least, is too much! It was not enough for you, it seems, to claim, or  
rather to take for granted, so imperiously, so mercilessly, a conditional promise  
—weakly, weakly made, in the vain hope that you would help forward  
aspirations of mine which you have let lie fallow for months—in which I do not  
believe that you sympathise now!—It was not enough for you to declare yourself  
publicly yesterday a Christian, and to come hither this morning to flatter me into  
the belief that you will dare, ten days hence, to restore the worship of the gods  
whom you have abjured!—It was not enough to plan without me all those  
movements in which you told me I was to be your fellow-counsellor—the very  
condition which you yourself offered!—It was not enough for you to command  
me to sit in that theatre, as your bait, your puppet, your victim, blushing and  
shuddering at sights unfit for the eyes of gods and men:—but, over and above all  
this, I must assist in the renewed triumph of a woman who has laughed down my  
teaching, seduced away my scholars, braved me in my very lecture-room—who  
for four years has done more than even Cyril himself to destroy all the virtue and  
truth which I have toiled to sow—and toiled in vain! Oh, beloved gods! where  
will end the tortures through which your martyr must witness for you to a fallen  
race?’  
And, in spite of all her pride, and of Orestes’s presence, her eyes filled with  
scalding tears.  
Orestes’s eyes had sunk before the vehemence of her just passion; but as she  
added the last sentence in a softer and sadder tone, he raised them again, with a  
look of sorrow and entreaty as his heart whispered—  
‘Fool But she is too beautiful! Win her I must and will!’  
‘Ah! dearest, noblest Hypatia! What have I done? Unthinking fool that I was! In  
the wish to save you trouble—In the hope that I could show you, by the aptness  
of my own plans, that my practical statesmanship was not altogether an  
unworthy helpmate for your loftier wisdom—wretch that I am, I have offended  
you; and I have ruined the cause of those very gods for whom, I swear, I am as  
ready to sacrifice myself as ever you can be!’  
The last sentence had the effect which it was meant to have.  
‘Ruined the cause of the gods?‘asked she, in a startled tone.  
‘Is it not ruined without your help? And what am I to understand from your  
words but that—hapless man that I am!—you leave me and them henceforth to  
our own unassisted strength?’  
‘The unassisted strength of the gods is omnipotence.’  
‘Be it so. But—why is Cyril, and not Hypatia, master of the masses of  
Alexandria this day? Why but because he and his have fought, and suffered, and  
died too, many a hundred of them, for their god, omnipotent as they believe him  
to be? Why are the old gods forgotten; my fairest logician?—for forgotten they  
are.’  
Hypatia trembled from head to foot, and Orestes went on more blandly than  
ever.  
‘I will not ask an answer to that question of mine. All I entreat is forgiveness for  
—what for I know not: but I have sinned, and that is enough for me. What if I  
have been too confident—too hasty? Are you not the price for which I strain?  
And will not the preciousness of the victor’s wreath excuse some impatience in  
the struggle for it? Hypatia has forgotten who and what the gods have made her  
—she has not even consulted her own mirror, when she blames one of her  
innumerable adorers for a forwardness which ought to be rather imputed to him  
as a virtue.’  
And Orestes stole meekly such a glance of adoration, that Hypatia blushed, and  
turned her face away …. After all, she was woman. And she was a fanatic ….  
And she was to be an empress …. And Orestes’s voice was as melodious, and  
his manner as graceful as ever charmed the heart of woman.  
‘But Pelagia?’she said, at last, recovering herself.  
‘Would that I had never seen the creature! But, after all, I really fancied that in  
doing what I have done I should gratify you.’  
‘Me?’  
‘Surely if revenge be sweet, as they say, it could hardly find a more delicate  
satisfaction than in degradation of one who—’  
‘Revenge, sir? Do you dream that I am capable of so base a passion?’  
‘I? Pallas forbid!’said Orestes, finding himself on the wrong path again. ‘But  
recollect that the allowing this spectacle to take place might rid you for ever of  
an unpleasant—I will not say rival.’  
‘How, then?’  
‘Will not her reappearance on the stage, after all her proud professions of  
contempt for it, do something towards reducing her in the eyes of this scandalous  
little town to her true and native level? She will hardly dare thenceforth to go  
about parading herself as the consort of a god-descended hero, or thrusting  
herself unbidden into Hypatia’s presence, as if she were the daughter of a  
consul.’  
‘But I cannot—I cannot allow it even to her. After all, Orestes, she is a woman.  
And can I, philosopher as I am, help to degrade her even one step lower than she  
lies already?’  
Hypatia had all but said ‘a woman even as I am’: but Neo-Platonic philosophy  
taught her better; and she checked the hasty assertion of anything like a common  
sex or common humanity between two beings so antipodal.  
‘Ah’ rejoined Orestes, ‘that unlucky word degrade! Unthinking that I was, to use  
it, forgetting that she herself will be no more degraded in her own eyes, or any  
one’s else, by hearing again the plaudits of those “dear Macedonians,” on whose  
breath she has lived for years, than a peacock when he displays his train.  
Unbounded vanity and self-conceit are not unpleasant passions, after all, for  
their victim. After all, she is what she is, and her being so is no fault of yours.  
Oh, it must be! indeed it must!’  
Poor Hypatia! The bait was too delicate, the tempter too wily; and yet she was  
ashamed to speak aloud the philosophic dogma which flashed a ray of comfort  
and resignation through her mind, and reminded her that after all there was no  
harm in allowing lower natures to develop themselves freely in that direction  
which Nature had appointed for them, and in which only they could fulfil the  
laws of their being, as necessary varieties in the manifold whole of the universe.  
So she cut the interview short with—  
‘If it must be, then …. I will now retire, and write the ode. Only, I refuse to have  
any communication whatsoever with—I am ashamed of even mentioning her  
name. I will send the ode to you, and she must adapt her dance to it as best she  
can. By her taste, or fancy rather, I will not be ruled.’  
‘And I,’said Orestes, with a profusion of thanks, ‘will retire to rack my faculties  
over the “dispositions.” On this day week we exhibit—and conquer! Farewell,  
queen of wisdom! Your philosophy never shows to better advantage than when  
you thus wisely and gracefully subordinate that which is beautiful in itself to that  
which is beautiful relatively and practically.’  
He departed; and Hypatia, half dreading her own thoughts, sat down at once to  
labour at the ode. Certainly it was a magnificent subject. What etymologies,  
cosmogonies, allegories, myths, symbolisms, between all heaven and earth,  
might she not introduce— if she could but banish that figure of Pelagia dancing  
to it all, which would not be banished, but hovered, like a spectre, in the  
background of all her imaginations. She became quite angry, first with Pelagia,  
then with herself, for being weak enough to think of her. Was it not positive  
defilement of her mind to be haunted by the image of so defiled a being? She  
would purify her thoughts by prayer and meditation. But to whom of all the gods  
should she address herself? To her chosen favourite, Athene? She who had  
promised to be present at that spectacle? Oh, how weak she bad been to yield!  
And yet she bad been snared into it. Snared—there was no doubt of it—by the  
very man whom she had fancied that she could guide and mould to her own  
purposes. He had guided and moulded her now against her self-respect, her  
compassion, her innate sense of right. Already she was his tool. True, she had  
submitted to be so for a great purpose. But suppose she had to submit again  
hereafter —always henceforth? And what made the thought more poignant was,  
her knowledge that he was right; that he knew what to do, and how to do it. She  
could not help admiring him for his address, his quickness, his clear practical  
insight: and yet she despised, mistrusted, all but hated him. But what if his were  
the very qualities which were destined to succeed? What if her purer and loftier  
aims, her resolutions—now, alas! broken—never to act but on the deepest and  
holiest principles and by the most sacred means, were destined never to exert  
themselves in practice, except conjointly with miserable stratagems and  
cajoleries such as these? What if statecrafts and not philosophy and religion,  
were the appointed rulers of mankind? Hideous thought! And yet—she who had  
all her life tried to be self-dependent, originative, to face and crush the hostile  
mob of circumstance and custom, and do battle single-handed with Christianity  
and a fallen age—how was it that in her first important and critical opportunity  
of action she had been dumb, irresolute, passive, the victim, at last, of the very  
corruption which she was to exterminate? She did not know yet that those who  
have no other means for regenerating a corrupted time than dogmatic pedantries  
concerning the dead and unreturning past, must end, in practice, by borrowing  
insincerely, and using clumsily, the very weapons of that novel age which they  
deprecate, and ‘sewing new cloth into old garments,’ till the rent become patent  
and incurable. But in the meanwhile, such meditations as these drove from her  
mind for that day both Athene, and the ode, and philosophy, and all things but—  
Pelagia the wanton.  
In the meanwhile, Alexandrian politics flowed onward in their usual pure and  
quiet course. The public buildings were placarded with the news of Heraclian’s  
victory; and groups of loungers expressed, loudly enough, their utter indifference  
as to who might rule at Rome—or even at Byzantium. Let Heraclian or Honorius  
be emperor, the capitals must be fed; and while the Alexandrian wheat-trade was  
uninjured, what matter who received the tribute? Certainly, as some friends of  
Orestes found means to suggest, it might not be a bad thing for Egypt, if she  
could keep the tribute in her own treasury, instead of sending it to Rome without  
any adequate return, save the presence of an expensive army …. Alexandria had  
been once the metropolis of an independent empire …. Why not again? Then  
came enormous largesses of corn, proving, more satisfactorily to the mob than to  
the shipowners, that Egyptian wheat was better employed at home than abroad.  
Nay, there were even rumours of a general amnesty for all prisoners; and as, of  
course, every evil-doer had a kind of friend, who considered him an injured  
martyr, all parties were well content, on their own accounts at least, with such a  
move.  
And so Orestes’s bubble swelled, and grew, and glittered every day with fresh  
prismatic radiance; while Hypatia sat at home, with a heavy heart, writing her  
ode to Venus Urania, and submitting to Orestes’s daily visits.  
One cloud, indeed, not without squalls of wind and rain, disfigured that sky  
which the Prefect had invested with such serenity by the simple expedient, well  
known to politicians, of painting it bright blue, since it would not assume that  
colour of its own accord. For, a day or two after Ammonius’s execution, the  
Prefect’s guards informed him that the corpse of the crucified man, with the  
cross on which it hung, had vanished. The Nitrian monks had come down in a  
body, and carried them off before the very eyes of the sentinels. Orestes knew  
well enough that the fellows must have been bribed to allow the theft; but he  
dare not say so to men on whose good humour his very life might depend; so,  
stomaching the affront as best he could, he vowed fresh vengeance against Cyril,  
and went on his way. But, behold!—within four-and-twenty hours of the theft, a  
procession of all the rascality, followed by all the piety, of Alexandria,—monks  
from Nitria counted by the thousand,—priests, deacons, archdeacons, Cyril  
himself, in full pontificals, and borne aloft in the midst, upon a splendid bier, the  
missing corpse, its nail-pierced hands and feet left uncovered for the pitying  
gaze of the Church.  
Under the very palace windows, from which Orestes found it expedient to retire  
for the time being, out upon the quays, and up the steps of the Caesareum,  
defiled that new portent; and in another half-hour a servant entered, breathlessly,  
to inform the shepherd of people that his victim was lying in state in the centre  
of the nave, a martyr duly canonised—Ammonius now no more, but henceforth  
Thaumasius the wonderful, on whose heroic virtues and more heroic faithfulness  
unto the death, Cyril was already descanting from the pulpit, amid thunders of  
applause at every allusion to Sisera at the brook Kishon, Sennacherib in the  
house of Nisroch, and the rest of the princes of this world who come to nought.  
Here was a storm! To order a cohort to enter the church and bring away the body  
was easy enough: to make them do it, in the face of certain death, not so easy.  
Besides, it was too early yet for so desperate a move as would be involved in the  
violation of a church …. So Orestes added this fresh item to the long column of  
accounts which he intended to settle with the patriarch; cursed for half an hour in  
the name of all divinities, saints, and martyrs, Christian and Pagan; and wrote off  
a lamentable history of his wrongs and sufferings to the very Byzantine court  
against which he was about to rebel, in the comfortable assurance that Cyril had  
sent, by the same post, a counter-statement, contradicting it in every particular  
…. Never mind …. In case he failed in rebelling, it was as well to be able to  
prove his allegiance up to the latest possible date; and the more completely the  
two statements contradicted each other, the longer it would take to sift the truth  
out of them; and thus so much time was gained, and so much the more chance,  
meantime, of a new leaf being turned over in that Sibylline oracle of politicians  
—the Chapter of Accidents. And for the time being, be would make a pathetic  
appeal to respectability and moderation in general, of which Alexandria, wherein  
some hundred thousand tradesmen and merchants had property to lose,  
possessed a goodly share.  
Respectability responded promptly to the appeal; and loyal addresses and  
deputations of condolence flowed in from every quarter, expressing the extreme  
sorrow with which the citizens had beheld the late disturbances of civil order,  
and the contempt which had been so unfortunately evinced for the constituted  
authorities: but taking, nevertheless, the liberty to remark, that while the extreme  
danger to property which might ensue from the further exasperation of certain  
classes, prevented their taking those active steps on the side of tranquillity to  
which their feelings inclined them, the known piety and wisdom of their  
esteemed patriarch made it presumptuous in them to offer any opinion on his  
present conduct, beyond the expression of their firm belief that he had been  
unfortunately misinformed as to those sentiments of affection and respect which  
his excellency the Prefect was well known to entertain towards him. They  
ventured, therefore, to express a humble hope that, by some mutual compromise,  
to define which would be an unwarrantable intrusion on their part, a happy  
reconciliation would be effected, and the stability of law, property, and the  
Catholic Faith ensured. All which Orestes heard with blandest smiles, while his  
heart was black with curses; and Cyril answered by a very violent though a very  
true and practical harangue on the text, ‘How hardly shall they that have riches  
enter into the kingdom of heaven.’  
So respectability and moderation met with their usual hapless fate, and, soundly  
cursed by both parties, in the vain attempt to please both, wisely left the upper  
powers to settle their own affairs, and went home to their desks and counters,  
and did a very brisk business all that week on the strength of the approaching  
festival. One hapless innkeeper only tried to carry out in practice the principles  
which the deputation from his guild had so eloquently advocated; and being  
convicted of giving away bread in the morning to the Nitrian monks, and wine in  
the evening to the Prefect’s guards, had his tavern gutted, and his head broken by  
a joint plebiscitum of both the parties whom he had conciliated, who afterwards  
fought a little together, and then, luckily for the general peace, mutually ran  
away from each other.  
Cyril in the meanwhile, though he was doing a foolish thing, was doing it wisely  
enough. Orestes might curse, and respectability might deplore, those nightly  
sermons, which shook the mighty arcades of the Caesareum, but they could not  
answer them. Cyril was right and knew that he was right. Orestes was a  
scoundrel, hateful to God, and to the enemies of God. The middle classes were  
lukewarm covetous cowards: the whole system of government was a swindle  
and an injustice; all men’s hearts were mad with crying, ‘Lord, how long?’ The  
fierce bishop had only to thunder forth text on text, from every book of scripture,  
old and new, in order to array on his side not merely the common sense and right  
feeling, but the bigotry and ferocity of the masses.  
In vain did the good Arsenius represent to him not only the scandal but the  
unrighteousness of his new canonisation. ‘I must have fuel, my good father,’ was  
his answer, ‘wherewith to keep alight the flame of zeal. If I am to be silent as to  
Heraclian’s defeat, I must give them some other irritant, which will put them in a  
proper temper to act on that defeat, when they are told of it. If they hate Orestes,  
does he not deserve it? Even if he is not altogether as much in the wrong in this  
particular case as they fancy he is, are there not a thousand other crimes of his  
which deserve their abhorrence even more? At all events, he must proclaim the  
empire, as you yourself say, or we shall have no handle against him. He will not  
dare to proclaim it if he knows that we are aware of the truth. And if we are to  
keep the truth in reserve, we must have something else to serve meanwhile as a  
substitute for it.’  
And poor Arsenius submitted with a sigh, as he saw Cyril making a fresh step in  
that alluring path of evil-doing that good might come, which led him in after  
years into many a fearful sin, and left his name disgraced, perhaps for ever, in  
the judgment of generations, who know as little of the pandemonium against  
which he fought, as they do of the intense belief which sustained him in his  
warfare; and who have therefore neither understanding nor pardon for the  
occasional outrages and errors of a man no worse, even if no better, than  
themselves.  
CHAPTER XXI: THE SQUIRE-BISHOP  
In a small and ill-furnished upper room of a fortified country house, sat  
Synesius, the Bishop of Cyrene.  
A goblet of wine stood beside him, on the table, but it was untasted. Slowly and  
sadly, by the light of a tiny lamp, he went on writing a verse or two, and then  
burying his face in his hand, while hot tears dropped between his fingers on the  
paper; till a servant entering, announced Raphael Aben-Ezra.  
Synesius rose, with a gesture of surprise, and hurried towards the door. ‘No, ask  
him to come hither to me. To pass through those deserted rooms at night is more  
than I can bear.’ And he waited for his guest at the chamber door, and as he  
entered, caught both his hands in his, and tried to speak; but his voice was  
choked within him.  
‘Do not speak,’said Raphael gently, leading him to his chair again. ‘I know all.’  
‘You know all? And are you, then, so unlike the rest of the world, that you alone  
have come to visit the bereaved and the deserted in his misery?’  
‘I am like the rest of the world, after all; for I came to you on my own selfish  
errand, to seek comfort. Would that I could give it instead! But the servants told  
me all, below.’  
‘And yet you persisted in seeing me, as if I could help you? Alas! I can help no  
one now. Here I am at last, utterly alone, utterly helpless. As I came from my  
mother’s womb, so shall I return again. My last child—my last and fairest—  
gone after the rest!—Thank God, that I have had even a day’s peace wherein to  
lay him by his mother and his brothers; though He alone knows how long the  
beloved graves may remain unrifled. Let it have been shame enough to sit here  
in my lonely tower and watch the ashes of my Spartan ancestors, the sons of  
Hercules himself, my glory and my pride, sinful fool that I was! cast to the  
winds by barbarian plunderers …. When wilt thou make an end, O Lord, and  
slay me?’  
‘And how did the poor boy die?’ asked Raphael, in hope of soothing sorrow by  
enticing it to vent itself in words.  
‘The pestilence.—What other fate can we expect, who breathe an air tainted with  
corpses, and sit under a sky darkened with carrion birds? But I could endure  
even that, if I could work, if I could help. But to sit here, imprisoned now for  
months between these hateful towers; night after night to watch the sky, red with  
burning homesteads; day after day to have my ears ring with the shrieks of the  
dying and the captives—for they have begun now to murder every male down to  
the baby at the breast—and to feel myself utterly fettered, impotent, sitting here  
like some palsied idiot, waiting for my end! I long to rush out, and fall fighting,  
sword in hand: but I am their last, their only hope. The governors care nothing  
for our supplications. In vain have I memorialised Gennadius and Innocent, with  
what little eloquence my misery has not stunned in me. But there is no  
resolution, no unanimity left in the land. The soldiery are scattered in small  
garrisons, employed entirely in protecting the private property of their officers.  
The Ausurians defeat them piecemeal, and, armed with their spoils, actually  
have begun to beleaguer fortified towns; and now there is nothing left for us, but  
to pray that, like Ulysses, we may be devoured the last. What am I doing? I am  
selfishly pouring out my own sorrows, instead of listening to yours.’  
‘Nay, friend, you are talking of the sorrows of your country, not of your own. As  
for me, I have no sorrow—only a despair: which, being irremediable, may well  
wait. But you—oh, you must not stay here. Why not escape to Alexandria?’  
‘I will die at my post as I have lived, the father of my people. When the last ruin  
comes, and Cyrene itself is besieged, I shall return thither from my present  
outpost, and the conquerors shall find the bishop in his place before the altar.  
There I have offered for years the unbloody sacrifice to Him, who will perhaps  
require of me a bloody one, that so the sight of an altar polluted by the murder of  
His priest, may end the sum of Pentapolitan woe, and arouse Him to avenge His  
slaughtered sheep! There, we will talk no more of it. This, at least, I have left in  
my power, to make you welcome. And after supper you shall tell me what brings  
you hither.’  
And the good bishop, calling his servant, set to work to show his guest such  
hospitality as the invaders had left in his power.  
Raphael’s usual insight had not deserted him when, in his utter perplexity, he  
went, almost instinctively, straight to Synesius. The Bishop of Cyrene, to judge  
from the charming private letters which he has left, was one of those manysided, volatile, restless men, who taste joy and sorrow, if not deeply or  
permanently, yet abundantly and passionately. He lived, as Raphael had told  
Orestes, in a whirlwind of good deeds, meddling and toiling for the mere  
pleasure of action; and as soon as there was nothing to be done, which, till lately,  
had happened seldom enough with him, paid the penalty for past excitement in  
fits of melancholy. A man of magniloquent and flowery style, not without a vein  
of self-conceit; yet withal of overflowing kindliness, racy humour, and  
unflinching courage, both physical and moral; with a very clear practical faculty,  
and a very muddy speculative one—though, of course, like the rest of the world,  
he was especially proud of his own weakest side, and professed the most  
passionate affection for philosophic meditation; while his detractors hinted, not  
without a show of reason, that he was far more of an adept in soldiering and dogbreaking than in the mysteries of the unseen world.  
To him Raphael betook himself, he hardly knew why; certainly not for  
philosophic consolation; perhaps because Synesius was, as Raphael used to say,  
the only Christian from whom he had ever heard a hearty laugh; perhaps because  
he had some wayward hope, unconfessed even to himself, that he might meet at  
Synesius’s house the very companions from whom he had just fled. He was  
fluttering round Victoria’s new and strange brilliance like a moth round the  
candle, as he confessed, after supper, to his host; and now he was come hither,  
on the chance of being able to singe his wings once more.  
Not that his confession was extracted without much trouble to the good old man,  
who, seeing at once that Raphael had some weight upon his mind, which he  
longed to tell, and yet was either too suspicious or too proud to tell, set himself  
to ferret out the secret, and forgot all his sorrows for the time, as soon as he  
found a human being to whom he might do good. But Raphael was inexplicably  
wayward and unlike himself. All his smooth and shallow persiflage, even his  
shrewd satiric humour, had vanished. He seemed parched by some inward fever;  
restless, moody, abrupt, even peevish; and Synesius’s curiosity rose with his  
disappointment, as Raphael went on obstinately declining to consult the very  
physician before whom he presented himself as patient.  
‘And what can you do for me, if I did tell you?’  
‘Then allow me, my very dear friend, to ask this. As you deny having visited me  
on my own account, on what account did you visit me?’  
‘Can you ask? To enjoy the society of the most finished gentleman of  
Pentapolis.’  
‘And was that worth a week’s journey in perpetual danger of death?’  
‘As for danger of death, that weighs little with a man who is careless of life. And  
as for the week’s journey, I had a dream one night, on my way, which made me  
question whether I were wise in troubling a Christian bishop with any thoughts  
or questions which relate merely to poor human beings like myself, who marry  
and are given in marriage.’  
‘You forget, friend, that you are speaking to one who has married, and loved—  
and lost.’  
‘I did not. But you see how rude I am growing. I am no fit company for you, or  
any man. I believe I shall end by turning robber-chief, and heading a party of  
Ausurians.’  
‘But,’said the patient Synesius ‘you have forgotten your dream all this while.  
‘Forgotten!—I did not promise to tell it you—did I?’  
‘No; but as it seems to have contained some sort of accusation against my  
capacity, do you not think it but fair to tell the accused what it was?’  
Raphael smiled.  
‘Well then …. Suppose I had dreamt this. That a philosopher, an academic, and a  
believer in nothing and in no man, had met at Berenice certain rabbis of the  
Jews, and heard them reading and expounding a certain book of Solomon—the  
Song of Songs. You, as a learned man, know into what sort of trumpery allegory  
they would contrive to twist it; how the bride’s eyes were to mean the scribes  
who were full of wisdom, as the pools of Heshbon were of water; and her stature  
spreading like a palm-tree, the priests who spread out their hands when blessing  
the people; and the left hand which should be under her head, the Tephilim  
which these old pedants wore on their left wrists; and the right hand which  
should hold her, the Mezuzah which they fixed on the right side of their doors to  
keep off devils; and so forth.’  
‘I have heard such silly Cabbalisms, certainly.’  
‘You have? Then suppose that I went on, and saw in my dream how this same  
academic and unbeliever, being himself also a Hebrew of the Hebrews, snatched  
the roll out of the rabbis’ hands, and told them that they were a party of fools for  
trying to set forth what the book might possibly mean, before they had found out  
what it really did mean; and that they could only find out that by looking  
honestly at the plain words to see what Solomon meant by it. And then, suppose  
that this same apostate Jew, this member of the synagogue of Satan, in his carnal  
and lawless imaginations, had waxed eloquent with the eloquence of devils, and  
told them that the book set forth, to those who had eyes to see, how Solomon the  
great king, with his threescore queens, and fourscore concubines, and virgins  
without number, forgets all his seraglio and his luxury in pure and noble love for  
the undefiled, who is but one; and how as his eyes are opened to see that God  
made the one man for the one woman, and the one woman to the one man, even  
as it was in the garden of Eden, so all his heart and thoughts become pure, and  
gentle, and simple; how the song of the birds, and the scent of the grapes, and  
the spicy southern gales, and all the simple country pleasures of the glens of  
Lebanon, which he shares with his own vine-dressers and slaves, become more  
precious in his eyes than all his palaces and artificial pomp; and the man feels  
that he is in harmony, for the first time in his life, with the universe of God, and  
with the mystery of the seasons; that within him, as well as without him, the  
winter is past, and the rain is over and gone; the flowers appear on the earth, and  
the voice of the turtle is heard in the land …. And suppose I saw in my dream  
how the rabbis, when they heard those wicked words, stopped their ears with one  
accord, and ran upon that son of Belial and cast him out, because he blasphemed  
their sacred books by his carnal interpretations. And suppose—I only say  
suppose—that I saw in my dream how the poor man said in his heart, “I will go  
to the Christians; they acknowledge the sacredness of this same book; and they  
say that their God taught them that ‘in the beginning God made man, male and  
female.’ Perhaps they will tell me whether this Song of Songs does not, as it  
seems to me to do, show the passage upwards from brutal polygamy to that  
monogamy which they so solemnly command, and agree with me, that it is  
because the song preaches this that it has a right to take its place among the holy  
writings? You, as a Christian bishop, should know what answer such a man  
would receive …. You are silent? Then I will tell you what answer he seemed to  
receive in my dream. “O blasphemous and carnal man, who pervertest Holy  
Scripture into a cloak for thine own licentiousness, as if it spoke of man’s base  
and sensual affections, know that this book is to be spiritually interpreted of the  
marriage between the soul and its Creator, and that it is from this very book that  
the Catholic Church derives her strongest arguments in favour of holy virginity,  
and the glories of a celibate life.”’  
Synesius was still silent.  
‘And what do you think I saw in my dream that that man did when he found  
these Christians enforcing, as a necessary article of practice, as well as of faith, a  
baseless and bombastic metaphor, borrowed from that very Neo-Platonism out of  
which he had just fled for his life? He cursed the day he was born, and the hour  
in which his father was told, “Thou hast gotten a man-child,” and said,  
“Philosophers, Jews, and Christians, farewell for ever and a day! The clearest  
words of your most sacred books mean anything or nothing’ as the case may suit  
your fancies; and there is neither truth nor reason under the sun. What better is  
there for a man, than to follow the example of his people, and to turn usurer, and  
money-getter, and cajoler of fools in his turn, even as his father was before  
him?”’  
Synesius remained a while in deep thought, and at last-  
‘And yet you came to me?’  
‘I did, because you have loved and married; because you have stood out  
manfully against this strange modern insanity, and refused to give up, when you  
were made a bishop, the wife whom God had given you. You, I thought, could  
solve the riddle for me, if any man could.’  
‘Alas, friend! I have begun to distrust, of late, my power of solving riddles. After  
all, why should they be solved? What matters one more mystery in a world of  
mysteries? “If thou marry, thou hast not sinned,” are St. Paul’s own words; and  
let them be enough for us. Do not ask me to argue with you, but to help you.  
Instead of puzzling me with deep questions, and tempting me to set up my  
private judgment, as I have done too often already, against the opinion of the  
Church, tell me your story, and test my sympathy rather than my intellect. I shall  
feel with you and work for you, doubt not, even though I am unable to explain to  
myself why I do it.’  
‘Then you cannot solve my riddle?’  
‘Let me help you,’said Synesius with a sweet smile, ‘to solve it for yourself.  
You need not try to deceive me. You have a love, an undefiled, who is but one.  
When you possess her, you will be able to judge better whether your  
interpretation of the Song is the true one; and if you still think that it is,  
Synesius, at least, will have no quarrel against you. He has always claimed for  
himself the right of philosophising in private, and he will allow the same liberty  
to you’ whether the mob do or not.’  
‘Then you agree with me? Of course you do!’  
‘Is it fair to ask me whether I accept a novel interpretation, which I have only  
heard five minutes ago, delivered in a somewhat hasty and rhetorical form?’  
‘You are shirking the question,’said Raphael peevishly.  
‘And what if I am? Tell me, point-blank, most self-tormenting of men, can I help  
you in practice, even though I choose to leave you to yourself in speculation?’  
‘Well, then, if you will have my story, take it, and judge for yourself of Christian  
common sense.’  
And hurriedly, as if ashamed of his own confession, and yet compelled, in spite  
of himself, to unbosom it, he told Synesius all, from his first meeting with  
Victoria to his escape from her at Berenice.  
The good bishop, to Aben-Ezra’s surprise, seemed to treat the whole matter as  
infinitely amusing. He chuckled, smote his hand on his thigh, and nodded  
approval at every pause—perhaps to give the speaker courage—perhaps because  
he really thought that Raphael’s prospects were considerably less desperate than  
he fancied….  
‘If you laugh at me, Synesius, I am silent. It is quite enough to endure the  
humiliation of telling you that I am—confound it!—like any boy of sixteen.’  
‘Laugh at you?—with you, you mean. A convent? Pooh, pooh! The old Prefect  
has enough sense, I will warrant him, not to refuse a good match for his child.’  
‘You forget that I have not the honour of being a Christian.’  
‘Then we’ll make you one. You won’t let me convert you, I know; you always  
used to gibe and jeer at my philosophy. But Augustine comes to-morrow.  
‘Augustine?’  
‘He does indeed; and we must be off by daybreak, with all the armed men we  
can muster, to meet and escort him, and to hunt, of course, going and coming;  
for we have had no food this fortnight, but what our own dogs and bows have  
furnished us. He shall take you in hand, and cure you of all your Judaism in a  
week; and then just leave the rest to me; I will manage it somehow or other. It is  
sure to come right. No; do not be bashful. It will be real amusement to a poor  
wretch who can find nothing else to do—Heigho! And as for lying under an  
obligation to me, why we can square that by your lending me three or four  
thousand gold pieces—Heaven knows I want them!—on the certainty of never  
seeing them again.’  
Raphael could not help laughing in his turn.  
‘Synesius is himself still, I see, and not unworthy of his ancestor Hercules; and  
though he shrinks from cleansing the Augean stable of my soul, paws like the  
war-horse in the valley at the hope of undertaking any lesser labours in my  
behalf. But, my dear generous bishop, this matter is more serious, and I, the  
subject of it, have become more serious also, than you fancy. Consider: by the  
uncorrupt honour of your Spartan forefathers, Agis, Brasidas, and the rest of  
them, don’t you think that you are, in your hasty kindness, tempting me to  
behave in a way which they would have called somewhat rascally?’  
‘How then, my dear man! You have a very honourable and praiseworthy desire;  
and I am willing to help you to compass it.’  
‘Do you think that I have not cast about before now for more than one method of  
compassing it for myself? My good man, I have been tempted a dozen times  
already to turn Christian: but there has risen up in me the strangest fancy about  
conscience and honour …. I never was scrupulous before, Heaven knows—I am  
not over-scrupulous now—except about her. I cannot dissemble before her. I  
dare not look in her face when I had a lie in my right hand …. She looks through  
one-into one-like a clear-eyed awful goddess …. I never was ashamed in my life  
till my eyes met hers….’  
‘But if you really became a Christian?’  
‘I cannot. I should suspect my own motives. Here is another of these absurd  
soul-anatomising scruples which have risen up in me. I should suspect that I had  
changed my creed because I wished to change it—that if I was not deceiving her  
I was deceiving myself. If I had not loved her it might have been different: but  
now—just because I do love her, I will not, I dare not, listen to Augustine’s  
arguments, or my own thoughts on the matter.’  
‘Most wayward of men!’ cried Synesius, half peevishly; ‘you seem to take some  
perverse pleasure in throwing yourself into the waves again, the instant you have  
climbed a rock of refuge!’  
‘Pleasure? Is there any pleasure in feeling oneself at death-grips with the devil? I  
bad given up believing in him for many a year …. And behold, the moment that  
I awaken to anything noble and right, I find the old serpent alive and strong at  
my throat! No wonder that I suspect him, you, myself—I, who have been  
tempted, every hour in the last week, temptations to become a devil. Ay,’ he went  
on, raising his voice, as all the fire of his intense Eastern nature flashed from his  
black eyes, ‘to be a devil! From my childhood till now never have I known what  
it was to desire and not to possess. It is not often that I have had to trouble any  
poor Naboth for his vineyard: but when I have taken a fancy to it, Naboth has  
always found it wiser to give way. And now …. Do you fancy that I have not  
had a dozen hellish plots flashing across me in the last week? Look here! This is  
the mortgage of her father’s whole estate. I bought it—whether by the instigation  
of Satan or of God—of a banker in Berenice, the very day I left them; and now  
they, and every straw which they possess, are in my power. I can ruin them—  
sell them as slaves—betray them to death as rebels—and last, but not least,  
cannot I hire a dozen worthy men to carry her off, and cut the Gordian knot most  
simply and summarily? And yet I dare not. I must be pure to approach the pure;  
and righteous, to kiss the feet of the righteous. Whence came this new  
conscience to me I know not, but come it has; and I dare no more do a base thing  
toward her, than I dare toward a God, if there be one. This very mortgage—I  
hate it, curse it, now that I possess it—the tempting devil!’  
‘Burn it,’said Synesius quietly.  
‘Perhaps I may. At least, used it never shall be. Compel her? I am too proud, or  
too honourable, or something or other, even to solicit her. She must come to me;  
tell me with her own lips that she loves me, that she will take me, and make me  
worthy of her. She must have mercy on me, of her own free will, or—let her pine  
and die in that accursed prison; and then a scratch with the trusty old dagger for  
her father, and another for myself, will save him from any more superstitions,  
and me from any more philosophic doubts, for a few aeons of ages, till we start  
again in new lives—he, I suppose, as a jackass, and I as a baboon. What matter?  
but unless I possess her by fair means, God do so to me, and more also, if I  
attempt base ones!’  
‘God be with you, my son, in the noble warfare!’said Synesius, his eyes filling  
with kindly tears.  
‘It is no noble warfare at all. It is a base coward fear, in one who never before  
feared man or devil, and is now fallen low enough to be afraid of a helpless girl!’  
‘Not so,’ cried Synesius, in his turn; ‘it is a noble and a holy fear. You fear her  
goodness. Could you see her goodness, much less fear it, were there not a Divine  
Light within you which showed you what, and how awful, goodness was? Tell  
me no more, Raphael Aben- Ezra, that you do not fear God; for he who fears  
Virtue, fears Him whose likeness Virtue is. Go on—go on …. Be brave, and His  
strength will be made manifest in your weakness.’  
...............  
It was late that night before Synesius compelled his guest to retire, after having  
warned him not to disturb himself if he heard the alarm-bell ring, as the house  
was well garrisoned, and having set the water-clock by which he and his servants  
measured their respective watches. And then the good bishop, having disposed  
his sentinels, took his station on the top of his tower, close by the warning-bell;  
and as he looked out over the broad lands of his forefathers, and prayed that their  
desolation might come to an end at last, he did not forget to pray for the  
desolation of the guest who slept below, a happier and more healthy slumber  
than he had known for many a week. For before Raphael lay down that night, he  
had torn to shreds Majoricus’s mortgage, and felt a lighter and a better man as he  
saw the cunning temptation consuming scrap by scrap in the lamp-flame. And  
then, wearied out with fatigue of body and mind, he forgot Synesius, Victoria,  
and the rest, and seemed to himself to wander all night among the vine-clad  
glens of Lebanon, amid the gardens of lilies, and the beds of spices; while  
shepherds’ music lured him on and on, and girlish voices, chanting the mystic  
idyll of his mighty ancestor, rang soft and fitful through his weary brain.  
...............  
Before sunrise the next morning, Raphael was faring forth gallantly, well armed  
and mounted, by Synesius’s side, followed by four or five brace of tall brushtailed greyhounds, and by the faithful Bran, whose lop-ears and heavy jaws,  
unique in that land of prick-ears and fox-noses, formed the absorbing subject of  
conversation among some twenty smart retainers, who, armed to the teeth for  
chase and war, rode behind the bishop on half-starved, raw-boned horses, inured  
by desert training and bad times to do the maximum of work upon the minimum  
of food.  
For the first few miles they rode in silence, through ruined villages and desolated  
farms, from which here and there a single inhabitant peeped forth fearfully, to  
pour his tale of woe into the ears of the hapless bishop, and then, instead of  
asking alms from him, to entreat his acceptance of some paltry remnant of grain  
or poultry, which had escaped the hands of the marauders; and as they clung to  
his hands, and blessed him as their only hope and stay, poor Synesius heard  
patiently again and again the same purposeless tale of woe, and mingled his tears  
with theirs, and then spurred his horse on impatiently, as if to escape from the  
sight of misery which he could not relieve; while a voice in Raphael’s heart  
seemed to ask him—‘Why was thy wealth given to thee, but that thou mightest  
dry, if but for a day, such tears as these?’  
And he fell into a meditation which was not without its fruit in due season, but  
which lasted till they had left the enclosed country, and were climbing the slopes  
of the low rolling hills, over which lay the road from the distant sea. But as they  
left the signs of war behind them, the volatile temper of the good bishop began  
to rise. He petted his hounds, chatted to his men, discoursed on the most  
probable quarter for finding game, and exhorted them cheerfully enough to play  
the man, as their chance of having anything to eat at night depended entirely on  
their prowess during the day.  
‘Ah!’said Raphael at last, glad of a pretext for breaking his own chain of painful  
thought, ‘there is a vein of your land-salt. I suspect that you were all at the  
bottom of the sea once, and that the old Earth-shaker Neptune, tired of your bad  
ways, gave you a lift one morning, and set you up as dry land, in order to be rid  
of you.’  
‘It may really be so. They say that the Argonauts returned back through this  
country from the Southern Ocean, which must have been therefore far nearer us  
than it is now, and that they carried their mystic vessel over these very hills to  
the Syrtis. However, we have forgotten all about the sea thoroughly enough since  
that time. I well remember my first astonishment at the side of a galley in  
Alexandria, and the roar of laughter with which my fellow-students greeted my  
not unreasonable remark, that it looked very like a centipede.’  
‘And do you recollect, too, the argument which I had once with your steward  
about the pickled fish which I brought you from Egypt; and the way in which,  
when the jar was opened, the servants shrieked and ran right and left, declaring  
that the fish-bones were the spines of poisonous serpents?’  
‘The old fellow is as obstinate as ever, I assure you, in his disbelief in salt water.  
He torments me continually by asking me to tell him the story of my shipwreck,  
and does not believe me after all, though he has heard it a dozen times. “Sir,” he  
said to me solemnly, after you were gone, “will that strange gentleman pretend to  
persuade me that anything eatable can come out of his great pond there at  
Alexandria, when every one can see that the best fountain in the country never  
breeds anything but frogs and leeches?”’  
As he spoke they left the last field behind them, and entered upon a vast sheet of  
breezy down, speckled with shrubs and copse, and split here and there by rocky  
glens ending in fertile valleys once thick with farms and homesteads.  
‘Here,’ cried Synesius, ‘are our hunting-grounds. And now for one hour’s  
forgetfulness, and the joys of the noble art. What could old Homer have been  
thinking of when he forgot to number it among the pursuits which are glorious to  
heroes, and make man illustrious, and yet could laud in those very words the  
forum?’  
‘The forum?’said Raphael. ‘I never saw it yet make men anything but rascals.’  
‘Brazen-faced rascals, my friend. I detest the whole breed of lawyers, and never  
meet one without turning him into ridicule; effeminate pettifoggers, who shudder  
at the very sight of roast venison, when they think of the dangers by which it has  
been procured. But it is a cowardly age, my friend—a cowardly age. Let us  
forget it, and ourselves.’  
‘And even philosophy and Hypatia?’said Raphael archly.  
‘I have done with philosophy. To fight like a Heracleid, and to die like a bishop,  
is all I have left—except Hypatia, the perfect, the wise! I tell you, friend, it is a  
comfort to me, even in my deepest misery, to recollect that the corrupt world yet  
holds one being so divine—’  
And he was running on in one of his high-flown laudations of his idol, when  
Raphael checked him.  
‘I fear our common sympathy on that subject is rather weakened. I have begun to  
doubt her lately nearly as much as I doubt philosophy.’  
‘Not her virtue?  
‘No, friend; nor her beauty, nor her wisdom; simply her power of making me a  
better man. A selfish criterion, you will say. Be it so …. What a noble horse that  
is of yours!’  
‘He has been—he has been; but worn out now, like his master and his master’s  
fortunes….’  
‘Not so, certainly, the colt on which you have done me the honour to mount me.’  
‘Ah, my poor boy’s pet! .... You are the first person who has crossed him since  
—’  
‘Is he of your own breeding?’ asked Raphael, trying to turn the conversation.  
‘A cross between that white Nisaean which you sent me, and one of my own  
mares.’  
‘Not a bad cross; though he keeps a little of the bull head and greyhound flank of  
your Africans.’  
‘So much the better, friend. Give me bone—bone and endurance for this rough  
down country. Your delicate Nisaeans are all very well for a few minutes over  
those flat sands of Egypt: but here you need a horse who will go forty miles a  
day over rough and smooth, and dine thankfully off thistles at night. Aha, poor  
little man!’—as a jerboa sprang up from a tuft of bushes at his feet—‘I fear you  
must help to fill our soup-kettle in these hard times.’  
And with a dexterous sweep of his long whip, the worthy bishop entangled the  
jerboas long legs, whisked him up to his saddle-bow, and delivered him to the  
groom and the game-bag.  
‘Kill him at once. Don’t let him squeak, boy!—he cries too like a child….’  
‘Poor little wretch!’said Raphael. ‘What more right, now, have we to eat him  
than he to eat us?’  
‘Eh? If he can eat us, let him try. How long have you joined the Manichees?’  
‘Have no fears on that score. But, as I told you, since my wonderful conversion  
by Bran, the dog, I have begun to hold dumb animals in respect, as probably  
quite as good as myself.’  
‘Then you need a further conversion, friend Raphael, and to learn what is the  
dignity of man; and when that arrives, you will learn to believe, with me, that the  
life of every beast upon the face of the earth would be a cheap price to pay in  
exchange for the life of the meanest human being.’  
‘Yes, if they be required for food: but really, to kill them for our amusement!’  
‘Friend, when I was still a heathen, I recollect well how I used to haggle at that  
story of the cursing of the fig-tree; but when I learnt to know what man was, and  
that I had been all my life mistaking for a part of nature that race which was  
originally, and can be again, made in the likeness of God, then I began to see that  
it were well if every fig-tree upon earth were cursed, if the spirit of one man  
could be taught thereby a single lesson. And so I speak of these, my darling  
field-sports, on which I have not been ashamed, as you know, to write a book.’  
‘And a very charming one: yet you were still a pagan, recollect, when you wrote  
it.’  
‘I was; and then I followed the chase by mere nature and inclination. But now I  
know I have a right to follow it, because it gives me endurance, promptness,  
courage, self-control, as well as health and cheerfulness: and therefore—Ah! a  
fresh ostrich-track!’  
And stopping short, Synesius began pricking slowly up the hillside.  
‘Back!’ whispered he, at last. ‘Quietly and silently. Lie down on your horse’s  
neck, as I do, or the long-necked rogues may see you. They must be close to us  
over the brow. I know that favourite grassy slope of old. Round under yon hill,  
or they will get wind of us, and then farewell to them!’  
And Synesius and his groom cantered on, hanging each to their horses’ necks by  
an arm and a leg, in a way which Raphael endeavoured in vain to imitate.  
Two or three minutes more of breathless silence brought them to the edge of the  
hill, where Synesius halted, peered down a moment, and then turned to Raphael,  
his face and limbs quivering with delight, as he held up two fingers, to denote  
the number of the birds.  
‘Out of arrow-range! Slip the dogs, Syphax!’  
And in another minute Raphael found himself galloping headlong down the hill,  
while two magnificent ostriches, their outspread plumes waving in the bright  
breeze, their necks stooped almost to the ground, and their long legs flashing out  
behind them, were sweeping away before the greyhounds at a pace which no  
mortal horse could have held for ten minutes.  
‘Baby that I am still!’ cried Synesius, tears of excitement glittering in his eyes;  
.... while Raphael gave himself up to the joy, and forgot even Victoria, in the  
breathless rush over rock and bush, sandhill and watercourse.  
‘Take care of that dry torrent-bed! Hold up, old horse! This will not last two  
minutes more. They cannot hold their pace against this breeze …. Well tried,  
good dog, though you did miss him! Ah, that my boy were here! There—they  
double. Spread right and left, my children, and ride at them as they pass!’  
And the ostriches, unable, as Synesius said, to keep their pace against the breeze,  
turned sharp on their pursuers, and beating the air with outspread wings, came  
down the wind again, at a rate even more wonderful than before.  
‘Ride at him, Raphael—ride at him, and turn him into those bushes!’ cried  
Synesius, fitting an arrow to his bow.  
Raphael obeyed, and the bird swerved into the low scrub; the well- trained horse  
leapt at him like a cat; and Raphael, who dare not trust his skill in archery, struck  
with his whip at the long neck as it struggled past him, and felled the noble  
quarry to the ground. He was in the act of springing down to secure his prize,  
when a shout from Synesius stopped him.  
‘Are you mad? He will kick out your heart! Let the dogs hold him!’  
‘Where is the other?’ asked Raphael, panting.  
‘Where he ought to be. I have not missed a running shot for many a month.’  
‘Really, you rival the Emperor Commodus himself.’  
‘Ah! I tried his fancy of crescent-headed arrows once, and decapitated an ostrich  
or two tolerably: but they are only fit for the amphitheatre: they will not lie  
safely in the quiver on horseback, I find. But what is that?’ And he pointed to a  
cloud of white dust, about a mile down the valley. ‘A herd of antelopes? If so,  
God is indeed gracious to us! Come down—whatsoever they are, we have no  
time to lose.’  
And collecting his scattered forces, Synesius pushed on rapidly towards the  
object which had attracted his attention.  
‘Antelopes!’ cried one.  
‘Wild horses!’ cried another.  
‘Tame ones, rather!’ cried Synesius, with a gesture of wrath. ‘I saw the flash of  
arms!’  
‘The Ausurians!’ And a yell of rage rang from the whole troop.  
‘Will you follow me, children?’  
‘To death!’shouted they.  
‘I know it. Oh that I had seven hundred of you, as Abraham had! We would see  
then whether these scoundrels did not share, within a week, the fate of  
Chedorlaomer’s.’  
‘Happy man, who can actually trust your own slaves!’said Raphael, as the party  
galloped on, tightening their girdles and getting ready their weapons.  
‘Slaves? If the law gives me the power of selling one or two of them who are not  
yet wise enough to be trusted to take care of themselves, it is a fact which both I  
and they have long forgotten. Their fathers grew gray at my father’s table, and  
God grant that they may grow gray at mine! We eat together, work together, hunt  
together, fight together, jest together, and weep together. God help us all! for we  
have but one common weal. Now—do you make out the enemy, boys?’  
‘Ausurians, your Holiness. The same party who tried Myrsinitis last week. I  
know them by the helmets which they took from the Markmen.’  
‘And with whom are they fighting?’  
No one could see. Fighting they certainly were: but their victims were beyond  
them, and the party galloped on.  
‘That was a smart business at Myrsinitis. The Ausurians appeared while the  
people were at morning prayers. The soldiers, of course, ran for their lives, and  
hid in the caverns, leaving the matter to the priests.’  
‘If they were of your presbytery, I doubt not they proved themselves worthy of  
their diocesan.’  
‘Ah, if all my priests were but like them! or my people either!’said Synesius,  
chatting quietly in full gallop, like a true son of the saddle. ‘They offered up  
prayers for victory, sallied out at the head of the peasants, and met the Moors in  
a narrow pass. There their hearts failed them a little. Faustus, the deacon, makes  
them a speech; charges the leader of the robbers, like young David, with a stone,  
beats his brains out therewith, strips him in true Homeric fashion, and routs the  
Ausurians with their leader’s sword; returns and erects a trophy in due classic  
form, and saves the whole valley.’  
‘You should make him archdeacon.’  
‘I would send him and his townsfolk round the province, if I could, crowned  
with laurel, and proclaim before them at every market-place, “These are men of  
God.” With whom can those Ausurians be dealing? Peasants would have been all  
killed long ago, and soldiers would have run away long ago. It is truly a portent  
in this country to see a fight last ten minutes. Who can they be? I see them now,  
and hewing away like men too. They are all on foot but two; and we have not a  
cohort of infantry left for many a mile round.’  
‘I know who they are!’ cried Raphael, suddenly striking spurs into his horse. ‘I  
will swear to that armour among a thousand. And there is a litter in the midst of  
them. On! and fight, men, if you ever fought in your lives!’  
‘Softly!’ cried Synesius. ‘Trust an old soldier, and perhaps—alas! that he should  
have to say it—the best left in this wretched country. Round by the hollow, and  
take the barbarians suddenly in flank. They will not see us then till we are within  
twenty paces of them. Aha! you have a thing or two to learn yet, Aben-Ezra.’  
And chuckling at the prospect of action, the gallant bishop wheeled his little  
troop and in five minutes more dashed out of the copse with a shout and a flight  
of arrows, and rushed into the thickest of the fight.  
One cavalry skirmish must be very like another. A crash of horses, a flashing of  
sword-blades, five minutes of blind confusion, and then those who have not been  
knocked out of their saddles by their neighbours’ knees, and have not cut off  
their own horses’ heads instead of their enemies’, find themselves, they know  
not how, either running away or being run away from—not one blow in ten  
having taken effect on either side. And even so Raphael, having made vain  
attempts to cut down several Moors, found himself standing on his head in an  
altogether undignified posture, among innumerable horses’ legs, in all possible  
frantic motions. To avoid one was to get in the way of another; so he  
philosophically sat still, speculating on the sensation of having his brains kicked  
out, till the cloud of legs vanished, and he found himself kneeling abjectly  
opposite the nose of a mule, on whose back sat, utterly unmoved, a tall and  
reverend man, in episcopal costume. The stranger, instead of bursting out  
laughing, as Raphael did, solemnly lifted his hand, and gave him his blessing.  
The Jew sprang to his feet, heedless of all such courtesies, and, looking round,  
saw the Ausurians galloping off up the hill in scattered groups, and Synesius  
standing close by him, wiping a bloody sword.  
‘Is the litter safe’?’ were his first words.  
‘Safe; and so are all. I gave you up for killed when I saw you run through with  
that lance.  
‘Run through? I am as sound in the hide as a crocodile, said Raphael, laughing.  
‘Probably the fellow took the butt instead of the point, in his hurry. So goes a  
cavalry scuffle. I saw you hit three or four fellows running with the flat of your  
sword.’  
Ah, that explains,’said Raphael, why, I thought myself once the best swordsman  
on the Armenian frontier….’  
‘I suspect that you were thinking of some one besides the Moors,’said Synesius,  
archly pointing to the litter; and Raphael, for the first time for many a year,  
blushed like a boy of fifteen, and then turned haughtily away, and remounted his  
horse, saying, ‘Clumsy fool that I was!’  
‘Thank God rather that you have been kept from the shedding of blood,’said the  
stranger bishop, in a soft, deliberate voice, with a peculiarly clear and delicate  
enunciation. ‘If God have given us the victory, why grudge His having spared  
any other of His creatures besides ourselves?’  
‘Because there are so many the more of them left to ravish, burn, and slay,’  
answered Synesius. ‘Nevertheless, I am not going to argue with Augustine.’  
Augustine! Raphael looked intently at the man, a tall, delicate- featured  
personage, with a lofty and narrow forehead, scarred like his cheeks with the  
deep furrows of many a doubt and woe. Resolve, gentle but unbending, was  
expressed in his thin close-set lips and his clear quiet eye; but the calm of his  
mighty countenance was the calm of a worn-out volcano, over which centuries  
must pass before the earthquake-rents be filled with kindly soil, and the cinderslopes grow gay with grass and flowers. The Jew’s thoughts, however, were soon  
turned into another channel by the hearty embraces of Majoricus and his son.  
‘We have caught you again, you truant!’said the young Tribune; ‘you could not  
escape us, you see, after all.’  
‘Rather,’said the father, ‘we owe him a second debt of gratitude for a second  
deliverance. We were right hard bested when you rode up.’  
‘Oh, he brings nothing but good with him whenever he appears; and then he  
pretends to be a bird of ill-omen,’said the light-hearted Tribune, putting his  
armour to rights.  
Raphael was in his secret heart not sorry to find that his old friends bore him no  
grudge for his caprice; but all he answered was-  
\-  
‘Pray thank any one but me; I have, as usual, proved myself a fool. But what  
brings you here, like Gods e Machina? It is contrary to all probabilities. One  
would not admit so astounding an incident, even in the modern drama.’  
‘Contrary to none whatsoever, my friend. We found Augustine at Berenice, in act  
to set off to Synesius: we—one of us, that is— were certain that you would be  
found with him; and we decided on acting as Augustine’s guard, for none of the  
dastard garrison dare stir out.’  
‘One of us,’ thought Raphael,—‘which one?’ And, conquering his pride, he  
asked, as carelessly as he could, for Victoria.  
‘She is there in the litter, poor child!’said her father in a serious tone.  
‘Surely not ill?’  
‘Alas! either the overwrought excitement of months of heroism broke down  
when she found us safe at last’ or some stroke from God— .... Who can tell what  
I may not have deserved?—But she has been utterly prostrate in body and mind,  
ever since we parted from you at Berenice.’  
The blunt soldier little guessed the meaning of his own words. But Raphael, as  
he heard, felt a pang shoot through his heart, too keen for him to discern whether  
it sprang from joy or from despair.  
‘Come,’ cried the cheerful voice of Synesius, ‘come, Aben-Ezra; you have knelt  
for Augustine’s blessing already, and now you must enter into the fruition of it.  
Come, you two philosophers must know each other. Most holy, I entreat you to  
preach to this friend of mine, at once the wisest and the foolishest of men.’  
‘Only the latter,’said Raphael; ‘but open to any speech of Augustine’s, at least  
when we are safe home, and game enough for Synesius’s new guests killed.’  
And turning away, he rode silent and sullen by the side of his companions, who  
began at once to consult together as to the plans of Majoricus and his soldiers.  
In spite of himself, Raphael soon became interested in Augustine’s conversation.  
He entered into the subject of Cyrenian misrule and ruin as heartily and  
shrewdly as any man of the world; and when all the rest were at a loss, the  
prompt practical hint which cleared up the difficulty was certain to come from  
him. It was by his advice that Majoricus had brought his soldiery hither; it was  
his proposal that they should be employed for a fixed period in defending these  
remote southern boundaries of the province; he checked the impetuosity of  
Synesius, cheered the despair of Majoricus, appealed to the honour and the  
Christianity of the soldiers, and seemed to have a word—and that the right word  
—for every man; and after a while, Aben-Ezra quite forgot the stiffness and  
deliberation of his manner, and the quaint use of Scripture texts in far-fetched  
illustrations of every opinion which he propounded. It had seemed at first a mere  
affectation; but the arguments which it was employed to enforce were in  
themselves so moderate and so rational that Raphael began to feel, little by little,  
that his apparent pedantry was only the result of a wish to refer every matter,  
even the most vulgar, to some deep and divine rule of right and wrong.  
‘But you forget all this while, my friends,’said Majoricus at last, ‘the danger  
which you incur by sheltering proclaimed rebels.’  
‘The King of kings has forgiven your rebellion, in that while He has punished  
you by the loss of your lands and honours, He has given you your life for a prey  
in this city of refuge. It remains for you to bring forth worthy fruits of penitence;  
of which I know none better than those which John the Baptist commanded to  
the soldiery of old, “Do no violence to any man, and be content with your  
wages.”’  
‘As for rebels and rebellion,’said Synesius, ‘they are matters unknown among  
as; for where there is no king there can be no rebellion. Whosoever will help us  
against Ausurians is loyal in our eyes. And as for our political creed, it is simple  
enough—namely, that the emperor never dies, and that his name is Agamemnon,  
who fought at Troy; which any of my grooms will prove to you syllogistically  
enough to satisfy Augustine himself. As thus—  
‘Agamemnon was the greatest and the best of kings.  
‘The emperor is the greatest and the best of kings.  
‘Therefore, Agamemnon is the emperor, and conversely.’  
‘It had been well,’said Augustine, with a grave smile, ‘if some of our friends  
had held the same doctrine, even at the expense of their logic.’  
‘Or if,’ answered Synesius, ‘they believed with us, that the emperor’s  
chamberlain is a clever old man, with a bald head like my own, Ulysses by  
name, who was rewarded with the prefecture of all lands north of the  
Mediterranean, for putting out the Cyclop’s eye two years ago. However, enough  
of this. But you see, you are not in any extreme danger of informers and  
intriguers …. The real difficulty is, how you will be able to obey Augustine, by  
being content with your wages. For,’ lowering his voice, ‘you will get literally  
none.’  
‘It will be as much as we deserve,’said the young Tribune: ‘but my fellows have  
a trick of eating—’  
‘They are welcome, then, to all deer and ostriches which they can catch. But I  
am not only penniless, but reduced myself to live, like the Laestrygons, on meat  
and nothing else; all crops and stocks for miles round being either burnt or  
carried off.’  
‘E nihilo nihil!’said Augustine, having nothing else to say. But here Raphael  
woke up on a sudden with—  
‘Did the Pentapolitan wheat-ships go to Rome?’  
‘No; Orestes stopped them when he stopped the Alexandrian convoy.’  
‘Then the Jews have the wheat, trust them for it; and what they have I have.  
There are certain moneys of mine lying at interest in the seaports, which will set  
that matter to rights for a month or two. Do you find an escort to-morrow, and I  
will find wheat.’  
‘But; most generous of friends, I can neither repay you interest nor principal.’  
‘Be it so. I have spent so much money during the last thirty years in doing  
nothing but evil, that it is hard if I may not at last spend a little in doing good.—  
Unless his Holiness of Hippo thinks it wrong for you to accept the goodwill of  
an infidel?’  
‘Which of these three,’said Augustine, ‘was neighbour to him who fell among  
thieves, but he who had mercy on him? Verily, my friend Raphael Aben-Ezra,  
thou art not far from the kingdom of God.’  
‘Of which God?’ asked Raphael slyly.  
‘Of the God of thy forefather Abraham, whom thou shalt hear us worship this  
evening, if He will. Synesius, have you a church wherein I can perform the  
evening service, and give a word of exhortation to these my children?’  
Synesius sighed. ‘There is a ruin, which was last month a church.’  
‘And is one still. Man did not place there the presence of God, and man cannot  
expel it.’  
And so, sending out hunting-parties right and left in chase of everything which  
had animal life, and picking up before nightfall a tolerably abundant supply of  
game, they went homewards, where Victoria was entrusted to the care of  
Synesius’s old stewardess, and the soldiery were marched straight into the  
church; while Synesius’s servants, to whom the Latin service would have been  
unintelligible, busied themselves in cooking the still warm game.  
Strangely enough it sounded to Raphael that evening to hear, among those  
smoke-grimed pillars and fallen rafters, the grand old Hebrew psalms of his  
nation ring aloft, to the very chants, too, which were said by the rabbi to have  
been used in the Temple-worship of Jerusalem …. They, and the invocations,  
thanksgivings, blessings, the very outward ceremonial itself, were all Hebraic,  
redolent of the thoughts, the words of his own ancestors. That lesson from the  
book of Proverbs, which Augustine’s deacon was reading in Latin—the blood of  
the man who wrote these words was flowing in Aben-Ezra’s veins …. Was it a  
mistake, an hypocrisy? or were they indeed worshipping, as they fancied, the  
Ancient One who spoke face to face with his forefathers, the Archetype of man,  
the friend of Abraham and of Israel?  
And now the sermon began; and as Augustine stood for a moment in prayer in  
front of the ruined altar, every furrow in his worn face lit up by a ray of  
moonlight which streamed in through the broken roof, Raphael waited  
impatiently for his speech. What would he, the refined dialectician, the ancient  
teacher of heathen rhetoric, the courtly and learned student, the ascetic celibate  
and theosopher, have to say to those coarse war-worn soldiers, Thracians and  
Markmen, Gauls and Belgians, who sat watching there, with those sad earnest  
faces? What one thought or feeling in common could there be between  
Augustine and his congregation?  
At last, after signing himself with the cross, he began. The subject was one of the  
psalms which had just been read—a battle psalm, concerning Moab and Amalek,  
and the old border wars of Palestine. What would he make of that?  
He seemed to start lamely enough, in spite of the exquisite grace of his voice,  
and manner, and language, and the epigrammatic terseness of every sentence. He  
spent some minutes over the inscription of the psalm—allegorised it—made it  
mean something which it never did mean in the writer’s mind, and which it, as  
Raphael well knew, never could mean, for his interpretation was founded on a  
sheer mis- translation. He punned on the Latin version—derived the meaning of  
Hebrew words from Latin etymologies …. And as he went on with the psalm  
itself, the common sense of David seemed to evaporate in mysticism. The most  
fantastic and far-fetched illustrations, drawn from the commonest objects,  
alternated with mysterious theosophic dogma. Where was that learning for  
which he was so famed? Where was that reverence for the old Hebrew  
Scriptures which he professed? He was treating David as ill as Hypatia used to  
treat Homer—worse even than old Philo did, when in the home life of the old  
Patriarchs, and in the mighty acts of Moses and Joshua, he could find nothing  
but spiritual allegories wherewith to pamper the private experiences of the  
secluded theosophist. And Raphael felt very much inclined to get up and go  
away, and still more inclined to say, with a smile, in his haste, ‘All men are  
liars.’....  
And yet, what an illustration that last one was! No mere fancy, but a real deep  
glance into the working of the material universe, as symbolic of the spiritual and  
unseen one. And not drawn, as Hypatia’s were, exclusively from some sublime  
or portentous phenomenon, but from some dog, or kettle, or fishwife, with a  
homely insight worthy of old Socrates himself. How personal he was becoming,  
too! ....No long bursts of declamation, but dramatic dialogue and interrogation,  
by-hints, and unexpected hits at one and the other most commonplace soldier’s  
failing …. And yet each pithy rebuke was put in a universal, comprehensive  
form, which made Raphael himself wince—which might, he thought, have made  
any man, or woman either, wince in like manner. Well, whether or not Augustine  
knew truths for all men, he at least knew sins for all men, and for himself as well  
as his hearers. There was no denying that. He was a real man, right or wrong.  
What he rebuked in others, he had felt in himself, and fought it to the death-grip,  
as the flash and quiver of that worn face proclaimed …. But yet, why were the  
Edomites, by an utterly mistaken pun on their name, to signify one sort of sin,  
and the Ammonites another, and the Amalekites another? What had that to do  
with the old psalm? What had it to do with the present auditory? Was not this the  
wildest and lowest form of that unreal, subtilising, mystic pedantry, of which he  
had sickened long ago in Hypatia’s lecture-room, till he fled to Bran, the dog, for  
honest practical realities?  
No …. Gradually, as Augustine’s hints became more practical and orated,  
Raphael saw that there was in his mind most real and organic connection, true or  
false, in what seemed at first mere arbitrary allegory. Amalekites, personal sins,  
Ausurian robbers and ravishers, were to him only so many different forms of one  
and the same evil. He who helped any of them fought against the righteous God:  
he who fought against them fought for that God; but he must conquer the  
Amalekites within, if he expected to conquer the Amalekites without. Could the  
legionaries permanently put down the lust and greed around them, while their  
own hearts were enslaved to lust and greed within? Would they not be helping it  
by example, while they pretended to crush it by sword-strokes? Was it not a  
mockery, an hypocrisy? Could God’s blessing be on it? Could they restore unity  
and peace to the country while there was neither unity nor peace within them?  
What had produced the helplessness of the people, the imbecility of the military,  
but inward helplessness, inward weakness? They were weak against Moors,  
because they were weak against enemies more deadly than Moors. How could  
they fight for God outwardly, while they were fighting against him inwardly? He  
would not go forth with their hosts. How could He, when He was not among  
their hosts? He, a spirit, must dwell in their spirits …. And then the shout of a  
king would be among them, and one of them should chase a thousand …. Or if  
not—if both people and soldiers required still further chastening and humbling—  
what matter, provided that they were chastened and humbled? What matter if  
their faces were confounded, if they were thereby driven to seek His Name, who  
alone was the Truth, the Light, and the Life? What if they were slain? Let them  
have conquered the inward enemies, what matter to them if the outward enemies  
seemed to prevail for a moment? They should be recompensed at the  
resurrection of the just, when death was swallowed up in victory. It would be  
seen then who had really conquered in the eyes of the just God—they, God’s  
ministers, the defenders of peace and justice, or the Ausurians, the enemies  
thereof …. And then, by some quaintest turn of fancy, he introduced a word of  
pity and hope, even for the wild Moorish robbers. It might be good for them to  
have succeeded thus far; they might learn from their Christian captives, purified  
by affliction, truths which those captives had forgotten in prosperity. And, again,  
it might be good for them, as well as for Christians, to be confounded and made  
like chaff before the wind, that so they too might learn His Name….And so on,  
through and in spite of all conceits, allegories, overstrained interpretations,  
Augustine went on evolving from the Psalms, and from the past, and from the  
future, the assertion of a Living, Present God, the eternal enemy of discord,  
injustice, and evil, the eternal helper and deliverer of those who were enslaved  
and crushed thereby in soul or body …. It was all most strange to Raphael ….  
Strange in its utter unlikeness to any teaching, Platonist or Hebrew, which he had  
ever heard before, and stranger still in its agreement with those teachings; in the  
instinctive ease with which it seemed to unite and justify them all by the  
talisman of some one idea—and what that might be, his Jewish prejudices could  
not prevent his seeing, and yet would not allow him to acknowledge. But,  
howsoever he might redden with Hebrew pride; howsoever he might long to  
persuade himself that Augustine was building up a sound and right practical  
structure on the foundation of a sheer lie; he could not help watching, at first  
with envy, and then with honest pleasure, the faces of the rough soldiers, as they  
gradually lightened up into fixed attention, into cheerful and solemn resolve.  
‘What wonder?’said Raphael to himself, ‘what wonder, after all? He has been  
speaking to these wild beasts as to sages and saints; he has been telling them that  
God is as much with them as with prophets and psalmists …. I wonder if  
Hypatia, with all her beauty, could have touched their hearts as he has done?’  
And when Raphael rose at the end of this strange discourse, he felt more like an  
old Hebrew than be had done since he sat upon his nurse’s knee, and heard  
legends about Solomon and the Queen of Sheba. What if Augustine were right  
after all? What if the Jehovah of the old Scriptures were not merely the national  
patron of the children of Abraham, as the Rabbis held; not merely, as Philo held,  
the Divine Wisdom which inspired a few elect sages, even among the heathen;  
but the Lord of the whole earth, and of the nations thereof?—And suddenly, for  
the first time in his life, passages from the psalms and prophets flashed across  
him, which seemed to assert this. What else did that whole book of Daniel and  
the history of Nebuchadnezzar mean—if not that? Philosophic latitudinarianism  
had long ago cured him of the Rabbinical notion of the Babylonian conqueror as  
an incarnate fiend, devoted to Tophet, like Sennacherib before him. He had long  
in private admired the man, as a magnificent human character, a fairer one, in his  
eyes, than either Alexander or Julius Caesar …. What if Augustine had given  
him a hint which might justify his admiration? .... But more. .... What if  
Augustine were right in going even further than Philo and Hypatia? What if this  
same Jehovah, Wisdom, Logos, call Him what they might, were actually the God  
of the spirits, as well as of the bodies of all flesh? What if he was as near—  
Augustine said that He was—to the hearts of those wild Markmen, Gauls,  
Thracians, as to Augustine’s own heart? What if He were—Augustine said He  
was—yearning after, enlightening, leading home to Himself, the souls of the  
poorest, the most brutal, the most sinful?—What if He loved man as man, and  
not merely one favoured race or one favoured class of minds? .... And in the  
light of that hypothesis, that strange story of the Cross of Calvary seemed not so  
impossible after all …. But then, celibacy and asceticism, utterly non-human as  
they were, what had they to do with the theory of a human God?  
And filled with many questionings, Raphael was not sorry to have the matter  
brought to an issue that very evening in Synesius’s sitting- room. Majoricus, in  
his blunt, soldierlike way, set Raphael and Augustine at each other without  
circumlocution; and Raphael, after trying to smile and pooh-pooh away the  
subject, was tempted to make a jest on a seeming fallacious conceit of  
Augustine’s—found it more difficult than he thought to trip up the serious and  
wary logician, lost his temper a little—a sign, perhaps, of returning health in a  
sceptic—and soon found himself fighting desperately, with Synesius backing  
him, apparently for the mere pleasure of seeing a battle, and Majoricus making  
him more and more cross by the implicit dogmatic faith with which he hewed at  
one Gordian knot after another, till Augustine had to save himself from his  
friends by tripping the good Prefect gently up, and leaving him miles behind the  
disputants, who argued on and on, till broad daylight shone in, and the sight of  
the desolation below recalled all parties to more material weapons, and a sterner  
warfare.  
But little thought Raphael Aben-Ezra, as he sat there, calling up every resource  
of his wit and learning, in the hope, half malicious, half honestly cautious, of  
upsetting the sage of Hippo, and forgetting all heaven and earth in the delight of  
battle with his peers, that in a neighbouring chamber, her tender limbs outspread  
upon the floor, her face buried in her dishevelled locks; lay Victoria, wrestling  
all night long for him in prayer and bitter tears, as the murmur of busy voices  
reached her eager ears, longing in vain to catch the sense of words, on which  
hung now her hopes and bliss-how utterly and entirely, she lead never yet  
confessed to herself, though she dare confess it to that Son of Man to whom she  
prayed, as to One who felt with tenderness and insight beyond that of a brother, a  
father, even of a mother, for her maiden’s blushes and her maiden’s woes.  
CHAPTER XXII: PANDEMONIUM  
But where was Philammon all that week?  
For the first day or two of his imprisonment he had raved like some wild beast  
entrapped. His new-found purpose and energy, thus suddenly dammed back and  
checked, boiled up in frantic rage. He tore at the bars of his prison; he rolled  
himself, shrieking, on the floor. He called in vain on Hypatia, on Pelagia, on  
Arsenius—on all but God. Pray he could not, and dare not; for to whom was he  
to pray? To the stars?—to the Abysses and the Eternities? ....  
Alas! as Augustine said once, bitterly enough, of his own Manichaean teachers,  
Hypatia had taken away the living God, and given him instead the four Elements  
…. And in utter bewilderment and hopeless terror he implored the pity of every  
guard and gaoler who passed along the corridor, and conjured them, as brothers,  
fathers, men, to help him. Moved at once by his agony and by his exceeding  
beauty, the rough Thracians, who knew enough of their employer’s character to  
have little difficulty in believing his victim to be innocent, listened to him and  
questioned him. But when they offered the very help which he implored, and  
asked him to tell his story, the poor boy’s tongue clove to the roof of his mouth.  
How could he publish his sisters shame? And yet she was about to publish it  
herself! .... And instead of words, he met their condolences with fresh agonies,  
till they gave him up as mad; and, tired by his violence, compelled him, with  
blows and curses, to remain quiet; and so the week wore out, in dull and  
stupefied despair, which trembled on the very edge of idiocy. Night and day  
were alike to him. The food which was thrust in through his grate remained  
untasted; hour after hour, day after day, he sat upon the ground, his head buried  
in his hands, half-dozing from mere exhaustion of body and mind. Why should  
he care to stir, to eat, to live? He had but one purpose in heaven and earth: and  
that one purpose was impossible.  
At last his cell-door grated on its hinges.  
‘Up, my mad youth!’ cried a rough voice. ‘Up, and thank the favour of the gods,  
and the bounty of our noble—ahem!—Prefect. To-day he gives freedom to all  
prisoners. And I suppose a pretty boy like you may go about your business, as  
well as uglier rascals!’  
Philammon looked up in the gaoler’s face with a dim half- comprehension of his  
meaning.  
‘Do you hear?’ cried the man with a curse. ‘You are free. Jump up, or I shut the  
door again, and your one chance is over.’  
‘Did she dance Venus Anadyomene?’  
‘She! Who?’  
‘My sister! Pelagia!’  
‘Heaven only knows what she has not danced in her time! But they say she  
dances to-day once more. Quick! out, or I shall not be ready in time for the  
sports. They begin an hour hence. Free admission into the theatre to-day for all  
—rogues and honest men, Christians and heathens—Curse the boy! he’s as mad  
as ever.’  
So indeed Philammon seemed; for, springing suddenly to his feet, he rushed out  
past the gaoler, upsetting him into the corridor, and fled wildly from the prison  
among the crowd of liberated ruffians, ran from the prison home, from home to  
the baths, from the baths to the theatre, and was soon pushing his way, regardless  
of etiquette, towards the lower tiers of benches, in order, he hardly knew why, to  
place himself as near as possible to the very sight which he dreaded and  
abhorred.  
As fate would have it, the passage by which he had entered opened close to the  
Prefect’s chair of state, where sat Orestes, gorgeous in his robes of office, and by  
him—to Philammon’s surprise and horror—Hypatia herself.  
More beautiful than ever, her forehead sparkling, like Juno’s own, with a lofty  
tiara of jewels, her white Ionic robe half hidden by a crimson shawl, there sat the  
vestal, the philosopher. What did she there? But the boy’s eager eyes,  
accustomed but too well to note every light and shade of feeling which crossed  
that face, saw in a moment how wan and haggard was its expression. She wore a  
look of constraint, of half-terrified self-resolve, as of a martyr: and yet not an  
undoubting martyr; for as Orestes turned his head at the stir of Philammon’s  
intrusion, and flashing with anger at the sight, motioned him fiercely back,  
Hypatia turned too, and as her eyes met her pupil’s she blushed crimson, and  
started, and seemed in act to motion him back also; and then, recollecting  
herself, whispered something to Orestes which quieted his wrath, and composed  
herself, or rather sank into her place again, as one who was determined to abide  
the worst.  
A knot of gay young gentlemen, Philammon’s fellow-students, pulled him down  
among them, with welcome and laughter; and before he could collect his  
thoughts, the curtain in front of the stage had fallen, and the sport began.  
The scene represented a background of desert mountains, and on the stage itself,  
before a group of temporary huts, stood huddling together the black Libyan  
prisoners, some fifty men, women, and children, bedizened with gaudy feathers  
and girdles of tasselled leather, brandishing their spears and targets, and glaring  
out with white eyes on the strange scene before them, in childish awe and  
wonder.  
Along the front of the stage a wattled battlement had been erected, while below,  
the hyposcenium had been painted to represent rocks, thus completing the rough  
imitation of a village among the Libyan hills.  
Amid breathless silence, a herald advanced, and proclaimed that these were  
prisoners taken in arms against the Roman senate and people, and therefore  
worthy of immediate death: but that the Prefect, in his exceeding clemency  
toward them, and especial anxiety to afford the greatest possible amusement to  
the obedient and loyal citizens of Alexandria, had determined, instead of giving  
them at once to the beasts, to allow them to fight for their lives, promising to the  
survivors a free pardon if they acquitted themselves valiantly.  
The poor wretches on the stage, when this proclamation was translated to them,  
set up a barbaric yell of joy, and brandished their spears and targets more fiercely  
than ever.  
But their joy was short. The trumpets sounded the attack: a body of gladiators,  
equal in number to the savages, marched out from one of the two great side  
passages, made their obeisance to the applauding spectators, and planting their  
scaling-ladders against the front of the stage, mounted to the attack.  
The Libyans fought like tigers; yet from the first, Hypatia, and Philammon also,  
could see that their promised chance of life was a mere mockery. Their light  
darts and naked limbs were no match for the heavy swords and complete armour  
of their brutal assailants, who endured carelessly a storm of blows and thrusts on  
heads and faces protected by visored helmets: yet so fierce was the valour of the  
Libyans, that even they recoiled twice, and twice the scaling- ladders were  
hurled down again, while more than one gladiator lay below, rolling in the death-  
agony.  
And then burst forth the sleeping devil in the hearts of that great brutalised  
multitude. Yell upon yell of savage triumph, and still more savage  
disappointment, rang from every tier of that vast ring of seats, at each blow and  
parry, onslaught and repulse; and Philammon saw with horror and surprise that  
luxury, refinement, philosophic culture itself, were no safeguards against the  
infection of bloodthirstiness. Gay and delicate ladies, whom he had seen three  
days before simpering delight at Hypatia’s heavenward aspirations, and some,  
too, whom he seemed to recollect in Christian churches, sprang from their seats,  
waved their hands and handkerchiefs, and clapped and shouted to the gladiators.  
For, alas! there was no doubt as to which side the favour of the spectators  
inclined. With taunts, jeers, applause, entreaties, the hired ruffians were urged on  
to their work of blood. The poor wretches heard no voice raised in their favour:  
nothing but contempt, hatred, eager lust of blood, glared from those thousands of  
pitiless eyes; and, broken-hearted, despairing, they flagged and drew back one  
by one. A shout of triumph greeted the gladiators as they climbed over the  
battlement, and gained a footing on the stage. The wretched blacks broke up, and  
fled wildly from corner to corner, looking vainly for an outlet….  
And then began a butchery …. Some fifty men, women, and children were  
cooped together in that narrow space …. And yet Hypatia’s countenance did not  
falter. Why should it? What were their numbers, beside the thousands who had  
perished year by year for centuries, by that and far worse deaths, in the  
amphitheatres of that empire, for that faith which she was vowed to re-establish.  
It was part of the great system; and she must endure it.  
Not that she did not feel; for she, too, was woman; and her heart, raised far  
above the brutal excitement of the multitude, lay calmly open to the most  
poignant stings of pity. Again and again she was in the act to entreat mercy for  
some shrieking woman or struggling child; but before her lips could shape the  
words, the blow had fallen, or the wretch was whirled away from her sight in the  
dense undistinguishable mass of slayers and slain. Yes, she had begun, and she  
must follow to the end …. And, after all, what were the lives of those few semibrutes, returning thus a few years earlier to the clay from which they sprang,  
compared with the regeneration of a world? .... And it would be over in a few  
minutes more, and that black writhing heap be still for ever, and the curtain fall  
…. And then for Venus Anadyomene, and art, and joy, and peace, and the  
graceful wisdom and beauty of the old Greek art, calming and civilising all  
hearts, and softening them into pure devotion for the immortal myths, the  
immortal deities, who had inspired their forefathers in the glorious days of old  
…. But still the black heap writhed; and she looked away, up, down, and round,  
everywhere, to avoid the sickening sight; and her eye caught Philammon’s  
gazing at her with looks of horror and disgust …. A thrill of shame rushed  
through her heart, and blushing scarlet, she sank her head, and whispered to  
Orestes—  
‘Have mercy!—spare the rest!’  
‘Nay, fairest vestal! The mob has tasted blood, and they must have their fill of it,  
or they will turn onus for aught I know. Nothing so dangerous as to check a  
brute, whether he be horse, dog, or man, when once his spirit is up. Ha! there is a  
fugitive! How well the little rascal runs!’  
As he spoke, a boy, the only survivor, leaped from the stage, and rushed across  
the orchestra toward them, followed by a rough cur- dog.  
‘You shall have this youth, if he reaches us.’  
Hypatia watched breathless. The boy had just arrived at the altar in the centre of  
the orchestra, when he saw a gladiator close upon him. The ruffian’s arm was  
raised to strike, when, to the astonishment of the whole theatre, boy and dog  
turned valiantly to bay, and leaping on the gladiator, dragged him between them  
to the ground. The triumph was momentary. The uplifted hands, the shout of  
‘Spare him!’ came too late. The man, as he lay, buried his sword in the slender  
body of the child, and then rising, walked coolly back to the side passages, while  
the poor cur stood over the little corpse, licking its hands and face, and making  
the whole building ring with his doleful cries. The attendants entered, and  
striking their hooks into corpse after corpse, dragged them out of sight, marking  
their path by long red furrows in the sand; while the dog followed, until his  
inauspicious howlings died away down distant passages.  
Philammon felt sick and giddy, and half rose to escape. But Pelagia! .... No—he  
must sit it out, and see the worst, if worse than this was possible. He looked  
round. The people were coolly sipping wine and eating cakes, while they chatted  
admirably about the beauty of the great curtain, which had fallen and hidden the  
stage, and represented, on a ground of deep-blue sea, Europa carried by the bull  
across the Bosphorus, while Nereids and Tritons played around.  
A single flute within the curtain began to send forth luscious strains, deadened  
and distant, as if through far-off glens and woodlands; and from the side  
passages issued three Graces, led by Peitho, the goddess of persuasion, bearing a  
herald’s staff in her hand. She advanced to the altar in the centre of the orchestra,  
and informed the spectators that, during the absence of Ares in aid of a certain  
great military expedition, which was shortly to decide the diadem of Rome, and  
the liberty, prosperity, and supremacy of Egypt and Alexandria, Aphrodite had  
returned to her lawful allegiance, and submitted for the time being to the  
commands of her husband, Hephaestus; that he, as the deity of artificers, felt a  
peculiar interest in the welfare of the city of Alexandria, the workshop of the  
world, and had, as a sign of his especial favour, prevailed upon his fair spouse to  
exhibit, for this once, her beauties to the assembled populace, and, in the  
unspoken poetry of motion, to represent to them the emotions with which, as she  
arose new-born from the sea, she first surveyed that fair expanse of heaven and  
earth of which she now reigned undisputed queen.  
A shout of rapturous applause greeted this announcement, and forthwith limped  
from the opposite slip the lame deity himself, hammer and pincers on shoulder,  
followed by a train of gigantic Cyclops, who bore on their shoulders various  
pieces of gilded metal work.  
Hephaestus, who was intended to supply the comic element in the vast  
pantomimic pageant, shambled forward with studied uncouthness, amid roars of  
laughter; surveyed the altar with ludicrous contempt; raised his mighty hammer,  
shivered it to pieces with a single blow, and beckoned to his attendants to carry  
off the fragments, and replace it with something more fitting for his august  
spouse.  
With wonderful quickness the metal open-work was put in its place, and fitted  
together, forming a frame of coral branches intermingled with dolphins, Nereids,  
and Tritons. Four gigantic Cyclops then approached, staggering under the weight  
of a circular slab of green marble, polished to a perfect mirror, which they placed  
on the framework. The Graces wreathed its circumference with garlands of seaweed, shells, and corallines, and the mimic sea was complete.  
Peitho and the Graces retired a few steps, and grouped themselves with the  
Cyclops, whose grimed and brawny limbs, and hideous one- eyed masks, threw  
out in striking contrast the delicate hue and grace of the beautiful maiden  
figures; while Hephaestus turned toward the curtain, and seemed to await  
impatiently the forthcoming of the goddess.  
Every lip was breathless with expectation as the flutes swelled louder and nearer;  
horns and cymbals took up the harmony; and, to a triumphant burst of music, the  
curtain rose, and a simultaneous shout of delight burst from ten thousand voices.  
The scene behind represented a magnificent temple, half hidden in an artificial  
wood of tropic trees and shrubs, which filled the stage. Fauns and Dryads peeped  
laughing from among their stems, and gorgeous birds, tethered by unseen  
threads, fluttered and sang among their branches. In the centre an overarching  
avenue of palms led from the temple doors to the front of the stage, from which  
the mimic battlements had disappeared, and had been replaced, in those few  
moments, by a broad slope of smooth greensward, leading down into the  
orchestra, and fringed with myrtles, roses, apple-trees, poppies, and crimson  
hyacinths, stained with the life-blood of Adonis.  
The folding doors of the temple opened slowly, the crash of instruments  
resounded from within; and, preceded by the musicians, came forth the triumph  
of Aphrodite, and passed down the slope, and down the outer ring of the  
orchestra.  
A splendid car, drawn by white oxen, bore the rarest and gaudiest of foreign  
flowers and fruits, which young girls, dressed as Hours and Seasons, strewed in  
front of the procession and among the spectators.  
A long line of beautiful youths and maidens, crowned with garlands, and robed  
in scarfs of purple gauze, followed by two and two. Each pair carried or led a  
pair of wild animals, captives of the conquering might of Beauty.  
Foremost were borne, on the wrists of the actors, the birds especially sacred to  
the goddess—doves and sparrows, wrynecks and swallows; and a pair of  
gigantic Indian tortoises, each ridden by a lovely nymph, showed that Orestes  
had not forgotten one wish, at least, of his intended bride.  
Then followed strange birds from India, parakeets, peacocks, pheasants silver  
and golden; bustards and ostriches: the latter, bestridden each by a tiny cupid,  
were led on in golden leashes, followed by antelopes and oryxes, elks from  
beyond the Danube, four- horned rams from the Isles of the Hyperborean Ocean,  
and the strange hybrid of the Libyan hills, believed by all spectators to be halfbull half-horse. And then a murmur of delighted awe ran through the theatre, as  
bears and leopards, lions and tigers, fettered in heavy chains of gold, and made  
gentle for the occasion by narcotics, paced sedately down the slope, obedient to  
their beautiful guides; while behind them, the unwieldy bulk of two doublehorned rhinoceroses, from the far south, was overtopped by the long slender  
necks and large soft eyes of a pair of giraffes, such as had not been seen in  
Alexandria for more than fifty years.  
A cry arose of ‘Orestes! Orestes! Health to the illustrious Prefect! Thanks for his  
bounty!’ And a hired voice or two among the crowd cried, ‘Hail to Orestes! Hail,  
Emperor of Africa!’ .... But there was no response.  
‘The rose is still in the bud,’simpered Orestes to Hypatia. He rose, beckoned and  
bowed the crowd into silence; and then, after a short pantomimic exhibition of  
rapturous gratitude and humility, pointed triumphantly to the palm avenue,  
among the shadows of which appeared the wonder of the day—the huge tusks  
and trunk of the white elephant himself.  
There it was at last! Not a doubt of it! A real elephant, and yet as white as snow.  
Sight never seen before in Alexandria—never to be seen again! ‘Oh, thrice blest  
men of Macedonia!’shouted some worthy on high, ‘the gods are bountiful to  
you this day!’ And all mouths and eyes confirmed the opinion, as they opened  
wider and yet wider to drink in the inexhaustible joy and glory.  
On he paced solemnly, while the whole theatre resounded to his heavy tread, and  
the Fauns and Dryads fled in terror. A choir of nymphs swung round him hand in  
hand, and sang, as they danced along, the conquering might of Beauty, the tamer  
of beasts and men and deities. Skirmishing parties of little winged cupids spread  
themselves over the orchestra, from left to right, and pelted the spectators with  
perfumed comfits, shot among them from their tiny bows arrows of fragrant  
sandal-wood, or swung smoking censers, which loaded the air with intoxicating  
odours.  
The procession came on down the slope, and the elephant approached the  
spectators; his tusks were wreathed with roses and myrtles; his ears were pierced  
with splendid earrings, a jewelled frontlet hung between his eyes; Eros himself, a  
lovely winged boy, sat on his neck, and guided him with the point of a golden  
arrow. But what precious thing was it which that shell-formed car upon his back  
contained? The goddess! Pelagia Aphrodite herself?  
Yes; whiter than the snow-white elephant—more rosy than the pink- tipped shell  
in which she lay, among crimson cushions and silver gauze, there shone the  
goddess, thrilling all hearts with those delicious smiles, and glances of the  
bashful playful eyes, and grateful wavings of her tiny hand, as the whole theatre  
rose with one accord, and ten thousand eyes were concentrated on the  
unequalled loveliness beneath them.  
Twice the procession passed round the whole circumference of the orchestra, and  
then returning from the foot of the slope towards the central group around  
Hephaestus, deployed right and left in front of the stage. The lions and tigers  
were led away into the side passages; the youths and maidens combined  
themselves with the gentler animals into groups lessening gradually from the  
centre to the wings, and stood expectant, while the elephant came forward, and  
knelt behind the platform destined for the goddess.  
The valves of the shell closed. The Graces unloosed the fastenings of the car.  
The elephant turned his trunk over his back, and, guided by the hands of the  
girls, grasped the shell, and lifting it high in air, deposited it on the steps at the  
back of the platform.  
Hephaestus limped forward, and, with his most uncouth gestures, signified the  
delight which he had in bestowing such a sight upon his faithful artisans of  
Alexandria, and the unspeakable enjoyment which they were to expect from the  
mystic dance of the goddess; and then retired, leaving the Graces to advance in  
front of the platform, and with their arms twined round each other, begin  
Hypatia’s song of invocation.  
As the first strophe died away, the valves of the shell reopened, and discovered  
Aphrodite crouching on one knee within. She raised her head, and gazed around  
the vast circle of seats. A mild surprise was on her countenance, which  
quickened into delightful wonder, and bashfulness struggling with the sense of  
new enjoyment and new powers. She glanced downward at herself; and smiled,  
astonished at her own loveliness; then upward at the sky; and seemed ready, with  
an awful joy, to spring up into the boundless void. Her whole figure dilated; she  
seemed to drink in strength from every object which met her in the great  
universe around; and slowly, from among the shells and seaweeds, she rose to  
her full height, the mystic cestus glittering round her waist, in deep festoons of  
emeralds and pearls, and stepped forward upon the marble sea-floor, wringing  
the dripping perfume from her locks, as Aphrodite rose of old.  
For the first minute the crowd was too breathless with pleasure to think of  
applause. But the goddess seemed to require due homage; and when she folded  
her arms across her bosom, and stood motionless for an instant, as if to demand  
the worship of the universe, every tongue was loosed, and a thunder-clap of  
‘Aphrodite!’ rang out across the roofs of Alexandria, and startled Cyril in his  
chamber at the Serapeium, and weary muleteers on distant sand-hills, and dozing  
mariners far out at sea.  
And then began a miracle of art, such as was only possible among a people of  
the free and exquisite physical training, and the delicate aesthetic perception of  
those old Greeks, even in their most fallen days. A dance, in which every motion  
was a word, and rest as eloquent as motion; in which every attitude was a fresh  
motive for a sculptor of the purest school, and the highest physical activity was  
manifested, not as in the coarser comic pantomimes, in fantastic bounds and  
unnatural distortions, but in perpetual delicate modulations of a stately and selfrestraining grace. The artist was for the moment transformed into the goddess.  
The theatre, and Alexandria, and the gorgeous pageant beyond, had vanished  
from her imagination, and therefore from the imagination of the spectators,  
under the constraining inspiration of her art, and they and she alike saw nothing  
but the lonely sea around Cytherea, and the goddess hovering above its emerald  
mirror, saying forth on sea, and air, and shore, beauty, and joy, and love….  
Philammon’s eyes were bursting from his head with shame and horror: and yet  
he could not hate her; not even despise her. He would have done so, had there  
been the faintest trace of human feeling in her countenance to prove that some  
germ of moral sense lingered within: but even the faint blush and the downcast  
eye with which she had entered the theatre were gone; and the only expression  
on her face was that of intense enjoyment of her own activity and skill, and  
satisfied vanity, as of a petted child …. Was she accountable? A reasonable soul,  
capable of right or wrong at all? He hoped not …. He would trust not …. And  
still Pelagia danced on; and for a whole age of agony, he could see nothing in  
heaven or earth but the bewildering maze of those white feet, as they twinkled  
over their white image in the marble mirror …. At last it was over. Every limb  
suddenly collapsed, and she stood drooping in soft self- satisfied fatigue,  
awaiting the burst of applause which rang through Philammon’s ears,  
proclaiming to heaven and earth, as with a mighty trumpet-blast, his sister’s  
shame.  
The elephant rose, and moved forward to the side of the slabs. His back was  
covered with crimson cushions, on which it seemed Aphrodite was to return  
without her shell. She folded her arms across her bosom, and stood smiling, as  
the elephant gently wreathed his trunk around her waist, and lifted her slowly  
from the slab, in act to place her on his back….  
The little feet, clinging half fearfully together, had Just risen from the marbleThe elephant started, dropped his delicate burden heavily on the slab, looked  
down, raised his forefoot, and throwing his trunk into the air, gave a shrill  
scream of terror and disgust….  
The foot was red with blood—the young boy’s blood—which was soaking and  
bubbling up through the fresh sand where the elephant had trodden, in a round,  
dark, purple spot….  
Philammon could bear no more. Another moment and he had hurled down  
through the dense mass of spectators, clearing rank after rank of seats by the  
sheer strength of madness, leaped the balustrade into the orchestra below, and  
rushed across the space to the foot of the platform.  
‘Pelagia! Sister! My sister! Have mercy on me! on yourself! I will hide you!  
save you! and we will flee together out of this infernal place! this world of  
devils! I am your brother! Come!’  
She looked at him one moment with wide, wild eyes—The truth flashed on her  
—  
‘Brother!’  
And she sprang from the platform into his arms …. A vision of a lofty window  
in Athens, looking out over far olive-yards and gardens, and the bright roofs and  
basins of the Piraeus, and the broad blue sea, with the purple peaks of Aegina  
beyond all …. And a dark-eyed boy, with his arm around her neck, pointed  
laughing to the twinkling masts in the far harbour, and called her sister …. The  
dead soul woke within her; and with a wild cry she recoiled from him in an  
agony of shame, and covering her face with both her hands, sank down among  
the blood-stained sand.  
A yell, as of all hell broke loose, rang along that vast circle—  
‘Down with him!’ ‘Away with him!’ ‘Crucify the slave!’ ‘Give the barbarian to  
the beasts!’ ‘To the beasts with him, noble Prefect!’ A crowd of attendants rushed  
upon him, and many of the spectators sprang from their seats, and were on the  
point of leaping down into the orchestra.  
Philammon turned upon them like a lion at bay; and clear and loud his voice rose  
through the roar of the multitude.  
‘Ay! murder me as the Romans murdered Saint Telemachus! Slaves as besotted  
and accursed as your besotted and accursed tyrants! Lower than the beasts whom  
you employ as your butchers! Murder and lust go fitly hand in hand, and the  
throne of my sister’s shame is well built on the blood of innocents! Let my death  
end the devil’s sacrifice, and fill up the cup of your iniquity!’  
‘To the beasts!’ ‘Make the elephant trample him to powder!’  
And the huge brute, goaded on by the attendants, rushed on the youth, while  
Eros leaped from his neck, and fled weeping up the slope.  
He caught Philammon in his trunk and raised him high in air. For an instant the  
great bellowing ocean of heads spun round and round. He tried to breathe one  
prayer, and shut his eyes—Pelagia’s voice rang sweet and clear, even in the  
shrillness of intense agony—  
‘Spare him! He is my brother! Forgive him, men of Macedonia! For Pelagia’s  
sake— Your Pelagia! One boon—only this one!’  
And she stretched her arms imploringly toward the spectators, and then clasping  
the huge knees of the elephant, called madly to it in terms of passionate entreaty  
and endearment.  
The men wavered. The brute did not. Quietly he lowered his trunk, and set down  
Philammon on his feet. The monk was saved. Breathless and dizzy, he found  
himself hurried away by the attendants, dragged through dark passages, and  
hurled out into the street, with curses, warnings, and congratulations, which fell  
on an unheeding ear.  
But Pelagia kept her face still hidden in her hands, and rising, walked slowly  
back, crushed by the weight of some tremendous awe, across the orchestra, and  
up the slope; and vanished among the palms and oleanders, regardless of the  
applause and entreaties, and jeers, and threats, and curses, of that great multitude  
of sinful slaves.  
For a moment all Orestes’s spells seemed broken by this unexpected catastrophe.  
A cloud, whether of disgust or of disappointment, hung upon every brow. More  
than one Christian rose hastily to depart, touched with real remorse and shame at  
the horrors of which they had been the willing witnesses. The common people  
behind, having glutted their curiosity with all that there was to see, began openly  
to murmur at the cruelty and heathenry of it. Hypatia, utterly unnerved, hid her  
face in both her hands. Orestes alone rose with the crisis. Now, or never, was the  
time for action; and stepping forward, with his most graceful obeisance, waved  
his hand for silence, and began his well-studied oration.  
‘Let me not, O men of Macedonia, suppose that you can be disturbed from that  
equanimity which befits politicians, by so light an accident as the caprice of a  
dancer. The spectacle which I have had the honour and delight of exhibiting to  
you—(Roars and applause from the liberated prisoners and the young  
gentlemen)—and on which it seemed to me you have deigned to look with not  
altogether unkindly eyes—(Fresh applause, in which the Christian mob,  
relenting, began to join)—is but a pleasant prelude to that more serious business  
for which I have drawn you here together. Other testimonials of my good  
intentions have not been wanting in the release of suffering innocence, and in the  
largess of food, the growth and natural property of Egypt, destined by your late  
tyrants to pamper the luxury of a distant court …. Why should I boast? – yet  
even now this head is weary, these limbs fail me, worn out in ceaseless efforts  
for your welfare, and in the perpetual administration of the strictest justice. For a  
time has come in which the Macedonian race, whose boast is the gorgeous city  
of Alexander, must rise again to the political pre-eminence which they held of  
old, and becoming once more the masters of one-third of the universe, be treated  
by their rulers as freemen, citizens, heroes, who have a right to choose and to  
employ their rulers—Rulers, did I say? Let us forget the word, and substitute in  
its place the more philosophic term of ministers. To be your minister—the  
servant of you all—To sacrifice myself, my leisure, health, life, if need be, to the  
one great object of securing the independence of Alexandria— This is my work,  
my hope, my glory—longed for through weary years: now for the first time  
possible by the fall of the late puppet Emperor of Rome. Men of Macedonia,  
remember that Honorius reigns no more! An African sits on the throne of the  
Caesars! Heraclian, by one decisive victory, has gained, by the favour of—of  
Heaven, the imperial purple; and a new era opens for the world. Let the  
conqueror of Rome balance his account with that Byzantine court, so long the  
incubus of our Trans-Mediterranean wealth and civilisation; and let a free,  
independent, and united Africa rally round the palaces and docks of Alexandria,  
and find there its natural centre of polity and of prosperity.’  
A roar of hired applause interrupted him and not a few, half for the sake of his  
compliments and fine words, half from a natural wish to be on the right side—  
namely, the one which happened to be in the ascendant for the time being—  
joined …. The city authorities were on the point of crying, ‘Imperator Orestes,’  
but thought better of it; and waited for some one else to cry first—being  
respectable. Whereon the Prefect of the Guards, being a man of some presence  
of mind, and also not in anywise respectable, pricked up the Prefect of the docks  
with the point of his dagger, and bade him, with a fearful threat, take care how  
he played traitor. The worthy burgher roared incontinently—whether with pain  
or patriotism; and the whole array of respectabilities—having found a Curtius  
who would leap into the gulf, joined in unanimous chorus, and saluted Orestes as  
Emperor; while Hypatia, amid the shouts of her aristocratic scholars, rose and  
knelt before him, writhing inwardly with shame and despair, and entreated him  
to accept that tutelage of Greek commerce, supremacy, and philosophy which  
was forced on him by the unanimous voice of an adoring people….  
‘It is false!’shouted a voice from the highest tiers, appropriated to the women of  
the lower classes, which made all turn their heads in bewilderment.  
‘False! false! you are tricked! He is tricked! Heraclian was utterly routed at  
Ostia, and is fled to Carthage, with the emperor’s fleet in chase.’  
‘She lies! Drag the beast down!’ cried Orestes, utterly thrown off his balance by  
the sudden check.  
‘She? He! I, a monk, brought the news! Cyril has known it—every Jew in the  
Delta has known it, for a week past! So perish all the enemies of the Lord,  
caught in their own snare!’  
And bursting desperately through the women who surrounded him, the monk  
vanished.  
An awful silence fell on all who heard. For a minute every man looked in his  
neighbour’s face as if he longed to cut his throat, and get rid of one witness, at  
least, of his treason. And then arose a tumult, which Orestes in vain attempted to  
subdue. Whether the populace believed the monk’s words or not, they were  
panic- stricken at the mere possibility of their truth. Hoarse with denying,  
protesting, appealing, the would-be emperor had at last to summon his guards  
around him and Hypatia, and make his way out of the theatre as best he could;  
while the multitude melted away like snow before the rain, and poured out into  
the streets in eddying and roaring streams, to find every church placarded by  
Cyril with the particulars of Heraclian’s ruin.  
CHAPTER XXIII: NEMESIS  
That evening was a hideous one in the palace of Orestes. His agonies of  
disappointment, rage, and terror were at once so shameful and so fearful, that  
none of his slaves dare approach him; and it was not till late that his confidential  
secretary, the Chaldean eunuch, driven by terror of the exasperated Catholics,  
ventured into the tiger’s den, and represented to him the immediate necessity for  
action.  
What could he do? He was committed—Cyril only knew how deeply. What  
might not the wily archbishop have discovered? What might not he pretend to  
have discovered? What accusations might he not send off on the spot to the  
Byzantine Court?  
‘Let the gates be guarded, and no one allowed to leave the city,’suggested the  
Chaldee.  
‘Keep in monks? as well keep in rats! No; we must send off a counter-report,  
instantly.’  
‘What shall I say, your Excellency?’ quoth the ready scribe, pulling out pen and  
inkhorn from his sash.  
‘What do I care? Any lie which comes to hand. What in the devil’s name are you  
here for at all, but to invent a lie when I want one?’  
‘True, most noble,’ and the worthy sat meekly down to his paper …. but did not  
proceed rapidly.  
‘I don’t see anything that would suit the emergency, unless I stated, with your  
august leave, that Cyril, and not you, celebrated the gladiatorial exhibition;  
which might hardly appear credible?’  
Orestes burst out laughing, in spite of himself. The sleek Chaldee smiled and  
purred in return. The victory was won; and Orestes, somewhat more master of  
himself, began to turn his vulpine cunning to the one absorbing question of the  
saving of his worthless neck.  
‘No, that would be too good. Write, that we had discovered a plot on Cyril’s part  
to incorporate the whole of the African churches (mind and specify Carthage and  
Hippo) under his own jurisdiction, and to throw off allegiance to the Patriarch of  
Constantinople, in case of Heraclian’s success.’  
The secretary purred delighted approval, and scribbled away now with right  
good heart.  
‘Heraclian’s success, your Excellency.’  
‘We of course desired, by every means in our power, to gratify the people of  
Alexandria, and, as was our duty, to excite by every lawful method their loyalty  
toward the throne of the Caesars (never mind who sat on it) at so critical a  
moment.’  
‘So critical a moment….’  
‘But as faithful Catholics, and abhorring even in the extremest need, the sin of  
Uzzah, we dreaded to touch with the unsanctified hands of laymen the  
consecrated ark of the Church, even though for its preservation….’  
‘Its preservation, your Excellency….’  
‘We, therefore, as civil magistrates, felt bound to confine ourselves to those  
means which were already allowed by law and custom to our jurisdiction; and  
accordingly made use of those largesses, spectacles, and public execution of  
rebels, which have unhappily appeared to his holiness the patriarch (too ready,  
perhaps, to find a cause of complaint against faithful adherents of the Byzantine  
See) to partake of the nature of those gladiatorial exhibitions, which are equally  
abhorrent to the spirit of the Catholic Church, and to the charity of the sainted  
emperors by whose pious edicts they have been long since abolished.’  
‘Your Excellency is indeed great …. but—pardon your slave’s remark—my  
simplicity is of opinion that it may be asked why you did not inform the Augusta  
Pulcheria of Cyril’s conspiracy?’  
‘Say that we sent a messenger off three months ago, but that …. Make  
something happen to him, stupid, and save me the trouble.’  
‘Shall I kill him by Arabs in the neighbourhood of Palmyra, your Excellency?’  
‘Let me see …. No. They may make inquiries there. Drown him at sea. Nobody  
can ask questions of the sharks.’  
‘Foundered between Tyre and Crete, from which sad calamity only one man  
escaped on a raft, and being picked tip, after three weeks’ exposure to the fury of  
the elements, by a returning wheat-ship—By the bye, most noble, what am I to  
say about those wheat-ships not having even sailed?’  
‘Head of Augustus! I forgot them utterly. Say that—say that the plague was  
making such ravages in the harbour quarter that we feared carrying the infection  
to the seat of the empire; and let them sail to-morrow.’  
The secretary’s face lengthened.  
‘My fidelity is compelled to remark, even at the risk of your just indignation,  
that half of them have been unloaded again for your munificent largesses of the  
last two days.’  
Orestes swore a great oath.  
‘Oh, that the mob had but one throat, that I might give them an emetic! Well, we  
must buy more corn, that’s all.’  
The secretary’s face grew longer still.  
‘The Jews, most August—’  
‘What of them?’ yelled the hapless Prefect. ‘Have they been forestalling?’  
‘My assiduity has discovered this afternoon that they have been buying up and  
exporting all the provisions which they could obtain.’  
‘Scoundrels! Then they must have known of Heraclian’s failure!’  
‘Your sagacity has, I fear, divined the truth. They have been betting largely  
against his success for the last week, both in Canopus and Pelusium.’  
‘For the last week! Then Miriam betrayed me knowingly!’ And Orestes broke  
forth again into a paroxysm of fury.  
‘Here—call the tribune of the guard! A hundred gold pieces to the man who  
brings me the witch alive!’  
‘She will never be taken alive.’  
‘Dead, then—in any way! Go, you Chaldee hound! what are you hesitating  
about?’  
‘Most noble lord,’said the secretary, prostrating himself upon the floor, and  
kissing his master’s feet in an agony of fear….  
‘Remember, that if you touch one Jew you touch all! Remember the bonds!  
remember the—the—your own most august reputation, in short.’  
‘Get up, brute, and don’t grovel there, but tell me what you mean, like a human  
being. If old Miriam is once dead, her bonds die with her, don’t they?’  
‘Alas, my lord, you do not know the customs of that accursed folk. They have a  
damnable practice of treating every member of their nation as a brother, and  
helping each freely and faithfully without reward; whereby they are enabled to  
plunder all the rest of the world, and thrive themselves, from the least to the  
greatest. Don’t fancy that your bonds are in Miriam’s hands. They have been  
transferred months ago. Your real creditors may be in Carthage, or Rome, or  
Byzantium, and they will attack you from thence; while all that you would find  
if you seized the old witch’s property, would be papers, useless to you, belonging  
to Jews all over the empire, who would rise as one man in defence of their  
money. I assure you, it is a net without a bound. If you touch one you touch all  
…. And besides, my diligence, expecting some such command, has already  
taken the liberty of making inquiries as to Miriam’s place of abode; but it  
appears, I am sorry to say, utterly unknown to any of your Excellency’s  
servants.’  
‘You lie!’said Orestes …. ‘I would much sooner believe that you have been  
warning the hag to keep out of the way.’  
Orestes had spoken, for that once in his life, the exact truth.  
The secretary, who had his own private dealings with Miriam, felt every  
particular atom of his skin shudder at those words; and had be had hair on his  
head, it would certainly have betrayed him by standing visibly on end. But as he  
was, luckily for him, close shaven, his turban remained in its proper place, as he  
meekly replied-  
‘Alas! a faithful servant can feel no keener woe than the causeless suspicion of  
that sun before whose rays he daily prostrates his—’  
‘Confound your periphrases! Do you know where she is?’  
‘No!’ cried the wretched secretary, driven to the lie direct at last; and confirmed  
the negation with such a string of oaths, that Orestes stopped his volubility with  
a kick, borrowed of him, under threat of torture, a thousand gold pieces as  
largess to the soldiery, and ended by concentrating the stationaries round his own  
palace, for the double purpose of protecting himself in case of a riot, and of  
increasing the chances of the said riot, by leaving the distant quarters of the city  
without police.  
‘If Cyril would but make a fool of himself, now that he is in the full-blown pride  
of victory—the rascal!—about that Ammonius, or about Hypatia, or anything  
else, and give me a real handle against him! After all, truth works better than  
lying now and then. Oh, that I could poison him! But one can’t bribe those  
ecclesiastics; and as for the dagger, one could not hire a man to be torn in pieces  
by monks. No; I must just sit still, and see what Fortune’s dice may turn up.  
Well, your pedants like Aristides or Epaminondas— thank Heaven, the race of  
them has died out long ago!—might call this no very creditable piece of  
provincial legislation; but after all, it is about as good as any now going, or  
likely to be going till the world’s end; and one can’t be expected to strike out a  
new path. I shall stick to the wisdom of my predecessors, and—oh, that Cyril  
may make a fool of himself to-night!’  
And Cyril did make a fool of himself that night, for the first and last time in his  
life; and suffers for it, as wise men are wont to do when they err, to this very day  
and hour: but how much Orestes gained by his foe’s false move cannot be  
decided till the end of this story; perhaps not even then.  
CHAPTER XXIV: LOST LAMBS  
And Philammon?  
For a long while he stood in the street outside the theatre, too much maddened to  
determine on any course of action; and, ere he had recovered his self-possession,  
the crowd began to pour from every outlet, and filling the street, swept him away  
in its stream.  
Then, as he heard his sister’s name, in every tone of pity, contempt, and horror,  
mingle with their angry exclamations, he awoke from his dream, and, bursting  
through the mob, made straight for Pelagia’s house.  
It was fast closed; and his repeated knocks at the gate brought only, after long  
waiting, a surly negro face to a little wicket.  
He asked eagerly and instinctively for Pelagia; of course she had not yet  
returned. For Wulf he was not within. And then he took his station close to the  
gateway, while his heart beat loud with hope and dread.  
At last the Goths appeared, forcing their way through the mob in a close column.  
There were no litters with them. Where, then, were Pelagia and her girls? Where,  
too, was the hated figure of the Amal? and Wulf, and Smid? The men came on,  
led by Goderic and Agilmund, with folded arms, knitted brows, downcast eyes: a  
stern disgust, not unmingled with shame, on every countenance, told Philammon  
afresh of his sister’s infamy.  
Goderic passed him close, and Philammon summoned up courage to ask for  
Wulf …. Pelagia he had not courage to name.  
‘Out, Greek hound! we have seen enough of your accursed race to-day! What?  
are you trying to follow us in?’ And the young man’s sword flashed from its  
sheath so swiftly, that Philammon had but just time enough to spring back into  
the street, and wait there, in an agony of disappointment and anxiety, as the gates  
slid together again, and the house was as silent as before.  
For a miserable hour he waited, while the mob thickened instead of flowing  
away, and the scattered groups of chatterers began to form themselves into  
masses, and parade the streets with shouts of ‘Down with the heathen!’ ‘Down  
with the idolaters!’ ‘Vengeance on all blaspheming harlots!’  
At last the steady tramp of legionaries, and in the midst of the glittering lines of  
armed men—oh, joy!—a string of litters!  
He sprang forward, and called Pelagia’s name again and again. Once he fancied  
he heard an answer: but the soldiers thrust him back.  
‘She is safe here, young fool, and has seen and been seen quite enough to-day  
already. Back!’  
‘Let me speak to her!’  
‘That is her business. Ours is now to see her home safe.’  
‘Let me go in with you, I beseech!’  
‘If you want to go in, knock for yourself when we are gone. If you have any  
business in the house, they will open to you, I suppose. Out, you interfering  
puppy!’  
And a blow of the spear-butt in his chest sent him rolling back into the middle of  
the street, while the soldiers, having delivered up their charge, returned with the  
same stolid indifference. In vain Philammon, returning, knocked at the gate.  
Curses and threats from the negro were all the answer which he received; and at  
last, wearied into desperation, he wandered away, up one street and down  
another, struggling in vain to form some plan of action for himself, until the sun  
was set.  
Wearily he went homewards at last. Once the thought of Miriam crossed his  
mind. It was a disgusting alternative to ask help of her, the very author of his  
sister’s shame: but yet she at least could obtain for him a sight of Pelagia; she  
had promised as much. But then—the condition which she had appended to her  
help! To see his sister, and yet to leave her as she was!—Horrible contradiction!  
But could he not employ Miriam for his own ends?— outwit her?—deceive her?  
—for it came to that. The temptation was intense: but it lasted only a moment.  
Could he defile so pure a cause by falsehood? And hurrying past the Jewess’s  
door, hardly daring to look at it, lest the temptation should return, he darted  
upstairs to his own little chamber, hastily flung open the door, and stopped short  
in astonishment.  
A woman, covered from head to foot in a large dark veil, stood in the centre of  
the chamber.  
‘Who are you? This is no place for you!’ cried he, after a minute’s pause. She  
replied only by a shudder and a sob …. He caught sight, beneath the folds of the  
veil, of a too well-known saffron shawl, and springing upon her like the lion on  
the lamb, clasped to his bosom his sister.  
The veil fell from her beautiful forehead. She gazed into his eyes one moment  
with a look of terrified inquiry, and saw nothing there but love …. And clinging  
heart to heart, brother and sister mingled holy kisses, and strained nearer and  
nearer still, as if to satisfy their last lingering doubts of each other’s kin.  
Many a minute passed in silent joy …. Philammon dare not speak; he dare not  
ask her what brought her thither—dare not wake her to recollect the frightful  
present by questions of the past, of his long forgotten parents, their home, her  
history …. And, after all, was it not enough for him that he held her at last?—  
her, there by her own will—the lost lamb returned to him?—and their tears  
mingled as their cheeks were pressed together.  
At last she spoke.  
‘I ought to have known you,—I believe I did know you from the first day! When  
they mentioned your likeness to me, my heart leapt up within me; and a voice  
whispered …. but I would not hear it! I was ashamed—ashamed to acknowledge  
my brother, for whom I had sought and longed for years …. ashamed to think  
that I had a brother …. Ah, God! and ought I not to be ashamed?’  
And she broke from him again, and threw herself on the floor.  
‘Trample upon me; curse me!—anything but part me from him!’  
Philammon had not the heart to answer her; but he made an involuntary gesture  
of sorrowful dissent.  
‘No! Call me what I am!—what he called me just now!—but do not take me  
away! Strike me, as he struck me!—anything but parting!’  
‘Struck you? The curse of God be on him!’  
‘Ah, do not curse him!—not him! It was not a blow, indeed!—only a push—a  
touch—and it was my fault—all mine. I angered him—I upbraided him;—I was  
mad …. Oh, why did he deceive me? Why did he let me dance?—command me  
to dance?’  
‘Command you?’  
‘He said that we must not break our words. He would not hear me, when I told  
him that we could deny having promised. I said that promises made over the  
wine need never be kept. Who ever heard of keeping them? And Orestes was  
drunk, too. But he said that I might teach a Goth to be what I liked, except a liar  
…. Was not that a strange speech? .... And Wulf bade him be strong, and blest  
him for it.’  
‘He was right,’sobbed Philammon.  
‘Then I thought he would love me for obeying him, though I loathed it!—Oh,  
God, how I loathed it! .... But how could I fancy that he did not like my doing it?  
Who ever heard of any one doing of their own will what they did not like?’  
Philammon sobbed again, as the poor civilised savage artlessly opened to him all  
her moral darkness. What could he say? .... he knew what to say. The disease  
was so utterly patent, that any of Cyril’s school-children could have supplied the  
remedy. But how to speak it?—how to tell her, before all things, as he longed to  
do, that there was no hope of her marrying the Amal, and, therefore, no peace for  
her till she left him.  
‘Then you did hate the—the—’said he, at last, catching at some gleam of light.  
‘Hate it? Do I not belong, body and soul, to him?—him only? .... And yet ….  
Oh, I must tell you all! When I and the girls began to practise, all the old feelings  
came back—the love of being admired, and applauded, and cheered; and  
dancing is so delicious!— so delicious to feel that you are doing anything  
beautiful perfectly, and better than every one else! .... And he saw that I liked it,  
and despised me for it …. And, deceitful!—he little guessed how much of the  
pains which I took were taken to please him, to do my best before him, to win  
admiration, only that I might take it home and throw it all at his beloved feet,  
and make the world say once more, “She has all Alexandria to worship her, and  
yet she cares for that one Goth more than for—” But he deceived me, true man  
that he is! He wished to enjoy my smiles to the last moment, and then to cast me  
off, when I had once given him an excuse …. Too cowardly to upbraid me, he let  
me ruin myself, to save him the trouble of ruining me. Oh, men, men! all alike!  
They love us for their own sakes, and we love them for love’s sake. We live by  
love, we die for love, and yet we never find it, but only selfishness dressed up in  
love’s mask …. And then we take up with that, poor, fond, self-blinded creatures  
that we are!—and in spite of the poisoned hearts around us, persuade ourselves  
that our latest asp’s egg, at least, will hatch into a dove, and that though all men  
are faithless, our own tyrant can never change, for he is more than man!’  
‘But he has deceived you! You have found out your mistake. Leave him, then, as  
he deserves!’  
Pelagia looked up, with something of a tender smile. ‘Poor darling! Little do you  
know of love!’  
Philammon, utterly bewildered by this newest and strangest phase of human  
passion, could only gasp out—  
‘But do you not love me, too, my sister?’  
‘Do I not love you? But not as I love him! Oh, hush, hush!—, you cannot  
understand yet!’ And Pelagia hid her face in her hands, while convulsive  
shudderings ran through every limb….  
‘I must do it! I must! I will dare every thing, stoop to everything for love’s sake!  
Go to her!—to the wise woman!—to Hypatia! She loves you! I know that she  
loves you! She will hear you, though she will not me!’  
‘Hypatia? Do you know that she was sitting there unmoved at—in the theatre?’  
‘She was forced! Orestes compelled her! Miriam told me so. And I saw it in her  
face. As I passed beneath her, I looked up; and she was as pale as ivory,  
trembling in every limb. There was a dark hollow round her eyes—she had been  
weeping, I saw. And I sneered in my mad self-conceit, and said, “She looks as if  
she was going to be crucified, not married!”. But now, now!—Oh, go to her! Tell  
her that I will give her all I have—jewels, money, dresses, house! Tell her that I  
—I--entreat her pardon, that I will crawl to her feet myself and ask it, if she  
requires!—Only let her teach me— teach me to be wise and good, and honoured,  
and respected, as she is! Ask her to tell a poor broken-hearted woman her secret.  
She can make old Wulf, and him, and Orestes even, and the magistrates, respect  
her …. Ask her to teach me how to be like her, and to make him respect me  
again, and I will give her all—all!’  
Philammon hesitated. Something within warned him, as the Daemon used to  
warn Socrates, that his errand would be bootless. He thought of the theatre, and  
of that firm, compressed lip; and forgot the hollow eye of misery which  
accompanied it, in his wrath against his lately-worshipped idol.  
‘Oh, go! go! I tell you it was against her will. She felt for me— I saw it—Oh,  
God! when I did not feel for myself! And I hated her, because she seemed to  
despise me in my fool’s triumph! She cannot despise me now in my misery ….  
Go! Go! or you will drive me to the agony of going myself.’  
There was but one thing to be done.  
‘You will wait, then, here? You will not leave me again?’  
‘Yes. But you must be quick! If he finds out that I am away, he may fancy ….  
Ah, heaven! let him kill me, but never let him be jealous of me! Go now! this  
moment! Take this as an earnest—the cestus which I wore there. Horrid thing! I  
hate the sight of it! But I brought it with me on purpose, or I would have thrown  
it into the canal. There; say it is an earnest—only an earnest—of what I will give  
her!’  
In ten minutes more Philammon was in Hypatia’s hall. The household seemed  
full of terror and disturbance; the hall was full of soldiers. At last Hypatia’s  
favourite maid passed, and knew him. Her mistress could not speak with any  
one. Where was Theon, then? He, too, had shut himself up. Never mind.  
Philammon must, would speak with him. And he pleaded so passionately and so  
sweetly, that the soft-hearted damsel, unable to resist so handsome a suppliant,  
undertook his errand, and led him up to the library, where Theon, pale as death,  
was pacing to and fro, apparently half beside himself with terror.  
Philammon’s breathless message fell at first upon unheeding ears.  
‘A new pupil, sir! Is this a time for pupils; when my house, my daughter’s life, is  
not safe? Wretch that I am! And have I led her into the snare? I, with my vain  
ambition and covetousness! Oh, my child! my child! my one treasure! Oh, the  
double curse which will light upon me, if—’  
‘She asks for but one interview.’  
‘With my daughter, sir? Pelagia! Will you insult me? Do you suppose, even if  
her own pity should so far tempt her to degrade herself, that I could allow her so  
to contaminate her purity?’  
‘Your terror, sir, excuses your rudeness.’  
‘Rudeness, sir? the rudeness lies in your intruding on us at such a moment!’  
‘Then this, perhaps, may, in your eyes at least, excuse me in my turn.’ And  
Philammon held out the cestus. ‘You are a better judge of its value than I. But I  
am commissioned to say, that it is only an earnest of what she will give willingly  
and at once, even to the half of her wealth, for the honour of becoming your  
daughter’s pupil.’ And he laid the jewelled girdle on the table.  
The old man halted in his walk. The emeralds and pearls shone like the galaxy.  
He looked at them; and walked on again more slowly …. What might be their  
value? What might it not be? At least, they would pay all his debts …. And after  
hovering to and fro for another minute before the bait, he turned to Philammon.  
‘If you would promise to mention the thing to no one—’  
‘I will promise.’  
‘And in case my daughter, as I have a right to expect, shall refuse—’  
‘Let her keep the jewels. Their owner has learnt, thank God, to despise and hate  
them! Let her keep the jewels—and my curse! For God do so to me, and more  
also, if I ever see her face again!’  
The old man had not heard the latter part of Philammon’s speech. He had seized  
his bait as greedily as a crocodile, and hurried off with it into Hypatia’s chamber,  
while Philammon stood expectant; possessed with a new and fearful doubt.  
‘Degrade herself!’ ‘Contaminate her purity!’ If that notion were to be the fruit of  
all her philosophy? If selfishness, pride, Pharisaism, were all its outcome? Why  
—had they not been its outcome already? When had he seen her helping, even  
pitying, the poor, the outcast? When had he heard from her one word of real  
sympathy for the sorrowing; for the sinful? .... He was still lost in thought when  
Theon re-entered, bringing a letter.  
‘From Hypatia to her well-beloved pupil.  
‘I pity you—how should I not? And more. I thank you for this your request, for  
it shows me that my unwilling presence at the hideous pageant of to-day has not  
alienated from me a soul of which I had cherished the noblest hopes, for which I  
had sketched out the loftiest destiny. But how shall I say it? Ask yourself  
whether a change—apparently impossible—must not take place in her for whom  
you plead, before she and I can meet. I am not so inhuman as to blame you for  
having asked me; I do not even blame her for being what she is. She does but  
follow her nature; who can be angry with her, if destiny have informed so fair an  
animal with a too gross and earthly spirit? Why weep over her? Dust she is, and  
unto dust she will return: while you, to whom a more divine spark was allotted at  
your birth, must rise, and unrepining, leave below you one only connected with  
you by the unreal and fleeting bonds of fleshly kin.’  
Philammon crushed the letter together in his hand, and strode from the house  
without a word. The philosopher had no gospel, then, for the harlot! No word for  
the sinner, the degraded! Destiny forsooth! She was to follow her destiny, and be  
base, miserable, self-condemned. She was to crush the voice of conscience and  
reason, as often as it awoke within her, and compel herself to believe that she  
was bound to be that which she knew herself bound not to be. She was to shut  
her eyes to that present palpable misery which was preaching to her, with the  
voice of God Himself, that the wages of sin are death. Dust she was, and unto  
dust she will return! Oh, glorious hope for her, for him, who felt as if an eternity  
of bliss would be worthless, if it parted him from his new- found treasure! Dust  
she was, and unto dust she must return!  
Hapless Hypatia! If she must needs misapply, after the fashion of her school, a  
text or two here and there from the Hebrew Scriptures, what suicidal fantasy set  
her on quoting that one? For now, upon Philammon’s memory flashed up in  
letters of light, old words forgotten for months—and ere he was aware, he found  
himself repeating aloud and passionately, ‘I believe in the forgiveness of sins,  
the resurrection of the body, and the life everlasting,’ .... and then clear and fair  
arose before him the vision of the God-man, as He lay at meat in the Pharisee’s  
house; and of her who washed His feet with tears, and wiped them with the hairs  
of her head …. And from the depths of his agonised heart arose the prayer,  
‘Blessed Magdalene, intercede for her?’  
So high he could rise, but not beyond. For the notion of that God- man was  
receding fast to more and more awful abysmal heights, in the minds of a  
generation who were forgetting His love in His power, and practically losing  
sight of His humanity in their eager doctrinal assertion of His Divinity. And  
Philammon’s heart re-echoed the spirit of his age, when he felt that for an  
apostate like himself it were presumptuous to entreat for any light or help from  
the fountain-head itself. He who had denied his Lord, he who had voluntarily cut  
himself off from the communion of the Catholic Church—how could he restore  
himself? How could he appease the wrath of Him who died on the cross, save by  
years of bitter supplication and self-punishment? ....  
‘Fool! Vain and ambitious fool that I have been! For this I threw away the faith  
of my childhood! For this I listened to words at which I shuddered; crushed  
down my own doubts and disgusts; tried to persuade myself that I could  
reconcile them with Christianity—that I could make a lie fit into the truth! For  
this I puffed myself up in the vain hope of becoming not as other men are—  
superior, forsooth, to my kind! It was not enough for me to be a man made in the  
image of God: but I must needs become a god myself, knowing good and evil.—  
And here is the end! I call upon my fine philosophy to help me once, in one real  
practical human struggle, and it folds its arms and sits serene and silent, smiling  
upon my misery! Oh! fool, fool, thou art filled with the fruit of thy own devices!  
Back to the old faith! Home again, then wanderer! And yet how home? Are not  
the gates shut against me? Perhaps against her too …. What if she, like me, were  
a baptized Christian?’  
Terrible and all but hopeless that thought flashed across him, as in the first  
revulsion of his conscience he plunged utterly and implicitly back again into the  
faith of his childhood, and all the dark and cruel theories popular in his day rose  
up before him in all their terrors. In the innocent simplicity of the Laura he had  
never felt their force; but he felt them now. If Pelagia were a baptized woman,  
what was before her but unceasing penance? Before her, as before him, a life of  
cold and hunger, groans and tears, loneliness and hideous soul-sickening  
uncertainty. Life was a dungeon for them both henceforth. Be it so! There was  
nothing else to believe in. No other rock of hope in earth or heaven. That at least  
promised a possibility of forgiveness, of amendment, of virtue, of reward—ay, of  
everlasting bliss and glory; and even if she missed of that, better for her the cell  
in the desert than a life of self-contented impurity! If that latter were her destiny,  
as Hypatia said, she should at least die fighting against it, defying it, cursing it!  
Better virtue with hell, than sin with heaven! And Hypatia had not even  
promised her a heaven. The resurrection of the flesh was too carnal a notion for  
her refined and lofty creed. And so, his four months’ dream swept away in a  
moment, he hurried back to his chamber, with one fixed thought before him—the  
desert; a cell for Pelagia; another for himself. There they would repent, and pray,  
and mourn out life side by side, if perhaps God would have mercy upon their  
souls. Yet—perhaps, she might not have been baptized after all. And then she  
was safe. Like other converts from Paganism, she might become a catechumen,  
and go on to baptism, where the mystic water would wash away in a moment all  
the past, and she would begin life afresh, in the spotless robes of innocence. Yet  
he had been baptized, he knew from Arsenius, before he left Athens; and she  
was older than he. It was all but impossible yet he would hope; and breathless  
with anxiety and excitement, he ran up the narrow stairs and found Miriam  
standing outside, her hand uponthe bolt, apparently inclined to dispute his  
passage.  
‘Is she still within?’  
‘What if she be?’  
‘Let me pass into my own room.’  
‘Yours? Who has been paying the rent for you, these four months past? You!  
What can you say to her? What can you do for her? Young pedant, you must be  
in love yourself before you can help poor creatures who are in love!’  
But Philammon pushed past her so fiercely, that the old woman was forced to  
give way, and with a sinister smile she followed him into the chamber.  
Pelagia sprang towards her brother.  
‘Will she?—will she see me?’  
‘Let us talk no more of her, my beloved,’said Philammon, laying his hands  
gently on her trembling shoulders, and looking earnestly into her eyes …. ‘Better  
that we two should work out our deliverance for ourselves, without the help of  
strangers. You can trust me?’  
‘You? And can you help me? Will you teach me?’  
‘Yes, but not here …. We must escape—Nay, hear me, one moment! dearest  
sister, hear me! Are you so happy here that you can conceive of no better place?  
And—and, oh, God! that it may not be true after all!—but is there not a hell  
hereafter?’  
Pelagia covered her face with her hands—‘The old monk warned me of it!’  
‘Oh, take his warning….’ And Philammon was bursting forth with some such  
words about the lake of fire and brimstone as he had been accustomed to hear  
from Pambo and Arsenius, when Pelagia interrupted him-  
‘Oh, Miriam! Is it true? Is it possible? What will become of me?’ almost  
shrieked the poor child.  
‘What if it were true?—Let him tell you how he will save you from it,’ answered  
Miriam quietly.  
‘Will not the Gospel save her from it—unbelieving Jew? Do not contradict me! I  
can save her.’  
‘If she does what?’  
‘Can she not repent? Can she not mortify these base affections? Can she not be  
forgiven? Oh, my Pelagia! forgive me for having dreamed one moment that I  
could make you a philosopher, when you may be a saint of God, a—’  
He stopped short suddenly, as the thought about baptism flashed across him, and  
in a faltering voice asked, ‘Are you baptized?’  
‘Baptized?’ asked she, hardly understanding the term.  
‘Yes—by the bishop—in the church.’  
‘Ah,’she said, ‘I remember now …. When I was four or five years odd …. A  
tank, and women undressing …. And I was bathed too, and an old man dipped  
my head under the water three times …. I have forgotten what it all meant—it  
was so long ago. I wore a white dress, I know, afterwards.’  
Philammon recoiled with a groan.  
‘Unhappy child! May God have mercy on you!’  
‘Will He not forgive me, then? You have forgiven me. He?—He must be more  
good even than you.—Why not?’  
‘He forgave you then, freely, when you were baptized: and there is no second  
pardon unless—  
‘Unless I leave my love!’shrieked Pelagia.  
‘When the Lord forgave the blessed Magdalene freely, and told her that her faith  
had saved her—did she live on in sin, or even in the pleasures of this world? No!  
though God had forgiven her, she could not forgive herself. She fled forth into  
the desert, and there, naked and barefoot, clothed only with her hair, and feeding  
on the herb of the field, she stayed fasting and praying till her dying day, never  
seeing the face of man, but visited and comforted by angels and archangels. And  
if she, she who never fell again, needed that long penance to work out her own  
salvation—oh, Pelagia, what will not God require of you, who have broken your  
baptismal vows, and defiled the white robes, which the tears of penance only can  
wash clean once more?’  
‘But I did not know! I did not ask to be baptized! Cruel, cruel parents, to bring  
me to it! And God! Oh, why did He forgive me so soon? And to go into the  
deserts! I dare not! I cannot! See me, how dedicate and tender I am! I should die  
of hunger and cold! I should go mad with fear and loneliness! Oh! brother,  
brother, is this the Gospel of the Christians? I came to you to be taught how to be  
wise, and good, and respected, and you tell me that all I can do is to live this  
horrible life of torture here, on the chance of escaping torture forever! And how  
do I know that I shall escape it? How do I know that I shall make myself  
miserable enough? How do I know that He will forgive me after all? Is this true,  
Miriam? Tell me, or I shall go mad!’  
‘Yes,’said Miriam, with a quiet sneer. ‘This is the gospel and good news of  
salvation, according to the doctrine of the Nazarenes.’  
‘I will go with you!’ cried Philammon. ‘I will go! I will never leave you! I have  
my own sins to wash away!—Happy for me if I ever do it!—And I will build  
you a cell near mine, and kind men will teach us, and the will pray together night  
and morning, for ourselves and for each other, and weep out our weary lives  
together—’  
‘Better end them here, at once!’said Pelagia, with a gesture of despair, and  
dashed herself down on the floor.  
Philammon was about to lift her up, when Miriam caught him by the arm, and in  
a hurried whisper—‘Are you mad? Will you ruin your own purpose? Why did  
you tell her this? Why did you not wait—give her hope—time to collect herself  
—time to wean herself from her lover, instead of terrifying and disgusting her at  
the outset, as you have done? Have you a man’s heart in you? No word of  
comfort for that poor creature, nothing but hell, hell, hell—See to your own  
chance of hell first! It is greater than you fancy!’  
‘It cannot be greater than I fancy!’  
‘Then see to it. For her, poor darling!—why, even we Jews, who know that all  
you Gentiles are doomed to Gehenna alike, have some sort of hope for such a  
poor untaught creature as that.’  
‘And why is she untaught? Wretch that you are. You have had the training of  
her! You brought her up to sin and shame! You drove from her recollection the  
faith in which she was baptized!’  
‘So much the better for her, if the recollection of it is to make her no happier  
than it does already. Better to wake unexpectedly in Gehenna when you die, than  
to endure over and above the dread of it here. And as for leaving her untaught,  
on your own showing she has been taught too much already. Wiser it would be in  
you to curse your parents for having had her baptized, than me for giving her ten  
years’ pleasure before she goes to the pit of Tophet. Come now, don’t be angry  
with me. The old Jewess is your friend, revile her as you will. She shall marry  
this Goth.’  
‘An Arian heretic!’  
‘She shall convert him and make a Catholic of him, if you like. At all events, if  
you wish to win her, you must win her my way. You have had your chance, and  
spoiled it. Let me have mine. Pelagia, darling! Up, and be a woman! We will  
find a philtre downstairs to give that ungrateful man, that shall make him more  
mad about you, before a day is over, than ever you were about him.’  
‘No!’said Pelagia, looking up. ‘No love-potions! No poisons!’  
‘Poisons, little fool! Do you doubt the old woman’s skill? Do you think I shall  
make him lose his wits, as Callisphyra did to her lover last year, because she  
would trust to old Megaera’s drugs, instead of coming to me!’  
‘No! No drugs; no magic! He must love me really, or not at all! He must love me  
for myself, because I am worth loving, because he honours, worships me, or let  
me die. I, whose boast was, even when I was basest, that I never needed such  
mean tricks, but conquered like Aphrodite, a queen in my own right! I have been  
my own love- charm: when I cease to be that, let me die!’  
‘One as mad as the other!’ cried Miriam, in utter perplexity. ‘Hist! what is that  
tramp upon the stairs?’  
At this moment heavy footsteps were heard ascending the stairs …. All three  
stopped aghast: Philammon, because he thought the visitors were monks in  
search of him; Miriam, because she thought they were Orestes’s guards in search  
of her; and Pelagia, from vague dread of anything and everything….  
‘Have you an inner room?’ asked the Jewess.  
‘None.’  
The old woman set her lips firmly, and drew her dagger. Pelagia wrapped her  
face in her cloak, and stood trembling, bowed down, as if expecting another  
blow. The door opened, and in walked, neither monks nor guard, but Wulf and  
Smid.  
‘Heyday, young monk!’ cried the latter worthy, with a loud laugh— ‘Veils here,  
too, eh? At your old trade, my worthy portress of hell-gate? Well, walk out now;  
we have a little business with this young gentleman.’  
And slipping past the unsuspecting Goths, Pelagia and Miriam hurried  
downstairs.  
‘The young one, at least, seems a little ashamed of her errand …. Now, Wulf,  
speak low; and I will see that no one is listening at the door.’  
Philammon faced his unexpected visitors with a look of angry inquiry. What  
right had they, or any man, to intrude at such a moment on his misery and  
disgrace? .... But he was disarmed the next instant by old Wulf, who advanced to  
him, and looking him fully in the face with an expression which there was no  
mistaking, held out his broad, brown hand.  
Philammon grasped it, and then covering his face with his hands, burst into tears.  
‘You did right. You are a brave boy. If you had died, no man need have been  
ashamed to die your death.’  
‘You were there, then?’sobbed Philammon.  
‘We were.’  
‘And what is more,’said Smid, as the poor boy writhed at the admission, ‘we  
were mightily minded, some of us, to have leapt down to you and cut you a  
passage out. One man, at least, whom I know of, felt his old blood as hot for the  
minute as a four-year-old’s. The foul curs! And to hoot her, after all! Oh that I  
may have one good hour’s hewing at them before I die!’  
‘And you shall!’said Wulf. ‘Boy, you wish to get this sister of yours into your  
power?’  
‘It is hopeless—hopeless! She will never leave her—the Amal.’  
‘Are you so sure of that?’  
‘She told me so with her own lips not ten minutes ago. That was she who went  
out as you entered!’  
A curse of astonishment and regret burst from Smid….  
‘Had I but known her! By the soul of my fathers, she should have found that it  
was easier to come here than to go home again!’  
‘Hush, Smid! Better as it is. Boy, if I put her into your power, dare you carry her  
off?’  
Philammon hesitated one moment.  
‘What I dare you know already. But it would be an unlawful thing, surely, to use  
violence.’  
‘Settle your philosopher’s doubts for yourself. I have made my offer. I should  
have thought that a man in his senses could give but one answer, much more a  
mad monk.’  
‘You forget the money matters, prince,’said Smid, with a smile.  
‘I do not. But I don’t think the boy so mean as to hesitate on that account.’  
‘He may as well know, however, that we promise to send all her trumpery after  
her, even to the Amal’s presents. As for the house, we won’t trouble her to lend  
it us longer than we can help. We intend shortly to move into more extensive  
premises, and open business on a grander scale, as the shopkeepers say,—eh,  
prince?’  
‘Her money?—That money? God forgive her!’ answered Philammon. ‘Do you  
fancy me base enough to touch it? But I am resolved. Tell me what to do, and I  
will do it.’  
‘You know the lane which runs down to the canal, under the left wall of the  
house?’  
‘Yes.’  
‘And a door in the corner tower, close to the landing-place?’ ‘I do.’  
‘Be there, with a dozen stout monks, to-morrow, an hour after sundown, and take  
what we give you. After that, the concern is yours, not ours.’  
‘Monks?’said Philammon. ‘I am at open feud with the whole order.’  
‘Make friends with them, then,’shortly suggested Smid.  
Philammon writhed inwardly. ‘It makes no difference to you, I presume, whom I  
bring?’  
‘No more than it does whether or not you pitch her into the canal, and put a  
hurdle over her when you have got her,’ answered Smid; ‘which is what a Goth  
would do, if he were in your place.’  
‘Do not vex the poor lad, friend. If he thinks he can mend her instead of  
punishing her, in Freya’s name, let him try. You will be there, then? And mind, I  
like you. I liked you when you faced that great river-hog. I like you better now  
than ever; for you have spoken to-day like a Sagaman, and dared like a hero.  
Therefore mind; if you do not bring a good guard to-morrow night, your life will  
not be safe. The whole city is out in the streets; and Odin alone knows what will  
be done, and who will be alive, eight-and- forty hours hence. Mind you!—The  
mob may do strange things, and they may see still stranger things done. If you  
once find yourself safe back here, stay where you are, if you value her life or  
your own. And—if you are wise, let the men whom you bring with you be  
monks, though it cost your proud stomach—’  
‘That’s not fair, prince! You are telling too much!’ interrupted Smid, while  
Philammon gulped down the said proud stomach, and answered, ‘Be it so!’  
‘I have won my bet, Smid,’said the old man, chuckling, as the two tramped out  
into the street, to the surprise and fear of all the neighbours, while the children  
clapped their hands, and the street dogs felt it their duty to bark lustily at the  
strange figures of their unwonted visitors.  
‘No play, no pay, Wulf. We shall see to-morrow.’  
‘I knew that he would stand the trial! I knew he was right at heart!’  
‘At all events, there is no fear of his ill-using the poor thing, if he loves her well  
enough to go down on his knees to his sworn foes for her.’  
‘I don’t know that,’ answered Wulf, with a shake of the head. ‘These monks, I  
hear, fancy that their God likes them the better the more miserable they are: so,  
perhaps they may fancy that he will like them all the more, the more miserable  
they make other people. However, it’s no concern of ours.’  
‘We have quite enough of our own to see to just now. But mind, no play, no pay.’  
‘Of course not. How the streets are filling! We shall not be able to see the guards  
to-night, if this mob thickens much more.’  
‘We shall have enough to do to hold our own, perhaps. Do you hear what they  
are crying there? “Down with all heathens! Down with barbarians!” That means  
us, you know.’  
‘Do you fancy no one understands Greek but yourself? Let them come …. It  
may give us an excuse …. And we can hold the house a week.’  
‘But how can we get speech of the guards?’  
‘We will slip round by water. And, after all, deeds will win them better than talk.  
They will be forced to fight on the same side as we, and most probably be glad  
of our help; for if the mob attacks any one, it will begin with the Prefect.’  
‘And then—Curse their shouting! Let the soldiers once find our Amal at their  
head, and they will be ready to go with him a mile, where they meant to go a  
yard.’  
‘The Goths will, and the Markmen, and those Dacians, and Thracians, or  
whatever the Romans call them. But I hardly trust the Huns.’  
‘The curse of heaven on their pudding faces and pigs’ eyes! There will be no  
love lost between us. But there are not twenty of them scattered in different  
troops; one of us can thrash three of them; and they will be sure to side with the  
winning party. Besides, plunder, plunder, comrade! When did you know a Hun  
turn back from that, even if he were only on the scent of a lump of tallow?’  
‘As for the Gauls and Latins,’ .... went on Wulf meditatively, ‘they belong to any  
man who can pay them.’....  
‘Which we can do, like all wise generals, one penny out of our own pocket, and  
nine out of the enemy’s. And the Amal is staunch?’  
‘Staunch as his own hounds, now there is something to be done on the spot. His  
heart was in the right place after all. I knew it all along. But he could never in his  
life see four-and-twenty hours before him. Even now if that Pelagia gets him  
under her spell again, he may throw down his sword, and fall as fast asleep as  
ever.’  
‘Never fear; we have settled her destiny for her, as far as that is concerned. Look  
at the mob before the door! We must get in by the postern-gate.’  
‘Get in by the sewer, like a rat! I go my own way. Draw, old hammer and tongs!  
or run away!’  
‘Not this time.’ And sword in hand, the two marched into the heart of the crowd,  
who gave way before them like a flock of sheep.  
‘They know their intended shepherds already,’said Smid. But at that moment the  
crowd, seeing them about to enter the house, raised a yell of ‘Goths! Heathens!  
Barbarians!’ and a rush from behind took place.  
‘If you will have it, then!’said Wulf. And the two long bright blades flashed  
round and round their heads, redder and redder every time they swung aloft ….  
The old men never even checked their steady walk, and knocking at the gate,  
went in, leaving more than one lifeless corpse at the entrance.  
‘We have put the coal in the thatch, now, with a vengeance,’said Smid, as they  
wiped their swords inside.  
‘We have. Get me out a boat and half a dozen men, and I and Goderic will go  
round by the canal to the palace, and settle a thing or two with the guards.’  
‘Why should not the Amal go, and offer our help himself to the Prefect?’  
‘What? Would you have him after that turn against the hound? For troth and  
honour’s sake, he must keep quiet in the matter.’  
‘He will have no objection to keep quiet—trust him for that! But don’t forget  
Sagaman Moneybag, the best of all orators,’ called Smid laughingly after him, as  
he went off to man the boat.  
CHAPTER XXV: SEEKING AFTER A SIGN  
‘What answer has he sent back, father?’ asked Hypatia, as Theon re- entered her  
chamber, after delivering that hapless letter to Philammon.  
‘Insolent that he is! he tore it to fragments and tied forth without a word.’  
‘Let him go, and desert us like the rest, in our calamity!’  
‘At least, we have the jewels.’  
‘The jewels? Let them be returned to their owner. Shall we defile ourselves by  
taking them as wages for anything—above all, for that which is unperformed?’  
‘But, my child, they were given to us freely. He bade me keep them; and—and,  
to tell you the truth, I must keep them. After this unfortunate failure, be sure of  
it, every creditor we have will be clamouring for payment.’  
‘Let them take our house and furniture, and sell us as slaves, then. Let them take  
all, provided we keep our virtue.’  
‘Sell us as slaves? Are you mad?’  
‘Not quite mad yet, father,’ answered she with a sad smile. ‘But how should we  
be worse than we are now, were we slaves? Raphael Aben- Ezra told me that he  
obeyed my precepts, when he went forth as a houseless beggar; and shall I not  
have courage to obey them myself, if the need come? The thought of his  
endurance has shamed my luxury for this many a month. After all, what does the  
philosopher require but bread and water, and the clear brook in which to wash  
away the daily stains of his earthly prison-house? Let what is fated come.  
Hypatia struggles with the stream no more!’  
‘My daughter! And have you given up all hope? So soon disheartened! What! Is  
this paltry accident to sweep away the purposes of years? Orestes remains still  
faithful. His guards have orders to garrison the house for as long as we shall  
require them.’  
‘Send them away, then. I have done no wrong, and I fear no punishment.’  
‘You do not know the madness of the mob; they are shouting your name in the  
streets already, in company with Pelagia’s.’  
Hypatia shuddered. Her name in company with Pelagia’s! And to this she had  
brought herself!  
‘I have deserved it! I have sold myself to a lie and a disgrace! I have stooped to  
truckle, to intrigue! I have bound myself to a sordid trickster! Father! never  
mention his name to me again! I have leagued myself with the impure and the  
bloodthirsty, and I have my reward! No more politics for Hypatia from  
henceforth, my father; no more orations and lectures; no more pearls of Divine  
wisdom cast before swine. I have sinned in divulging the secrets of the  
Immortals to the mob. Let them follow their natures! Fool that I was, to fancy  
that my speech, my plots, could raise them above that which the gods had made  
them!’  
‘Then you give up our lectures? Worse and worse! We shall be ruined utterly!’  
‘We are ruined utterly already. Orestes? There is no help in him. I know the man  
too well, my father, not to know that he would give us up to-morrow to the fury  
of the Christians were his own base life—even his own baser office—in danger.’  
‘Too true—too true! I fear,’said the poor old man, wringing his hands in  
perplexity. ‘What will become of us,—of you, rather? What matter what happens  
to the useless old star-gazer? Let him die! To-day or next year is alike to him.  
But you, you! Let us escape by the canal. We may gather up enough, even  
without these jewels, which you refuse, to pay our voyage to Athens, and there  
we shall be safe with Plutarch; he will welcome you—all Athens will welcome  
you—we will collect a fresh school—and you shall be Queen of Athens, as you  
have been Queen of Alexandria!’  
‘No, father. What I know, henceforth I will know for myself only. Hypatia will  
be from this day alone with the Immortal Gods!’  
‘You will not leave me?’ cried the old man, terrified.  
‘Never on earth!’ answered she, bursting into real human tears, and throwing  
herself on his bosom. ‘Never—never! father of my spirit as well as of my flesh!  
—the parent who has trained me, taught me, educated my soul from the cradle to  
use her wings!—the only human being who never misunderstood me—never  
thwarted me—never deceived me!’  
‘My priceless child! And I have been the cause of your ruin!’  
‘Not you!—a thousand times not you! I only am to blame! I tampered with  
worldly politics. I tempted you on to fancy that I could effect what I so rashly  
undertook. Do not accuse yourself unless you wish to break my heart! We can be  
happy together yet.—A palm-leaf hut in the desert, dates from the grove, and  
water from the spring—the monk dares be miserable alone in such a dwelling,  
and cannot we dare to be happy together in it?’  
‘Then you will escape?’  
‘Not to-day. It were base to flee before danger comes. We must hold out at our  
post to the last moment, even if we dare not die at it like heroes. And to-morrow  
I go to the lecture-room,—to the beloved Museum, for the last time, to take  
farewell of my pupils. Unworthy as they are, I owe it to myself and to  
philosophy to tell them why I leave them.’  
‘It will be too dangerous—indeed it will!’  
‘I could take the guards with me, then. And yet—no …. They shall never have  
occasion to impute fear to the philosopher. Let them see her go forth as usual on  
her errand, strong in the courage of innocence, secure in the protection of the  
gods. So, perhaps, some sacred awe, some suspicion of her divineness, may fall  
on them at last.’  
‘I must go with you.’  
‘No, I go alone. You might incur danger where I am safe. After all, I am a  
woman …. And, fierce as they are, they will not dare to harm me.’  
The old man shook his head.  
‘Look now,’she said smilingly, laying her hands on his shoulders, and looking  
into his face …. ‘You tell me that I am beautiful, you know; and beauty will  
tame the lion. Do you not think that this face might disarm even a monk?’  
And she laughed and blushed so sweetly, that the old man forgot his fears, as she  
intended that he should, and kissed her and went his way for the time being, to  
command all manner of hospitalities to the soldiers, whom he prudently  
determined to keep in his house as long as he could make them stay there; in  
pursuance of which wise purpose he contrived not to see a great deal of pleasant  
flirtation between his valiant defenders and Hypatia’s maids, who, by no means  
so prudish as their mistress, welcomed as a rare boon from heaven an afternoon’s  
chat with twenty tall men of war.  
So they jested and laughed below, while old Theon, having brought out the very  
best old wine, and actually proposed in person, by way of mending matters, the  
health of the Emperor of Africa, locked himself into the library, and comforted  
his troubled soul with a tough problem of astronomy, which had been haunting  
him the whole day, even in the theatre itself. But Hypatia sat still in her chamber,  
her face buried in her hands, her heart full of many thoughts; her eyes of tears.  
She had smiled away her father’s fears; she could not smile away her own.  
She felt, she hardly knew why, but she felt as clearly as if a god had proclaimed  
it to her bodily ears, that the crisis of her life was come: that her political and  
active career was over, and that she must now be content to be for herself, and in  
herself alone, all that she was, or might become. The world might be  
regenerated: but not in her day;—the gods restored; but not by her. It was a  
fearful discovery, and yet hardly a discovery. Her heart had told her for years  
that she was hoping against hope,—that she was struggling against a stream too  
mighty for her. And now the moment had come when she must either be swept  
helpless down the current, or, by one desperate effort, win firm land, and let the  
tide roll on its own way henceforth …. Its own way? .... Not the way of the gods,  
at least; for it was sweeping their names from off the earth. What if they did not  
care to be known? What if they were weary of worship and reverence from  
mortal men, and, self-sufficing in their own perfect bliss, recked nothing for the  
weal or woe of earth? Must it not be so? Had she not proof of it in everything  
which she beheld? What did Isis care for her Alexandria? What did Athens care  
for her Athens? .... And yet Homer and Hesiod, and those old Orphic singers,  
were of another mind …. Whence got they that strange fancy of gods  
counselling, warring, intermarrying, with mankind, as with some kindred tribe?  
‘Zeus, father of gods and men.’ .... Those were words of hope and comfort ….  
But were they true? Father of men? Impossible!—not father of Pelagia, surely.  
Not father of the base, the foul, the ignorant …. Father of heroic souls, only, the  
poets must have meant …. But where were the heroic souls now? Was she one?  
If so, why was she deserted by the upper powers in her utter need? Was the  
heroic race indeed extinct? Was she merely assuming, in her self-conceit, an  
honour to which she had no claim? Or was it all a dream of these old singers?  
Had they, as some bold philosophers had said, invented gods in their own  
likeness, and palmed off on the awe and admiration of men their own fair  
phantoms? .... It must be so. If there were gods, to know them was the highest  
bliss of man. Then would they not teach men of themselves, unveil their own  
loveliness to a chosen few, even for the sake of their own honour, if not, as she  
had dreamed once, from love to those who bore a kindred flame to theirs?  
....What if there were no gods? What if the stream of fate, which was sweeping  
away their names; were the only real power? What if that old Pyrrhonic notion  
were the true solution of the problem of the Universe? What if there were no  
centre, no order, no rest, no goal—but only a perpetual flux, a down-rushing  
change? And before her dizzying brain and heart arose that awful vision of  
Lucretius, of the homeless Universe falling, falling, falling, for ever from  
nowhence toward nowhither through the unending ages, by causeless and  
unceasing gravitation, while the changes and efforts of all mortal things were but  
the jostling of the dust-atoms amid the everlasting storm….  
It could not be! There was a truth, a virtue, a beauty, a nobleness, which could  
never change, but which were absolute, the same for ever. The God-given  
instinct of her woman’s heart rebelled against her intellect, and, in the name of  
God, denied its lie …. Yes,—there was virtue, beauty …. And yet—might not  
they, too, be accidents of that enchantment, which man calls mortal life;  
temporary and mutable accidents of consciousness; brilliant sparks, struck out by  
the clashing of the dust-atoms? Who could tell?  
There were those once who could tell. Did not Plotinus speak of a direct mystic  
intuition of the Deity, an enthusiasm without passion, a still intoxication of the  
soul, in which she rose above life, thought, reason, herself, to that which she  
contemplated, the absolute and first One, and united herself with that One, or,  
rather, became aware of that union which had existed from the first moment in  
which she emanated from the One? Six times in a life of sixty years had Plotinus  
risen to that height of mystic union, and known himself to be a part of God.  
Once had Porphyry attained the same glory. Hypatia, though often attempting,  
had never yet succeeded in attaining to any distinct vision of a being external to  
herself; though practice, a firm will, and a powerful imagination, had long since  
made her an adept in producing, almost at will, that mysterious trance, which  
was the preliminary step to supernatural vision. But her delight in the brilliant,  
and, as she held, divine imaginations, in which at such times she revelled, had  
been always checked and chilled by the knowledge that, in such matters,  
hundreds inferior to her in intellect and in learning,—ay, saddest of all, Christian  
monks and nuns, boasted themselves her equals,—indeed, if their own account  
of their visions was to be believed, her superiors—by the same methods which  
she employed. For by celibacy, rigorous fasts, perfect bodily quiescence, and  
intense contemplation of one thought, they, too, pretended to be able to rise  
above the body into the heavenly regions, and to behold things unspeakable,  
which nevertheless, like most other unspeakable things, contrived to be most  
carefully detailed and noised abroad …. And it was with a half feeling of shame  
that she prepared herself that afternoon for one more, perhaps one last attempt,  
to scale the heavens, as she recollected how many an illiterate monk and nun,  
from Constantinople to the Thebaid, was probably employed at that moment  
exactly as she was. Still, the attempt must be made. In that terrible abyss of  
doubt, she must have something palpable, real; something beyond her own  
thoughts, and hopes, and speculations, whereon to rest her weary faith, her  
weary heart …. Perhaps this time, at least, in her extremest need, a god might  
vouchsafe some glimpse of his own beauty …. Athene might pity at last …. Or,  
if not Athene, some archetype, angel, demon …. And then she shuddered at the  
thought of those evil and deceiving spirits, whose delight it was to delude and  
tempt the votaries of the gods, in the forms of angels of light. But even in the  
face of that danger, she must make the trial once again. Was she not pure and  
spotless as Athene’s self? Would not her innate purity enable her to discern, by  
an instinctive antipathy, those foul beings beneath the fairest mask? At least, she  
must make the trial….  
And so, with a look of intense humility, she began to lay aside her jewels and her  
upper robes. Then, baring her bosom and her feet, and shaking her golden tresses  
loose, she laid herself down upon the conch, crossed her hands upon her breast,  
and, with upturned ecstatic eyes, waited for that which might befall.  
There she lay, hour after hour, as her eye gradually kindled, her bosom heaved,  
her breath came fast: but there was no more sign of life in those straight still  
limbs, and listless feet and hands, than in Pygmalion’s ivory bride, before she  
bloomed into human flesh and blood. The sun sank towards his rest; the roar of  
the city grew louder and louder without; the soldiers revelled and laughed below:  
but every sound passed through unconscious ears, and went its way unheeded.  
Faith, hope, reason itself, were staked upon the result of that daring effort to  
scale the highest heaven. And, by one continuous effort of her practised will,  
which reached its highest virtue, as mystics hold, in its own suicide, she chained  
down her senses from every sight and sound, and even her mind from every  
thought, and lay utterly self-resigned, self-emptied, till consciousness of time  
and place had vanished, and she seemed to herself alone in the abyss.  
She dared not reflect, she dared not hope, she dared not rejoice, lest she should  
break the spell …. Again and again had she broken it at this very point, by some  
sudden and tumultuous yielding to her own joy or awe; but now her will held  
firm …. She did not feel her own limbs, hear her own breath …. A light bright  
mist, an endless network of glittering films, coming, going, uniting, resolving  
themselves, was above her and around her …. Was she in the body or out of the  
body? ....  
...............  
The network faded into an abyss of still clear light …. A still warm atmosphere  
was around her, thrilling through and through her …. She breathed the light, and  
floated in it, as a mote in the mid-day beam …. And still her will held firm.  
...............  
Far away, miles, and aeons, and abysses away, through the interminable depths  
of glory, a dark and shadowy spot. It neared and grew …. A dark globe, ringed  
with rainbows …. What might it be? She dared not hope …. It came nearer,  
nearer, nearer, touched her …. The centre quivered, flickered, took form—a face.  
A god’s? No—Pelagia’s.  
Beautiful, sad, craving, reproachful, indignant, awful …. Hypatia could bear no  
more: and sprang to her feet with a shriek, to experience in its full bitterness the  
fearful revulsion of the mystic, when the human reason and will which he has  
spurned reassert their God-given rights; and after the intoxication of the  
imagination, come its prostration and collapse.  
And this, then, was the answer of the gods! The phantom of her whom she had  
despised, exposed, spurned from her! ‘No, not their answer —the answer of my  
own soul! Fool that I have been! I have been exerting my will most while I  
pretended to resign it most! I have been the slave of every mental desire, while I  
tried to trample on them! What if that network of light, that blaze, that globe of  
darkness, have been, like the face of Pelagia, the phantoms of my own  
imagination—ay, even of my own senses? What if I have mistaken for Deity my  
own self? What if I have been my own light, my own abyss? .... Am I not my  
own abyss, my own light—my own darkness?’ And she smiled bitterly as she  
said it, and throwing herself again upon the couch, buried her head in her hands,  
exhausted equally in body and in mind.  
At last she rose, and sat, careless of her dishevelled locks, gazing out into  
vacancy. ‘Oh for a sign, for a token! Oh for the golden days of which the poets  
sang, when gods walked among men, fought by their side as friends! And yet ….  
are these old stories credible, pious, even modest? Does not my heart revolt from  
them? Who has shared more than I in Plato’s contempt for the foul deeds, the  
degrading transformations, which Homer imputes to the gods of Greece? Must I  
believe them now? Must I stoop to think that gods, who live in a region above all  
sense, will deign to make themselves palpable to those senses of ours which are  
whole aeons of existence below them? Degrade themselves to the base accidents  
of matter? Yes! That, rather than nothing! .... Be it even so. Better, better, better,  
to believe that Ares fled shrieking and wounded from a mortal man—better to  
believe in Zeus’s adulteries and Hermes’s thefts—than to believe that gods have  
never spoken face to face with men! Let me think, lest I go mad, that beings  
from that unseen world for which I hunger have appeared, and held communion  
with mankind, such as no reason or sense could doubt—even though those  
beings were more capricious and baser than ourselves! Is there, after all, an  
unseen world? Oh for a sign, a sign!’  
Haggard and dizzy, she wandered into her ‘chamber of the gods’; a collection of  
antiquities, which she kept there rather as matters of taste than of worship. All  
around her they looked out into vacancy with their white soulless eyeballs, their  
dead motionless beauty, those cold dreams of the buried generations. Oh that  
they could speak, and set her heart at rest! At the lower end of the room stood a  
Pallas, completely armed with aegis, spear, and helmet; a gem of Athenian  
sculpture, which she had bought from some merchants after the sack of Athens  
by the Goths. There it stood severely fair; but the right hand, alas! was gone; and  
there the maimed arm remained extended, as if in sad mockery of the faith of  
which the body remained, while the power was dead and vanished.  
She gazed long and passionately on the image of her favourite goddess, the ideal  
to which she had longed for years to assimilate herself; till—was it a dream? was  
it a frolic of the dying sunlight? or did those lips really bend themselves into a  
smile?  
Impossible! No, not impossible. Had not, only a few years before, the image of  
Hecate smiled on a philosopher? Were there not stories of moving images, and  
winking pictures, and all the material miracles by which a dying faith strives  
desperately—not to deceive others—but to persuade itself of its own sanity? It  
had been—it might be—it was!—  
No! there the lips were, as they had been from the beginning, closed upon each  
other in that stony self-collected calm, which was only not a sneer. The wonder,  
if it was one, had passed: and now—did her eyes play her false, or were the  
snakes round that Medusa’s head upon the shield all writhing, grinning, glaring  
at her with stony eyes, longing to stiffen her with terror into their own likeness?  
No! that, too, passed. Would that even it had stayed, for it would have been a  
sign of life! She looked up at the face once more: but in vain—the stone was  
stone; and ere she was aware, she found herself clasping passionately the knees  
of the marble.  
‘Athene! Pallas! Adored! Ever Virgin! Absolute reason, springing unbegotten  
from the nameless One! Hear me! Athene! Have mercy on me! Speak, if it be to  
curse me! Thou who alone wieldest the lightnings of thy father, wield them to  
strike me dead, if thou wilt; only do something!—something to prove thine own  
existence— something to make me sure that anything exists beside this gross  
miserable matter, and my miserable soul. I stand alone in the centre of the  
universe! I fall and sicken down the abyss of ignorance, and doubt, and  
boundless blank and darkness! Oh, have mercy! I know that thou art not this!  
Thou art everywhere and in all things! But I know that this is a form which  
pleases thee, which symbolises thy nobleness! T know that thou hast deigned to  
speak to those who—Oh! what do I know? Nothing! nothing! nothing!  
And she clung there, bedewing with scalding tears the cold feet of the image,  
while there was neither sign, nor voice, nor any that answered.  
On a sudden she was startled by a rustling near; and, looking round, saw close  
behind her the old Jewess.  
‘Cry aloud!’ hissed the hag, in a tone of bitter scorn; ‘cry aloud, for she is a  
goddess. Either she is talking, or pursuing, or she is on a journey; or perhaps she  
has grown old, as we all shall do some day, my pretty lady, and is too cross and  
lazy to stir. What! her naughty doll will not speak to her, will it not? or even  
open its eyes, because the wires are grown rusty? Well, we will find a new doll  
for her, if she chooses.’  
‘Begone, hag! What do you mean by intruding here?’said Hypatia, springing up;  
but the old woman went on coolly—  
‘Why not try the fair young gentleman over there?’ pointing to a copy of the  
Apollo which we call Belvedere—‘What is his name? Old maids are always  
cross and jealous, you know. But he—he could not be cruel to such a sweet face  
as that. Try the fair young lad! Or, perhaps, if you are bashful, the old Jewess  
might try him for you?’  
These last words were spoken with so marked a significance, that Hypatia, in  
spite of her disgust, found herself asking the hag what she meant. She made no  
answer for a few seconds, but remained looking steadily into her eyes with a  
glance of fire, before which even the proud Hypatia, as she had done once  
before, quailed utterly, so deep was the understanding, so dogged the purpose, so  
fearless the power, which burned within those withered and shrunken sockets.  
‘Shall the old witch call him up, the fair young Apollo, with the beauty-bloom  
upon his chin? He shall come! He shall come! I warrant him he must come,  
civilly enough, when old Miriam’s finger is once held up.’  
‘To you? Apollo, the god of light, obey a Jewess?’  
‘A Jewess? And you a Greek?’ almost yelled the old woman. ‘And who are you  
who ask? And who are your gods, your heroes, your devils, you children of  
yesterday, compared with us? You, who were a set of half-naked savages  
squabbling about the siege of Troy, when our Solomon, amid splendours such as  
Rome and Constantinople never saw, was controlling demons and ghosts, angels  
and archangels, principalities and powers, by the ineffable name? What science  
have you that you have not stolen from the Egyptians and Chaldees? And what  
had the Egyptians which Moses did not teach them? And what have the  
Chaldees which Daniel did not teach them? What does the world know but from  
us, the fathers and the masters of magic—us, the lords of the inner secrets of the  
universe! Come, you Greek baby—as the priests in Egypt said of your  
forefathers, always children, craving for a new toy, and throwing it away next  
day—come to the fountainhead of all your paltry wisdom! Name what you will  
see, and you shall see it!’  
Hypatia was cowed; for of one thing there was no doubt,—that the woman  
utterly believed her own words; and that was a state of mind of which she had  
seen so little, that it was no wonder if it acted on her with that overpowering  
sympathetic force, with which it generally does, and perhaps ought to, act on the  
human heart. Besides, her school had always looked to the ancient nations of the  
East for the primeval founts of inspiration, the mysterious lore of mightier races  
long gone by. Might she not have found it now?  
The Jewess saw her advantage in a moment, and ran on, without giving her time  
to answer—  
‘What sort shall it be, then? By glass and water, or by the moonlight on the wall,  
or by the sieve, or by the meal? By the cymbals, or by the stars? By the table of  
the twenty-four elements, by which the Empire was promised to Theodosius the  
Great, or by the sacred counters of the Assyrians, or by the sapphire of the  
Hecatic sphere? Shall I threaten, as the Egyptian priests used to do, to tear Osiris  
again in pieces, or to divulge the mysteries of Isis? I could do so, if I chose; for I  
know them all and more. Or shall I use the ineffable name on Solomon’s seal,  
which we alone, of all the nations of the earth, know? No; it would be a pity to  
waste that upon a heathen. It shall be by the sacred wafer. Look here!—here they  
are, the wonder-working atomies! Eat no food this day, except one of these every  
three hours, and come to me to-night at the house of your porter, Eudaimon,  
bringing with you the black agate; and then—why then, what you have the heart  
to see, you shall see!’  
Hypatia took the wafers, hesitating—  
‘But what are they?’  
‘And you profess to explain Homer? Whom did I hear the other morning  
lecturing away so glibly on the nepenthe which Helen gave the heroes, to fill  
them with the spirit of joy and love; how it was an allegory of the inward  
inspiration which flows from spiritual beauty, and all that?—pretty enough, fair  
lady; but the question still remains, what was it? and I say it was this. Take it and  
try; and then confess, that while you can talk about Helen, I can act her; and  
know a little more about Homer than you do, after all.’  
‘I cannot believe you! Give me some sign of your power, or how can I trust  
you?’  
‘A sign?—A sign? Kneel down then there, with your face toward the north; you  
are over tall for the poor old cripple.’  
‘I? I never knelt to human being.’  
‘Then consider that you kneel to the handsome idol there, if you will—but  
kneel!’  
And, constrained by that glittering eye, Hypatia knelt before her.  
‘Have you faith? Have you desire? Will you submit? Will you obey? Self-will  
and pride see nothing, know nothing. If you do not give up yourself, neither God  
nor devil will care to approach. Do you submit?’  
‘I do! I do!’ cried poor Hypatia, in an agony of curiosity and self-distrust, while  
she felt her eye quailing and her limbs loosening more and more every moment  
under that intolerable fascination.  
The old woman drew from her bosom a crystal, and placed the point against  
Hypatia’s breast. A cold shiver ran through her …. The witch waved her hands  
mysteriously round her head, muttering from time to time, ‘Down! down, proud  
spirit!’ and then placed the tips of her skinny fingers on the victim’s forehead.  
Gradually her eyelids became heavy; again and again she tried to raise them, and  
dropped them again before those fixed glaring eyes …. , and in another moment  
she lost consciousness….  
When she awoke, she was kneeling in a distant part of the room, with  
dishevelled hair and garments. What was it so cold that she was clasping in her  
arms? The feet of the Apollo! The hag stood by her, chuckling to herself and  
clapping her hands.  
‘How came I here? What have I been doing?’  
‘Saying such pretty things!—paying the fair youth there such compliments, as he  
will not be rude enough to forget in his visit to-night. A charming prophetic  
trance you have had! Ah ha! you are not the only woman who is wiser asleep  
than awake! Well, you will make a very pretty Cassandra-or a Clytia, if you have  
the sense …. It lies with you, my fair lady. Are you satisfied now? Will you have  
any more signs? Shall the old Jewess blast those blue eyes blind to show that she  
knows more than the heathen?’  
‘Oh, I believe you—I believe,’ cried the poor exhausted maiden. ‘I will come;  
and yet—’  
‘Ah! yes! You had better settle first how he shall appear.’  
‘As he wills!—let him only come! only let me know that he is a god. Abamnon  
said that gods appeared in a clear, steady, unbearable light, amid a choir of all the  
lesser deities, archangels, principalities, and heroes, who derive their life from  
them.’  
‘Abamnon was an old fool, then. Do you think young Phoebus ran after Daphne  
with such a mob at his heels? or that Jove, when he swam up to Leda, headed a  
whole Nile-flock of ducks, and plover, and curlews? No, he shall come alone—  
to you alone; and then you may choose for yourself between Cassandra and  
Clytia …. Farewell. Do not forget your wafers, or the agate either, and talk with  
no one between now and sunset. And then—my pretty lady!’  
And laughing to herself, the old hag glided from the room.  
Hypatia sat trembling with shame and dread. She, as a disciple of the more  
purely spiritualistic school of Porphyry, had always looked with aversion, with  
all but contempt, on those theurgic arts which were so much lauded and  
employed by Iamblicus, Abamnon, and those who clung lovingly to the old  
priestly rites of Egypt and Chaldaea. They had seemed to her vulgar toys, tricks  
of legerdemain, suited only for the wonder of the mob …. She began to think of  
them with more favour now. How did she know that the vulgar did not require  
signs and wonders to make them believe? .... How, indeed? for did she not want  
such herself? And she opened Abamnon’s famous letter to Porphyry, and read  
earnestly over, for the twentieth time, his subtle justification of magic, and felt it  
to be unanswerable. Magic? What was not magical? The whole universe, from  
the planets over her head to the meanest pebble at her feet, was utterly  
mysterious, ineffable, miraculous, influencing and influenced by affinities and  
repulsions as unexpected, as unfathomable, as those which, as Abamnon said,  
drew the gods towards those sounds, those objects, which, either in form, or  
colour, or chemical properties, were symbolic of, or akin to, themselves. What  
wonder in it, after all? Was not love and hatred, sympathy and antipathy, the law  
of the universe? Philosophers, when they gave mechanical explanations of  
natural phenomena, came no nearer to the real solution of them. The mysterious  
‘Why?’ remained untouched …. All their analyses could only darken with big  
words the plain fact that the water hated the oil with which it refused to mix, the  
lime loved the acid which it eagerly received into itself, and, like a lover, grew  
warm with the rapture of affection. Why not? What right had we to deny  
sensation, emotion, to them, any more than to ourselves? Was not the same  
universal spirit stirring in them as in us? And was it not by virtue of that spirit  
that we thought, and felt, and loved?—Then why not they, as well as we? If the  
one spirit permeated all things, if its all-energising presence linked the flower  
with the crystal as well as with the demon and the god, must it not link together  
also the two extremes of the great chain of being? bind even the nameless One  
itself to the smallest creature which bore its creative impress? What greater  
miracle in the attraction of a god or an angel, by material incense, symbols, and  
spells, than in the attraction of one soul to another by the material sounds of the  
human voice? Was the affinity between spirit and matter implied in that, more  
miraculous than the affinity between the soul and the body?—than the retention  
of that soul within that body by the breathing of material air, the eating of  
material food? Or even, if the physicists were right, and the soul were but a  
material product or energy of the nerves, and the sole law of the universe the  
laws of matter, then was not magic even more probable, more rational? Was it  
not fair by every analogy to suppose that there might be other, higher beings than  
ourselves, obedient to those laws, and therefore possible to be attracted, even as  
human beings were, by the baits of material sights and sounds? .... If spirit  
pervaded all things, then was magic probable; if nothing but matter had  
existence, magic was morally certain. All that remained in either case was the  
test of experience …. And had not that test been applied in every age, and  
asserted to succeed? What more rational, more philosophic action than to try  
herself those methods and ceremonies which she was assured on every hand had  
never failed but through the ignorance or unfitness of the neophyte? ....  
Abamnon must be right …. She dared not think him wrong; for if this last hope  
failed, what was there left but to eat and drink, for to-morrow we die?  
CHAPTER XXVI: MIRIAM’S PLOT  
He who has worshipped a woman, even against his will and conscience, knows  
well how storm may follow storm, and earthquake earthquake, before his idol be  
utterly overthrown. And so Philammon found that evening, as he sat pondering  
over the strange chances of the day; for, as he pondered, his old feelings towards  
Hypatia began, in spite of the struggles of his conscience and reason, to revive  
within him. Not only pure love of her great loveliness, the righteous instinct  
which bids us welcome and honour beauty, whether in man or woman, as  
something of real worth—divine, heavenly, ay, though we know not how, in a  
most deep sense eternal; which makes our reason give the lie to all merely  
logical and sentimental maunderings of moralists about ‘the fleeting hues of this  
our painted clay’; telling men, as the old Hebrew Scriptures tell them, that  
physical beauty is the deepest of all spiritual symbols; and that though beauty  
without discretion be the jewel of gold in the swine’s snout, yet the jewel of gold  
it is still, the sacrament of an inward beauty, which ought to be, perhaps hereafter  
may be, fulfilled in spirit and in truth. Not only this, which whispered to him—  
and who shall say that the whisper was of the earth, or of the lower world?  
—‘She is too beautiful to be utterly evil’; but the very defect in her creed which  
he had just discovered, drew him towards her again. She had no Gospel for the  
Magdalene, because she was a Pagan …. That, then, was the fault of her  
Paganism, not of herself. She felt for Pelagia. but even if she had not, was not  
that, too, the fault of her Paganism? And for that Paganism who was to be  
blamed? She? .... Was he the man to affirm that? Had he not seen scandals,  
stupidities, brutalities, enough to shake even his faith, educated a Christian?  
How much more excuse for her, more delicate, more acute, more lofty than he;  
the child, too of a heathen father? Her perfections, were they not her own?—her  
defects, those of her circumstances? .... And had she not welcomed him, guarded  
him, taught him, honoured him? .... Could he turn against her? above all now in  
her distress—perhaps her danger? Was he not bound to her, if by nothing else, by  
gratitude? Was not he, of all men, bound to believe that all she required to make  
her perfect was conversion to the true faith? .... And that first dream of  
converting her arose almost as bright as ever …. Then he was checked by the  
thought of his first utter failure …. At least, if he could not convert her, he could  
love her, pray for her …. No, he could not even do that; for to whom could he  
pray? He had to repent, to be forgiven, to humble himself by penitence, perhaps  
for years, ere he could hope to be heard even for himself, much less for another  
…. And so backwards and forwards swayed his hope and purpose, till he was  
roused from his meditation by the voice of the little porter summoning him to his  
evening meal; and recollecting, for the first time, that he had tasted no food that  
day, he went down, half-unwillingly, and ate.  
But as he, the porter, and his negro wife were sitting silently and sadly enough  
together, Miriam came in, apparently in high good humour, and lingered a  
moment on her way to her own apartments upstairs.  
‘Eh? At supper? And nothing but lentils and water-melons, when the flesh-pots  
of Egypt have been famous any time these two thousand years. Ah! but times are  
changed since then! .... You have worn out the old Hebrew hints, you miserable  
Gentiles, you, and got a Caesar instead of a Joseph! Hist, you hussies!’ cried she  
to the girls upstairs, clapping her hands loudly. ‘Here! bring us down one of  
those roast chickens, and a bottle of the wine of wines—the wine with the green  
seal, you careless daughters of Midian, you, with your wits running on the men,  
I’ll warrant, every minute I’ve been out of the house! Ah, you’ll smart for it  
some day—you’ll smart for it some day, you daughters of Adam’s first wife!’  
Down came, by the hands of one of the Syrian slave-girls, the fowl and the wine.  
‘There, now; we’ll all sup together. Wine, that maketh glad the heart of man!—  
Youth, you were a monk once, so you have read all about that, eh? and about the  
best wine which goes down sweetly, causing the lips of them that are asleep to  
speak. And rare wine it was, I warrant, which the blessed Solomon had in his  
little country cellar up there in Lebanon. We’ll try if this is not a very fair  
substitute for it, though. Come, my little man-monkey, drink, and forget your  
sorrow! You shall be temple-sweeper to Beelzebub yet, I promise you. Look at it  
there, creaming and curdling, the darling! purring like a cat at the very thought  
of touching human lips! As sweet as honey, as strong as fire, as clear as amber!  
Drink, ye children of Gehenna; and make good use of the little time that is left  
you between this and the unquenchable fire!’  
And tossing a cup of it down her own throat, as if it had been water, she watched  
her companions with a meaning look, as they drank.  
The little porter followed her example gallantly. Philammon looked, and longed,  
and sipped blushingly and bashfully, and tried to fancy that he did not care for it;  
and sipped again, being willing enough to forget his sorrow also for a moment;  
the negress refused with fear and trembling—‘She had a vow on her.’  
‘Satan possess you and your vow! Drink, you coal out of Tophet! Do you think it  
is poisoned? You, the only creature in the world that I should not enjoy ill-using,  
because every one else ill-uses you already without my help! Drink, I say, or I’ll  
turn you pea-green from head to foot!’  
The negress put the cup to her lips, and contrived, for her own reasons, to spill  
the contents unobserved.  
‘A very fine lecture that of the Lady Hypatia’s the other morning, on Helen’s  
nepenthe,’ quoth the little porter, growing philosophic as the wine-fumes rose.  
‘Such a power of extracting the cold water of philosophy out of the bottomless  
pit of Mythus, I never did hear. Did you ever, my Philammonidion?’  
‘Aha! she and I were talking about that half an hour ago,’said Miriam.  
‘What! have you seen her?’ asked Philammon, with a flutter of the heart.  
‘If you mean, did she mention you,—why, then, yes!’  
‘How?—how?’  
‘Talked of a young Phoebus Apollo—without mentioning names, certainly, but  
in the most sensible, and practical, and hopeful way- -the wisest speech that I  
have heard from her this twelvemonth.’  
Philammon blushed scarlet.  
‘And that,’ thought he, in spite of what passed this morning!—Why’ what is the  
matter with our host?’  
‘He has taken Solomon’s advice, and forgotten his sorrow.’  
And so, indeed, he had; for he was sleeping sweetly, with open lack- lustre eyes,  
and a maudlin smile at the ceiling; while the negress, with her head fallen on her  
chest, seemed equally unconscious of their presence.  
‘We’ll see,’ quoth Miriam; and taking up the lamp, she held the flame  
unceremoniously to the arm of each of them; but neither winced nor stirred.  
‘Surely your wine is not drugged?’said Philammon, in trepidation.  
‘Why not? What has made them beasts, may make us angels. You seem none the  
less lively for it! Do I?’  
‘But drugged wine?’  
‘Why not? The same who made wine made poppy-juice. Both will make man  
happy. Why not use both?’  
‘It is poison!’  
‘It is the nepenthe, as I told Hypatia, whereof she was twaddling mysticism this  
morning. Drink, child, drink! I have no mind to put you to sleep to-night! I want  
to make a man of you, or rather, to see whether you are one!’  
And she drained another cup, and then went on, half talking to herself—  
‘Ay, it is poison; and music is poison; and woman is poison, according to the  
new creed, Pagan and Christian; and wine will be poison, and meat will be  
poison, some day; and we shall have a world full of mad Nebuchadnezzars,  
eating grass like oxen. It is poisonous, and brutal, and devilish, to be a man, and  
not a monk, and an eunuch, and a dry branch. You are all in the same lie,  
Christians and philosophers, Cyril and Hypatia! Don’t interrupt me, but drink,  
young fool!—Ay, and the only man who keeps his manhood, the only man who  
is not ashamed to be what God has made him, is your Jew. You will find  
yourselves in want of him after all, some day, you besotted Gentiles, to bring  
you back to common sense and common manhood.—In want of him and his  
grand old books, which you despise while you make idols of them, about  
Abraham, and Jacob, and Moses, and David, and Solomon, whom you call  
saints, you miserable hypocrites, though they did what you are too dainty to do,  
and had their wives and their children, and thanked God for a beautiful woman,  
as Adam did before them, and their sons do after them—Drink, I say—and  
believed that God had really made the world, and not the devil, and had given  
them the lordship over it, as you will find out to your cost some day.’  
Philammon heard, and could not answer; and on she rambled.  
‘And music, too? Our priests were not afraid of sackbut and psaltery, dulcimer  
and trumpet, in the house of the Lord; for they knew who had given them the  
cunning to make them. Our prophets were not afraid of calling for music, when  
they wished to prophesy, and letting it soften and raise their souls, and open and  
quicken them till they saw into the inner harmony of things, and beheld the  
future in the present; for they knew who made the melody and harmony, and  
made them the outward symbols of the inward song which runs through sun and  
stars, storm and tempest, fulfilling his word— in that these sham philosophers  
the heathen are wiser than those Christian monks. Try it!—try it! Come with me!  
Leave these sleepers here, and come to my rooms. You long to be as wise as  
Solomon. Then get at wisdom as Solomon did, and give your heart first to know  
folly and madness …. You have read the Book of the Preacher?’  
Poor Philammon! He was no longer master of himself. The arguments —the  
wine—the terrible spell of the old woman’s voice and eye, and the strong  
overpowering will which showed out through them, dragged him along in spite  
of himself. As if in a dream, he followed her up the stairs.  
‘There, throw away that stupid, ugly, shapeless philosopher’s cloak. So! You  
have on the white tunic I gave you? And now you look as a human being should.  
And you have been to the baths to-day? Well— you have the comfort of feeling  
now like other people, and having that alabaster skin as white as it was created,  
instead of being tanned like a brute’s hide. Drink, I say! Ay—what was that face,  
that figure, made for? Bring a mirror here, hussy! There, look in that and judge  
for yourself? Were those lips rounded for nothing? Why were those eyes set in  
your head, and made to sparkle bright as jewels, sweet as mountain honey? Why  
were those curls laid ready for soft fingers to twine themselves among them, and  
look all the whiter among the glossy black knots? Judge for yourself!’  
Alas! poor Philammon!  
‘And after all,’ thought he, ‘is it not true, as well as pleasant?’  
‘Sing to the poor boy, girls!—sing to him! and teach him for the first time in his  
little ignorant life, the old road to inspiration!’  
One of the slave-girls sat down on the divan, and took up a double flute; while  
the other rose, and accompanying the plaintive dreamy air with a slow dance,  
and delicate twinklings of her silver armlets and anklets, and the sistrum which  
she held aloft, she floated gracefully round and round the floor and sang—  
Why were we born but for bliss? Why are we ripe, but to fall? Dream not that  
duty can bar thee from beauty, Like water and sunshine, the heirloom of all. Lips  
were made only to kiss; Hands were made only to toy; Eyes were made only to  
lure on the lonely, The longing, the loving, and drown them in joy!  
Alas, for poor Philammon! And yet no! The very poison brought with it its own  
anti-dote; and, shaking off by one strong effort of will the spell of the music and  
the wine, he sprang to his feet….  
‘Never! If love means no more than that—if it is to be a mere delicate selfindulgence, worse than the brute’s, because it requires the prostration of nobler  
faculties, and a selfishness the more huge in proportion to the greatness of the  
soul which is crushed inward by it—then I will have none of it! I have had my  
dream—yes! but it was of one who should be at once my teacher and my pupil,  
my debtor and my queen—who should lean on me, and yet support me—supply  
my defects, although with lesser light, as the old moon fills up the circle of the  
new—labour with me side by side in some great work—rising with me for ever  
as I rose: and this is the base substitute! Never!’  
Whether or not this was unconsciously forced into words by the vehemence of  
his passion, or whether the old Jewess heard, or pretended to hear, a footstep  
coming up the stair, she at all events sprang instantly to her feet.  
‘Hist! Silence, girls! I hear a visitor. What mad maiden has come to beg a lovecharm of the poor old witch at this time of night? Or have the Christian  
bloodhounds tracked the old lioness of Judah to her den at last? We’ll see!’  
And she drew a dagger from her girdle, and stepped boldly to the door. As she  
went out she turned—  
‘So! my brave young Apollo! You do not admire simple woman? You must have  
something more learned and intellectual and spiritual, and so forth. I wonder  
whether Eve, when she came to Adam in the garden, brought with her a  
certificate of proficiency in the seven sciences? Well, well—like must after like.  
Perhaps we shall be able to suit you after all. Vanish, daughters of Midian!’  
The girls vanished accordingly, whispering and laughing; and Philammon found  
himself alone. Although he was somewhat soothed by the old woman’s last  
speech, yet a sense of terror, of danger, of coming temptation, kept him standing  
sternly on his feet, looking warily round the chamber, lest a fresh siren should  
emerge from behind some curtain or heap of pillows.  
On one side of the room he perceived a doorway, filled by a curtain of gauze,  
from behind which came the sound of whispering voices. His fear, growing with  
the general excitement of his mind, rose into anger as he began to suspect some  
snare; and he faced round towards the curtain, and stood like a wild beast at bay,  
ready, with uplifted arm, for all evil spirits, male or female.  
‘And he will show himself? How shall I accost him?’ whispered a well-known  
voice—could it be Hypatia’s? And then the guttural Hebrew accent of the old  
woman answered-  
‘As you spoke of him this morning—’  
‘Oh! I will tell him all, and he must—he must have mercy! But he?—so awful,  
so glorious!—’  
What the answer was, he could not hear but the next moment a sweet heavy  
scent, as of narcotic gums, filled the room—mutterings of incantations—and  
then a blaze of light, in which the curtain vanished, and disclosed to his  
astonished eyes, enveloped in a glory of luminous smoke, the hag standing by a  
tripod, and, kneeling by her, Hypatia herself, robed in pure white, glittering with  
diamonds and gold, her lips parted, her head thrown back, her arms stretched out  
in an agony of expectation.  
In an instant, before he had time to stir, she had sprung through the blaze, and  
was kneeling at his feet.  
‘Phoebus! beautiful, glorious, ever young! Hear me! only a moment! only this  
once!’  
Her drapery had caught fire from the tripod, but she did not heed it. Philammon  
instinctively clasped her in his arms, and crushed it out, as she cried—  
‘Have mercy on me! Tell me the secret! I will obey thee! I have no self—I am  
thy slave! Kill me, if thou wilt: but speak!’  
The blaze sank into a soft, warm, mellow gleam, and beyond it what appeared?  
The negro-woman, with one finger upon her lips, as with an imploring, all but  
despairing look, she held up to him her little crucifix.  
He saw it. What thoughts flashed through him, like the lightning bolt, at that  
blessed sign of infinite self-sacrifice, I say not; let those who know it judge for  
themselves. But in another instant he had spurned from him the poor deluded  
maiden, whose idolatrous ecstasies he saw instantly were not meant for himself,  
and rushed desperately across the room, looking for an outlet.  
He found a door in the darkness—a room-a window—and in another moment he  
had leapt twenty feet into the street, rolled over, bruised and bleeding, rose again  
like an Antaeus, with new strength, and darted off towards the archbishop’s  
house.  
And poor Hypatia lay half senseless on the floor, with the Jewess watching her  
bitter tears—not merely of disappointment, but of utter shame. For as  
Philammon fled she had recognised those well- known features; and the veil was  
lifted from her eyes, and the hope and the self-respect of Theon’s daughter were  
gone for ever.  
Her righteous wrath was too deep for upbraidings. Slowly she rose; returned into  
the inner room; wrapped her cloak deliberately around her; and went silently  
away, with one look at the Jewess of solemn scorn and defiance.  
‘Ah! I can afford a few sulky looks to-night!’said the old woman to herself, with  
a smile, as she picked up from the floor the prize for which she had been plotting  
so long—Raphael’s half of the black agate.  
‘I wonder whether she will miss it! Perhaps she will have no fancy for its  
company any longer, now that she has discovered what over- palpable  
archangels appear when she rubs it. But if she does try to recover it …. why—let  
her try her strength with mine—or, rather, with a Christian mob.’  
And then, drawing from her bosom the other half of the talisman, she fitted the  
two pieces together again and again, fingering them over, and poring upon them  
with tear-brimming eyes, till she had satisfied herself that the fracture still fitted  
exactly; while she murmured to herself from time to time—‘Oh, that he were  
here! Oh, that he would return now—now! It may be too late to-morrow! Stay—  
I will go and consult the teraph; it may know where he is….’  
And she departed to her incantations; while Hypatia threw herself upon her bed  
at home, and filled the chamber with a long, low wailing, as of a child in pain,  
until the dreary dawn broke on her shame and her despair. And then she rose,  
and rousing herself for one great effort, calmly prepared a last oration, in which  
she intended to bid farewell for ever to Alexandria and to the schools.  
Philammon meanwhile was striding desperately up the main street which led  
towards the Serapeium. But he was not destined to arrive there as soon as he had  
hoped to do. For ere he had gone half a mile, behold a crowd advancing towards  
him blocking up the whole street.  
The mass seemed endless. Thousands of torches flared above their heads, and  
from the heart of the procession rose a solemn chant, in which Philammon soon  
recognised a well-known Catholic hymn. He was half minded to turn up some  
by-street, and escape meeting them. But on attempting to do so, he found every  
avenue which he tried similarly blocked up by a tributary stream of people; and,  
almost ere he was aware, was entangled in the vanguard of the great column.  
‘Let me pass!‘cried he in a voice of entreaty.  
‘Pass, thou heathen?’  
In vain he protested his Christianity.  
‘Origenist, Donatist, heretic! Whither should a good Catholic be going to-night,  
save to the Caesareum?’  
‘My friends, my friends, I have no business at the Caesareum!’ cried he, in utter  
despair. ‘I am on my way to seek a private interview with the patriarch, on  
matters of importance.’  
‘Oh, liar! who pretends to be known to the patriarch, and yet is ignorant that this  
night he visits at the Caesareum the most sacred corpse of the martyr  
Ammonius!’  
‘What! Is Cyril with you?’  
‘He and all his clergy.’  
‘Better so; better in public,’said Philammon to himself; and, turning, he joined  
the crowd.  
Onward, with chant and dirge, they swept out through the Sun-gate, upon the  
harbour esplanade, and wheeled to the right along the quay, while the torchlight  
bathed in a red glare the great front of the Caesareum, and the tall obelisks  
before it, and the masts of the thousand ships which lay in the harbour on their  
left; and last, but not least, before the huge dim mass of the palace which  
bounded the esplanade in front, a long line of glittering helmets and cuirasses,  
behind a barrier of cables which stretched from the shore to the corner of the  
museum.  
There was a sudden halt; a low ominous growl; and then the mob pressed  
onward from behind, surged up almost to the barrier. The soldiers dropped the  
points of their lances, and stood firm. Again the mob recoiled; again surged  
forward. Fierce cries arose; some of the boldest stooped to pick up stones: but,  
luckily, the pavement was too firm for them….Another moment, and the whole  
soldiery of Alexandria would have been fighting for life and death against fifty  
thousand Christians….  
But Cyril had not forgotten his generalship. Reckless as that night’s events  
proved him to be about arousing the passions of his subjects, he was yet far too  
wary to risk the odium and the danger of a night attack, which, even if  
successful, would have cost the lives of hundreds. He knew well enough the  
numbers and the courage of the enemy, and the certainty that, in case of a  
collision, no quarter would be given or accepted on either side …. Beside, if a  
battle must take place—and that, of course, must happen sooner or later—it must  
not happen in his presence and under his sanction. He was in the right now, and  
Orestes in the wrong; and in the right he would keep—at least till his express to  
Byzantium should have returned, and Orestes was either proscribed or  
superseded. So looking forward to some such chance as this, the wary prelate  
had schooled his aides-de-camp, the deacons of the city, and went on his way up  
the steps of the Caesareum, knowing that they could be trusted to keep the peace  
outside.  
And they did their work well. Before a blow had been struck, or even an insult  
passed on either side, they had burst through the front rank of the mob, and by  
stout threats of excommunication, enjoined not only peace, but absolute silence  
until the sacred ceremony which was about to take place should be completed;  
and enforced their commands by marching up and down like sentries between  
the hostile ranks for the next weary two hours, till the very soldiers broke out  
into expressions of admiration, and the tribune of the cohort, who ad no great  
objection, but also no great wish, fight, paid them a high-flown compliment on  
their laudable endeavours to maintain public order, and received the somewhat  
ambiguous reply, that the ‘weapons of their warfare were not carnal, that they  
wrestled not against flesh and blood, but against principalities and powers,’ ....  
an answer which the tribune, being now somewhat sleepy, thought it best to  
leave unexplained.  
In the meanwhile, there had passed up the steps of the Temple a gorgeous line of  
priests, among whom glittered, more gorgeous than all, the stately figure of the  
pontiff. They were followed close by thousands of monks, not only from  
Alexandria and Nitria, but from all the adjoining towns and monasteries. And as  
Philammon, unable for some half hour more to force his way into the church,  
watched their endless stream, he could well believe the boast which he had so  
often heard in Alexandria, that one half of the population of Egypt was at that  
moment in ‘religious orders.’  
After the monks, the laity began to enter but even then so vast was the crowd,  
and so dense the crush upon the steps, that before he could force his way into the  
church, Cyril’s sermon had begun.  
...............  
—‘What went ye out for to see? A man clothed in soft raiment? Nay, such are in  
kings’ palaces, and in the palaces of prefects who would needs be emperors, and  
cast away the Lord’s bonds from them— of whom it is written, that He that  
sitteth in the heavens laugheth them to scorn, and taketh the wicked in their own  
snare, and maketh the devices of princes of none effect. Ay, in king’s palaces,  
and in theatres too, where the rich of this world, poor in faith, deny their  
covenant, and defile their baptismal robes that they may do honour to the  
devourers of the earth. Woe to them who think that they may partake of the cup  
of the Lord and the cup of devils. Woe to them who will praise with the same  
mouth Aphrodite the fiend, and her of whom it is written that He was born of a  
pure Virgin. Let such be excommunicate from the cup of the Lord, and from the  
congregation of the Lord, till they have purged away their sins by penance and  
by almsgiving. But for you, ye poor of this world, rich in faith, you whom the  
rich despise, hale before the judgment seats, and blaspheme that holy name  
whereby ye are called—what went ye out into the wilderness to see? A prophet?  
—Ay, and more than a prophet—a martyr! More than a prophet, more than a  
king, more than a prefect whose theatre was the sands of the desert, whose  
throne was the cross, whose crown was bestowed, not by heathen philosophers  
and daughters of Satan, deceiving men with the works of their fathers, but by  
angels and archangels; a crown of glory, the victor’s laurel, which grows for ever  
in the paradise of the highest heaven. Call him no more Ammonius, call him  
Thaumasius, wonderful! Wonderful in his poverty, wonderful in his zeal,  
wonderful in his faith, wonderful in his fortitude, wonderful in his death, most  
wonderful in the manner of that death. Oh thrice blessed, who has merited the  
honour of the cross itself! What can follow, but that one so honoured in the flesh  
should also be honoured in the life which he now lives, and that from the virtue  
of these thrice-holy limbs the leper should be cleansed, the dumb should speak,  
the very dead be raised? Yes; it were impiety to doubt it. Consecrated by the  
cross, this flesh shall not only rest in hope but work in power. Approach, and be  
healed! Approach, and see the glory of the saints, the glory of the poor.  
Approach, and learn that that which man despises, God hath highly esteemed;  
that that which man rejects, God accepts; that that which man punishes, God  
rewards. Approach, and see how God hath chosen the foolish things of this  
world to confound the wise, and the weak things of this world to confound the  
strong. Man abhors the cross: The Son of God condescended to endure it! Man  
tramples on the poor: The Son of God hath not where to lay His head. Man  
passes by the sick as useless: The Son of God chooses them to be partakers of  
His sufferings, that the glory of God may be made manifest in them. Man curses  
the publican, while he employs him to fill his coffers with the plunder of the  
poor: The Son of God calls him from the receipt of custom to be an apostle,  
higher than the kings of the earth. Man casts away the harlot like a faded flower,  
when he has tempted her to become the slave of sin for a season; and the Son of  
God calls her, the defiled, the despised, the forsaken, to Himself, accepts her  
tears, blesses her offering, and declares that her sins are forgiven, for she hath  
loved much; while to whom little is forgiven the same loveth little….’  
Philammon heard no more. With the passionate and impulsive nature of a Greek  
fanatic, he burst forward through the crowd, towards the steps which led to the  
choir, and above which, in front of the altar, stood the corpse of Ammonius,  
enclosed in a coffin of glass, beneath a gorgeous canopy; and never stopping till  
he found himself in front of Cyril’s pulpit, he threw himself upon his face upon  
the pavement, spread out his arms in the form of a cross, and lay silent and  
motionless before the feet of the multitude.  
There was a sudden whisper and rustle in the congregation: but Cyril, after a  
moment’s pause, went on—  
‘Man, in his pride and self-sufficiency, despises humiliation, and penance, and  
the broken and the contrite heart; and tells thee that only as long as thou doest  
well unto thyself will he speak well of thee: the Son of God says that he that  
humbleth himself, even as this our penitent brother, he it is who shall be exalted.  
He it is of whom it is written that his father saw him afar off, and ran to meet  
him, and bade put the best robe on him, and a ring on his hand, and shoes on his  
feet, and make merry and be glad with the choir of angels who rejoice over one  
sinner that repenteth. Arise, my son, whoso-ever thou art; and go in peace for  
this night, remembering that he who said, “My belly cleaveth unto the  
pavement,” hath also said, “Rejoice not against me, Satan, mine enemy, for when  
I fall I shall arise!”’  
A thunder-clap of applause, surely as pardonable as any an Alexandrian church  
ever heard, followed this dexterous, and yet most righteous, turn of the  
patriarch’s oratory: but Philammon raised himself slowly and fearfully to his  
knees, and blushing scarlet endured the gaze of ten thousand eyes.  
Suddenly, from beside the pulpit, an old man sprang forward, and clasped him  
round the neck. It was Arsenius.  
‘My son! my son!’sobbed he, almost aloud.  
‘Slave, as well as son, if you will!’ whispered Philammon. ‘One boon from the  
patriarch; and then home to the Laura for ever!’  
‘Oh, twice-blest night,’ rolled on above the deep rich voice of Cyril, ‘which  
beholds at once the coronation of a martyr and the conversion of a sinner; which  
increases at the same time the ranks of the church triumphant, and of the church  
militant; and pierces celestial essences with a twofold rapture of thanksgiving, as  
they welcome on high a victorious, and on earth a repentant, brother!’  
And at a sign from Cyril, Peter the Reader stepped forward, and led away, gently  
enough, the two weepers, who were welcomed as they passed by the blessings,  
and prayers, and tears even of those fierce fanatics of Nitria. Nay, Peter himself,  
as he turned to leave them together in the sacristy, held out his hand to  
Philammon.  
‘I ask your forgiveness,’said the poor boy, who plunged eagerly and with a sort  
of delight into any and every self-abasement.  
‘And I accord it,’ quoth Peter; and returned to the church, looking, and probably  
feeling, in a far more pleasant mood than usual.  
CHAPTER XXVII: THE PRODIGAL’S RETURN  
About ten o’clock the next morning, as Hypatia, worn out with sleepless sorrow,  
was trying to arrange her thoughts for the farewell lecture, her favourite maid  
announced that a messenger from Synesius waited below. A letter from  
Synesius? A gleam of hope flashed across her mind. From him, surely, might  
come something of comfort, of advice. Ah! if he only knew how sorely she was  
bested!  
‘Let him send up his letter.’  
‘He refuses to deliver it to any one but yourself. And I think,’— added the  
damsel, who had, to tell the truth, at that moment in her purse a substantial  
reason for so thinking—‘I think it might be worth your ladyship’s while to see  
him.’  
Hypatia shook her head impatiently.  
‘He seems to know you well, madam, though he refuses to tell his name: but he  
bade me put you in mind of a black agate—I cannot tell what he meant—of a  
black agate, and a spirit which was to appear when you rubbed it.’  
Hypatia turned pale as death. Was it Philammon again? She felt for the talisman  
—it was gone! She must have lost it last night in Miriam’s chamber. Now she  
saw the true purpose of the old hag’s plot—....deceived, tricked, doubly tricked!  
And what new plot was this?  
‘Tell him to leave the letter, and begone …. My father? What? Who is this? Who  
are you bringing to me at such a moment?’  
And as she spoke, Theon ushered into the chamber no other than Raphael AbenEzra, and then retired.  
He advanced slowly towards her, and falling on one knee, placed in her hand  
Synesius’s letter.  
Hypatia trembled from head to foot at the unexpected apparition …. Well; at  
least he could know nothing of last night and its disgrace. But not daring to look  
him in the face, she took the letter and opened it …. If she had hoped for comfort  
from it, her hope was not realised.  
‘Synesius to the Philosopher:  
‘Even if Fortune cannot take from me all things, yet what she can take she will.  
And yet of two things, at least, she shall not rob me—to prefer that which is best,  
and to succour the oppressed. Heaven forbid that she should overpower my  
judgment, as well as the rest of me! Therefore I do hate injustice; for that I can  
do: and my will is to stop it; but the power to do so is among the things of which  
she has bereaved me-before, too, she bereaved me of my children….  
‘“Once, in old times, Milesian men were strong.”  
And there was a time when I, too, was a comfort to my friends, and when you  
used to call me a blessing to every one except myself, as I squandered for the  
benefit of others the favour with which the great regarded me …. My hands they  
were—then …. But now I am left desolate of all: unless you have any power.  
For you and virtue I count among those good things, of which none can deprive  
me. But you always have power, and will have it, surely, now—using it as nobly  
as you do.  
‘As for Nicaeus and Philolaus, two noble youths, and kinsmen of my own, let it  
be the business of all who honour you, both private men and magistrates, to see  
that they return possessors of their just rights.’ \[Footnote: An authentic letter of  
Synesius to Hypatia.\]  
‘Of all who honour me!’said she, with a bitter sigh: and then looked up quickly  
at Raphael, as if fearful of having betrayed herself. She turned deadly pale. In his  
eyes was a look of solemn pity, which told her that he knew—not all?—surely  
not all?  
‘Have you seen the—Miriam?’ gasped she, rushing desperately at that which she  
most dreaded.  
‘Not yet. I arrived but one hour ago; and Hypatia’s welfare is still more  
important to me than my own.’  
‘My welfare? It is gone!’  
‘So much the better. I never found mine till I lost it.’  
‘What do you mean?’  
Raphael lingered, yet without withdrawing his gaze, as if he had something of  
importance to say, which he longed and yet feared to utter. At last—  
‘At least, you will confess that I am better drest than when we met last. I have  
returned, you see, like a certain demoniac of Gadara, about whom we used to  
argue, clothed—and perhaps also in my right mind …. God knows!’  
‘Raphael! are you come here to mock me? You know—you cannot have been  
here an hour without knowing—that but yesterday I dreamed of being’—and she  
drooped her eyes—‘an empress; that to-day I am ruined; to-morrow, perhaps,  
proscribed. Have you no speech for me but your old sarcasms and ambiguities?’  
Raphael stood silent and motionless.  
‘Why do you not speak? What is the meaning of this sad, earnest look, so  
different from your former self? .... You have something strange to tell me!’  
‘I have,’said he, speaking very slowly. ‘What—what would Hypatia answer if,  
after all, Aben-Ezra said like the dying Julian, “The Galilean has conquered”?’  
‘Julian never said it! It is a monkish calumny.’  
‘But I say it.’  
‘Impossible!’  
‘I say it!’  
‘As your dying speech? The true Raphael Aben-Ezra, then, lives no more!’  
‘But he may be born again.’  
‘And die to philosophy, that he may be born again into barbaric superstition! Oh  
worthy metempsychosis! Farewell, sir!’ And she rose to go.  
‘Hear me!—hear me patiently this once, noble, beloved Hypatia! One more  
sneer of yours, and I may become again the same case-hardened fiend which you  
knew me of old—to all, at least, but you. Oh, do not think me ungrateful,  
forgetful! What do I not owe to you, whose pure and lofty words alone kept  
smouldering in me the dim remembrance that there was a Right, a Truth, an  
unseen world of spirits, after whose pattern man should aspire to live?’  
She paused, and listened in wonder. What faith had she of her own? She would  
at least hear what he had found….  
‘Hypatia, I am older than you—wiser than you, if wisdom be the fruit of the tree  
of knowledge. You know but one side of the medal, Hypatia, and the fairer; I  
have seen its reverse as well as its obverse. Through every form of human  
thought, of human action, of human sin and folly, have I been wandering for  
years, and found no rest—as little in wisdom as in folly, in spiritual dreams as in  
sensual brutality. I could not rest in your Platonism—I will tell you why  
hereafter. I went on to Stoicism, Epicurism, Cynicism, Scepticism, and in that  
lowest deep I found a lower depth, when I became sceptical of Scepticism itself.’  
‘There is a lower deep still,’ thought Hypatia to herself, as she recollected last  
night’s magic; but she did not speak.  
‘Then in utter abasement, I confessed myself lower than the brutes, who had a  
law, and obeyed it, while I was my own lawless God, devil, harpy, whirlwind ….  
I needed even my own dog to awaken in me the brute consciousness of my own  
existence, or of anything without myself. I took her, the dog, for my teacher, and  
obeyed her, for she was wiser than I. And she led me back—the poor dumb beast  
— like a God-sent and God-obeying angel, to human nature, to mercy, to selfsacrifice, to belief, to worship—to pure and wedded love.’  
Hypatia started …. And in the struggle to hide her own bewilderment, answered  
almost without knowing it—  
‘Wedded love? .... Wedded love? Is that, then, the paltry bait by which Raphael  
Aben-Ezra has been tempted to desert philosophy?’  
‘Thank Heaven!’said Raphael to himself. ‘She does not care for me, then! If she  
had, pride would have kept her from that sneer.’ Yes, my dear lady,’ answered he  
aloud, ‘to desert philosophy, to search after wisdom; because wisdom itself had  
sought for me, and found me. But, indeed, I had hoped that you would have  
approved of my following your example for once in my life, and resolving, like  
you, to enter into the estate of wedlock.’  
‘Do not sneer at me!’ cried she, in her turn, looking up at him with shame and  
horror, which made him repent of uttering the words. ‘If you do not know—you  
will soon, too soon! Never mention that hateful dream to me, if you wish to have  
speech of me more!’  
A pang of remorse shot through Raphael’s heart. Who but he himself had plotted  
that evil marriage? But she gave him no opportunity of answering her, and went  
on hurriedly—  
‘Speak to me rather about yourself. What is this strange and sudden betrothal?  
What has it to do with Christianity? I had thought that it was rather by the glories  
of celibacy—gross and superstitious as their notions of it are—that the Galileans  
tempted their converts.’  
‘So had I, my dearest lady,’ answered he, as, glad to turn the subject for a  
moment, and perhaps a little nettled by her contemptuous tone, he resumed  
something of his old arch and careless manner. ‘But—there is no accounting for  
man’s agreeable inconsistencies—one morning I found myself, to my  
astonishment, seized by two bishops, and betrothed, whether I chose or not, to a  
young lady who but a few days before had been destined for a nunnery.’  
‘Two bishops?’  
‘I speak simple truth. The one was Synesius of course;—that most incoherent  
and most benevolent of busybodies chose to betray me behind my back:-but I  
will not trouble you with that part of my story. The real wonder is that the other  
episcopal match-maker was Augustine of Hippo himself!’  
‘Anything to bribe a convert,’said Hypatia contemptuously.  
‘I assure you, no. He informed me, and her also, openly and uncivilly enough,  
that he thought us very much to be pitied for so great a fall …. But as we neither  
of us seemed to have any call for the higher life of celibacy, he could not press it  
on us …. We should have trouble in the flesh. But if we married we had not  
sinned. To which I answered that my humility was quite content to sit in the very  
lowest ranks, with Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob …. He replied by an encomium on  
virginity, in which I seemed to hear again the voice of Hypatia herself.’  
‘And sneered at it inwardly, as you used to sneer at me.’  
‘Really I was in no sneering mood at that moment; and whatsoever I may have  
felt inclined to reply, he was kind enough to say for me and himself the next  
minute.’  
‘What do you mean?’  
‘He went on, to my utter astonishment, by such a eulogium on wedlock as I  
never heard from Jew or heathen, and ended by advice to young married folk so  
thoroughly excellent and to the point, that I could not help telling him, when he  
stopped; what a pity I thought it that he had not himself married, and made some  
good woman happy by putting his own recipes into practice …. And at that,  
Hypatia, I saw an expression on his face which made me wish for the moment  
that I had bitten out this impudent tongue of mine, before I so rashly touched  
some deep old wound …. That man has wept bitter tears ere now, be sure of it  
…. But he turned the conversation instantly, like a well-bred gentleman as he is,  
by saying, with the sweetest smile, that though he had made it a solemn rule  
never to be a party to making up any marriage, yet in our case Heaven had so  
plainly pointed us out for each other, etc. etc., that he could not refuse himself  
the pleasure …. and ended by a blessing as kindly as ever came from the lips of  
man.’  
‘You seem wonderfully taken with the sophist of Hippo,’said Hypatia  
impatiently; ‘and forget, perhaps, that his opinions, especially when, as you  
confess, they are utterly inconsistent with themselves, are not quite as important  
to me as they seem to have become to you.’  
‘Whether he be consistent or not about marriage,’said Raphael, somewhat  
proudly, ‘I care little. I went to him to tell me, not about the relation of the sexes,  
on which point I am probably as good a judge as he—but about God and on that  
subject he told me enough to bring me back to Alexandria, that I might undo, if  
possible, somewhat of the wrong which I have done to Hypatia.’  
‘What wrong have you done me? .... You are silent? Be sure, at least, that  
whatsoever it may be, you will not wipe it out by trying to make a proselyte of  
me!’  
‘Be not too sure of that. I have found too great a treasure not to wish to share it  
with Theon’s daughter.’  
‘A treasure?’said she, half scornfully.  
‘Yes, indeed. You recollect my last words, when we parted there below a few  
months ago?’  
Hypatia was silent. One terrible possibility at which he had hinted flashed across  
her memory for the first time since; .... but she spurned proudly from her the  
heaven-sent warning.  
‘I told you that, like Diogenes, I went forth to seek a man. Did I not promise  
you, that when I had found one you should be the first to hear of him? And I  
have found a man.’  
Hypatia waved her beautiful hand. ‘I know whom you would say …. that  
crucified one. Be it so. I want not a man, but a god.’  
‘What sort of a god, Hypatia? A god made up of our own intellectual notions, or  
rather of negations of them—of infinity and eternity, and invisibility, and  
impassibility—and why not of immortality, too, Hypatia? For I recollect we used  
to agree that it was a carnal degrading of the Supreme One to predicate of Him  
so merely human a thing as virtue.’  
Hypatia was silent.  
‘Now I have always had a sort of fancy that what we wanted, as the first  
predicate of our Absolute One, was that He was to be not merely an infinite God  
—whatever that meant, which I suspect we did not always see quite clearly—or  
an eternal one—or an omnipotent one—or even merely a one God at all; none of  
which predicates, I fear, did we understand more clearly than the first: but that he  
must be a righteous God:—or rather, as we used sometimes to say that He was to  
have no predicate—Righteousness itself. And all along, I could not help  
remembering that my old sacred Hebrew books told me of such a one; and  
feeling that they might have something to tell me which—’  
‘Which I did not tell you! And this, then, caused your air of reserve, and of sly  
superiority over the woman whom you mocked by calling her your pupil! I little  
suspected you of so truly Jewish a jealousy! Why, oh why, did you not tell me  
this?’  
‘Because I was a beast, Hypatia; and had all but forgotten what this  
righteousness was like; and was afraid to find out lest it should condemn me.  
Because I was a devil, Hypatia; and hated righteousness, and neither wished to  
see you righteous, nor God righteous either, because then you would both have  
been unlike myself. God be merciful to me a sinner!’  
She looked up in his face. The man was changed as if by miracle— and yet not  
changed. There was the same gallant consciousness of power, the same subtle  
and humorous twinkle in those strong ripe Jewish features and those glittering  
eyes; and yet every line in his face was softened, sweetened; the mask of  
sneering faineance was gone—imploring tenderness and earnestness beamed  
from his whole countenance. The chrysalis case had fallen off, and disclosed the  
butterfly within. She sat looking at him, and passed her hand across her eyes, as  
if to try whether the apparition would not vanish. He, the subtle!—he, the  
mocker!—he, the Lucian of Alexandria!—he whose depth and power had awed  
her, even in his most polluted days …. And this was the end of him….  
‘It is a freak of cowardly superstition …. Those Christians have been frightening  
him about his sins and their Tartarus.’  
She looked again into his bright, clear, fearless face, and was ashamed of her  
own calumny. And this was the end of him—of Synesius—of Augustine—of  
learned and unlearned, Goth and Roman …. The great flood would have its way,  
then …. Could she alone fight against it?  
She could! Would she submit?—She? Her will should stand firm, her reason  
free, to the last—to the death if need be …. And yet last night!—last night!  
At last she spoke, without looking up.  
‘And what if you have found a man in that crucified one? Have you found in him  
a God also?’  
‘Does Hypatia recollect Glaucon’s definition of the perfectly righteous man? ....  
How, without being guilty of one unrighteous act, he must labour his life long  
under the imputation of being utterly unrighteous, in order that his  
disinterestedness may be thoroughly tested, and by proceeding in such a course,  
arrive inevitably, as Glaucon says, not only in Athens of old, or in Judaea of old,  
but, as you yourself will agree, in Christian Alexandria at this moment, at—do  
you remember, Hypatia?—bonds, and the scourge, and lastly, at the cross itself  
…. If Plato’s idea of the righteous man be a crucified one, why may not mine  
also? If, as we both—and old Bishop Clemens, too—as good a Platonist as we,  
remember—and Augustine himself, would agree, Plato in speaking those strange  
words, spoke not of himself, but by the Spirit of God, why should not others  
have spoken by the same Spirit when they spoke the same words?’  
‘A crucified man …. Yes. But a crucified God, Raphael! I shudder at the  
blasphemy.’  
‘So do my poor dear fellow-countrymen. Are they the more righteous in their  
daily doings, Hypatia, on account of their fancied reverence for the glory of One  
who probably knows best how to preserve and manifest His own glory? But you  
assent to the definition? Take care!’said he, with one of his arch smiles, ‘I have  
been fighting with Augustine, and have become of late a terrible dialectician. Do  
you assent to it?’  
‘Of course—it is Plato’s.’  
‘But do you assent merely because it is written in the book called Plato’s, or  
because your reason tells you that it is true? .... You will not tell me. Tell me this,  
then, at least. Is not the perfectly righteous man the highest specimen of men?’  
‘Surely,’said she half carelessly: but not unwilling, like a philosopher and a  
Greek, as a matter of course, to embark in anything like a word-battle, and to  
shut out sadder thoughts for a moment.  
‘Then must not the Autanthropos, the archetypal and ideal man, who is more  
perfect than any individual specimen, be perfectly righteous also?’  
‘Yes.’  
‘Suppose, then, for the sake of one of those pleasant old games of ours, an  
argument, that he wished to manifest his righteousness to the world …. The only  
method for him, according to Plato, would be Glaucon’s, of calumny and  
persecution, the scourge and the cross?’  
‘What words are these, Raphael? Material scourges and crosses for an eternal  
and spiritual idea?’  
‘Did you ever yet, Hypatia, consider at leisure what the archetype of man might  
be like?’  
Hypatia started, as at a new thought, and confessed—as every Neo— Platonist  
would have done—that she had never done so.  
‘And yet our master, Plato, bade us believe that there was a substantial archetype  
of each thing, from a flower to a nation, eternal in the heavens. Perhaps we have  
not been faithful Platonists enough heretofore, my dearest tutor. Perhaps, being  
philosophers, and somewhat of Pharisees to boot, we began all our lucubrations  
as we did our prayers, by thanking God that we were not as other men were; and  
so misread another passage in the Republic, which we used in pleasant old days  
to be fond of quoting.’  
‘What was that?’ asked Hypatia, who became more and more interested every  
moment.  
‘That philosophers were men.’  
‘Are you mocking me? Plato defines the philosopher as the man who seeks after  
the objects of knowledge, while others seek after those of opinion.’  
‘And most truly. But what if, in our eagerness to assert that wherein the  
philosopher differed from other men, we had overlooked that in which he  
resembled other men; and so forgot that, after all, man was a genus whereof the  
philosopher was only a species?’  
Hypatia sighed.  
‘Do you not think, then, that as the greater contains the less, and the archetype of  
the genus that of the species, we should have been wiser if we had speculated a  
little more on the archetype of man as man, before we meddled with a part of  
that archetype,—the archetype of the philosopher? .... Certainly it would have  
been the easier course, for there are more men than philosophers, Hypatia; and  
every man is a real man, and a fair subject for examination, while every  
philosopher is not a real philosopher—our friends the Academics, for instance,  
and even a Neo-Platonist or two whom we know? You seem impatient. Shall I  
cease?’  
‘You mistook the cause of my impatience,’ answered she, looking up at him with  
her great sad eyes. ‘Go on.’  
‘Now—for I am going to be terribly scholastic—is it not the very definition of  
man, that he is, alone of all known things, a spirit temporarily united to an  
animal body?’  
‘Enchanted in it, as in a dungeon, rather,’said she sighing.  
‘Be it so if you will. But—must we not say that the archetype—the very man—  
that if he is the archetype, he too will be, or must have been, once at least,  
temporarily enchanted into an animal body? .... You are silent. I will not press  
you …. Only ask you to consider at your leisure whether Plato may not justify  
somewhat from the charge of absurdity the fisherman of Galilee, where he said  
that He in whose image man is made was made flesh, and dwelt with him bodily  
there by the lake-side at Tiberias, and that he beheld His Glory, the glory as of  
the only-begotten of the Father.’  
‘That last question is a very different one. God made flesh! My reason revolts at  
it.’  
‘Old Homer’s reason did not.’  
Hypatia started, for she recollected her yesterday’s cravings after those old,  
palpable, and human deities. And—‘Go on,’she cried eagerly.  
‘Tell me, then—This archetype of man, if it exists anywhere, it must exist  
eternally in the mind of God? At least, Plato would have so said?’  
‘Yes.’  
‘And derive its existence immediately from Him?’  
‘Yes.’  
‘But a man is one willing person, unlike to all others.’  
‘Yes.’  
‘Then this archetype must be such.’  
‘I suppose so.’  
‘But possessing the faculties and properties of all men in their highest  
perfection.’  
‘Of course.’  
‘How sweetly and obediently my late teacher becomes my pupil!’  
Hypatia looked at him with her eyes full of tears.  
‘I never taught you anything, Raphael.’  
‘You taught me most, beloved lady, when you least thought of it. But tell me one  
thing more. Is it not the property of every man to be a son? For you can conceive  
of a man as not being a father, but not as not being a son.’  
‘Be it so.’  
‘Then this archetype must be a son also.’  
‘Whose son, Raphael?’  
‘Why not of “Zeus, father of gods and men”? For we agreed that it— we will  
call it he, now, having agreed that it is a person—could owe its existence to none  
but God Himself.’  
‘And what then?’said Hypatia, fixing those glorious eyes full on his face, in an  
agony of doubt, but yet, as Raphael declared to his dying day, of hope and joy.  
‘Well, Hypatia, and must not a son be of the same species as his father?  
“Eagles,” says the poet, “do not beget doves.” Is the word son anything but an  
empty and false metaphor, unless the son be the perfect and equal likeness of his  
father?’  
‘Heroes beget sons worse than themselves, says the poet.’  
‘We are not talking now of men as they are, whom Homer’s Zeus calls the most  
wretched of all the beasts of the field; we are talking— are we not?—of a perfect  
and archetypal Son, and a perfect and archetypal Father, in a perfect and eternal  
world, wherein is neither growth, decay, nor change; and of a perfect and  
archetypal generation, of which the only definition can be, that like begets its  
perfect like? .... You are silent. Be so, Hypatia …. We have gone up too far into  
the abysses….  
And so they both were silent for a while. And Raphael thought solemn thoughts  
about Victoria, and about ancient signs of Isaiah’s, which were to him none the  
less prophecies concerning The Man whom he had found, because he prayed and  
trusted that the same signs might be repeated to himself, and a child given to him  
also, as a token that, in spite of all his baseness, ‘God was with him.’  
But he was a Jew, and a man: Hypatia was a Greek, and a woman—and for that  
matter, so were the men of her school. To her, the relations and duties of  
common humanity shone with none of the awful and divine meaning which they  
did in the eyes of the converted Jew, awakened for the first time in his life to  
know the meaning of his own scriptures, and become an Israelite indeed. And  
Raphael’s dialectic, too, though it might silence her, could not convince her. Her  
creed, like those of her fellow-philosophers, was one of the fancy and the  
religious sentiment, rather than of the reason and the moral sense. All the  
brilliant cloud-world in which she had revelled for years,—cosmogonies,  
emanations, affinities, symbolisms, hierarchies, abysses, eternities, and the rest  
of it— though she could not rest in them, not even believe in, them—though  
they had vanished into thin air at her most utter need,—yet—they were too  
pretty to be lost sight of for ever; and, struggling against the growing conviction  
of her reason, she answered at last—  
‘And you would have me give up, as you seem to have done, the sublime, the  
beautiful, the heavenly, for a dry and barren chain of dialectic—in which, for  
aught I know,—for after all, Raphael, I cannot cope with you—I am a woman—  
a weak woman!’  
And she covered her face with her hands.  
‘For aught you know, what?’ asked Raphael gently.  
‘You may have made the worse appear the better reason.’  
‘So said Aristophanes of Socrates. But hear me once more, beloved Hypatia.  
You refuse to give up the beautiful, the sublime, the heavenly? What if Raphael  
Aben-Ezra, at least, had never found them till now? Recollect what I said just  
now—what if our old Beautiful, and Sublime, and Heavenly, had been the  
sheerest materialism, notions spun by our own brains out of the impressions of  
pleasant things, and high things, and low things, and awful things, which we had  
seen with our bodily eyes? What if I had discovered that the spiritual is not the  
intellectual, but the moral; and that the spiritual world is not, as we used to make  
it, a world of our own intellectual abstractions, or of our own physical emotions,  
religious or other, but a world of righteous or unrighteous persons? What if I had  
discovered that one law of the spiritual world, in which all others were  
contained, was righteousness; and that disharmony with that law, which we  
called unspirituality, was not being vulgar, or clumsy, or ill-taught, or  
unimaginative, or dull, but simply being unrighteous? What if I had discovered  
that righteousness, and it alone, was the beautiful righteousness, the sublime, the  
heavenly, the Godlike—ay, God Himself? And what if it had dawned on me, as  
by a great sunrise, what that righteousness was like? What if I had seen a human  
being, a woman, too, a young weak girl, showing forth the glory and the beauty  
of God? Showing me that the beautiful was to mingle unshrinking, for duty’s  
sake, with all that is most foul and loathsome; that the sublime was to stoop to  
the most menial offices, the most outwardly-degrading self-denials; that to be  
heavenly was to know that the commonest relations, the most vulgar duties, of  
earth, were God’s commands, and only to be performed aright by the help of the  
same spirit by which He rules the Universe; that righteousness was to love, to  
help, to suffer for—if need be, to die for—those who, in themselves, seem fitted  
to arouse no feelings except indignation and disgust? What if, for the first time, I  
trust not for the last time, in my life, I saw this vision; and at the sight of it my  
eyes were opened, and I knew it for the likeness and the glory of God? What if I,  
a Platonist, like John of Galilee, and Paul of Tarsus, yet, like them, a Hebrew of  
the Hebrews, had confessed to myself—If the creature can love thus, how much  
more its archetype? If weak woman can endure thus, how much more a Son of  
God? If for the good of others, man has strength to sacrifice himself in part, God  
will have strength to sacrifice Himself utterly. If He has not done it, He will do  
it: or He will be less beautiful, less sublime, less heavenly, less righteous than  
my poor conception of Him, ay, than this weak playful girl! Why should I not  
believe those who tell me that He has done it already? What if their evidence be,  
after all, only probability? I do not want mathematical demonstration to prove to  
me that when a child was in danger his father saved him—neither do I here. My  
reason, my heart, every faculty of me, except this stupid sensuous experience,  
which I find deceiving me every moment, which cannot even prove to me my  
own existence, accepts that story of Calvary as the most natural, most probable,  
most necessary of earthly events, assuming only that God is a righteous Person,  
and not some dream of an all- pervading necessary spirit-nonsense which, in its  
very terms, confesses its own materialism.’  
Hypatia answered with a forced smile.  
‘Raphael Aben-Ezra has deserted the method of the severe dialectician for that  
of the eloquent lover.’  
‘Not altogether,’said he, smiling in return. ‘For suppose that I had said to  
myself, We Platonists agree that the sight of God is the highest good.’  
Hypatia once more shuddered at last night’s recollections.  
‘And if He be righteous, and righteousness be—as I know it to be— identical  
with love, then He will desire that highest good for men far more than they can  
desire it for themselves …. Then He will desire to show Himself and His own  
righteousness to them …. Will you make answer, dearest Hypatia, or shall I?  
....or does your silence give consent? At least let me go on to say this, that if God  
do desire to show His righteousness to men, His only perfect method, according  
to Plato, will be that of calumny, persecution, the scourge, and the cross, that so  
He, like Glaucon’s righteous man, may remain for ever free from any suspicion  
of selfish interest, or weakness of endurance …. Am I deserting the dialectic  
method now, Hypatia? .... You are still silent? You will not hear me, I see …. At  
some future day, the philosopher may condescend to lend a kinder ear to the  
words of her greatest debtor …. Or, rather, she may condescend to hear, in her  
own heart, the voice of that Archetypal Man, who has been loving her, guiding  
her, heaping her with every perfection of body and of mind, inspiring her with all  
pure and noble longings, and only asks of her to listen to her own reason, her  
own philosophy, when they proclaim Him as the giver of them, and to impart  
them freely and humbly, as He has imparted them to her, to the poor, and the  
brutish, and the sinful, whom He loves as well as He loves her …. Farewell!’  
‘Stay!’said she, springing up: ‘whither are you going?’  
‘To do a little good before I die, having done much evil. To farm, plant, and  
build, and rescue a little corner of Ormuzd’s earth, as the Persians would say, out  
of the dominion of Ahriman. To fight Ausurian robbers, feed Thracian  
mercenaries, save a few widows from starvation, and a few orphans from slavery  
…. Perhaps to leave behind me a son of David’s line, who will be a better Jew,  
because a better Christian, than his father …. We shall have trouble in the flesh,  
Augustine tells us …. But, as I answered him, I really have had so little thereof  
yet, that my fair share may probably be rather a useful education than otherwise.  
Farewell!’  
‘Stay!’said she. ‘Come again And her …. Bring her …. I must see her! She  
must be noble, indeed, to be worthy of you.’  
‘She is many a hundred miles away.’  
‘Ah! Perhaps she might have taught something to me—me, the philosopher! You  
need not have feared me …. I have no heart to make converts now …. Oh,  
Raphael Aben-Ezra, why break the bruised reed? My plans are scattered to the  
winds, my pupils worthless, my fair name tarnished, my conscience heavy with  
the thought of my own cruelty …. If you do not know all, you will know it but  
too soon …. My last hope, Synesius, implores for himself the hope which I need  
from him….And, over and above it all …. You! .... Et tu, Brute! Why not fold  
my mantle round me, like Julius of old, and die!’  
Raphael stood looking sadly at her, as her whole face sank into utter prostration.  
...............  
‘Yes—come …. The Galilaean …. If He conquers strong men, can the weak  
maid resist Him? Come soon …. This afternoon …. My heart is breaking fast.’  
‘At the eighth hour this afternoon?’  
‘Yes …. At noon I lecture …. take my farewell, rather, for ever of the  
schools….Gods! What have I to say? .... And tell me about Him of Nazareth.  
Farewell!’  
‘Farewell, beloved lady! At the ninth hour, you shall hear of Him of Nazareth.’  
Why did his own words sound to him strangely pregnant, all but ominous? He  
almost fancied that not he, but some third person had spoken them. He kissed  
Hypatia’s hand, it was as cold as ice; and his heart, too, in spite of all his bliss,  
felt cold and heavy, as he left the room.  
As he went down the steps into the street, a young man sprang from behind one  
of the pillars, and seized his arm.  
‘Aha! my young Coryphaeus of pious plunderers! What do you want with me?’  
Philammon, for it was he, looked at him an instant, and recognised him.  
‘Save her! for the love of God, save her!’  
‘Whom?’  
‘Hypatia!’  
‘How long has her salvation been important to you, my good friend?’  
‘For God’s sake,’said Philammon, ‘go back and warn her! She will hear you—  
you are rich—you used to be her friend—I know you—I have heard of you ….  
Oh, if you ever cared for her—if you ever felt for her a thousandth part of what I  
feel—go in and warn her not to stir from home!’  
‘I must hear more of this,’said Raphael, who saw that the boy was in earnest.  
‘Come in with me, and speak to her father.’  
‘No! not in that house! Never in that house again! Do not ask me why: but go  
yourself. She will not hear me. Did you—did you prevent her from listening?’  
‘What do you mean?’  
‘I have been here—ages! I sent a note in by her maid, and she returned no  
answer.’  
Raphael recollected then, for the first time, a note which he had seen brought to  
her during the conversation.  
‘I saw her receive a note. She tossed it away. Tell me your story. If there is  
reason in it, I will bear your message myself. Of what is she to be warned?’  
‘Of a plot—I know that there is a plot—against her among the monks and  
Parabolani. As I lay in bed this morning in Arsenius’s room— they thought I  
was asleep—’  
‘Arsenius? Has that venerable fanatic, then, gone the way of all monastic flesh,  
and turned persecutor?’  
‘God forbid! I heard him beseeching Peter the Reader to refrain from something,  
I cannot tell what; but I caught her name …. I heard Peter say, “She that  
hindereth will hinder till she be taken out of the way.” And when he went out  
into the passage I heard him say to another, “That thou doest, do quickly! ....”’  
‘These are slender grounds, my friend.’  
‘Ah, you do not know of what those men are capable!’  
‘Do I not? Where did you and I meet last?’  
Philammon blushed and burst forth again. ‘That was enough for me. I know the  
hatred which they bear her, the crimes which they attribute to her. Her house  
would have been attacked last night had it not been for Cyril …. And I knew  
Peter’s tone. He spoke too gently and softly not to mean something devilish. I  
watched all the morning for an opportunity of escape, and here I am!—Will you  
take my message, or see her—’  
‘What?’  
‘God only knows, and the devil whom they worship instead of God.’  
Raphael hurried back into the house—‘Could he see Hypatia?’ She had shut  
herself up in her private room, strictly commanding that no visitor should be  
admitted …. ‘Where was Theon, then?’ He had gone out by the canal gate half  
an hour before, with a bundle of mathematical papers under his arm, no one  
knew whither …. ‘Imbecile old idiot!’ and he hastily wrote on his tablet-  
‘Do not despise the young monk’s warning. I believe him to speak the truth. As  
you love yourself and your father, Hypatia, stir not out to-day.’  
He bribed a maid to take the message upstairs; and passed his time in the hall in  
warning the servants. But they would not believe him. It was true the shops were  
shut in some quarters, and the Museum gardens empty; people were a little  
frightened after yesterday. But Cyril, they had heard for certain, had threatened  
excommunication only last night to any Christian who broke the peace; and there  
had not been a monk to be seen in the streets the whole morning. And as for any  
harm happening to their mistress— impossible! ‘The very wild beasts would not  
tear her,’said the huge negro porter, ‘if she was thrown into the amphitheatre.’  
—Whereat a maid boxed his ears for talking of such a thing; and then, by way of  
mending it, declared that she knew for certain that her mistress could turn aside  
the lightning, and call legions of spirits to fight for her with a nod …. What was  
to be done with such idolaters? And yet who could help liking them the better  
for it?  
At last the answer came down, in the old graceful, studied, self- conscious  
handwriting.  
‘It is a strange way of persuading me to your new faith, to bid me beware, on the  
very first day of your preaching, of the wickedness of those who believe it. I  
thank you: but your affection for me makes you timorous. I dread nothing. They  
will not dare. Did they dare now, they would have dared long ago. As for that  
youth—to obey or to believe his word, even to seem aware of his existence, were  
shame to me henceforth. Because he is insolent enough to warn me therefore I  
will go. Fear not for me. You would not wish me, for the first time in my life, to  
fear for myself. I must follow my destiny. I must speak the words which I have  
to speak. Above all, I must let no Christian say, that the philosopher dared less  
than the fanatic. If my Gods are Gods, then will they protect me: and if not, let  
your God prove His rule as seems to Him good.’  
Raphael tore the letter to fragments …. The guards, at least, were not gone mad  
like the rest of the world. It wanted half an hour of the time of her lecture. In the  
interval he might summon force enough to crush all Alexandria. And turning  
suddenly, he darted out of the room and out of the house.  
‘Quem Deus vult perdere-!’ cried he to Philammon, with a gesture of grief. ‘Stay  
here and stop her!—make a last appeal! Drag the horses’ heads down, if you can!  
I will be back in ten minutes.’ And he ran off for the nearest gate of the Museum  
gardens.  
On the other side of the gardens lay the courtyard of the palace. There were gates  
in plenty communicating between them. If he could but see Orestes, even alarm  
the guard in time! ....  
And he hurried through the walks and alcoves, now deserted by the fearful  
citizens, to the nearest gate. It was fast, and barricaded firmly on the outside.  
Terrified, he ran on to the next; it was barred also. He saw the reason in a  
moment, and maddened as he saw it. The guards, careless about the Museum, or  
reasonably fearing no danger from the Alexandrian populace to the glory and  
wonder of their city, or perhaps wishing wisely enough to concentrate their  
forces in the narrowest space, had contented themselves with cutting off all  
communication with the gardens, and so converting the lofty partition-wall into  
the outer enceinte of their marble citadel. At all events, the doors leading from  
the Museum itself might be open. He knew them every one, every hall, passage,  
statue, picture, almost every book in that vast treasure-house of ancient  
civilisation. He found an entrance; hurried through well-known corridors to a  
postern through which he and Orestes had lounged a hundred times, their lips  
full of bad words, their hearts of worse thoughts, gathered in those records of the  
fair wickedness of old …. It was fast. He beat upon it but no one answered. He  
rushed on and tried another. No one answered there. Another—still silence and  
despair! .... He rushed upstairs, hoping that from the windows above he might be  
able to call to the guard. The prudent soldiers had locked and barricaded the  
entrances to the upper floors of the whole right wing, lest the palace court should  
be commanded from thence. Whither now? Back—and whither then? Back,  
round endless galleries, vaulted halls, staircases, doorways, some fast, some  
open, up and down, trying this way and that, losing himself at whiles in that  
enormous silent labyrinth. And his breath failed him, his throat was parched, his  
face burned as with the simoom wind, his legs were trembling under him. His  
presence of mind, usually so perfect, failed him utterly. He was baffled, netted;  
there was a spell upon him. Was it a dream? Was it all one of those hideous  
nightmares of endless pillars beyond pillars, stairs above stairs, rooms within  
rooms, changing, shifting, lengthening out for ever and for ever before the  
dreamer, narrowing, closing in on him, choking him? Was it a dream? Was he  
doomed to wander for ever and for ever in some palace of the dead, to expiate  
the sin which he had learnt and done therein? His brain, for the first time in his  
life, began to reel. He could recollect nothing but that something dreadful was to  
happen—and that he had to prevent it, and could not …. Where was he now? In  
a little by-chamber …. He had talked with her there a hundred times, looking out  
over the Pharos and the blue Mediterranean …. What was that roar below? A sea  
of weltering yelling heads, thousands on thousands, down to the very beach; and  
from their innumerable throats one mighty war-cry— ‘God, and the mother of  
God!’ Cyril’s hounds were loose …. He reeled from the window, and darted  
frantically away again …. whither, he knew not, and never knew until his dying  
day.  
And Philammon? .... Sufficient for the chapter, as for the day, is the evil thereof.  
CHAPTER XXVIII: WOMAN’S LOVE  
Pelagia had passed that night alone in sleepless sorrow, which was not  
diminished by her finding herself the next morning palpably a prisoner in her  
own house. Her girls told her that they had orders —they would not say from  
whom—to prevent her leaving her own apartments. And though some of them  
made the announcement with sighs and tears of condolence, yet more than one,  
she could see, was well inclined to make her feel that her power was over, and  
that there were others besides herself who might aspire to the honour of reigning  
favourite.  
What matter to her? Whispers, sneers, and saucy answers fell on her ear  
unheeded. She had one idol, and she had lost it; one power, and it had failed her.  
In the heaven above, and in the earth beneath, was neither peace, nor help, nor  
hope; nothing but black, blank, stupid terror and despair. The little weak infant  
soul, which had just awakened in her, had been crushed and stunned in its very  
birth-hour; and instinctively she crept away to the roof of the tower where her  
apartments were, to sit and weep alone.  
There she sat, hour after hour, beneath the shade of the large windsail, which  
served in all Alexandrian houses the double purpose of a shelter from the sun  
and a ventilator for the rooms below; and her eye roved carelessly over that  
endless sea of roofs and towers, and masts, and glittering canals, and gliding  
boats; but she saw none of them—nothing but one beloved face, lost, lost for  
ever.  
At last a low whistle roused her from her dream. She looked up. Across the  
narrow lane, from one of the embrasures of the opposite house-parapet bright  
eyes were peering at her. She moved angrily to escape them.  
The whistle was repeated, and a head rose cautiously above the parapet …. It  
was Miriam’s. Casting a careful look around, Pelagia went forward. What could  
the old woman want with her?  
Miriam made interrogative signs, which Pelagia understood as asking her  
whether she was alone; and the moment that an answer in the negative was  
returned, Miriam rose, tossed over to her feet a letter weighted with a pebble,  
and then vanished again.  
‘I have watched here all day! They refused me admittance below. Beware of  
Wulf, of every one. Do not stir from your chamber. There is a plot to carry you  
off to-night, and give you up to your brother the monk; you are betrayed; be  
brave!’  
Pelagia read it with blanching cheek and staring eyes; and took, at least, the last  
part of Miriam’s advice. For walking down the stair, she passed proudly through  
her own rooms, and commanding back the girls who would have stayed her, with  
a voice and gesture at which they quailed, went straight down, the letter in her  
hand, to the apartment where the Amal usually spent his mid-day hours.  
As she approached the door, she heard loud voices within …. His!—yes; but  
Wulf’s also. Her heart failed her, and she stopped a moment to listen …. She  
heard Hypatia’s name; and mad with curiosity, crouched down at the lock, and  
hearkened to every word.  
‘She will not accept me, Wulf.’  
‘If she will not, she shall go farther and fare worse. Besides, I tell you, she is  
hard run. It is her last chance, and she will jump at it. The Christians are mad  
with her; if a storm blows up, her life is not worth—that!’  
‘It is a pity that we have not brought her hither already.’  
‘It is; but we could not. We must not break with Orestes till the palace is in our  
hands.’  
‘And will it ever be in our hands, friend?’  
‘Certain. We were round at every picquet last night, and the very notion of an  
Amal’s heading them made them so eager, that we had to bribe them to be quiet  
rather than to rise.’  
‘Odin! I wish I were among them now!’  
‘Wait till the city rises. If the day pass over without a riot, I know nothing. The  
treasure is all on board, is it not?’  
‘Yes, and the galleys ready. I have been working like a horse at them all the  
morning, as you would let me do nothing else. And Goderic will not be back  
from the palace, you say, till nightfall!’  
‘If we are attacked first, we are to throw up a fire signal to him, and he is to  
come off hither with what Goths he can muster. If the palace is attacked first, he  
is to give us the signal, and we are to pack up and row round thither. And in the  
meanwhile he is to make that hound of a Greek prefect as drunk as he can.’  
‘The Greek will see him under the table. He has drugs, I know, as all these  
Roman rascals have, to sober him when he likes; and then he sets to work and  
drinks again. Send off old Smid, and let him beat the armourer if he can.’  
‘A very good thought!’said Wulf, and came out instantly for the purpose of  
putting it in practice.  
Pelagia had just time to retreat into an adjoining doorway: but she had heard  
enough; and as Wulf passed, she sprang to him and caught him by the arm.  
‘Oh, come in hither! Speak to me one moment; for mercy’s sake speak to me!’  
and she drew him, half against his will, into the chamber, and throwing herself at  
his feet, broke out into a childlike wail.  
Wulf stood silent, utterly discomfited by this unexpected submission, where he  
had expected petulant and artful resistance. He almost felt guilty and ashamed,  
as he looked down into that beautiful imploring face, convulsed with simple  
sorrow, as of a child for a broken toy. .... At last she spoke.  
‘Oh, what have I done-what have I done? Why must you take him from me?  
What have I done but love him, honour him, worship him? I know you love him;  
and I love you for it.—I do indeed! But you—what is your love to mine? Oh, I  
would die for him—be torn in pieces for him—now, this moment! ....  
Wulf was silent.  
‘What have I done but love him? What could I wish but to make him happy? I  
was rich enough, praised, and petted; .... and then he came, .... glorious as he is,  
like a god among men—among apes rather—and I worshipped him: was I wrong  
in that? I gave up all for him: was I wrong in that? I gave him myself: what  
could I do more? He condescended to like me—he the hero! Could I help  
submitting? I loved him: could I help loving him? Did I wrong him in that?  
Cruel, cruel Wulf! ....’  
Wulf was forced to be stern, or he would have melted at once.  
‘And what was your love worth to him? What has it done for him? It has made  
him a sot, an idler, a laughing-stock to these Greek dogs, when he might have  
been their conqueror, their king. Foolish woman, who cannot see that your love  
has been his bane, his ruin! He, who ought by now to have been sitting upon the  
throne of the Ptolemies, the lord of all south of the Mediterranean—as he shall  
be still!’  
Pelagia looked tip at him wide-eyed, as if her mind was taking in slowly some  
vast new thought, under the weight of which it reeled already. Then she rose  
slowly.  
‘And he might be Emperor of Africa.’  
‘And be shall be; but not—’  
‘Not with me!’she almost shrieked. ‘No! not with wretched, ignorant, polluted  
me! I see—oh God, I see it all! And this is why you want him to marry her—her  
—’  
She could not utter the dreaded name.  
Wulf could not trust himself to speak; but he bowed his head in acquiescence.  
...............  
‘Yes—I will go—up into the desert—with Philammon—and you shall never hear  
of me again. And I will be a nun, and pray for him, that he may be a great king,  
and conquer all the world. You will tell him why I went away, will you not? Yes,  
I will go,—now, at once—’  
She turned away hurriedly, as if to act upon her promise, and then she sprang  
again to Wulf with a sudden shudder.  
‘I cannot, Wulf!—I cannot leave him! I shall go mad if I do! Do not be angry;—I  
will promise anything—take any oath you like, if you will only let me stay here.  
Only as a slave—as anything—if I may but look at him sometimes. No—not  
even that—but to be tinder the same roof with him, only—Oh, let me be but a  
slave in the kitchen! I will make over all I have to him—to you—to any one!  
And you shall tell him that I am gone—dead, if you will.—Only let me stay!  
And I will wear rags, and grind in the mill …. Even that will be delicious, to  
know that he is eating the bread which I have made! And if I ever dare speak to  
him—even to come near hint—let the steward hang me up by the wrists, and  
whip me, like the slave which I deserve to be! ....And then shall I soon grow old  
and ugly with grief, and—there will be no more danger then, dear Wulf, will  
there, from this accursed face of mine? Only promise me that, and— There he is  
calling you! Don’t let him come in and see me!—I cannot bear it! Go to him,  
quick, and tell him all.—No, don’t tell him yet….’  
And she sank down again on the floor, as Wulf went out murmuring to himself—  
‘Poor child! poor child! well for thee this clay if thou wert dead, and at the  
bottom of Hela!’  
And Pelagia heard what he said.  
Gradually, amid sobs and tears, and stormy confusion of impossible hopes and  
projects, those words took root in her mind, and spread, till they filled her whole  
heart and brain.  
‘Well for me if I were dead?’  
And she rose slowly.  
‘Well for me if I were dead? And why not? Then it would indeed be all settled.  
There would be no more danger from poor little Pelagia then….’  
She went slowly, firmly, proudly, into the well-known chamber …. She threw  
herself upon the bed, and covered the pillow with kisses. Her eye fell on the  
Amal’s sword, which hung across the bed’s-head, after the custom of Gothic  
warriors. She seized it, and took it down, shuddering.  
‘Yes! .... Let it be with this, if it must be. And it must be. I cannot bear it!  
Anything but shame! To have fancied all my life— vain fool that I was!—that  
every one loved and admired me, and to find that they were despising me, hating  
me, all along! Those students at the lecture-room door told me I was despised.  
The old monk told me so—Fool that I was! I forgot it next day!—For he—he  
loved me still!—All—how could I believe them, till his own lips had said it? ....  
Intolerable! .... And yet women as bad as I am have been honoured—when they  
were dead. What was that song which I used to sing about Epicharis, who hung  
herself in the litter, and Leaina, who bit out her tongue, lest the torture should  
drive them to betray their lovers? There used to be a statue of Leaina, they say, at  
Athens,—a lioness without a tongue …. And whenever I sang the song, the  
theatre used to rise, and shout, and call them noble and blessed …. I never could  
tell why then; but I know now!—I know now! Perhaps they may call me noble,  
after all. At least, they may say “She was a—a--but she dare die for the man she  
loved!” .... Ay, but God despises me too, and elates me. He will send me to  
eternal fire. Philammon said so—though he was my brother. The old monk said  
so—though he wept as he said it …. The flames of hell for ever! Oh, not for  
ever! Great, dreadful God! Not for ever! Indeed, I did not know! No one taught  
me about right and wrong, and I never knew that I had been baptized—Indeed, I  
never knew! And it was so pleasant—so pleasant to be happy, and praised, and  
loved, and to see happy faces round me. How could I help it? The birds there  
who are singing in the darling, beloved court—they do what they like, and Thou  
art not angry with them for being happy! And Thou wilt not be more cruel to me  
than to them, great God—for what did I know more than they? Thou hast made  
the beautiful sunshine, and the pleasant, pleasant world, and the flowers, and the  
birds—Thou wilt not send me to burn for ever and ever? Will not a hundred  
years be punishment enough-or a thousand? Oh God! is not this punishment  
enough already,—to have to leave him, just as just as I am beginning to long to  
be good, and to be worthy of him? .... Oh, have mercy—mercy—mercy—and let  
me go after I have been punished enough! Why may I not turn into a bird, or  
even a worm, and come back again out of that horrible place, to see the sun  
shine, and the flowers grow once more? Oh, am I not punishing myself already?  
Will not this help to atone? .... Yes—I will die!—and perhaps so God may pity  
me!’  
And with trembling hands she drew the sword from its sheath and covered the  
blade with kisses.  
‘Yes—on this sword—with which he won his battles. That is right— his to the  
last! How keen and cold it looks! Will it be very painful? .... No—I will not try  
the point, or my heart might fail me. I will fall on it at once: let it hurt me as it  
may, it will be too late to draw back then. And after all it is his sword—It will  
not have the heart to torture me much. And yet he struck me himself this  
morning!’  
And at that thought, a long wild cry of misery broke from her lips, and rang  
through the house. Hurriedly she fastened the sword upright to the foot of the  
bed, and tore open her tunic …. ‘Here —under this widowed bosom, where his  
head will never lie again! There are footsteps in the passage! Quick, Pelagia!  
Now—’  
And she threw up her arms wildly, in act to fall….  
‘It is his step! And he will find me, and never know that it is for him I die!’  
The Amal tried the door. It was fast. With a single blow he burst it open, and  
demanded—  
‘What was that shriek? What is the meaning of this? Pelagia!’  
Pelagia, like a child caught playing with a forbidden toy, hid her face in her  
hands and cowered down.  
‘What is it?’ cried he, lifting her.  
But she burst from his arms.  
‘No, no!—never more! I am not worthy of you! Let me die, wretch that I am! I  
can only drag you down. You must be a king. You must marry her—the wise  
woman!’  
‘Hypatia! She is dead!’  
‘Dead?’shrieked Pelagia.  
‘Murdered, an hour ago, by those Christian devils.’  
Pelagia put her hands over her eyes, and burst into tears. Were they of pity or of  
joy? ....She did not ask herself; and we will not ask her.  
‘Where is my sword? Soul of Odin! Why is it fastened here?’  
‘I was going to—Do not be angry! .... They told me that I had better die, and—  
The Amal stood thunderstruck for a moment.  
‘Oh, do not strike me again! Send me to the mill. Kill me now with your own  
hand! Anything but another blow!’  
‘A blow?—Noble woman!‘cried the Amal, clasping her in his arms.  
The storm was past; and Pelagia had been nestling to that beloved heart, cooing  
like a happy dove, for many a minute before the Amal aroused himself and  
her….  
‘Now We have not a moment to lose. Up to the tower, where you will be safe;  
and then to show these curs what comes of snarling round the wild wolves’ den!’  
CHAPTER XXIX: NEMESIS  
And was the Amal’s news true, then?  
Philammon saw Raphael rush across the street into the Museum gardens. His last  
words had been a command to stay where he was; and the boy obeyed him. The  
black porter who let Raphael out told him somewhat insolently, that his mistress  
would see no one, and receive no messages: but he had made up his mind:  
complained of the sun, quietly ensconced himself behind a buttress, and sat  
coiled up on the pavement, ready for a desperate spring. The slave stared at him:  
but he was accustomed to the vagaries of philosophers; and thanking the gods  
that he was not born in that station of life, retired to his porter’s cell, and forgot  
the whole matter.  
There Philammon awaited a full half-hour. It seemed to him hours, days, years.  
And yet Raphael did not return: and yet no guards appeared. Was the strange Jew  
a traitor? Impossible!—his face had shown a desperate earnestness of terror as  
intense as Philammon’s own …. Yet why did he not return?  
Perhaps he had found out that the streets were clear; their mutual fears  
groundless …. What meant that black knot of men some two hundred yards off,  
hanging about the mouth of the side street, just opposite the door which led to  
her lecture-room? He moved to watch them: they had vanished. He lay down  
again and waited …. There they were again. It was a suspicious post. That street  
ran along the back of the Caesareum, a favourite haunt of monks,  
communicating by innumerable entries and back buildings with the great Church  
itself …. And yet, why should there not be a knot of monks there? What more  
common in every street of Alexandria? He tried to laugh away his own fears.  
And yet they ripened, by the very intensity of thinking on them, into certainty.  
He knew that something terrible was at hand. More than once he looked out  
from his hiding-place— the knot of men were still there; .... it seemed to have  
increased, to draw nearer. If they found him, what would they not suspect? What  
did he care? He would die for her, if it came to that—not that it could come to  
that: but still he must speak to her—he must warn her. Passenger after passenger,  
carriage after carriage passed along the street: student after student entered the  
lecture-room; but he never saw them, not though they passed him close. The sun  
rose higher and higher, and turned his whole blaze upon the corner where  
Philammon crouched, till the pavement scorched like hot iron, and his eyes were  
dazzled by the blinding glare: but he never heeded it. His whole heart, and sense,  
and sight, were riveted upon that well-known door, expecting it to open….  
At last a curricle, glittering with silver, rattled round the corner and stopped  
opposite him. She must becoming now. The crowd had vanished. Perhaps it was,  
after all, a fancy of his own. No; there they were, peeping round the corner, close  
to the lecture-room—the hell-hounds! A slave brought out an embroidered  
cushion—and then Hypatia herself came forth, looking more glorious than ever;  
her lips set in a sad firm smile; her eyes uplifted, inquiring, eager, and yet gentle,  
dimmed by some great inward awe, as if her soul was far away aloft, and face to  
face with God.  
In a moment he sprang up to her, caught her robe convulsively, threw himself on  
his knees before her—  
‘Stop! Stay! You are going to destruction!’  
Calmly she looked down upon him.  
‘Accomplice of witches! Would you make of Theon’s daughter a traitor like  
yourself?’  
He sprang up, stepped back, and stood stupefied with shame and despair….  
She believed him guilty, then! .... It was the will of God!  
The plumes of the horses were waving far down the street before he recovered  
himself, and rushed after her, shouting he knew not what.  
It was too late! A dark wave of men rushed from the ambuscade, surged up  
round the car …. swept forward …. she had disappeared! and as Philammon  
followed breathless, the horses galloped past him madly homeward with the  
empty carriage.  
Whither were they dragging her? To the Caesareum, the Church of God  
Himself? Impossible! Why thither of all places of the earth? Why did the mob,  
increasing momentarily by hundreds, pour down upon the beach, and return  
brandishing flints, shells, fragments of pottery?  
She was upon the church steps before he caught them up, invisible among the  
crowd; but he could track her by the fragments of her dress.  
Where were her gay pupils now? Alas! they had barricaded themselves  
shamefully in the Museum, at the first rush which swept her from the door of the  
lecture-room. Cowards! he would save her!  
And he struggled in vain to pierce the dense mass of Parabolani and monks,  
who, mingled with the fishwives and dock-workers, leaped and yelled around  
their victim. But what he could not do another and a weaker did—even the little  
porter. Furiously—no one knew how or whence—he burst up as if from the  
ground in the thickest of the crowd, with knife, teeth, and nails, like a venomous  
wild-cat, tearing his way towards his idol. Alas! he was torn down himself,  
rolled over the steps, and lay there half dead in an agony of weeping, as  
Philammon sprang up past him into the church.  
Yes. On into the church itself! Into the cool dim shadow, with its fretted pillars,  
and lowering domes, and candles, and incense, and blazing altar, and great  
pictures looking from the walls athwart the gorgeous gloom. And right in front,  
above the altar, the colossal Christ watching unmoved from off the wall, His  
right hand raised to give a blessing—or a curse?  
On, up the nave, fresh shreds of her dress strewing the holy pavement—up the  
chancel steps themselves—up to the altar—right underneath the great still  
Christ: and there even those hell-hounds paused.  
She shook herself free from her tormentors, and springing back, rose for one  
moment to her full height, naked, snow-white against the dusky mass around—  
shame and indignation in those wide clear eyes, but not a stain of fear. With one  
hand she clasped her golden locks around her; the other long white arm was  
stretched upward toward the great still Christ appealing—and who dare say in  
vain?—from man to God. Her lips were opened to speak: but the words that  
should have come from them reached God’s ear alone; for in an instant Peter  
struck her down, the dark mass closed over her again …. and then wail on wail,  
long, wild, ear-piercing, rang along the vaulted roofs, and thrilled like the  
trumpet of avenging angels through Philammon’s ears.  
Crushed against a pillar, unable to move in the dense mass, he pressed his hands  
over his ears. He could not shut out those shrieks! When would they end? What  
in the name of the God of mercy were they doing? Tearing her piecemeal? Yes,  
and worse than that. And still the shrieks rang on, and still the great Christ  
looked down on Philammon with that calm, intolerable eye, and would not turn  
away. And over His head was written in the rainbow, ‘I am the same, yesterday,  
to-day, and for ever!’ The same as He was in Judea of old, Philammon? Then  
what are these, and in whose temple? And he covered his face with his hands,  
and longed to die.  
It was over. The shrieks had died away into moans; the moans to silence. How  
long had he been there? An hour, or an eternity? Thank God it was over! For her  
sake—but for theirs? But they thought not of that as a new cry rose through the  
dome.  
‘To the Cinaron! Burn the bones to ashes! Scatter them into the sea!’ And the  
mob poured past him again….  
He turned to flee: but, once outside the church, he sank exhausted, and lay upon  
the steps, watching with stupid horror the glaring of the fire, and the mob who  
leaped and yelled like demons round their Moloch sacrifice.  
A hand grasped his arm; he looked up; it was the porter.  
‘And this, young butcher, is the Catholic and apostolic Church?’  
‘No! Eudaimon, it is the church of the devils of hell!’ And gathering himself up,  
he sat upon the steps and buried his head within his hands. He would have given  
life itself for the power of weeping: but his eyes and brain were hot and dry as  
the desert.  
Eudaimon looked at him a while. The shock had sobered the poor fop for once.  
‘I did what I could to die with her!’said he.  
‘I did what I could to save her!’ answered Philammon.  
‘I know it. Forgive the words which I just spoke. Did we not both love her?’  
And the little wretch sat down by Philammon’s side, and as the blood dripped  
from his wounds upon the pavement, broke out into a bitter agony of human  
tears.  
There are times when the very intensity of our misery is a boon, and kindly stuns  
us till we are unable to torture ourselves by thought. And so it was with  
Philammon then. He sat there, he knew not how long.  
‘She is with the gods,’said Eudaimon at last.  
‘She is with the God of gods,’ answered Philammon: and they both were silent  
again.  
Suddenly a commanding voice aroused them.  
They looked up, and saw before them Raphael Aben-Ezra.  
He was pale as death, but calm as death. One look into his face told them that he  
knew all.  
‘Young monk,’ he said, between his closed teeth, ‘you seem to have loved her?’  
Philammon looked up, but could not speak.  
‘Then arise, and flee for your life into the farthest corner of the desert, ere the  
doom of Sodom and Gomorrha fall upon this accursed city. Have you father,  
mother, brother, sister,—ay, cat, dog, or bird for which you care, within its  
walls?’  
Philammon started; for he recollected Pelagia …. That evening, so Cyril had  
promised, twenty trusty monks were to have gone with him to seize her.  
‘You have? Then take them with you, and escape, and remember Lot’s wife.  
Eudaimon, come with me. You must lead me to your house, to the lodging of  
Miriam the Jewess. Do not deny! I know that she is there. For the sake of her  
who is gone I will hold you harmless, ay, reward you richly, if you prove  
faithful. Rise!’  
Eudaimon, who knew Raphael’s face well, rose and led the way trembling; and  
Philammon was left alone.  
They never met again. But Philammon knew that he had been in the presence of  
a stronger man than himself, and of one who hated even more bitterly than he  
himself that deed at which the very sun, it seemed, ought to have veiled his face.  
And his words, ‘Arise, and flee for thy life,’ uttered as they were with the stern  
self-command and writhing lip of compressed agony, rang through his ears like  
the trump of doom. Yes, he would flee. He had gone forth to see the world, and  
he had seen it. Arsenius was in the right after all. Home to the desert! But first he  
would go himself, alone, to Pelagia, and implore her once more to flee with him.  
Beast, fool, that he had been to try to win her by force—by the help of such as  
these! God’s kingdom was not a kingdom of fanatics yelling for a doctrine, but  
of willing, loving, obedient hearts. If he could not win her heart, her will, he  
would go alone, and die praying for her.  
He sprang from the steps of the Caesareum, and turned up the street of the  
Museum. Alas! it was one roaring sea of heads! They were sacking Theon’s  
house—the house of so many memories! Perhaps the poor old man too had  
perished! Still—his sister! He must save her and flee. And he turned up a side  
street and tried to make his way onward.  
Alas again! the whole of the dock-quarter was up and out. Every street poured its  
tide of furious fanatics into the main river; and ere he could reach Pelagia’s  
house the sun was set, and close behind him, echoed by ten thousand voices, was  
the cry of ‘Down with all heathens! Root out all Arian Goths! Down with  
idolatrous wantons! Down with Pelagia Aphrodite!’  
He hurried down the alley, to the tower door, where Wulf had promised to meet  
him. It was half open, and in the dusk he could see a figure standing in the  
doorway. He sprang up the steps, and found, not Wulf, but Miriam.  
‘Let me pass!’  
‘Wherefore?’  
He made no answer, and tried to push past her.  
‘Fool, fool, fool!’ whispered the hag, holding the door against him with all her  
strength. ‘Where are your fellow-kidnappers? Where are your band of monks?’  
Philammon started back. How had she discovered his plan?  
‘Ay—where are they? Besotted boy! Have you not seen enough of monkery this  
afternoon, that you must try still to make that poor girl even such a one as  
yourselves? Ay, you may root out your own human natures if you will, and make  
yourselves devils in trying to become angels: but woman she is, and woman she  
shall live or die!’  
‘Let me pass!’ cried Philammon furiously.  
‘Raise your voice—and I raise mine: and then your life is not worth a moment’s  
purchase. Fool, do you think I speak as a Jewess? I speak as a woman—as a nun!  
I was a nun once, madman—the iron entered into my soul!—God do so to me,  
and more also, if it ever enter into another soul while I can prevent it! You shall  
not have her! I will strangle her with my own hand first!’ And turning from him,  
she darted up the winding stair.  
He followed: but the intense passion of the old hag hurled her onward with the  
strength and speed of a young Maenad. Once Philammon was near passing her.  
But he recollected that he did not know his way, and contented himself with  
keeping close behind, and making the fugitive his guide.  
Stair after stair, he fled upward, till she turned suddenly into a chamber door.  
Philammon paused. A few feet above him the open sky showed at the stair-head.  
They were close then to the roof! One moment more, and the hag darted out of  
the room again, and turned to flee upward still. Philammon caught her by the  
arm, hurled her back into the empty chamber, shut the door upon her; and with a  
few bounds gained the roof, and met Pelagia face to face.  
‘Come!’ gasped he breathlessly. ‘Now is the moment! Come, while they are all  
below!’ and he seized her hand.  
But Pelagia only recoiled.  
‘No, no,’ whispered she in answer, ‘I cannot, cannot—he has forgiven me all,  
all! and I am his for ever! And now, just as he is in danger, when he may be  
wounded—ah, heaven! would you have me do anything so base as to desert  
him?’  
‘Pelagia, Pelagia, darling sister!’ cried Philammon, in an agonised voice, ‘think  
of the doom of sin! Think of the pains of hell!’  
‘I have thought of them this day: and I do not believe you! No—I do not! God is  
not so cruel as you say! And if He were:—to lose my love, that is hell! Let me  
burn hereafter, if I do but keep him now!’  
Philammon stood stupefied and shuddering. All his own early doubts flashed  
across him like a thunderbolt, when in the temple-cave he had seen those painted  
ladies at their revels, and shuddered, and asked himself, were they burning for  
ever and ever?  
‘Come!’ gasped he once again; and throwing himself on his knees before her,  
covered her hands with kisses, wildly entreating: but in vain.  
‘What is this?’ thundered a voice; not Miriam’s, but the Amal’s. He was unarmed  
but he rushed straight upon Philammon.  
‘Do not harm him!’shrieked Pelagia; ‘he is my brother—my brother of whom I  
told you!’  
‘What does he here?’ cried the Amal, who instantly divined the truth.  
Pelagia was silent.  
‘I wish to deliver my sister, a Christian, from the sinful embraces of an Arian  
heretic; and deliver her I will, or die!’  
‘An Arian?’ laughed the Amal. ‘Say a heathen at once, and tell the truth, young  
fool! Will you go with him, Pelagia, and turn nun in the sand-heaps?’  
Pelagia sprang towards her lover: Philammon caught her by the arm for one last  
despairing appeal: and in a moment, neither knew how, the Goth and the Greek  
were locked in deadly struggle, while Pelagia stood in silent horror, knowing that  
a call for help would bring instant death to her brother.  
It was over in a few seconds. The Goth lifted Philammon like a baby in his arms,  
and bearing him to the parapet, attempted to hurl him into the canal below. But  
the active Greek had wound himself like a snake around him, and held him by  
the throat with the strength of despair. Twice they rolled and tottered on the  
parapet; and twice recoiled. A third fearful lunge—the earthen wall gave way;  
and down to the dark depths, locked in each other’s arms, fell Goth and Greek.  
Pelagia rushed to the brink, and gazed downward into the gloom, dumb and dryeyed with horror. Twice they turned over together in mid- air …. The foot of the  
tower, as was usual in Egypt, sloped outwards towards the water. They must  
strike upon that—and then! ....It seemed an eternity ere they touched the  
masonry …. The Amal was undermost …. She saw his fair floating locks dash  
against the cruel stone. His grasp suddenly loosened, his limbs collapsed; two  
distinct plunges broke the dark sullen water; and then all was still but the  
awakened ripple, lapping angrily against the wall.  
Pelagia gazed down one moment more, and then, with a shriek which rang along  
roof and river, she turned, and fled down the stairs and out into the night.  
Five minutes afterwards, Philammon, dripping, bruised, and bleeding, was  
crawling up the water-steps at the lower end of the lane. A woman rushed from  
the postern door, and stood on the quay edge, gazing with clasped hands into the  
canal. The moon fell full on her face. It was Pelagia. She saw him, knew him,  
and recoiled.  
‘Sister!—my sister! Forgive me!’  
‘Murderer!’she shrieked, and dashing aside his outspread hands, fled wildly up  
the passage.  
The way was blocked with bales of merchandise: but the dancer bounded over  
them like a deer; while Philammon, half stunned by his fall, and blinded by his  
dripping locks, stumbled, fell, and lay, unable to rise. She held on for a few yards  
towards the torch-lit mob, which was surging and roaring in the main street  
above, then turned suddenly into a side alley, and vanished; while Philammon  
lay groaning upon the pavement, without a purpose or a hope upon earth.  
Five minutes more, and Wulf was gazing over the broken parapet, at the head of  
twenty terrified spectators, male and female, whom Pelagia’s shriek had  
summoned.  
He alone suspected that Philammon had been there; and shuddering at the  
thought of what might have happened, he kept his secret.  
But all knew that Pelagia had been on the tower; all had seen the Amal go up  
thither. Where were they now? And why was the little postern gate found open,  
and shut only just in time to prevent the entrance of the mob?  
Wulf stood, revolving in a brain but too well practised in such cases, all possible  
contingencies of death and horror. At last—  
‘A rope and a light, Smid!’ he almost whispered.  
They were brought, and Wulf, resisting all the entreaties of the younger men to  
allow them to go on the perilous search, lowered himself through the breach.  
He was about two-thirds down, when he shook the rope, and called in a stifled  
voice, to those above—  
‘Haul up. I have seen enough.’  
Breathless with curiosity and fear, they hauled him up. He stood among them for  
a few moments, silent, as if stunned by the weight of some enormous woe.  
‘Is he dead?’  
‘Odin has taken his son home, wolves of the Goths!’ And he held out his right  
hand to the awe-struck ring, and burst into an agony of weeping …. A clotted  
tress of long fair hair lay in his palm.  
It was snatched; handed from man to man …. One after another recognised the  
beloved golden locks. And then, to the utter astonishment of the girls who stood  
round, the great simple hearts, too brave to be ashamed of tears, broke out and  
wailed like children …. Their Amal! Their heavenly man! Odin’s own son, their  
joy and pride, and glory! Their ‘Kingdom of heaven,’ as his name declared him,  
who was all that each wished to be, and more, and yet belonged to them, bone of  
their bone, flesh of their flesh! Ah, it is bitter to all true human hearts to be  
robbed of their ideal, even though that ideal be that of a mere wild bull, and  
soulless gladiator….  
At last Smid spoke—  
‘Heroes, this is Odin’s doom; and the All-father is just. Had we listened to Prince  
Wulf four months ago, this had never been. We have been cowards and  
sluggards, and Odin is angry with his children. Let us swear to be Prince Wulf’s  
men and follow him to- morrow where he will!’  
Wulf grasped his outstretched hand lovingly-  
‘No, Smid, son of Troll! These words are not yours to speak. Agilmund son of  
Cniva, Goderic son of Ermenric, you are Balts, and to you the succession  
appertains. Draw lots here, which of you shall be our chieftain.’  
‘No! no! Wulf!’ cried both the youths at once. ‘You are the hero! you are the  
Sagaman! We are not worthy; we have been cowards and sluggards, like the rest.  
Wolves of the Goths, follow the Wolf, even though he lead you to the land of the  
giants!’  
A roar of applause followed.  
‘Lift him on the shield,’ cried Goderic, tearing off his buckler. ‘Lift him on the  
shield! Hail, Wulf king! Wulf, king of Egypt!’  
And the rest of the Goths, attracted by the noise, rushed up the tower-stairs in  
time to join in the mighty shout of ‘Wulf, king of Egypt!’—as careless of the  
vast multitude which yelled and surged without, as boys are of the snow against  
the window-pane.  
‘No!’said Wulf solemnly, as he stood on the uplifted shield. ‘If I be indeed your  
king, and ye my men, wolves of the Goths, to-morrow we will go forth of this  
place, hated of Odin, rank with the innocent blood of the Alruna maid. Back to  
Adolf; back to our own people! Will you go?’  
‘Back to Adolf!’shouted the men.  
‘You will not leave us to be murdered?’ cried one of the girls. ‘The mob are  
breaking the gates already!’  
‘Silence, silly one! Men—we have one thing to do. The Amal must not go to the  
Valhalla without fair attendance.’  
‘Not the poor girls?’said Agilmund, who took for granted that Wulf would wish  
to celebrate the Amal’s funeral in true Gothic fashion by a slaughter of slaves.  
‘No …. One of them I saw behave this very afternoon worthy of a Vala. And  
they, too—they may make heroes’ wives after all, yet …. Women are better than  
I fancied, even the worst of them. No. Go down, heroes, and throw the gates  
open; and call in the Greek hounds to the funeral supper of a son of Odin.’  
‘Throw the gates open?’  
‘Yes. Goderic, take a dozen men, and be ready in the east hall. Agilmund, go  
with a dozen to the west side of the court—there in the kitchen; and wait till you  
hear my war-cry. Smid and the rest of you, come with me through the stables  
close to the gate—as silent as Hela.’  
And they went down—to meet, full on the stairs below, old Miriam.  
Breathless and exhausted by her exertion, she had fallen heavily before  
Philammon’s strong arm; and lying half stunned for a while, recovered just in  
time to meet her doom.  
She knew that it was come, and faced it like herself.  
‘Take the witch!’said Wulf slowly—‘Take the corrupter of heroes— the cause of  
all our sorrows!’  
Miriam looked at him with a quiet smile.  
‘The witch is accustomed long ago to hear fools lay on her the consequences of  
their own lust and laziness.’  
‘Hew her down, Smid, son of Troll, that she may pass the Amal’s soul and  
gladden it on her way to Niflheim.’  
Smid did it: but so terrible were the eyes which glared upon him from those  
sunken sockets, that his sight was dazzled. The axe turned aside, and struck her  
shoulder. She reeled, but did not fall.  
‘It is enough,’she said quietly.  
‘The accursed Grendel’s daughter numbed my arm!’said Smid. ‘Let her go! No  
man shall say that I struck a woman twice.’  
‘Nidhogg waits for her, soon or late,’ answered Wulf.  
And Miriam, coolly folding her shawl around her, turned and walked steadily  
down the stair; while all men breathed more freely, as if delivered from some  
accursed and supernatural spell.  
‘And now,’said Wulf, ‘to your posts, and vengeance!’  
The mob had weltered and howled ineffectually around the house for some halfhour. But the lofty walls, opening on the street only by a few narrow windows in  
the higher stories, rendered it an impregnable fortress. Suddenly, the iron gates  
were drawn back, disclosing to the front rank the court, glaring empty and silent  
and ghastly in the moonlight. For an instant they recoiled, with a vague horror,  
and dread of treachery: but the mass behind pressed them onward, and in swept  
the murderers of Hypatia, till the court was full of choking wretches, surging  
against the walls and pillars in aimless fury. And then, from under the archway  
on each side, rushed a body of tall armed men, driving back all incomers more;  
the gates slid together again upon their grooves and the wild beasts of  
Alexandria were trapped at last.  
And then began a murder grim and great. From three different doors issued a line  
of Goths, whose helmets and mail-shirts made them invulnerable to the clumsy  
weapons of the mob, and began hewing their way right through the living mass,  
helpless from their close- packed array. True, they were but as one to ten; but  
what are ten curs before one lion? .... And the moon rose higher and higher,  
staring down ghastly and unmoved upon that doomed court of the furies, and  
still the bills and swords hewed on and on, and the Goths drew the corpses, as  
they found room, towards a dark pile in the midst, where old Wulf sat upon a  
heap of slain, singing the praises of the Amal and the glories of Valhalla, while  
the shrieks of his lute rose shrill above the shrieks of the flying and the wounded,  
and its wild waltz-time danced and rollicked on swifter and swifter as the old  
singer maddened, in awful mockery of the terror and agony around.  
And so, by men and purposes which recked not of her, as is the wont of  
Providence, was the blood of Hypatia avenged in part that night. In part only. For  
Peter the Reader, and his especial associates, were safe in sanctuary at the  
Caesareum, clinging to the altar. Terrified at the storm which they had raised,  
and fearing the consequences of an attack upon the palace, they had left the mob  
to run riot at its will; and escaped the swords of the Goths to be reserved for the  
more awful punishment of impunity.  
CHAPTER XXX: EVERY MAN TO HIS OWN PLACE  
It was near midnight. Raphael had been sitting some three hours in Miriam’s  
inner chamber, waiting in vain for her return. To recover, if possible, his  
ancestral wealth; to convey it, without a day’s delay, to Cyrene; and, if possible,  
to persuade the poor old Jewess to accompany him, and there to soothe, to guide,  
perhaps to convert her, was his next purpose:—at all events, with or without his  
wealth, to flee from that accursed city. And he counted impatiently the slow  
hours and minutes which detained him in an atmosphere which seemed reeking  
with innocent blood, black with the lowering curse of an avenging God. More  
than once, unable to bear the thought, he rose to depart, and leave his wealth  
behind: but he was checked again by the thought of his own past life. How had  
he added his own sin to the great heap of Alexandrian wickedness! How had he  
tempted others, pampered others in evil! Good God! how had he not only done  
evil with all his might, but had pleasure in those who did the same! And now,  
now he was reaping the fruit of his own devices. For years past, merely to please  
his lust of power, his misanthropic scorn, he had been malting that wicked  
Orestes wickeder than he was even by his own base will and nature; and his  
puppet had avenged itself upon him! He, he had prompted him to ask Hypatia’s  
hand …. He had laid, half in sport, half in envy of her excellence, that foul plot  
against the only human being whom he loved …. and he had destroyed her! He,  
and not Peter, was the murderer of Hypatia! True, he had never meant her death  
…. No; but had he not meant for her worse than death? He had never foreseen  
…. No; but only because he did not choose to foresee. He had chosen to be a  
god; to kill and to make alive by his own will and law; and behold, he had  
become a devil by that very act. Who can—and who dare, even if he could—  
withdraw the sacred veil from those bitter agonies of inward shame and selfreproach, made all the more intense by his clear and undoubting knowledge that  
he was forgiven? What dread of punishment, what blank despair, could have  
pierced that great heart so deeply as did the thought that the God whom he had  
hated and defied had returned him good for evil, and rewarded him not  
according to his iniquities? That discovery, as Ezekiel of old had warned his  
forefathers, filled up the cup of his self-loathing …. To have found at last the  
hated and dreaded name of God: and found that it was Love! .... To possess  
Victoria, a living, human likeness, however imperfect, of that God; and to  
possess in her a home, a duty, a purpose, a fresh clear life of righteous labour,  
perhaps of final victory …. That was his punishment; that was the brand of Cain  
upon his forehead; and he felt it greater than he could bear.  
But at least there was one thing to be done. Where he had sinned, there he must  
make amends; not as a propitiation, not even as a restitution; but simply as a  
confession of the truth which he had found. And as his purpose shaped itself, he  
longed and prayed that Miriam might return, and make it possible.  
And Miriam did return. He heard her pass slowly through the outer room, learn  
from the girls who was within, order them out of the apartments, close the outer  
door upon them; at last she entered, and said quietly—  
‘Welcome! I have expected you. You could not surprise old Miriam. The teraph  
told me last night that you would be here….’  
Did she see the smile of incredulity upon Raphael’s face, or was it some sudden  
pang of conscience which made her cry out—  
‘.... No! I did not! I never expected you! I am a liar, a miserable old liar, who  
cannot speak the truth, even if I try! Only look kind! Smile at me, Raphael!—  
Raphael come back at last to his poor, miserable, villainous old mother! Smile  
on me but once, my beautiful, my son! my son!’  
And springing to him, she clasped him in her arms.  
‘Your son?’  
‘Yes, my son! Safe at last! Mine at last! I can prove it now! The son of my  
womb, though not the son of my vows!’ And she laughed hysterically. ‘My  
child, my heir, for whom I have toiled and hoarded for three-and-thirty years!  
Quick! here are my keys. In that cabinet are all my papers—all I have is yours.  
Your jewels are safe—buried with mine. The negro-woman, Eudaimon’s wife,  
knows where. I made her swear secrecy upon her little wooden idol, and,  
Christian as she is, she has been honest. Make her rich for life. She hid your poor  
old mother, and kept her safe to see her boy come home. But give nothing to her  
little husband: he is a bad fellow, and beats her.—Go, quick! take your riches,  
and away! .... No; stay one moment just one little moment—that the poor old  
wretch may feast her eyes with the sight of her darling once more before she  
dies!’  
‘Before you die? Your son? God of my fathers, what is the meaning of all this,  
Miriam? This morning I was the son of Ezra the merchant of Antioch!’  
‘His son and heir, his son and heir! He knew all at last. We told him on his deathbed! I swear that we told him, and he adopted you!’  
‘We! Who?’  
‘His wife and I. He craved for a child, the old miser, and we gave him one—a  
better one than ever came of his family. But he loved you, accepted you, though  
he did know all. He was afraid of being laughed at after he was dead—afraid of  
having it known that he was childless, the old dotard! No—he was right—true  
Jew in that, after all!’  
‘Who was my father, then?’ interrupted Raphael, in utter bewilderment.  
The old woman laughed a laugh so long and wild, that Raphael shuddered.  
‘Sit down at your mother’s feet. Sit down …. just to please the poor old thing!  
Even if you do not believe her, just play at being her child, her darling, for a  
minute before she dies; and she will tell you all …. perhaps there is time yet!’  
And he sat down …. ‘What if this incarnation of all wickedness were really my  
mother? .... And yet—why should I shrink thus proudly from the notion? Am I  
so pure myself as to deserve a purer source?’ .... And the old woman laid her  
hand fondly on his head, and her skinny fingers played with his soft locks, as she  
spoke hurriedly and thick.  
‘Of the house of Jesse, of the seed of Solomon; not a rabbi from Babylon to  
Rome dare deny that! A king’s daughter I am, and a king’s heart I had, and have,  
like Solomon’s own, my son! .... A kingly heart …. It made me dread and scorn  
to be a slave, a plaything, a soul-less doll, such as Jewish women are condemned  
to be by their tyrants, the men. I craved for wisdom, renown, power—power—  
power! and my nation refused them to me; because, forsooth, I was a woman! So  
I left them. I went to the Christian priests …. They gave me what I asked ….  
They gave me more …. They pampered my woman’s vanity, my pride, my selfwill, my scorn of wedded bondage, and bade me be a saint, the judge of angels  
and archangels, the bride of God! Liars! liars! And so—if you laugh, you kill  
me, Raphael—and so Miriam, the daughter of Jonathan—Miriam, of the house  
of David— Miriam, the descendant of Ruth and Rachab, of Rachel and Sara,  
became a Christian nun, and shut herself up to see visions, and dream dreams,  
and fattened her own mad self-conceit upon the impious fancy that she was the  
spouse of the Nazarene, Joshua Bar-Joseph, whom she called Jehovah Ishi—  
Silence! If you stop me a moment, it may be too late. I hear them calling me  
already; and I made them promise not to take me before I had told all to my son  
—the son of my shame!’  
‘Who calls you?’ asked Raphael; but after one strong shudder she ran on,  
unheeding—  
‘But they lied, lied, lied! I found them out that day …. Do not look up at me, and  
I will tell you all. There was a riot—a fight between the Christian devils and the  
Heathen devils—and the convent was sacked, Raphael, my son .... Then I  
found out their blasphemy …. Oh God! I shrieked to Him, Raphael! I called on  
Him to rend His heavens and come down—to pour out His thunderbolts upon  
them—to cleave the earth and devour them—to save the wretched helpless girl  
who adored Him, who had given up father, mother, kinsfolk, wealth, the light of  
heaven, womanhood itself, for Him— who worshipped, meditated over Him,  
dreamed of Him night and day …. And, Raphael, He did not hear me …. He did  
not hear me! .... did not hear the! .... And then I knew it all for a lie! a lie!’  
‘And you knew it for what it is!’ cried Raphael through his sobs, as he thought of  
Victoria, and felt every vein burning with righteous wrath.  
—‘There was no mistaking that test, was there? .... For nine months I was mad.  
And then your voice, my baby, my joy, my pride that brought me to myself once  
more! And I shook off the dust of my feet against those Galilean priests, and  
went back to my own nation, where God had set me from the beginning. I made  
them—the Rabbis, my father, my kin—I made them all receive me. They could  
not stand before my eye. I can stake people do what I will, Raphael! I could—I  
could make you emperor now, if I had but time left! I went back. I palmed you  
off on Ezra as his son, I and his wife, and made him believe that you had been  
born to him while he was in Byzantium …. And then—to live for you! And I did  
live for you. For you I travelled from India to Britain, seeking wealth. For you I  
toiled, hoarded, lied, intrigued, won money by every means, no matter how base  
—for was it not for you? And I have conquered! You are the richest Jew south of  
the Mediterranean, you, my son! And you deserve your wealth. You have your  
mother’s soul in you, my boy! I watched you, gloried in you—in your cunning,  
your daring, your learning, your contempt for these Gentile hounds. You felt the  
royal blood of Solomon within you! You felt that you were a young lion of  
Judah, and they the jackals who followed to feed upon your leavings! And now,  
now! Your only danger is past! The cunning woman is gone—the sorceress who  
tried to take my young lion in her pitfall, and has fallen into the midst of it  
herself; and he is safe, and returned to take the nations for a prey, and grind their  
bones to powder, as it is written, “He couched like a lion, he lay down like a  
lioness’s whelp, and who dare rouse him up?”’  
‘Stop!’said Raphael, ‘I must speak! Mother! I must! As you love me, as you  
expect me to love you, answer! Had you a hand in her death? Speak!’  
‘Did I not tell you that I was no more a Christian? Had I remained one—who can  
tell what I might not have done? All I, the Jewess, dare do was—Fool that I am!  
I have forgotten all this time the proof—the proof—’  
‘I need no proof, mother. Your words are enough,’said Raphael, as he clasped  
her hand between his own, and pressed it to his burning forehead. But the old  
woman hurried on ‘See! See the black agate which you gave her in your  
madness!’  
‘How did you obtain that?’  
‘I stole it—stole it, my son; as thieves steal, and are crucified for stealing. What  
was the chance of the cross to a mother yearning for her child?—to a mother  
who put round her baby’s neck, three- and-thirty black years ago, that broken  
agate, and kept the other half next her own heart by day and night? See! See how  
they fit! Look, and believe your poor old sinful mother! Look, I say!’ and she  
thrust the talisman into his hands.  
‘Now, let me die! I vowed never to tell this secret but to you: never to tell it to  
you, until the night I died. Farewell, my son! Kiss me but once—once, my child,  
my joy! Oh, this makes up for all! Makes up even for that day, the last on which  
I ever dreamed myself the bride of the Nazarene!’  
Raphael felt that he must speak, now or never. Though it cost him the loss of all  
his wealth, and a mother’s curse, he must speak. And not daring to look up, he  
said gently—  
‘Men have lied to you about Him, mother: but has He ever lied to you about  
Himself? He did not lie to me when He sent me out into the world to find a man,  
and sent me back again to you with the good news that The Man is born into the  
world.’  
But to his astonishment, instead of the burst of bigoted indignation which he had  
expected, Miriam answered in a low, confused, abstracted voice—  
‘And did He send you hither? Well—that was more like what I used to fancy  
Him….A grand thought it is after all—a Jew the king of heaven and earth! ....  
Well—I shall know soon …. I loved Him once, .... and perhaps….perhaps….’  
Why did her head drop heavily upon his shoulder? He turned—a dark stream of  
blood was flowing from her lips! He sprang to his feet. The girls rushed in. They  
tore open her shawl, and saw the ghastly wound, which she had hidden with such  
iron resolution to the last. But it was too late. Miriam the daughter of Solomon  
was gone to her own place.  
...............  
Early the next morning, Raphael was standing in Cyril’s anteroom, awaiting an  
audience. There were loud voices within; and after a while a tribune—whom he  
knew well hurried out, muttering curses—  
‘What brings you here, friend?‘said Raphael.  
‘The scoundrel will not give them up,’ answered he, in an undertone.  
‘Give up whom?’  
‘The murderers. They are in sanctuary now at the Caesareum. Orestes sent me to  
demand them: and this fellow defies him openly!’ And the tribune hurried out.  
Raphael, sickened with disgust, half-turned to follow him: but his better angel  
conquered, and he obeyed the summons of the deacon who ushered him in.  
Cyril was walking up and down, according to his custom, with great strides.  
When he saw who was his visitor, he stopped short with a look of fierce inquiry.  
Raphael entered on business at once, with a cold calm voice.  
‘You know me, doubtless; and you know what I was. I am now a Christian  
catechumen. I come to make such restitution as I can for certain past ill-deeds  
done in this city. You will find among these papers the trust-deeds for such a  
yearly sum of money as will enable you to hire a house of refuge for a hundred  
fallen women, and give such dowries to thirty of them yearly as will enable them  
to find suitable husbands. I have set down every detail of my plan. On its exact  
fulfilment depends the continuance of my gift.’  
Cyril took the document eagerly, and was breaking out with some commonplace  
about pious benevolence, when the Jew stopped him.  
‘Your Holiness’s compliments are unnecessary. It is to your office, not to  
yourself, that this business relates.’  
Cyril, whose conscience was ill enough at ease that morning, felt abashed before  
Raphael’s dry and quiet manner, which bespoke, as he well knew, reproof more  
severe than all open upbraidings. So looking down, not without something like a  
blush, he ran his eye hastily over the paper; and then said, in his blandest tone-  
‘My brother will forgive me for remarking, that while I acknowledge his perfect  
right to dispose of his charities as he will, it is somewhat startling to me, as  
Metropolitan of Egypt to find not only the Abbot Isidore of Pelusium, but the  
secular Defender of the Plebs, a civil officer, implicated, too, in the late  
conspiracy, associated with me as co-trustees.’  
‘I have taken the advice of more than one Christian bishop on the matter. I  
acknowledge your authority by my presence here. If the Scriptures say rightly,  
the civil magistrates are as much God’s ministers as you; and I am therefore  
bound to acknowledge their authority also. I should have preferred associating  
the Prefect with you in the trust: but as your dissensions with the present  
occupant of that post might have crippled my scheme, I have named the  
Defender of the Plebs, and have already put into his hands a copy of this  
document. Another copy has been sent to Isidore, who is empowered to receive  
all moneys from my Jewish bankers in Pelusium.’  
‘You doubt, then, either my ability or my honesty?’said Cyril, who was  
becoming somewhat nettled.  
‘If your Holiness dislikes my offer, it is easy to omit your name in the deed. One  
word more. If you deliver up to justice the murderers of my friend Hypatia, I  
double my bequest on the spot.’  
Cyril burst out instantly—  
‘Thy money perish with thee! Do you presume to bribe me into delivering up my  
children to the tyrant?’  
‘I offer to give you the means of showing more mercy, provided that you will  
first do simple justice.’  
‘Justice?’ cried Cyril. ‘Justice? If it be just that Peter should die, sir, see first  
whether it was not just that Hypatia should die. Not that I compassed it. As I  
live, I would have given my own right hand that this had not happened! But now  
that it is done—let those who talk of justice look first in which scale of the  
balance it lies! Do you fancy, sir, that the people do not know their enemies from  
their friends? Do you fancy that they are to sit with folded hands, while a pedant  
makes common cause with a profligate, to drag them back again into the very  
black gulf of outer darkness, ignorance, brutal lust, grinding slavery, from which  
the Son of God died to free them, from which they are painfully and slowly  
struggling upward to the light of day? You, sir, if you be a Christian catechumen,  
should know for yourself what would have been the fate of Alexandria had the  
devil’s plot of two days since succeeded. What if the people struck too fiercely?  
They struck in the right place. What if they have given the reins to passions fit  
only for heathens? Recollect the centuries of heathendom which bred those  
passions in them, and blame not my teaching, but the teaching of their  
forefathers. That very Peter …. What if he have for once given place to the devil,  
and avenged where he should have forgiven? Has he no memories which may  
excuse him for fancying, in a just paroxysm of dread, that idolatry and falsehood  
must be crushed at any risk?—He who counts back for now three hundred years,  
in persecution after persecution, martyrs, sir! martyrs—if you know what that  
word implies—of his own blood and kin; who, when he was but a seven years’  
boy, saw his own father made a sightless cripple to this day, and his elder sister,  
a consecrated nun, devoured alive by swine in the open streets, at the hands of  
those who supported the very philosophy, the very gods, which Hypatia  
attempted yesterday to restore. God shall judge such a man; not I, nor you!’  
‘Let God judge him, then, by delivering him to God’s minister.’  
‘God’s minister? That heathen and apostate Prefect? When he has expiated his  
apostasy by penance, and returned publicly to the bosom of the Church, it will be  
time enough to obey him: till then he is the minister of none but the devil. And  
no ecclesiastic shall suffer at the tribunal of an infidel. Holy Writ forbids us to go  
to law before the unjust.—Let the world say of me what it will. I defy it and its  
rulers. I have to establish the kingdom of God in this city, and do it I will,  
knowing that other foundation can no man lay than that which is laid, which is  
Christ.’  
‘Wherefore you proceed to lay it afresh. A curious method of proving that it is  
laid already.’  
‘What do you mean?’ asked Cyril angrily.  
‘Simply that God’s kingdom, if it exist at all, must be a sort of kingdom,  
considering Who is The King of it, which would have established itself without  
your help some time since; probably, indeed, if the Scriptures of my Jewish  
forefathers are to be believed, before the foundation of the world; and that your  
business was to believe that God was King of Alexandria, and had put the  
Roman law there to crucify all murderers, ecclesiastics included, and that  
crucified they must be accordingly, as high as Haman himself.’  
‘I will hear no more of this, sir! I am responsible to God alone, and not to you:  
let it he enough that by virtue of the authority committed to me, I shall cut off  
these men from the Church of God, by solemn excommunication, for three years  
to come.’  
‘They are not cut off, then, it seems, as yet?’  
‘I tell you, sir, that I shall cut them off! Do you come here to doubt my word?’  
‘Not in the least, most august sir. But I should have fancied that, according to my  
carnal notions of God’s Kingdom and The Church, they had cut off themselves  
most effectually already, from the moment when they cast away the Spirit of  
God, and took to themselves the spirit of murder and cruelty; and that all which  
your most just and laudable excommunication could effect, would be to inform  
the public of that fact. However, farewell! My money shall be forthcoming in  
due time; and that is the most important matter between us at this moment. As  
for your client Peter and his fellows, perhaps the most fearful punishment which  
can befall them, is to go on as they have begun. I only hope that you will not  
follow in the same direction.’  
‘I?’ cried Cyril, trembling with rage.  
‘Really I wish your Holiness well when I say so. If my notions seem to you  
somewhat secular, yours—forgive me—seem to the somewhat atheistic; and I  
advise you honestly to take care lest while you are busy trying to establish God’s  
kingdom, you forget what it is like, by shutting your eyes to those of its laws  
which are established already. I have no doubt that with your Holiness’s great  
powers you will succeed in establishing something. My only dread is, that when  
it is established, you should discover to your horror that it is the devil’s kingdom  
and not God’s.’  
And without waiting for an answer, Raphael bowed himself out of the august  
presence, and sailing for Berenice that very day, with Eudaimon and his negro  
wife, went to his own place; there to labour and to succour, a sad and stern, and  
yet a loving and a much-loved man, for many a year to come.  
And now we will leave Alexandria also, and taking a forward leap of some  
twenty years, see how all other persons mentioned in this history went, likewise,  
each to his own place.  
...............  
A little more than twenty years after, the wisest and holiest man in the East was  
writing of Cyril, just deceased—  
‘His death made those who survived him joyful; but it grieved most probably the  
dead; and there is cause to fear, lest, finding his presence too troublesome, they  
should send him back to us …. May it come to pass, by your prayers, that he  
may obtain mercy and forgiveness, that the immeasurable grace of God may  
prevail over his wickedness! ....’  
So wrote Theodoret in days when men had not yet intercalated into Holy Writ  
that line of an obscure modern hymn, which proclaims to man the good news  
that ‘There is no repentance in the grave.’ Let that be as it may, Cyril has gone to  
his own place. What that place is in history is but too well known. What it is in  
the sight of Him unto whom all live for ever, is no concern of ours. May He  
whose mercy is over all His works, have mercy upon all, whether orthodox or  
unorthodox, Papist or Protestant, who, like Cyril, begin by lying for the cause of  
truth; and setting off upon that evil road, arrive surely, with the Scribes and  
Pharisees of old, sooner or later at their own place!  
True, he and his monks had conquered; but Hypatia did not die unavenged. In  
the hour of that unrighteous victory, the Church of Alexandria received a deadly  
wound. It had admitted and sanctioned those habits of doing evil that good may  
come, of pious intrigue, and at last of open persecution, which are certain to  
creep in wheresoever men attempt to set up a merely religious empire,  
independent of human relationships and civil laws; to ‘establish,’ in short, a  
‘theocracy,’ and by that very act confess their secret disbelief that God is ruling  
already. And the Egyptian Church grew, year by year, more lawless and  
inhuman. Freed from enemies without, and from the union which fear compels,  
it turned its ferocity inward, to prey on its own vitals, and to tear itself in pieces  
by a voluntary suicide, with mutual anathemas and exclusions, till it ended as a  
mere chaos of idolatrous sects, persecuting each other for metaphysical  
propositions, which, true or false, were equally heretical in their mouths, because  
they used them only as watch- words of division. Orthodox or unorthodox, they  
knew not God, for they knew neither righteousness, nor love, nor peace …. They  
‘hated their brethren, and walked on still in darkness, not knowing whither they  
were going’ .... till Amrou and his Mohammedans appeared; and whether they  
discovered the fact or not, they went to their own place….  
Though the mills of God grind slowly, yet they grind exceeding small; Though  
He stands and waits with patience, with exactness grinds He all—  
And so found, in due time, the philosophers as well as the ecclesiastics of  
Alexandria.  
Twenty years after Hypatia’s death, philosophy was flickering down to the very  
socket. Hypatia’s murder was its death-blow. In language tremendous and  
unmistakable, philosophers had been informed that mankind had done with  
them; that they had been weighed in the balances, and found wanting; that if  
they had no better Gospel than that to preach, they must make way for those who  
had. And they did make way. We hear little or nothing of them or their wisdom  
henceforth, except at Athens, where Proclus, Marinus, Isidore, and others kept  
up ‘the golden chain of the Platonic succession,’ and descended deeper and  
deeper, one after the other, into the realms of confusion—confusion of the  
material with the spiritual, of the subject with the object, the moral with the  
intellectual; self- consistent in one thing only,—namely, in their exclusive  
Pharisaism utterly unable to proclaim any good news for man as man, or even to  
conceive of the possibility of such, and gradually looking with more and more  
complacency on all superstitious which did not involve that one idea, which  
alone they stated,—namely, the Incarnation; craving after signs and wonders,  
dabbling in magic, astrology, and barbarian fetichisms; bemoaning the fallen  
age, and barking querulously at every form of human thought except their own;  
writing pompous biographies, full of bad Greek, worse taste, and still worse  
miracles….  
—That last drear mood Of envious sloth, and proud decrepitude; No faith, no art,  
no king, no priest, no God; While round the freezing founts of life in snarling  
ring, Crouch’d on the bareworn sod, Babbling about the unreturning spring, And  
whining for dead gods, who cannot save, The toothless systems shiver to their  
grave.  
The last scene of their tragedy was not without a touch of pathos …. In the year  
629, Justinian finally closed, by imperial edict, the schools of Athens. They had  
nothing more to tell the world, but what the world had yawned over a thousand  
times before: why should they break the blessed silence by any more such  
noises? The philosophers felt so themselves. They had no mind to be martyrs,  
for they had nothing for which to testify. They had no message for mankind, and  
mankind no interest for them. All that was left for them was to take care of their  
own souls; and fancying that they saw something like Plato’s ideal republic in  
the pure monotheism of the Guebres, their philosophic emperor the Khozroo,  
and his holy caste of magi, seven of them set off to Persia, to forget the hateful  
existence of Christianity in that realised ideal. Alas for the facts! The purest  
monotheism, they discovered, was perfectly compatible with bigotry and  
ferocity, luxury and tyranny, serails and bowstrings, incestuous marriages and  
corpses exposed to the beasts of the field and the fowls of the air; and in  
reasonable fear for their own necks, the last seven Sages of Greece returned  
home weary-hearted, into the Christian Empire from which they had fled, fully  
contented with the permission, which the Khozroo had obtained for them from  
Justinian, to hold their peace, and die among decent people. So among decent  
people they died, leaving behind them, as their last legacy to mankind,  
Simplicius’s Commentaries on Epictetus’s Enchiridion, an essay on the art of  
egotism, by obeying which, whosoever list may become as perfect a Pharisee as  
ever darkened the earth of God. Peace he to their ashes! .... They are gone to  
their own place.  
...............  
Wulf, too, had gone to his own place, wheresoever that may be. He died in  
Spain, full of years and honours, at the court of Adolf and Placidia, having  
resigned his sovereignty into the hands of his lawful chieftain, and having lived  
long enough to see Goderic and his younger companions in arms settled with  
their Alexandrian brides upon the sunny slopes from which they had expelled the  
Vandals and the Suevi, to be the ancestors of ‘bluest-blooded’ Castilian nobles.  
Wulf died, as he had lived, a heathen. Placidia, who loved him well, as she loved  
all righteous and noble souls, had succeeded once in persuading him to accept  
baptism. Adolf himself acted as one of his sponsors; and the old warrior was in  
the act of stepping into the font, when he turned suddenly to the bishop, and  
asked where were the souls of his heathen ancestors? ‘In hell,’ replied the worthy  
prelate. Wulf drew back from the font, and threw his bearskin cloak around him  
…. ‘He would prefer, if Adolf had no objection, to go to his own people.’  
\[Footnote: A fact.\] And so he died unbaptized, and went to his own place.  
Victoria was still alive and busy: but Augustine’s warning had come true-she had  
found trouble in the flesh. The day of the Lord had come, and Vandal tyrants  
were now the masters of the fair corn-lands of Africa. Her father and brother  
were lying by the side of Raphael Aben-Ezra, beneath the ruined walls of Hippo,  
slain, long years before, in the vain attempt to deliver their country from the  
invading swarms. But they had died the death of heroes: and Victoria was  
content. And it was whispered, among the down-trodden Catholics, who clung to  
her as an angel of mercy, that she, too, had endured strange misery and disgrace;  
that her delicate limbs bore the scars of fearful tortures; that a room in her house,  
into which none ever entered but herself, contained a young boy’s grave; and  
that she passed long nights of prayer upon the spot, where lay her only child,  
martyred by the hands of Arian persecutors. Nay, some of the few who, having  
dared to face that fearful storm, had survived its fury, asserted that she herself,  
amid her own shame and agony, had cheered the shrinking boy on to his glorious  
death. But though she had found trouble in the flesh, her spirit knew none. Cleareyed and joyful as when she walked by her father’s side on the field of Ostia, she  
went to and fro among the victims of Vandal rapine and persecution, spending  
upon the maimed, the sick, the ruined, the small remnants of her former wealth,  
and winning, by her purity and her piety, the reverence and favour even of the  
barbarian conquerors. She had her work to do, and she did it, and was content;  
and, in good time, she also went to her own place.  
Abbot Pambo, as well as Arsenius, had been dead several years; the abbot’s  
place was filled, by his own dying command, by a hermit from the neighbouring  
deserts, who had made himself famous for many miles round, by his  
extraordinary austerities, his ceaseless prayers, his loving wisdom, and, it was  
rumoured, by various cures which could only be attributed to miraculous  
powers. While still in the prime of his manhood, he was dragged, against his  
own entreaties, from a lofty cranny of the cliffs to reside over the Laura of  
Scetis, and ordained a deacon at the advice of Pambo, by the bishop of the  
diocese, who, three years afterwards, took on himself to command him to enter  
the priesthood. The elder monks considered it an indignity to be ruled by so  
young a man: but the monastery throve and grew rapidly under his government.  
His sweetness, patience, and humility, and above all, his marvellous  
understanding of the doubts and temptations of his own generation, soon drew  
around him all whose sensitiveness or waywardness had made them  
unmanageable in the neighbouring monasteries. As to David in the mountains,  
so to him, every one who was discontented, and every one who was oppressed,  
gathered themselves. The neighbouring abbots were at first inclined to shrink  
from him, as one who ate and drank with publicans and sinners: but they held  
their peace, when they saw those whom they had driven out as reprobates  
labouring peacefully and cheerfully under Philammon. The elder generation of  
Scetis, too, saw, with some horror, the new influx of sinners: but their abbot had  
but one answer to their remonstrances—‘Those who are whole need not a  
physician, but those who are sick.’  
Never was the young abbot heard to speak harshly of any human being. ‘When  
thou halt tried in vain for seven years,’ he used to say, ‘to convert a sinner, then  
only wilt thou have a right to suspect him of being a worse man than thyself.’  
That there is a seed of good in all men, a Divine Word and Spirit striving with all  
men, a gospel and good news which would turn the hearts of all men, if abbots  
and priests could but preach it aright, was his favourite doctrine, and one which  
he used to defend, when, at rare intervals, he allowed himself to discuss any  
subject from the writings of his favourite theologian, Clement of Alexandria.  
Above all, he stopped, by stern rebuke, any attempt to revile either heretics or  
heathens. ‘On the Catholic Church alone,’ he used to say, ‘lies the blame of all  
heresy and unbelief: for if she were but for one day that which she ought to be,  
the world would be converted before nightfall.’ To one class of sins, indeed, he  
was inexorable—all but ferocious; to the sins, namely, of religious persons. In  
proportion to any man’s reputation for orthodoxy and sanctity, Philammon’s  
judgment of him was stern and pitiless. More than once events proved him to  
have been unjust: when he saw himself to be so, none could confess his mistake  
more frankly, or humiliate himself for it more bitterly: but from his rule he never  
swerved; and the Pharisees of the Nile dreaded and avoided him, as much as the  
publicans and sinners loved and followed him.  
One thing only in his conduct gave some handle for scandal, among the just  
persons who needed no repentance. It was well known that in his most solemn  
devotions, on those long nights of unceasing prayer and self-discipline, which  
won him a reputation for superhuman sanctity, there mingled always with his  
prayers the names of two women. And, when some worthy elder, taking courage  
from his years, dared to hint kindly to him that such conduct caused some  
scandal to the weaker brethren, ‘It is true,’ answered he; ‘tell my brethren that I  
pray nightly for two women both of them young; both of them beautiful; both of  
them beloved by me more than I love my own soul; and tell them, moreover, that  
one of the two was a harlot, and the other a heathen.’ The old monk laid his hand  
on his mouth, and retired.  
The remainder of his history it seems better to extract from an unpublished  
fragment of the Hagiologia Nilotica of Graidiocolosyrtus Tabenniticus, the  
greater part of which valuable work was destroyed at the taking of Alexandria  
under Amrou, A. D.  
640\.  
‘Now when the said abbot had ruled the monastery of Scetis seven years with  
uncommon prudence, resplendent in virtue and in miracles, it befell that one  
morning he was late for the Divine office. Whereon a certain ancient brother,  
who was also a deacon, being sent to ascertain the cause of so unwonted a  
defection, found the holy man extended upon the floor of his cell, like Balaam in  
the flesh, though far differing from him in the spirit, having fallen into a trance,  
but having his eyes open. Who, not daring to arouse him, sat by him until the  
hour of noon, judging rightly that something from heaven had befallen him. And  
at that hour, the saint arising without astonishment, said, “Brother, make ready  
for me the divine elements, that I may consecrate them.” And he asking the  
reason wherefore, the saint replied, “That I may partake thereof with all my  
brethren, ere I depart hence. For know assuredly that, within the seventh day, I  
shall migrate to the celestial mansions. For this night stood by me in a dream,  
those two women, whom I love, and for whom I pray; the one clothed in a white,  
the other in a ruby- coloured garment, and holding each other by the hand; who  
said to me, ‘That life after death is not such a one as you fancy; come, therefore,  
and behold with us what it is like.’” Troubled at which words, the deacon went  
forth yet on account not only of holy obedience, but also of the sanctity of the  
blessed abbot, did not hesitate to prepare according to his command the divine  
elements: which the abbot having consecrated, distributed among his brethren,  
reserving only a portion of the most holy bread and wine; and then, having  
bestowed on them all the kiss of peace, he took the paten and chalice in his  
hands, and went forth from the monastery towards the desert; whom the whole  
fraternity followed weeping, as knowing that they should see his face no more.  
But he, having arrived at the foot of a certain mountain, stopped, and blessing  
them, commanded them that they should follow him no farther, and dismissed  
them with these words: “As ye have been loved, so love. As ye have been  
judged, so judge. As ye have been forgiven, so forgive.” And so ascending, was  
taken away from their eyes. Now they, returning astonished, watched three days  
with prayer and fasting: but at last the eldest brother, being ashamed, like Elisha  
before the entreaties of Elijah’s disciples, sent two of the young men to seek  
their master.  
‘To whom befell a thing noteworthy and full of miracles. For ascending the same  
mountain where they had left the abbot, they met with a certain Moorish people,  
not averse to the Christianity, who declared that certain days before a priest had  
passed by them, bearing a paten and chalice, and blessing them in silence,  
proceeded across the desert in the direction of the cave of the holy Amma.  
‘And they inquiring who this Amma might be, the Moors answered that some  
twenty years ago there had arrived in those mountains a woman more beautiful  
than had ever before been seen in that region, dressed in rich garments; who,  
after a short sojourn among their tribe, having distributed among them the jewels  
which she wore, had embraced the eremitic life, and sojourned upon the highest  
peak of a neighbouring mountain; till, her garments failing her, she became  
invisible to mankind, saving to a few women of the tribe, who went up from  
time to time to carry her offerings of fruit and meal, and to ask the blessing of  
her prayers. To whom she rarely appeared, veiled down to her feet in black hair  
of exceeding length and splendour.  
‘Hearing these things, the two brethren doubted for awhile: but at last,  
determining to proceed, arrived at sunset upon the summit of the said mountain.  
‘Where, behold a great miracle. For above an open grave, freshly dug in the  
sand, a cloud of vultures and obscene birds hovered, whom two lions, fiercely  
contending, drove away with their talons, as if from some sacred deposit therein  
enshrined. Towards whom the two brethren, fortifying themselves with the sign  
of the holy cross, ascended. Whereupon the lions, as having fulfilled the term of  
their guardianship, retired; and left to the brethren a sight which they beheld with  
astonishment, and not without tears.  
‘For in the open grave lay the body of Philammon the abbot: and by his side,  
wrapped in his cloak, the corpse of a woman of exceeding beauty, such as the  
Moors had described. Whom embracing straitly, as a brother a sister, and joining  
his lips to hers, he had rendered up his soul to God; not without bestowing on  
her, as it seemed, the most holy sacrament; for by the grave-side stood the paten  
and the chalice emptied of their divine contents.  
‘Having beheld which things awhile in silence, they considered that the right  
understanding of such matters pertained to the judgment seat above, and was  
unnecessary to be comprehended by men consecrated to God. Whereon, filling  
in the grave with all haste, they returned weeping to the Laura, and declared to  
them the strange things which they had beheld, and whereof I the writer, having  
collected these facts from sacrosanct and most trustworthy mouths, can only say  
that wisdom is justified of all her children.  
‘Now, before they returned, one of the brethren searching the cave wherein the  
holy woman dwelt, found there neither food, furniture, nor other matters; saving  
one bracelet of gold, of large size and strange workmanship, engraven with  
foreign characters, which no one could decipher. The which bracelet, being taken  
home to the Laura of Scetis, and there dedicated in the chapel to the memory of  
the holy Amma, proved beyond all doubt the sanctity of its former possessor, by  
the miracles which its virtue worked; the fame whereof spreading abroad  
throughout the whole Thebaid, drew innumerable crowds of suppliants to that  
holy relic. But it came to pass, after the Vandalic persecution wherewith Huneric  
and Genseric the king devastated Africa, and enriched the Catholic Church with  
innumerable martyrs, that certain wandering barbarians of the Vandalic race,  
imbued with the Arian pravity, and made insolent by success, boiled over from  
the parts of Mauritania into the Thebaid region. Who plundering and burning all  
monasteries, and insulting the consecrated virgins, at last arrived even at the  
monastery of Scetis, where they not only, according to their impious custom,  
defiled the altar, and carried off the sacred vessels, but also bore away that most  
holy relic, the chief glory of the Laura,—namely, the bracelet of the holy Amma,  
impiously pretending that it had belonged to a warrior of their tribe, and thus  
expounded the writing thereon engraven—  
‘For Amalric Amal’s Son Smid Troll’s Son Made Me.  
Wherein whether they spoke truth or not, yet their sacrilege did not remain  
unpunished; for attempting to return homeward toward the sea by way of the  
Nile, they were set upon while weighed down with wine and sleep, by the  
country people, and to a man miserably destroyed. But the pious folk, restoring  
the holy gold to its pristine sanctuary, were not unrewarded: for since that day it  
grows glorious with ever fresh miracles—as of blind restored to sight, paralytics  
to strength, demoniacs to sanity—to the honour of the orthodox Catholic  
Church, and of its ever-blessed saints.’  
...............  
So be it. Pelagia and Philammon, like the rest, went to their own place; to the  
only place where such in such days could find rest; to the desert and the hermit’s  
cell, and then forward into that fairy land of legend and miracle, wherein all  
saintly lives were destined to be enveloped for many a century thenceforth.  
And now, readers, farewell. I have shown you New Foes under an old face—  
your own likenesses in toga and tunic, instead of coat and bonnet. One word  
before we part. The same devil who tempted these old Egyptians tempts you.  
The same God who would have saved these old Egyptians if they had willed,  
will save you, if you will. Their sins are yours, their errors yours, their doom  
yours, their deliverance yours. There is nothing new under the sun. The thing  
which has been, it is that which shall be. Let him that is without sin among you  
cast the first stone, whether at Hypatia or Pelagia, Miriam or Raphael, Cyril or  
Philammon.  
THE END  
End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Hypatia, by Charles Kingsley  
END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HYPATIA \*\*\*  
This file should be named hypta10.txt or hypta10.zip Corrected EDITIONS of  
our eBooks get a new NUMBER, hypta11.txt VERSIONS based on separate  
sources get new LETTER, hypta10a.txt  
Produced by P. J. Riddick  
Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed editions, all of  
which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US unless a copyright notice is  
included. Thus, we usually do not keep eBooks in compliance with any  
particular paper edition.  
We are now trying to release all our eBooks one year in advance of the official  
release dates, leaving time for better editing. Please be encouraged to tell us  
about any error or corrections, even years after the official publication date.  
Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til midnight of the last  
day of the month of any such announcement. The official release date of all  
Project Gutenberg eBooks is at Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the  
stated month. A preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion,  
comment and editing by those who wish to do so.  
Most people start at our Web sites at: http://gutenberg.net or http://promo.net/pg  
These Web sites include award-winning information about Project Gutenberg,  
including how to donate, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to  
subscribe to our email newsletter (free!).  
Those of you who want to download any eBook before announcement can get to  
them as follows, and just download by date. This is also a good way to get them  
instantly upon announcement, as the indexes our cataloguers produce obviously  
take a while after an announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg  
Newsletter.  
http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext03 or  
ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext03  
Or /etext02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90  
Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want, as it appears in our  
Newsletters.  
Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)  
We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The time it takes  
us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours to get any eBook selected,  
entered, proofread, edited, copyright searched and analyzed, the copyright letters  
written, etc. Our projected audience is one hundred million readers. If the value  
per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2 million dollars  
per hour in 2002 as we release over 100 new text files per month: 1240 more  
eBooks in 2001 for a total of 4000+ We are already on our way to trying for  
2000 more eBooks in 2002 If they reach just 1-2% of the world’s population  
then the total will reach over half a trillion eBooks given away by year’s end.  
The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away 1 Trillion eBooks! This is ten  
thousand titles each to one hundred million readers, which is only about 4% of  
the present number of computer users.  
Here is the briefest record of our progress (\* means estimated):  
eBooks Year Month  
1 1971 July 10 1991 January 100 1994 January 1000 1997 August 1500 1998  
October 2000 1999 December 2500 2000 December 3000 2001 November 4000  
2001 October/November 6000 2002 December\* 9000 2003 November\* 10000  
2004 January\*  
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created to secure a  
future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium.  
We need your donations more than ever!  
As of February, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people and  
organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut, Delaware, District of  
Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Hawaii, Illinois, Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky,  
Louisiana, Maine, Massachusetts, Michigan, Mississippi, Missouri, Montana,  
Nebraska, Nevada, New Hampshire, New Jersey, New Mexico, New York,  
North Carolina, Ohio, Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South  
Carolina, South Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington,  
West Virginia, Wisconsin, and Wyoming.  
We have filed in all 50 states now, but these are the only ones that have  
responded.  
As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be made  
and fund raising will begin in the additional states. Please feel free to ask to  
check the status of your state.  
In answer to various questions we have received on this:  
We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally request  
donations in all 50 states. If your state is not listed and you would like to know if  
we have added it since the list you have, just ask.  
While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are not yet  
registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting donations from donors  
in these states who approach us with an offer to donate.  
International donations are accepted, but we don’t know ANYTHING about how  
to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made deductible, and don’t  
have the staff to handle it even if there are ways.  
Donations by check or money order may be sent to:  
Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation PMB 113 1739 University Ave.  
Oxford, MS 38655-4109  
Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment method other  
than by check or money order.  
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by the  
US Internal Revenue Service as a 501©(3) organization with EIN \[Employee  
Identification Number\] 64-622154. Donations are tax-deductible to the  
maximum extent permitted by law. As fund-raising requirements for other states  
are met, additions to this list will be made and fund-raising will begin in the  
additional states.  
We need your donations more than ever!  
You can get up to date donation information online at:  
http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html  
If you can’t reach Project Gutenberg, you can always email directly to:  
Michael S. Hart  
Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message.  
We would prefer to send you information by email.  
The Legal Small Print  
(Three Pages)  
\*\*\*START\*\*THE SMALL PRINT!\*\*FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN  
EBOOKS\*\*START\*\*\* Why is this “Small Print!” statement here? You know:  
lawyers. They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with your  
copy of this eBook, even if you got it for free from someone other than us, and  
even if what’s wrong is not our fault. So, among other things, this “Small Print!”  
statement disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how you may  
distribute copies of this eBook if you want to.  
BEFORE! YOU USE OR READ THIS EBOOK By using or reading any part  
of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, you indicate that you understand,  
agree to and accept this “Small Print!” statement. If you do not, you can receive  
a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this eBook by sending a request  
within 30 days of receiving it to the person you got it from. If you received this  
eBook on a physical medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your  
request.  
ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM EBOOKS This PROJECT  
GUTENBERG-tm eBook, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBooks, is a  
“public domain” work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart through the  
Project Gutenberg Association (the “Project”). Among other things, this means  
that no one owns a United States copyright on or for this work, so the Project  
(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission and  
without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth below, apply if you  
wish to copy and distribute this eBook under the “PROJECT GUTENBERG”  
trademark.  
Please do not use the “PROJECT GUTENBERG” trademark to market any  
commercial products without permission.  
To create these eBooks, the Project expends considerable efforts to identify,  
transcribe and proofread public domain works. Despite these efforts, the  
Project’s eBooks and any medium they may be on may contain “Defects”.  
Among other things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or  
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual property  
infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other eBook medium, a computer  
virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.  
LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES But for the “Right of  
Replacement or Refund” described below, \[1\] Michael Hart and the Foundation  
(and any other party you may receive this eBook from as a PROJECT  
GUTENBERG-tm eBook) disclaims all liability to you for damages, costs and  
expenses, including legal fees, and \[2\] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR  
NEGLIGENCE OR UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF  
WARRANTY OR CONTRACT, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO  
INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES,  
EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH  
DAMAGES.  
If you discover a Defect in this eBook within 90 days of receiving it, you can  
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending an explanatory  
note within that time to the person you received it from. If you received it on a  
physical medium, you must return it with your note, and such person may  
choose to alternatively give you a replacement copy. If you received it  
electronically, such person may choose to alternatively give you a second  
opportunity to receive it electronically.  
THIS EBOOK IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU “AS-IS”. NO OTHER  
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO  
YOU AS TO THE EBOOK OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON,  
INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF  
MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A PARTICULAR PURPOSE.  
Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or the exclusion or  
limitation of consequential damages, so the above disclaimers and exclusions  
may not apply to you, and you may have other legal rights.  
INDEMNITY You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation, and  
its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated with the production and  
distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm texts harmless, from all liability, cost and  
expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the  
following that you do or cause: \[1\] distribution of this eBook, \[2\] alteration,  
modification, or addition to the eBook, or \[3\] any Defect.  
DISTRIBUTION UNDER “PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm” You may distribute  
copies of this eBook electronically, or by disk, book or any other medium if you  
either delete this “Small Print!” and all other references to Project Gutenberg, or:  
\[1\] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this requires that you do  
not remove, alter or modify the eBook or this “small print!” statement. You may  
however, if you wish, distribute this eBook in machine readable binary,  
compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form, including any form resulting from  
conversion by word processing or hypertext software, but only so long as  
EITHER:  
\[\*\] The eBook, when displayed, is clearly readable, and does not contain  
characters other than those intended by the author of the work, although tilde (~),  
asterisk (\*) and underline (\_) characters may be used to convey punctuation  
intended by the author, and additional characters may be used to indicate  
hypertext links; OR \[\*\] The eBook may be readily converted by the reader at no  
expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent form by the program that  
displays the eBook (as is the case, for instance, with most word processors); OR  
\[\*\] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at no additional cost, fee or  
expense, a copy of the eBook in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC or  
other equivalent proprietary form).  
\[2\] Honor the eBook refund and replacement provisions of this “Small Print!”  
statement.  
\[3\] Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the gross profits you  
derive calculated using the method you already use to calculate your applicable  
taxes. If you don’t derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are payable to  
“Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation” the 60 days following each  
date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent  
periodic) tax return. Please contact us beforehand to let us know your plans and  
to work out the details.  
WHAT IF YOU WANT TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON’T HAVE  
TO? Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of public domain  
and licensed works that can be freely distributed in machine readable form.  
The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time, public domain  
materials, or royalty free copyright licenses. Money should be paid to the:  
“Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.”  
If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or software or other  
items, please contact Michael Hart at: hart@pobox.com  
\[Portions of this eBook’s header and trailer may be reprinted only when  
distributed free of all fees. Copyright © 2001, 2002 by Michael S. Hart. Project  
Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be used in any sales of Project  
Gutenberg eBooks or other materials be they hardware or software or any other  
related product without express permission.\]  
\*END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN  
EBOOKS\*Ver.02/11/02\*END\*